The Project Gutenberg Etext of History Of The Decline And Fall Of The Roman Empire Volume 5
#2 in our format series by Edward Gibbon, Esq. With notes by
the Rev. H. H. Milman
Copyright laws are changing all over the world, be sure to check
the copyright laws for your country before posting these
files!!
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove
this.
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic
Texts**
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since
1971**
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and
Donations*
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
further information is included below. We need your
donations.
History Of The Decline And Fall Of The Roman Empire Volume
5
by Edward Gibbon, Esq. With notes by the Rev. H. H. Milman
April, 1997 [Etext # 894]
The Project Gutenberg Etext of History Of The Decline And Fall
Of The Roman Empire Volume 5
*****This file should be named dfre210.txt or
dfre210.zip******
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, dfre511.txt.
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER,
dfre510a.txt.
Scanned, proofed and converted to HTML by David Reed. Dale R.
Fredrickson who entered the Greek characters in the footnotes and
who has suggested retaining the conjoined ae character in the
text.
We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
of the official release dates, for time for better
editing.
Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
million dollars per hour this year as we release thirty-two text
files per month: or 400 more Etexts in 1996 for a total of 800.
If these reach just 10% of the computerized population, then the
total should reach 80 billion Etexts.
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
which is only 10% of the present number of computer users. 2001
should have at least twice as many computer users as that, so it
will require us reaching less than 5% of the users in
2001.
We need your donations more than ever!
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/CMU": and are
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law. (CMU = Carnegie-
Mellon University).
For these and other matters, please mail to:
Project Gutenberg
P. O. Box 2782
Champaign, IL 61825
When all other email fails try our Executive Director:
Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
We would prefer to send you this information by email
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
******
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
ftp uiarchive.cso.uiuc.edu
login: anonymous
password: your@login
cd etext/etext90 through /etext96
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
dir [to see files]
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
GET INDEX?00.GUT
for a list of books
and
GET NEW GUT for general information
and
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
(Three Pages)
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your
request.
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
Carnegie-Mellon University (the "Project"). Among other
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
distribute it in the United States without permission and
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
receive it electronically.
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
may have other legal rights.
INDEMNITY
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
or:
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
*EITHER*:
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
does *not* contain characters other than those
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
author, and additional characters may be used to
indicate hypertext links; OR
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
OR
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
or other equivalent proprietary form).
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
"Small Print!" statement.
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association/Carnegie-Mellon
University" within the 60 days following each
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
Association / Carnegie-Mellon University".
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN
ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
This is volume five of the six volumes of Edward Gibbon's
History Of The Decline And Fall Of The Roman Empire. If you find
any errors please feel free to notify me of them. I want to make
this the best etext edition possible for both scholars and the
general public. Haradda@aol.com and davidr@inconnect.com are my
email addresses for now. Please feel free to send me your
comments and I hope you enjoy this.
David Reed
History Of The Decline And Fall Of The
Roman Empire
Edward Gibbon, Esq.
With notes by the Rev. H. H. Milman
Vol. 5
1782 (Written), 1845 (Revised)
Chapter XLIX: Conquest Of Italy By The
Franks.
Part I.
Introduction, Worship, And Persecution Of Images. -- Revolt Of
Italy And Rome. -- Temporal Dominion Of The Popes. -- Conquest Of
Italy By The Franks. -- Establishment Of Images. -- Character And
Coronation Of Charlemagne. -- Restoration And Decay Of The Roman
Empire In The West. -- Independence Of Italy. -- Constitution Of
The Germanic Body.
In the connection of the church and state, I have considered
the former as subservient only, and relative, to the latter; a
salutary maxim, if in fact, as well as in narrative, it had ever
been held sacred. The Oriental philosophy of the Gnostics, the
dark abyss of predestination and grace, and the strange
transformation of the Eucharist from the sign to the substance of
Christ's body, I have purposely abandoned to the curiosity of
speculative divines. But I have reviewed, with diligence and
pleasure, the objects of ecclesiastical history, by which the
decline and fall of the Roman empire were materially affected,
the propagation of Christianity, the constitution of the Catholic
church, the ruin of Paganism, and the sects that arose from the
mysterious controversies concerning the Trinity and incarnation.
At the head of this class, we may justly rank the worship of
images, so fiercely disputed in the eighth and ninth centuries;
since a question of popular superstition produced the revolt of
Italy, the temporal power of the popes, and the restoration of
the Roman empire in the West.
The primitive Christians were possessed with an unconquerable
repugnance to the use and abuse of images; and this aversion may
be ascribed to their descent from the Jews, and their enmity to
the Greeks. The Mosaic law had severely proscribed all
representations of the Deity; and that precept was firmly
established in the principles and practice of the chosen people.
The wit of the Christian apologists was pointed against the
foolish idolaters, who bowed before the workmanship of their own
hands; the images of brass and marble, which, had
they been endowed with sense and
motion, should have started rather from the pedestal to adore the
creative powers of the artist. Perhaps some recent and imperfect
converts of the Gnostic tribe might crown the statues of Christ
and St. Paul with the profane honors which they paid to those of
Aristotle and Pythagoras; but the public religion of the
Catholics was uniformly simple and spiritual; and the first
notice of the use of pictures is in the censure of the council of
Illiberis, three hundred years after the Christian æra.
Under the successors of Constantine, in the peace and luxury of
the triumphant church, the more prudent bishops condescended to
indulge a visible superstition, for the benefit of the multitude;
and, after the ruin of Paganism, they were no longer restrained
by the apprehension of an odious parallel. The first introduction
of a symbolic worship was in the veneration of the cross, and of
relics. The saints and martyrs, whose intercession was implored,
were seated on the right hand if God; but the gracious and often
supernatural favors, which, in the popular belief, were showered
round their tomb, conveyed an unquestionable sanction of the
devout pilgrims, who visited, and touched, and kissed these
lifeless remains, the memorials of their merits and sufferings.
But a memorial, more interesting than the skull or the sandals of
a departed worthy, is the faithful copy of his person and
features, delineated by the arts of painting or sculpture. In
every age, such copies, so congenial to human feelings, have been
cherished by the zeal of private friendship, or public esteem:
the images of the Roman emperors were adored with civil, and
almost religious, honors; a reverence less ostentatious, but more
sincere, was applied to the statues of sages and patriots; and
these profane virtues, these splendid sins, disappeared in the
presence of the holy men, who had died for their celestial and
everlasting country. At first, the experiment was made with
caution and scruple; and the venerable pictures were discreetly
allowed to instruct the ignorant, to awaken the cold, and to
gratify the prejudices of the heathen proselytes. By a slow
though inevitable progression, the honors of the original were
transferred to the copy: the devout Christian prayed before the
image of a saint; and the Pagan rites of genuflection,
luminaries, and incense, again stole into the Catholic church.
The scruples of reason, or piety, were silenced by the strong
evidence of visions and miracles; and the pictures which speak,
and move, and bleed, must be endowed with a divine energy, and
may be considered as the proper objects of religious adoration.
The most audacious pencil might tremble in the rash attempt of
defining, by forms and colors, the infinite Spirit, the eternal
Father, who pervades and sustains the universe. But the
superstitious mind was more easily reconciled to paint and to
worship the angels, and, above all, the Son of God, under the
human shape, which, on earth, they have condescended to assume.
The second person of the Trinity had been clothed with a real and
mortal body; but that body had ascended into heaven: and, had not
some similitude been presented to the eyes of his disciples, the
spiritual worship of Christ might have been obliterated by the
visible relics and representations of the saints. A similar
indulgence was requisite and propitious for the Virgin Mary: the
place of her burial was unknown; and the assumption of her soul
and body into heaven was adopted by the credulity of the Greeks
and Latins. The use, and even the worship, of images was firmly
established before the end of the sixth century: they were fondly
cherished by the warm imagination of the Greeks and Asiatics: the
Pantheon and Vatican were adorned with the emblems of a new
superstition; but this semblance of idolatry was more coldly
entertained by the rude Barbarians and the Arian clergy of the
West. The bolder forms of sculpture, in brass or marble, which
peopled the temples of antiquity, were offensive to the fancy or
conscience of the Christian Greeks: and a smooth surface of
colors has ever been esteemed a more decent and harmless mode of
imitation.
The merit and effect of a copy depends on its resemblance with
the original; but the primitive Christians were ignorant of the
genuine features of the Son of God, his mother, and his apostles:
the statue of Christ at Paneas in Palestine was more probably
that of some temporal savior; the Gnostics and their profane
monuments were reprobated; and the fancy of the Christian artists
could only be guided by the clandestine imitation of some heathen
model. In this distress, a bold and dexterous invention assured
at once the likeness of the image and the innocence of the
worship. A new super structure of fable was raised on the popular
basis of a Syrian legend, on the correspondence of Christ and
Abgarus, so famous in the days of Eusebius, so reluctantly
deserted by our modern advocates. The bishop of Cæsarea
records the epistle, but he most strangely forgets the picture of
Christ; the perfect impression of his face on a linen, with which
he gratified the faith of the royal stranger who had invoked his
healing power, and offered the strong city of Edessa to protect
him against the malice of the Jews. The ignorance of the
primitive church is explained by the long imprisonment of the
image in a niche of the wall, from whence, after an oblivion of
five hundred years, it was released by some prudent bishop, and
seasonably presented to the devotion of the times. Its first and
most glorious exploit was the deliverance of the city from the
arms of Chosroes Nushirvan; and it was soon revered as a pledge
of the divine promise, that Edessa should never be taken by a
foreign enemy. It is true, indeed, that the text of Procopius
ascribes the double deliverance of Edessa to the wealth and valor
of her citizens, who purchased the absence and repelled the
assaults of the Persian monarch. He was ignorant, the profane
historian, of the testimony which he is compelled to deliver in
the ecclesiastical page of Evagrius, that the Palladium was
exposed on the rampart, and that the water which had been
sprinkled on the holy face, instead of quenching, added new fuel
to the flames of the besieged. After this important service, the
image of Edessa was preserved with respect and gratitude; and if
the Armenians rejected the legend, the more credulous Greeks
adored the similitude, which was not the work of any mortal
pencil, but the immediate creation of the divine original. The
style and sentiments of a Byzantine hymn will declare how far
their worship was removed from the grossest idolatry. "How can we
with mortal eyes contemplate this image, whose celestial splendor
the host of heaven presumes not to behold? He who dwells in
heaven, condescends this day to visit us by his venerable image;
He who is seated on the cherubim, visits us this day by a
picture, which the Father has delineated with his immaculate
hand, which he has formed in an ineffable manner, and which we
sanctify by adoring it with fear and love." Before the end of the
sixth century, these images, made without
hands, (in Greek it is a single word, ) were
propagated in the camps and cities of the Eastern empire: they
were the objects of worship, and the instruments of miracles; and
in the hour of danger or tumult, their venerable presence could
revive the hope, rekindle the courage, or repress the fury, of
the Roman legions. Of these pictures, the far greater part, the
transcripts of a human pencil, could only pretend to a secondary
likeness and improper title: but there were some of higher
descent, who derived their resemblance from an immediate contact
with the original, endowed, for that purpose, with a miraculous
and prolific virtue. The most ambitious aspired from a filial to
a fraternal relation with the image of Edessa; and such is the
veronica of Rome, or Spain, or
Jerusalem, which Christ in his agony and bloody sweat applied to
his face, and delivered to a holy matron. The fruitful precedent
was speedily transferred to the Virgin Mary, and the saints and
martyrs. In the church of Diospolis, in Palestine, the features
of the Mother of God were deeply inscribed in a marble column;
the East and West have been decorated by the pencil of St. Luke;
and the Evangelist, who was perhaps a physician, has been forced
to exercise the occupation of a painter, so profane and odious in
the eyes of the primitive Christians. The Olympian Jove, created
by the muse of Homer and the chisel of Phidias, might inspire a
philosophic mind with momentary devotion; but these Catholic
images were faintly and flatly delineated by monkish artists in
the last degeneracy of taste and genius.
The worship of images had stolen into the church by insensible
degrees, and each petty step was pleasing to the superstitious
mind, as productive of comfort, and innocent of sin. But in the
beginning of the eighth century, in the full magnitude of the
abuse, the more timorous Greeks were awakened by an apprehension,
that under the mask of Christianity, they had restored the
religion of their fathers: they heard, with grief and impatience,
the name of idolaters; the incessant charge of the Jews and
Mahometans, who derived from the Law and the Koran an immortal
hatred to graven images and all relative worship. The servitude
of the Jews might curb their zeal, and depreciate their
authority; but the triumphant Mussulmans, who reigned at
Damascus, and threatened Constantinople, cast into the scale of
reproach the accumulated weight of truth and victory. The cities
of Syria, Palestine, and Egypt had been fortified with the images
of Christ, his mother, and his saints; and each city presumed on
the hope or promise of miraculous defence. In a rapid conquest of
ten years, the Arabs subdued those cities and these images; and,
in their opinion, the Lord of Hosts pronounced a decisive
judgment between the adoration and contempt of these mute and
inanimate idols. * For a while Edessa had braved the Persian
assaults; but the chosen city, the spouse of Christ, was involved
in the common ruin; and his divine resemblance became the slave
and trophy of the infidels. After a servitude of three hundred
years, the Palladium was yielded to the devotion of
Constantinople, for a ransom of twelve thousand pounds of silver,
the redemption of two hundred Mussulmans, and a perpetual truce
for the territory of Edessa. In this season of distress and
dismay, the eloquence of the monks was exercised in the defence
of images; and they attempted to prove, that the sin and schism
of the greatest part of the Orientals had forfeited the favor,
and annihilated the virtue, of these precious symbols. But they
were now opposed by the murmurs of many simple or rational
Christians, who appealed to the evidence of texts, of facts, and
of the primitive times, and secretly desired the reformation of
the church. As the worship of images had never been established
by any general or positive law, its progress in the Eastern
empire had been retarded, or accelerated, by the differences of
men and manners, the local degrees of refinement, and the
personal characters of the bishops. The splendid devotion was
fondly cherished by the levity of the capital, and the inventive
genius of the Byzantine clergy; while the rude and remote
districts of Asia were strangers to this innovation of sacred
luxury. Many large congregations of Gnostics and Arians
maintained, after their conversion, the simple worship which had
preceded their separation; and the Armenians, the most warlike
subjects of Rome, were not reconciled, in the twelfth century, to
the sight of images. These various denominations of men afforded
a fund of prejudice and aversion, of small account in the
villages of Anatolia or Thrace, but which, in the fortune of a
soldier, a prelate, or a eunuch, might be often connected with
the powers of the church and state.
Of such adventurers, the most fortunate was the emperor Leo
the Third, who, from the mountains of Isauria, ascended the
throne of the East. He was ignorant of sacred and profane
letters; but his education, his reason, perhaps his intercourse
with the Jews and Arabs, had inspired the martial peasant with a
hatred of images; and it was held to be the duty of a prince to
impose on his subjects the dictates of his own conscience. But in
the outset of an unsettled reign, during ten years of toil and
danger, Leo submitted to the meanness of hypocrisy, bowed before
the idols which he despised, and satisfied the Roman pontiff with
the annual professions of his orthodoxy and zeal. In the
reformation of religion, his first steps were moderate and
cautious: he assembled a great council of senators and bishops,
and enacted, with their consent, that all the images should be
removed from the sanctuary and altar to a proper height in the
churches where they might be visible to the eyes, and
inaccessible to the superstition, of the people. But it was
impossible on either side to check the rapid through adverse
impulse of veneration and abhorrence: in their lofty position,
the sacred images still edified their votaries, and reproached
the tyrant. He was himself provoked by resistance and invective;
and his own party accused him of an imperfect discharge of his
duty, and urged for his imitation the example of the Jewish king,
who had broken without scruple the brazen serpent of the temple.
By a second edict, he proscribed the existence as well as the use
of religious pictures; the churches of Constantinople and the
provinces were cleansed from idolatry; the images of Christ, the
Virgin, and the saints, were demolished, or a smooth surface of
plaster was spread over the walls of the edifice. The sect of the
Iconoclasts was supported by the zeal and despotism of six
emperors, and the East and West were involved in a noisy conflict
of one hundred and twenty years. It was the design of Leo the
Isaurian to pronounce the condemnation of images as an article of
faith, and by the authority of a general council: but the
convocation of such an assembly was reserved for his son
Constantine; and though it is stigmatized by triumphant bigotry
as a meeting of fools and atheists, their own partial and
mutilated acts betray many symptoms of reason and piety. The
debates and decrees of many provincial synods introduced the
summons of the general council which met in the suburbs of
Constantinople, and was composed of the respectable number of
three hundred and thirty-eight bishops of Europe and Anatolia;
for the patriarchs of Antioch and Alexandria were the slaves of
the caliph, and the Roman pontiff had withdrawn the churches of
Italy and the West from the communion of the Greeks. This
Byzantine synod assumed the rank and powers of the seventh
general council; yet even this title was a recognition of the six
preceding assemblies, which had laboriously built the structure
of the Catholic faith. After a serious deliberation of six
months, the three hundred and thirty-eight bishops pronounced and
subscribed a unanimous decree, that all visible symbols of
Christ, except in the Eucharist, were either blasphemous or
heretical; that image-worship was a corruption of Christianity
and a renewal of Paganism; that all such monuments of idolatry
should be broken or erased; and that those who should refuse to
deliver the objects of their private superstition, were guilty of
disobedience to the authority of the church and of the emperor.
In their loud and loyal acclamations, they celebrated the merits
of their temporal redeemer; and to his zeal and justice they
intrusted the execution of their spiritual censures. At
Constantinople, as in the former councils, the will of the prince
was the rule of episcopal faith; but on this occasion, I am
inclined to suspect that a large majority of the prelates
sacrificed their secret conscience to the temptations of hope and
fear. In the long night of superstition, the Christians had
wandered far away from the simplicity of the gospel: nor was it
easy for them to discern the clew, and tread back the mazes, of
the labyrinth. The worship of images was inseparably blended, at
least to a pious fancy, with the Cross, the Virgin, the Saints
and their relics; the holy ground was involved in a cloud of
miracles and visions; and the nerves of the mind, curiosity and
scepticism, were benumbed by the habits of obedience and belief.
Constantine himself is accused of indulging a royal license to
doubt, or deny, or deride the mysteries of the Catholics, but
they were deeply inscribed in the public and private creed of his
bishops; and the boldest Iconoclast might assault with a secret
horror the monuments of popular devotion, which were consecrated
to the honor of his celestial patrons. In the reformation of the
sixteenth century, freedom and knowledge had expanded all the
faculties of man: the thirst of innovation superseded the
reverence of antiquity; and the vigor of Europe could disdain
those phantoms which terrified the sickly and servile weakness of
the Greeks.
The scandal of an abstract heresy can be only proclaimed to
the people by the blast of the ecclesiastical trumpet; but the
most ignorant can perceive, the most torpid must feel, the
profanation and downfall of their visible deities. The first
hostilities of Leo were directed against a lofty Christ on the
vestibule, and above the gate, of the palace. A ladder had been
planted for the assault, but it was furiously shaken by a crowd
of zealots and women: they beheld, with pious transport, the
ministers of sacrilege tumbling from on high and dashed against
the pavement: and the honors of the ancient martyrs were
prostituted to these criminals, who justly suffered for murder
and rebellion. The execution of the Imperial edicts was resisted
by frequent tumults in Constantinople and the provinces: the
person of Leo was endangered, his officers were massacred, and
the popular enthusiasm was quelled by the strongest efforts of
the civil and military power. Of the Archipelago, or Holy Sea,
the numerous islands were filled with images and monks: their
votaries abjured, without scruple, the enemy of Christ, his
mother, and the saints; they armed a fleet of boats and galleys,
displayed their consecrated banners, and boldly steered for the
harbor of Constantinople, to place on the throne a new favorite
of God and the people. They depended on the succor of a miracle:
but their miracles were inefficient against the Greek
fire; and, after the defeat and conflagration of
the fleet, the naked islands were abandoned to the clemency or
justice of the conqueror. The son of Leo, in the first year of
his reign, had undertaken an expedition against the Saracens:
during his absence, the capital, the palace, and the purple, were
occupied by his kinsman Artavasdes, the ambitious champion of the
orthodox faith. The worship of images was triumphantly restored:
the patriarch renounced his dissimulation, or dissembled his
sentiments and the righteous claims of the usurper was
acknowledged, both in the new, and in ancient, Rome. Constantine
flew for refuge to his paternal mountains; but he descended at
the head of the bold and affectionate Isaurians; and his final
victory confounded the arms and predictions of the fanatics. His
long reign was distracted with clamor, sedition, conspiracy, and
mutual hatred, and sanguinary revenge; the persecution of images
was the motive or pretence, of his adversaries; and, if they
missed a temporal diadem, they were rewarded by the Greeks with
the crown of martyrdom. In every act of open and clandestine
treason, the emperor felt the unforgiving enmity of the monks,
the faithful slaves of the superstition to which they owed their
riches and influence. They prayed, they preached, they absolved,
they inflamed, they conspired; the solitude of Palestine poured
forth a torrent of invective; and the pen of St. John Damascenus,
the last of the Greek fathers, devoted the tyrant's head, both in
this world and the next. * I am not at leisure to examine how far
the monks provoked, nor how much they have exaggerated, their
real and pretended sufferings, nor how many lost their lives or
limbs, their eyes or their beards, by the cruelty of the emperor.
From the chastisement of individuals, he proceeded to the
abolition of the order; and, as it was wealthy and useless, his
resentment might be stimulated by avarice, and justified by
patriotism. The formidable name and mission of the
Dragon, his visitor-general, excited
the terror and abhorrence of the black
nation: the religious communities were dissolved, the buildings
were converted into magazines, or bar racks; the lands, movables,
and cattle were confiscated; and our modern precedents will
support the charge, that much wanton or malicious havoc was
exercised against the relics, and even the books of the
monasteries. With the habit and profession of monks, the public
and private worship of images was rigorously proscribed; and it
should seem, that a solemn abjuration of idolatry was exacted
from the subjects, or at least from the clergy, of the Eastern
empire.
The patient East abjured, with reluctance, her sacred images;
they were fondly cherished, and vigorously defended, by the
independent zeal of the Italians. In ecclesiastical rank and
jurisdiction, the patriarch of Constantinople and the pope of
Rome were nearly equal. But the Greek prelate was a domestic
slave under the eye of his master, at whose nod he alternately
passed from the convent to the throne, and from the throne to the
convent. A distant and dangerous station, amidst the Barbarians
of the West, excited the spirit and freedom of the Latin bishops.
Their popular election endeared them to the Romans: the public
and private indigence was relieved by their ample revenue; and
the weakness or neglect of the emperors compelled them to
consult, both in peace and war, the temporal safety of the city.
In the school of adversity the priest insensibly imbibed the
virtues and the ambition of a prince; the same character was
assumed, the same policy was adopted, by the Italian, the Greek,
or the Syrian, who ascended the chair of St. Peter; and, after
the loss of her legions and provinces, the genius and fortune of
the popes again restored the supremacy of Rome. It is agreed,
that in the eighth century, their dominion was founded on
rebellion, and that the rebellion was produced, and justified, by
the heresy of the Iconoclasts; but the conduct of the second and
third Gregory, in this memorable contest, is variously
interpreted by the wishes of their friends and enemies. The
Byzantine writers unanimously declare, that, after a fruitless
admonition, they pronounced the separation of the East and West,
and deprived the sacrilegious tyrant of the revenue and
sovereignty of Italy. Their excommunication is still more clearly
expressed by the Greeks, who beheld the accomplishment of the
papal triumphs; and as they are more strongly attached to their
religion than to their country, they praise, instead of blaming,
the zeal and orthodoxy of these apostolical men. The modern
champions of Rome are eager to accept the praise and the
precedent: this great and glorious example of the deposition of
royal heretics is celebrated by the cardinals Baronius and
Bellarmine; and if they are asked, why the same thunders were not
hurled against the Neros and Julians of antiquity, they reply,
that the weakness of the primitive church was the sole cause of
her patient loyalty. On this occasion the effects of love and
hatred are the same; and the zealous Protestants, who seek to
kindle the indignation, and to alarm the fears, of princes and
magistrates, expatiate on the insolence and treason of the two
Gregories against their lawful sovereign. They are defended only
by the moderate Catholics, for the most part, of the Gallican
church, who respect the saint, without approving the sin. These
common advocates of the crown and the mitre circumscribe the
truth of facts by the rule of equity, Scripture, and tradition,
and appeal to the evidence of the Latins, and the lives and
epistles of the popes themselves.
Chapter XLIX: Conquest Of Italy By The Franks. --
Part II.
Two original epistles, from Gregory the Second to the emperor
Leo, are still extant; and if they cannot be praised as the most
perfect models of eloquence and logic, they exhibit the portrait,
or at least the mask, of the founder of the papal monarchy.
"During ten pure and fortunate years," says Gregory to the
emperor, "we have tasted the annual comfort of your royal
letters, subscribed in purple ink, with your own hand, the sacred
pledges of your attachment to the orthodox creed of our fathers.
How deplorable is the change! how tremendous the scandal! You now
accuse the Catholics of idolatry; and, by the accusation, you
betray your own impiety and ignorance. To this ignorance we are
compelled to adapt the grossness of our style and arguments: the
first elements of holy letters are sufficient for your confusion;
and were you to enter a grammar-school, and avow yourself the
enemy of our worship, the simple and pious children would be
provoked to cast their horn-books at your head." After this
decent salutation, the pope attempts the usual distinction
between the idols of antiquity and the Christian images. The
former were the fanciful representations of phantoms or
dæmons, at a time when the true God had not manifested his
person in any visible likeness. The latter are the genuine forms
of Christ, his mother, and his saints, who had approved, by a
crowd of miracles, the innocence and merit of this relative
worship. He must indeed have trusted to the ignorance of Leo,
since he could assert the perpetual use of images, from the
apostolic age, and their venerable presence in the six synods of
the Catholic church. A more specious argument is drawn from
present possession and recent practice the harmony of the
Christian world supersedes the demand of a general council; and
Gregory frankly confesses, than such assemblies can only be
useful under the reign of an orthodox prince. To the impudent and
inhuman Leo, more guilty than a heretic, he recommends peace,
silence, and implicit obedience to his spiritual guides of
Constantinople and Rome. The limits of civil and ecclesiastical
powers are defined by the pontiff. To the former he appropriates
the body; to the latter, the soul: the sword of justice is in the
hands of the magistrate: the more formidable weapon of
excommunication is intrusted to the clergy; and in the exercise
of their divine commission a zealous son will not spare his
offending father: the successor of St. Peter may lawfully
chastise the kings of the earth. "You assault us, O tyrant! with
a carnal and military hand: unarmed and naked we can only implore
the Christ, the prince of the heavenly host, that he will send
unto you a devil, for the destruction of your body and the
salvation of your soul. You declare, with foolish arrogance, I
will despatch my orders to Rome: I will break in pieces the image
of St. Peter; and Gregory, like his predecessor Martin, shall be
transported in chains, and in exile, to the foot of the Imperial
throne. Would to God that I might be permitted to tread in the
footsteps of the holy Martin! but may the fate of Constans serve
as a warning to the persecutors of the church! After his just
condemnation by the bishops of Sicily, the tyrant was cut off, in
the fullness of his sins, by a domestic servant: the saint is
still adored by the nations of Scythia, among whom he ended his
banishment and his life. But it is our duty to live for the
edification and support of the faithful people; nor are we
reduced to risk our safety on the event of a combat. Incapable as
you are of defending your Roman subjects, the maritime situation
of the city may perhaps expose it to your depredation but we can
remove to the distance of four-and-twenty
stadia, to the first fortress of the
Lombards, and then -- you may pursue the winds. Are you ignorant
that the popes are the bond of union, the mediators of peace,
between the East and West? The eyes of the nations are fixed on
our humility; and they revere, as a God upon earth, the apostle
St. Peter, whose image you threaten to destroy. The remote and
interior kingdoms of the West present their homage to Christ and
his vicegerent; and we now prepare to visit one of their most
powerful monarchs, who desires to receive from our hands the
sacrament of baptism. The Barbarians have submitted to the yoke
of the gospel, while you alone are deaf to the voice of the
shepherd. These pious Barbarians are kindled into rage: they
thirst to avenge the persecution of the East. Abandon your rash
and fatal enterprise; reflect, tremble, and repent. If you
persist, we are innocent of the blood that will be spilt in the
contest; may it fall on your own head!"
The first assault of Leo against the images of Constantinople
had been witnessed by a crowd of strangers from Italy and the
West, who related with grief and indignation the sacrilege of the
emperor. But on the reception of his proscriptive edict, they
trembled for their domestic deities: the images of Christ and the
Virgin, of the angels, martyrs, and saints, were abolished in all
the churches of Italy; and a strong alternative was proposed to
the Roman pontiff, the royal favor as the price of his
compliance, degradation and exile as the penalty of his
disobedience. Neither zeal nor policy allowed him to hesitate;
and the haughty strain in which Gregory addressed the emperor
displays his confidence in the truth of his doctrine or the
powers of resistance. Without depending on prayers or miracles,
he boldly armed against the public enemy, and his pastoral
letters admonished the Italians of their danger and their duty.
At this signal, Ravenna, Venice, and the cities of the Exarchate
and Pentapolis, adhered to the cause of religion; their military
force by sea and land consisted, for the most part, of the
natives; and the spirit of patriotism and zeal was transfused
into the mercenary strangers. The Italians swore to live and die
in the defence of the pope and the holy images; the Roman people
was devoted to their father, and even the Lombards were ambitious
to share the merit and advantage of this holy war. The most
treasonable act, but the most obvious revenge, was the
destruction of the statues of Leo himself: the most effectual and
pleasing measure of rebellion, was the withholding the tribute of
Italy, and depriving him of a power which he had recently abused
by the imposition of a new capitation. A form of administration
was preserved by the election of magistrates and governors; and
so high was the public indignation, that the Italians were
prepared to create an orthodox emperor, and to conduct him with a
fleet and army to the palace of Constantinople. In that palace,
the Roman bishops, the second and third Gregory, were condemned
as the authors of the revolt, and every attempt was made, either
by fraud or force, to seize their persons, and to strike at their
lives. The city was repeatedly visited or assaulted by captains
of the guards, and dukes and exarchs of high dignity or secret
trust; they landed with foreign troops, they obtained some
domestic aid, and the superstition of Naples may blush that her
fathers were attached to the cause of heresy. But these
clandestine or open attacks were repelled by the courage and
vigilance of the Romans; the Greeks were overthrown and
massacred, their leaders suffered an ignominious death, and the
popes, however inclined to mercy, refused to intercede for these
guilty victims. At Ravenna, the several quarters of the city had
long exercised a bloody and hereditary feud; in religious
controversy they found a new aliment of faction: but the votaries
of images were superior in numbers or spirit, and the exarch, who
attempted to stem the torrent, lost his life in a popular
sedition. To punish this flagitious deed, and restore his
dominion in Italy, the emperor sent a fleet and army into the
Adriatic Gulf. After suffering from the winds and waves much loss
and delay, the Greeks made their descent in the neighborhood of
Ravenna: they threatened to depopulate the guilty capital, and to
imitate, perhaps to surpass, the example of Justinian the Second,
who had chastised a former rebellion by the choice and execution
of fifty of the principal inhabitants. The women and clergy, in
sackcloth and ashes, lay prostrate in prayer: the men were in
arms for the defence of their country; the common danger had
united the factions, and the event of a battle was preferred to
the slow miseries of a siege. In a hard-fought day, as the two
armies alternately yielded and advanced, a phantom was seen, a
voice was heard, and Ravenna was victorious by the assurance of
victory. The strangers retreated to their ships, but the populous
sea-coast poured forth a multitude of boats; the waters of the Po
were so deeply infected with blood, that during six years the
public prejudice abstained from the fish of the river; and the
institution of an annual feast perpetuated the worship of images,
and the abhorrence of the Greek tyrant. Amidst the triumph of the
Catholic arms, the Roman pontiff convened a synod of ninety-three
bishops against the heresy of the Iconoclasts. With their
consent, he pronounced a general excommunication against all who
by word or deed should attack the tradition of the fathers and
the images of the saints: in this sentence the emperor was
tacitly involved, but the vote of a last and hopeless
remonstrance may seem to imply that the anathema was yet
suspended over his guilty head. No sooner had they confirmed
their own safety, the worship of images, and the freedom of Rome
and Italy, than the popes appear to have relaxed of their
severity, and to have spared the relics of the Byzantine
dominion. Their moderate councils delayed and prevented the
election of a new emperor, and they exhorted the Italians not to
separate from the body of the Roman monarchy. The exarch was
permitted to reside within the walls of Ravenna, a captive rather
than a master; and till the Imperial coronation of Charlemagne,
the government of Rome and Italy was exercised in the name of the
successors of Constantine.
The liberty of Rome, which had been oppressed by the arms and
arts of Augustus, was rescued, after seven hundred and fifty
years of servitude, from the persecution of Leo the Isaurian. By
the Cæsars, the triumphs of the consuls had been
annihilated: in the decline and fall of the empire, the god
Terminus, the sacred boundary, had insensibly receded from the
ocean, the Rhine, the Danube, and the Euphrates; and Rome was
reduced to her ancient territory from Viterbo to Terracina, and
from Narni to the mouth of the Tyber. When the kings were
banished, the republic reposed on the firm basis which had been
founded by their wisdom and virtue. Their perpetual jurisdiction
was divided between two annual magistrates: the senate continued
to exercise the powers of administration and counsel; and the
legislative authority was distributed in the assemblies of the
people, by a well-proportioned scale of property and service.
Ignorant of the arts of luxury, the primitive Romans had improved
the science of government and war: the will of the community was
absolute: the rights of individuals were sacred: one hundred and
thirty thousand citizens were armed for defence or conquest; and
a band of robbers and outlaws was moulded into a nation deserving
of freedom and ambitious of glory. When the sovereignty of the
Greek emperors was extinguished, the ruins of Rome presented the
sad image of depopulation and decay: her slavery was a habit, her
liberty an accident; the effect of superstition, and the object
of her own amazement and terror. The last vestige of the
substance, or even the forms, of the constitution, was
obliterated from the practice and memory of the Romans; and they
were devoid of knowledge, or virtue, again to build the fabric of
a commonwealth. Their scanty remnant, the offspring of slaves and
strangers, was despicable in the eyes of the victorious
Barbarians. As often as the Franks or Lombards expressed their
most bitter contempt of a foe, they called him a Roman; "and in
this name," says the bishop Liutprand, "we include whatever is
base, whatever is cowardly, whatever is perfidious, the extremes
of avarice and luxury, and every vice that can prostitute the
dignity of human nature." * By the necessity of their situation,
the inhabitants of Rome were cast into the rough model of a
republican government: they were compelled to elect some judges
in peace, and some leaders in war: the nobles assembled to
deliberate, and their resolves could not be executed without the
union and consent of the multitude. The style of the Roman senate
and people was revived, but the spirit was fled; and their new
independence was disgraced by the tumultuous conflict of
licentiousness and oppression. The want of laws could only be
supplied by the influence of religion, and their foreign and
domestic counsels were moderated by the authority of the bishop.
His alms, his sermons, his correspondence with the kings and
prelates of the West, his recent services, their gratitude, and
oath, accustomed the Romans to consider him as the first
magistrate or prince of the city. The Christian humility of the
popes was not offended by the name of
Dominus, or Lord; and their face and
inscription are still apparent on the most ancient coins. Their
temporal dominion is now confirmed by the reverence of a thousand
years; and their noblest title is the free choice of a people,
whom they had redeemed from slavery.
In the quarrels of ancient Greece, the holy people of Elis
enjoyed a perpetual peace, under the protection of Jupiter, and
in the exercise of the Olympic games. Happy would it have been
for the Romans, if a similar privilege had guarded the patrimony
of St. Peter from the calamities of war; if the Christians, who
visited the holy threshold, would have sheathed their swords in
the presence of the apostle and his successor. But this mystic
circle could have been traced only by the wand of a legislator
and a sage: this pacific system was incompatible with the zeal
and ambition of the popes the Romans were not addicted, like the
inhabitants of Elis, to the innocent and placid labors of
agriculture; and the Barbarians of Italy, though softened by the
climate, were far below the Grecian states in the institutions of
public and private life. A memorable example of repentance and
piety was exhibited by Liutprand, king of the Lombards. In arms,
at the gate of the Vatican, the conqueror listened to the voice
of Gregory the Second, withdrew his troops, resigned his
conquests, respectfully visited the church of St. Peter, and
after performing his devotions, offered his sword and dagger, his
cuirass and mantle, his silver cross, and his crown of gold, on
the tomb of the apostle. But this religious fervor was the
illusion, perhaps the artifice, of the moment; the sense of
interest is strong and lasting; the love of arms and rapine was
congenial to the Lombards; and both the prince and people were
irresistibly tempted by the disorders of Italy, the nakedness of
Rome, and the unwarlike profession of her new chief. On the first
edicts of the emperor, they declared themselves the champions of
the holy images: Liutprand invaded the province of Romagna, which
had already assumed that distinctive appellation; the Catholics
of the Exarchate yielded without reluctance to his civil and
military power; and a foreign enemy was introduced for the first
time into the impregnable fortress of Ravenna. That city and
fortress were speedily recovered by the active diligence and
maritime forces of the Venetians; and those faithful subjects
obeyed the exhortation of Gregory himself, in separating the
personal guilt of Leo from the general cause of the Roman empire.
The Greeks were less mindful of the service, than the Lombards of
the injury: the two nations, hostile in their faith, were
reconciled in a dangerous and unnatural alliance: the king and
the exarch marched to the conquest of Spoleto and Rome: the storm
evaporated without effect, but the policy of Liutprand alarmed
Italy with a vexatious alternative of hostility and truce. His
successor Astolphus declared himself the equal enemy of the
emperor and the pope: Ravenna was subdued by force or treachery,
and this final conquest extinguished the series of the exarchs,
who had reigned with a subordinate power since the time of
Justinian and the ruin of the Gothic kingdom. Rome was summoned
to acknowledge the victorious Lombard as her lawful sovereign;
the annual tribute of a piece of gold was fixed as the ransom of
each citizen, and the sword of destruction was unsheathed to
exact the penalty of her disobedience. The Romans hesitated; they
entreated; they complained; and the threatening Barbarians were
checked by arms and negotiations, till the popes had engaged the
friendship of an ally and avenger beyond the Alps.
In his distress, the first * Gregory had implored the aid of
the hero of the age, of Charles Martel, who governed the French
monarchy with the humble title of mayor or duke; and who, by his
signal victory over the Saracens, had saved his country, and
perhaps Europe, from the Mahometan yoke. The ambassadors of the
pope were received by Charles with decent reverence; but the
greatness of his occupations, and the shortness of his life,
prevented his interference in the affairs of Italy, except by a
friendly and ineffectual mediation. His son Pepin, the heir of
his power and virtues, assumed the office of champion of the
Roman church; and the zeal of the French prince appears to have
been prompted by the love of glory and religion. But the danger
was on the banks of the Tyber, the succor on those of the Seine,
and our sympathy is cold to the relation of distant misery.
Amidst the tears of the city, Stephen the Third embraced the
generous resolution of visiting in person the courts of Lombardy
and France, to deprecate the injustice of his enemy, or to excite
the pity and indignation of his friend. After soothing the public
despair by litanies and orations, he undertook this laborious
journey with the ambassadors of the French monarch and the Greek
emperor. The king of the Lombards was inexorable; but his threats
could not silence the complaints, nor retard the speed of the
Roman pontiff, who traversed the Pennine Alps, reposed in the
abbey of St. Maurice, and hastened to grasp the right hand of his
protector; a hand which was never lifted in vain, either in war
or friendship. Stephen was entertained as the visible successor
of the apostle; at the next assembly, the field of March or of
May, his injuries were exposed to a devout and warlike nation,
and he repassed the Alps, not as a suppliant, but as a conqueror,
at the head of a French army, which was led by the king in
person. The Lombards, after a weak resistance, obtained an
ignominious peace, and swore to restore the possessions, and to
respect the sanctity, of the Roman church. But no sooner was
Astolphus delivered from the presence of the French arms, than he
forgot his promise and resented his disgrace. Rome was again
encompassed by his arms; and Stephen, apprehensive of fatiguing
the zeal of his Transalpine allies enforced his complaint and
request by an eloquent letter in the name and person of St. Peter
himself. The apostle assures his adopted sons, the king, the
clergy, and the nobles of France, that, dead in the flesh, he is
still alive in the spirit; that they now hear, and must obey, the
voice of the founder and guardian of the Roman church; that the
Virgin, the angels, the saints, and the martyrs, and all the host
of heaven, unanimously urge the request, and will confess the
obligation; that riches, victory, and paradise, will crown their
pious enterprise, and that eternal damnation will be the penalty
of their neglect, if they suffer his tomb, his temple, and his
people, to fall into the hands of the perfidious Lombards. The
second expedition of Pepin was not less rapid and fortunate than
the first: St. Peter was satisfied, Rome was again saved, and
Astolphus was taught the lessons of justice and sincerity by the
scourge of a foreign master. After this double chastisement, the
Lombards languished about twenty years in a state of languor and
decay. But their minds were not yet humbled to their condition;
and instead of affecting the pacific virtues of the feeble, they
peevishly harassed the Romans with a repetition of claims,
evasions, and inroads, which they undertook without reflection,
and terminated without glory. On either side, their expiring
monarchy was pressed by the zeal and prudence of Pope Adrian the
First, the genius, the fortune, and greatness of Charlemagne, the
son of Pepin; these heroes of the church and state were united in
public and domestic friendship, and while they trampled on the
prostrate, they varnished their proceedings with the fairest
colors of equity and moderation. The passes of the Alps, and the
walls of Pavia, were the only defence of the Lombards; the former
were surprised, the latter were invested, by the son of Pepin;
and after a blockade of two years, * Desiderius, the last of
their native princes, surrendered his sceptre and his capital.
Under the dominion of a foreign king, but in the possession of
their national laws, the Lombards became the brethren, rather
than the subjects, of the Franks; who derived their blood, and
manners, and language, from the same Germanic origin.
Chapter XLIX: Conquest Of Italy By The Franks. --
Part III.
The mutual obligations of the popes and the Carlovingian
family form the important link of ancient and modern, of civil
and ecclesiastical, history. In the conquest of Italy, the
champions of the Roman church obtained a favorable occasion, a
specious title, the wishes of the people, the prayers and
intrigues of the clergy. But the most essential gifts of the
popes to the Carlovingian race were the dignities of king of
France, and of patrician of Rome. I. Under the sacerdotal
monarchy of St. Peter, the nations began to resume the practice
of seeking, on the banks of the Tyber, their kings, their laws,
and the oracles of their fate. The Franks were perplexed between
the name and substance of their government. All the powers of
royalty were exercised by Pepin, mayor of the palace; and
nothing, except the regal title, was wanting to his ambition. His
enemies were crushed by his valor; his friends were multiplied by
his liberality; his father had been the savior of Christendom;
and the claims of personal merit were repeated and ennobled in a
descent of four generations. The name and image of royalty was
still preserved in the last descendant of Clovis, the feeble
Childeric; but his obsolete right could only be used as an
instrument of sedition: the nation was desirous of restoring the
simplicity of the constitution; and Pepin, a subject and a
prince, was ambitious to ascertain his own rank and the fortune
of his family. The mayor and the nobles were bound, by an oath of
fidelity, to the royal phantom: the blood of Clovis was pure and
sacred in their eyes; and their common ambassadors addressed the
Roman pontiff, to dispel their scruples, or to absolve their
promise. The interest of Pope Zachary, the successor of the two
Gregories, prompted him to decide, and to decide in their favor:
he pronounced that the nation might lawfully unite in the same
person the title and authority of king; and that the unfortunate
Childeric, a victim of the public safety, should be degraded,
shaved, and confined in a monastery for the remainder of his
days. An answer so agreeable to their wishes was accepted by the
Franks as the opinion of a casuist, the sentence of a judge, or
the oracle of a prophet: the Merovingian race disappeared from
the earth; and Pepin was exalted on a buckler by the suffrage of
a free people, accustomed to obey his laws and to march under his
standard. His coronation was twice performed, with the sanction
of the popes, by their most faithful servant St. Boniface, the
apostle of Germany, and by the grateful hands of Stephen the
Third, who, in the monastery of St. Denys placed the diadem on
the head of his benefactor. The royal unction of the kings of
Israel was dexterously applied: the successor of St. Peter
assumed the character of a divine ambassador: a German chieftain
was transformed into the Lord's anointed; and this Jewish rite
has been diffused and maintained by the superstition and vanity
of modern Europe. The Franks were absolved from their ancient
oath; but a dire anathema was thundered against them and their
posterity, if they should dare to renew the same freedom of
choice, or to elect a king, except in the holy and meritorious
race of the Carlovingian princes. Without apprehending the future
danger, these princes gloried in their present security: the
secretary of Charlemagne affirms, that the French sceptre was
transferred by the authority of the popes; and in their boldest
enterprises, they insist, with confidence, on this signal and
successful act of temporal jurisdiction.
II. In the change of manners and language the patricians of
Rome were far removed from the senate of Romulus, on the palace
of Constantine, from the free nobles of the republic, or the
fictitious parents of the emperor. After the recovery of Italy
and Africa by the arms of Justinian, the importance and danger of
those remote provinces required the presence of a supreme
magistrate; he was indifferently styled the exarch or the
patrician; and these governors of Ravenna, who fill their place
in the chronology of princes, extended their jurisdiction over
the Roman city. Since the revolt of Italy and the loss of the
Exarchate, the distress of the Romans had exacted some sacrifice
of their independence. Yet, even in this act, they exercised the
right of disposing of themselves; and the decrees of the senate
and people successively invested Charles Martel and his posterity
with the honors of patrician of Rome. The leaders of a powerful
nation would have disdained a servile title and subordinate
office; but the reign of the Greek emperors was suspended; and,
in the vacancy of the empire, they derived a more glorious
commission from the pope and the republic. The Roman ambassadors
presented these patricians with the keys of the shrine of St.
Peter, as a pledge and symbol of sovereignty; with a holy banner
which it was their right and duty to unfurl in the defence of the
church and city. In the time of Charles Martel and of Pepin, the
interposition of the Lombard kingdom covered the freedom, while
it threatened the safety, of Rome; and the
patriciate represented only the title,
the service, the alliance, of these distant protectors. The power
and policy of Charlemagne annihilated an enemy, and imposed a
master. In his first visit to the capital, he was received with
all the honors which had formerly been paid to the exarch, the
representative of the emperor; and these honors obtained some new
decorations from the joy and gratitude of Pope Adrian the First.
No sooner was he informed of the sudden approach of the monarch,
than he despatched the magistrates and nobles of Rome to meet
him, with the banner, about thirty miles from the city. At the
distance of one mile, the Flaminian way was lined with the
schools, or national communities, of
Greeks, Lombards, Saxons, &c.: the Roman youth were under
arms; and the children of a more tender age, with palms and olive
branches in their hands, chanted the praises of their great
deliverer. At the aspect of the holy crosses, and ensigns of the
saints, he dismounted from his horse, led the procession of his
nobles to the Vatican, and, as he ascended the stairs, devoutly
kissed each step of the threshold of the apostles. In the
portico, Adrian expected him at the head of his clergy: they
embraced, as friends and equals; but in their march to the altar,
the king or patrician assumed the right hand of the pope. Nor was
the Frank content with these vain and empty demonstrations of
respect. In the twenty-six years that elapsed between the
conquest of Lombardy and his Imperial coronation, Rome, which had
been delivered by the sword, was subject, as his own, to the
sceptre of Charlemagne. The people swore allegiance to his person
and family: in his name money was coined, and justice was
administered; and the election of the popes was examined and
confirmed by his authority. Except an original and self-inherent
claim of sovereignty, there was not any prerogative remaining,
which the title of emperor could add to the patrician of
Rome.
The gratitude of the Carlovingians was adequate to these
obligations, and their names are consecrated, as the saviors and
benefactors of the Roman church. Her ancient patrimony of farms
and houses was transformed by their bounty into the temporal
dominion of cities and provinces; and the donation of the
Exarchate was the first-fruits of the conquests of Pepin.
Astolphus with a sigh relinquished his prey; the keys and the
hostages of the principal cities were delivered to the French
ambassador; and, in his master's name, he presented them before
the tomb of St. Peter. The ample measure of the Exarchate might
comprise all the provinces of Italy which had obeyed the emperor
and his vicegerent; but its strict and proper limits were
included in the territories of Ravenna, Bologna, and Ferrara: its
inseparable dependency was the Pentapolis, which stretched along
the Adriatic from Rimini to Ancona, and advanced into the
midland-country as far as the ridges of the Apennine. In this
transaction, the ambition and avarice of the popes have been
severely condemned. Perhaps the humility of a Christian priest
should have rejected an earthly kingdom, which it was not easy
for him to govern without renouncing the virtues of his
profession. Perhaps a faithful subject, or even a generous enemy,
would have been less impatient to divide the spoils of the
Barbarian; and if the emperor had intrusted Stephen to solicit in
his name the restitution of the Exarchate, I will not absolve the
pope from the reproach of treachery and falsehood. But in the
rigid interpretation of the laws, every one may accept, without
injury, whatever his benefactor can bestow without injustice. The
Greek emperor had abdicated, or forfeited, his right to the
Exarchate; and the sword of Astolphus was broken by the stronger
sword of the Carlovingian. It was not in the cause of the
Iconoclast that Pepin has exposed his person and army in a double
expedition beyond the Alps: he possessed, and might lawfully
alienate, his conquests: and to the importunities of the Greeks
he piously replied that no human consideration should tempt him
to resume the gift which he had conferred on the Roman Pontiff
for the remission of his sins, and the salvation of his soul. The
splendid donation was granted in supreme and absolute dominion,
and the world beheld for the first time a Christian bishop
invested with the prerogatives of a temporal prince; the choice
of magistrates, the exercise of justice, the imposition of taxes,
and the wealth of the palace of Ravenna. In the dissolution of
the Lombard kingdom, the inhabitants of the duchy of Spoleto
sought a refuge from the storm, shaved their heads after the
Roman fashion, declared themselves the servants and subjects of
St. Peter, and completed, by this voluntary surrender, the
present circle of the ecclesiastical state. That mysterious
circle was enlarged to an indefinite extent, by the verbal or
written donation of Charlemagne, who, in the first transports of
his victory, despoiled himself and the Greek emperor of the
cities and islands which had formerly been annexed to the
Exarchate. But, in the cooler moments of absence and reflection,
he viewed, with an eye of jealousy and envy, the recent greatness
of his ecclesiastical ally. The execution of his own and his
father's promises was respectfully eluded: the king of the Franks
and Lombards asserted the inalienable rights of the empire; and,
in his life and death, Ravenna, as well as Rome, was numbered in
the list of his metropolitan cities. The sovereignty of the
Exarchate melted away in the hands of the popes; they found in
the archbishops of Ravenna a dangerous and domestic rival: the
nobles and people disdained the yoke of a priest; and in the
disorders of the times, they could only retain the memory of an
ancient claim, which, in a more prosperous age, they have revived
and realized.
Fraud is the resource of weakness and cunning; and the strong,
though ignorant, Barbarian was often entangled in the net of
sacerdotal policy. The Vatican and Lateran were an arsenal and
manufacture, which, according to the occasion, have produced or
concealed a various collection of false or genuine, of corrupt or
suspicious, acts, as they tended to promote the interest of the
Roman church. Before the end of the eighth century, some
apostolic scribe, perhaps the notorious Isidore, composed the
decretals, and the donation of Constantine, the two magic pillars
of the spiritual and temporal monarchy of the popes. This
memorable donation was introduced to the world by an epistle of
Adrian the First, who exhorts Charlemagne to imitate the
liberality, and revive the name, of the great Constantine.
According to the legend, the first of the Christian emperors was
healed of the leprosy, and purified in the waters of baptism, by
St. Silvester, the Roman bishop; and never was physician more
gloriously recompensed. His royal proselyte withdrew from the
seat and patrimony of St. Peter; declared his resolution of
founding a new capital in the East; and resigned to the popes the
free and perpetual sovereignty of Rome, Italy, and the provinces
of the West. This fiction was productive of the most beneficial
effects. The Greek princes were convicted of the guilt of
usurpation; and the revolt of Gregory was the claim of his lawful
inheritance. The popes were delivered from their debt of
gratitude; and the nominal gifts of the Carlovingians were no
more than the just and irrevocable restitution of a scanty
portion of the ecclesiastical state. The sovereignty of Rome no
longer depended on the choice of a fickle people; and the
successors of St. Peter and Constantine were invested with the
purple and prerogatives of the Cæsars. So deep was the
ignorance and credulity of the times, that the most absurd of
fables was received, with equal reverence, in Greece and in
France, and is still enrolled among the decrees of the canon law.
The emperors, and the Romans, were incapable of discerning a
forgery, that subverted their rights and freedom; and the only
opposition proceeded from a Sabine monastery, which, in the
beginning of the twelfth century, disputed the truth and validity
of the donation of Constantine. In the revival of letters and
liberty, this fictitious deed was transpierced by the pen of
Laurentius Valla, the pen of an eloquent critic and a Roman
patriot. His contemporaries of the fifteenth century were
astonished at his sacrilegious boldness; yet such is the silent
and irresistible progress of reason, that, before the end of the
next age, the fable was rejected by the contempt of historians
and poets, and the tacit or modest censure of the advocates of
the Roman church. The popes themselves have indulged a smile at
the credulity of the vulgar; but a false and obsolete title still
sanctifies their reign; and, by the same fortune which has
attended the decretals and the Sibylline oracles, the edifice has
subsisted after the foundations have been undermined.
While the popes established in Italy their freedom and
dominion, the images, the first cause of their revolt, were
restored in the Eastern empire. Under the reign of Constantine
the Fifth, the union of civil and ecclesiastical power had
overthrown the tree, without extirpating the root, of
superstition. The idols (for such they were now held) were
secretly cherished by the order and the sex most prone to
devotion; and the fond alliance of the monks and females obtained
a final victory over the reason and authority of man. Leo the
Fourth maintained with less rigor the religion of his father and
grandfather; but his wife, the fair and ambitious Irene, had
imbibed the zeal of the Athenians, the heirs of the Idolatry,
rather than the philosophy, of their ancestors. During the life
of her husband, these sentiments were inflamed by danger and
dissimulation, and she could only labor to protect and promote
some favorite monks whom she drew from their caverns, and seated
on the metropolitan thrones of the East. But as soon as she
reigned in her own name and that of her son, Irene more seriously
undertook the ruin of the Iconoclasts; and the first step of her
future persecution was a general edict for liberty of conscience.
In the restoration of the monks, a thousand images were exposed
to the public veneration; a thousand legends were inverted of
their sufferings and miracles. By the opportunities of death or
removal, the episcopal seats were judiciously filled the most
eager competitors for earthly or celestial favor anticipated and
flattered the judgment of their sovereign; and the promotion of
her secretary Tarasius gave Irene the patriarch of
Constantinople, and the command of the Oriental church. But the
decrees of a general council could only be repealed by a similar
assembly: the Iconoclasts whom she convened were bold in
possession, and averse to debate; and the feeble voice of the
bishops was reechoed by the more formidable clamor of the
soldiers and people of Constantinople. The delay and intrigues of
a year, the separation of the disaffected troops, and the choice
of Nice for a second orthodox synod, removed these obstacles; and
the episcopal conscience was again, after the Greek fashion, in
the hands of the prince. No more than eighteen days were allowed
for the consummation of this important work: the Iconoclasts
appeared, not as judges, but as criminals or penitents: the scene
was decorated by the legates of Pope Adrian and the Eastern
patriarchs, the decrees were framed by the president Taracius,
and ratified by the acclamations and subscriptions of three
hundred and fifty bishops. They unanimously pronounced, that the
worship of images is agreeable to Scripture and reason, to the
fathers and councils of the church: but they hesitate whether
that worship be relative or direct; whether the Godhead, and the
figure of Christ, be entitled to the same mode of adoration. Of
this second Nicene council the acts are still extant; a curious
monument of superstition and ignorance, of falsehood and folly. I
shall only notice the judgment of the bishops on the comparative
merit of image-worship and morality. A monk had concluded a truce
with the dæmon of fornication, on condition of interrupting
his daily prayers to a picture that hung in his cell. His
scruples prompted him to consult the abbot. "Rather than abstain
from adoring Christ and his Mother in their holy images, it would
be better for you," replied the casuist, "to enter every brothel,
and visit every prostitute, in the city." For the honor of
orthodoxy, at least the orthodoxy of the Roman church, it is
somewhat unfortunate, that the two princes who convened the two
councils of Nice are both stained with the blood of their sons.
The second of these assemblies was approved and rigorously
executed by the despotism of Irene, and she refused her
adversaries the toleration which at first she had granted to her
friends. During the five succeeding reigns, a period of
thirty-eight years, the contest was maintained, with unabated
rage and various success, between the worshippers and the
breakers of the images; but I am not inclined to pursue with
minute diligence the repetition of the same events. Nicephorus
allowed a general liberty of speech and practice; and the only
virtue of his reign is accused by the monks as the cause of his
temporal and eternal perdition. Superstition and weakness formed
the character of Michael the First, but the saints and images
were incapable of supporting their votary on the throne. In the
purple, Leo the Fifth asserted the name and religion of an
Armenian; and the idols, with their seditious adherents, were
condemned to a second exile. Their applause would have sanctified
the murder of an impious tyrant, but his assassin and successor,
the second Michael, was tainted from his birth with the Phrygian
heresies: he attempted to mediate between the contending parties;
and the intractable spirit of the Catholics insensibly cast him
into the opposite scale. His moderation was guarded by timidity;
but his son Theophilus, alike ignorant of fear and pity, was the
last and most cruel of the Iconoclasts. The enthusiasm of the
times ran strongly against them; and the emperors who stemmed the
torrent were exasperated and punished by the public hatred. After
the death of Theophilus, the final victory of the images was
achieved by a second female, his widow Theodora, whom he left the
guardian of the empire. Her measures were bold and decisive. The
fiction of a tardy repentance absolved the fame and the soul of
her deceased husband; the sentence of the Iconoclast patriarch
was commuted from the loss of his eyes to a whipping of two
hundred lashes: the bishops trembled, the monks shouted, and the
festival of orthodoxy preserves the annual memory of the triumph
of the images. A single question yet remained, whether they are
endowed with any proper and inherent sanctity; it was agitated by
the Greeks of the eleventh century; and as this opinion has the
strongest recommendation of absurdity, I am surprised that it was
not more explicitly decided in the affirmative. In the West, Pope
Adrian the First accepted and announced the decrees of the Nicene
assembly, which is now revered by the Catholics as the seventh in
rank of the general councils. Rome and Italy were docile to the
voice of their father; but the greatest part of the Latin
Christians were far behind in the race of superstition. The
churches of France, Germany, England, and Spain, steered a middle
course between the adoration and the destruction of images, which
they admitted into their temples, not as objects of worship, but
as lively and useful memorials of faith and history. An angry
book of controversy was composed and published in the name of
Charlemagne: under his authority a synod of three hundred bishops
was assembled at Frankfort: they blamed the fury of the
Iconoclasts, but they pronounced a more severe censure against
the superstition of the Greeks, and the decrees of their
pretended council, which was long despised by the Barbarians of
the West. Among them the worship of images advanced with a silent
and insensible progress; but a large atonement is made for their
hesitation and delay, by the gross idolatry of the ages which
precede the reformation, and of the countries, both in Europe and
America, which are still immersed in the gloom of
superstition.
Chapter XLIX: Conquest Of Italy By The Franks. --
Part IV.
It was after the Nicene synod, and under the reign of the
pious Irene, that the popes consummated the separation of Rome
and Italy, by the translation of the empire to the less orthodox
Charlemagne. They were compelled to choose between the rival
nations: religion was not the sole motive of their choice; and
while they dissembled the failings of their friends, they beheld,
with reluctance and suspicion, the Catholic virtues of their
foes. The difference of language and manners had perpetuated the
enmity of the two capitals; and they were alienated from each
other by the hostile opposition of seventy years. In that schism
the Romans had tasted of freedom, and the popes of sovereignty:
their submission would have exposed them to the revenge of a
jealous tyrant; and the revolution of Italy had betrayed the
impotence, as well as the tyranny, of the Byzantine court. The
Greek emperors had restored the images, but they had not restored
the Calabrian estates and the Illyrian diocese, which the
Iconoclasts had torn away from the successors of St. Peter; and
Pope Adrian threatens them with a sentence of excommunication
unless they speedily abjure this practical heresy. The Greeks
were now orthodox; but their religion might be tainted by the
breath of the reigning monarch: the Franks were now contumacious;
but a discerning eye might discern their approaching conversion,
from the use, to the adoration, of images. The name of
Charlemagne was stained by the polemic acrimony of his scribes;
but the conqueror himself conformed, with the temper of a
statesman, to the various practice of France and Italy. In his
four pilgrimages or visits to the Vatican, he embraced the popes
in the communion of friendship and piety; knelt before the tomb,
and consequently before the image, of the apostle; and joined,
without scruple, in all the prayers and processions of the Roman
liturgy. Would prudence or gratitude allow the pontiffs to
renounce their benefactor? Had they a right to alienate his gift
of the Exarchate? Had they power to abolish his government of
Rome? The title of patrician was below the merit and greatness of
Charlemagne; and it was only by reviving the Western empire that
they could pay their obligations or secure their establishment.
By this decisive measure they would finally eradicate the claims
of the Greeks; from the debasement of a provincial town, the
majesty of Rome would be restored: the Latin Christians would be
united, under a supreme head, in their ancient metropolis; and
the conquerors of the West would receive their crown from the
successors of St. Peter. The Roman church would acquire a zealous
and respectable advocate; and, under the shadow of the
Carlovingian power, the bishop might exercise, with honor and
safety, the government of the city.
Before the ruin of Paganism in Rome, the competition for a
wealthy bishopric had often been productive of tumult and
bloodshed. The people was less numerous, but the times were more
savage, the prize more important, and the chair of St. Peter was
fiercely disputed by the leading ecclesiastics who aspired to the
rank of sovereign. The reign of Adrian the First surpasses the
measure of past or succeeding ages; the walls of Rome, the sacred
patrimony, the ruin of the Lombards, and the friendship of
Charlemagne, were the trophies of his fame: he secretly edified
the throne of his successors, and displayed in a narrow space the
virtues of a great prince. His memory was revered; but in the
next election, a priest of the Lateran, Leo the Third, was
preferred to the nephew and the favorite of Adrian, whom he had
promoted to the first dignities of the church. Their acquiescence
or repentance disguised, above four years, the blackest intention
of revenge, till the day of a procession, when a furious band of
conspirators dispersed the unarmed multitude, and assaulted with
blows and wounds the sacred person of the pope. But their
enterprise on his life or liberty was disappointed, perhaps by
their own confusion and remorse. Leo was left for dead on the
ground: on his revival from the swoon, the effect of his loss of
blood, he recovered his speech and sight; and this natural event
was improved to the miraculous restoration of his eyes and
tongue, of which he had been deprived, twice deprived, by the
knife of the assassins. From his prison he escaped to the
Vatican: the duke of Spoleto hastened to his rescue, Charlemagne
sympathized in his injury, and in his camp of Paderborn in
Westphalia accepted, or solicited, a visit from the Roman
pontiff. Leo repassed the Alps with a commission of counts and
bishops, the guards of his safety and the judges of his
innocence; and it was not without reluctance, that the conqueror
of the Saxons delayed till the ensuing year the personal
discharge of this pious office. In his fourth and last
pilgrimage, he was received at Rome with the due honors of king
and patrician: Leo was permitted to purge himself by oath of the
crimes imputed to his charge: his enemies were silenced, and the
sacrilegious attempt against his life was punished by the mild
and insufficient penalty of exile. On the festival of Christmas,
the last year of the eighth century, Charlemagne appeared in the
church of St. Peter; and, to gratify the vanity of Rome, he had
exchanged the simple dress of his country for the habit of a
patrician. After the celebration of the holy mysteries, Leo
suddenly placed a precious crown on his head, and the dome
resounded with the acclamations of the people, "Long life and
victory to Charles, the most pious Augustus, crowned by God the
great and pacific emperor of the Romans!" The head and body of
Charlemagne were consecrated by the royal unction: after the
example of the Cæsars, he was saluted or adored by the
pontiff: his coronation oath represents a promise to maintain the
faith and privileges of the church; and the first-fruits were
paid in his rich offerings to the shrine of his apostle. In his
familiar conversation, the emperor protested the ignorance of the
intentions of Leo, which he would have disappointed by his
absence on that memorable day. But the preparations of the
ceremony must have disclosed the secret; and the journey of
Charlemagne reveals his knowledge and expectation: he had
acknowledged that the Imperial title was the object of his
ambition, and a Roman synod had pronounced, that it was the only
adequate reward of his merit and services.
The appellation of great has been
often bestowed, and sometimes deserved; but Charlemagne is the
only prince in whose favor the title has been indissolubly
blended with the name. That name, with the addition of
saint, is inserted in the Roman
calendar; and the saint, by a rare felicity, is crowned with the
praises of the historians and philosophers of an enlightened age.
His real merit is doubtless enhanced by
the barbarism of the nation and the times from which he emerged:
but the apparent magnitude of an object
is likewise enlarged by an unequal comparison; and the ruins of
Palmyra derive a casual splendor from the nakedness of the
surrounding desert. Without injustice to his fame, I may discern
some blemishes in the sanctity and greatness of the restorer of
the Western empire. Of his moral virtues, chastity is not the
most conspicuous: but the public happiness could not be
materially injured by his nine wives or concubines, the various
indulgence of meaner or more transient amours, the multitude of
his bastards whom he bestowed on the church, and the long
celibacy and licentious manners of his daughters, whom the father
was suspected of loving with too fond a passion. * I shall be
scarcely permitted to accuse the ambition of a conqueror; but in
a day of equal retribution, the sons of his brother Carloman, the
Merovingian princes of Aquitain, and the four thousand five
hundred Saxons who were beheaded on the same spot, would have
something to allege against the justice and humanity of
Charlemagne. His treatment of the vanquished Saxons was an abuse
of the right of conquest; his laws were not less sanguinary than
his arms, and in the discussion of his motives, whatever is
subtracted from bigotry must be imputed to temper. The sedentary
reader is amazed by his incessant activity of mind and body; and
his subjects and enemies were not less astonished at his sudden
presence, at the moment when they believed him at the most
distant extremity of the empire; neither peace nor war, nor
summer nor winter, were a season of repose; and our fancy cannot
easily reconcile the annals of his reign with the geography of
his expeditions. But this activity was a national, rather than a
personal, virtue; the vagrant life of a Frank was spent in the
chase, in pilgrimage, in military adventures; and the journeys of
Charlemagne were distinguished only by a more numerous train and
a more important purpose. His military renown must be tried by
the scrutiny of his troops, his enemies, and his actions.
Alexander conquered with the arms of Philip, but the
two heroes who preceded Charlemagne
bequeathed him their name, their examples, and the companions of
their victories. At the head of his veteran and superior armies,
he oppressed the savage or degenerate nations, who were incapable
of confederating for their common safety: nor did he ever
encounter an equal antagonist in numbers, in discipline, or in
arms The science of war has been lost and revived with the arts
of peace; but his campaigns are not illustrated by any siege or
battle of singular difficulty and success; and he might behold,
with envy, the Saracen trophies of his grandfather. After the
Spanish expedition, his rear-guard was defeated in the
Pyrenæan mountains; and the soldiers, whose situation was
irretrievable, and whose valor was useless, might accuse, with
their last breath, the want of skill or caution of their general.
I touch with reverence the laws of Charlemagne, so highly
applauded by a respectable judge. They compose not a system, but
a series, of occasional and minute edicts, for the correction of
abuses, the reformation of manners, the economy of his farms, the
care of his poultry, and even the sale of his eggs. He wished to
improve the laws and the character of the Franks; and his
attempts, however feeble and imperfect, are deserving of praise:
the inveterate evils of the times were suspended or mollified by
his government; but in his institutions I can seldom discover the
general views and the immortal spirit of a legislator, who
survives himself for the benefit of posterity. The union and
stability of his empire depended on the life of a single man: he
imitated the dangerous practice of dividing his kingdoms among
his sons; and after his numerous diets, the whole constitution
was left to fluctuate between the disorders of anarchy and
despotism. His esteem for the piety and knowledge of the clergy
tempted him to intrust that aspiring order with temporal dominion
and civil jurisdiction; and his son Lewis, when he was stripped
and degraded by the bishops, might accuse, in some measure, the
imprudence of his father. His laws enforced the imposition of
tithes, because the dæmons had proclaimed in the air that
the default of payment had been the cause of the last scarcity.
The literary merits of Charlemagne are attested by the foundation
of schools, the introduction of arts, the works which were
published in his name, and his familiar connection with the
subjects and strangers whom he invited to his court to educate
both the prince and people. His own studies were tardy,
laborious, and imperfect; if he spoke Latin, and understood
Greek, he derived the rudiments of knowledge from conversation,
rather than from books; and, in his mature age, the emperor
strove to acquire the practice of writing, which every peasant
now learns in his infancy. The grammar and logic, the music and
astronomy, of the times, were only cultivated as the handmaids of
superstition; but the curiosity of the human mind must ultimately
tend to its improvement, and the encouragement of learning
reflects the purest and most pleasing lustre on the character of
Charlemagne. The dignity of his person, the length of his reign,
the prosperity of his arms, the vigor of his government, and the
reverence of distant nations, distinguish him from the royal
crowd; and Europe dates a new æra from his restoration of
the Western empire.
That empire was not unworthy of its title; and some of the
fairest kingdoms of Europe were the patrimony or conquest of a
prince, who reigned at the same time in France, Spain, Italy,
Germany, and Hungary. I. The Roman province of Gaul had been
transformed into the name and monarchy of France; but, in the
decay of the Merovingian line, its limits were contracted by the
independence of the Britonsand the
revolt of Aquitain. Charlemagne
pursued, and confined, the Britons on the shores of the ocean;
and that ferocious tribe, whose origin and language are so
different from the French, was chastised by the imposition of
tribute, hostages, and peace. After a long and evasive contest,
the rebellion of the dukes of Aquitain was punished by the
forfeiture of their province, their liberty, and their lives.
Harsh and rigorous would have been such treatment of ambitious
governors, who had too faithfully copied the mayors of the
palace. But a recent discovery has proved that these unhappy
princes were the last and lawful heirs of the blood and sceptre
of Clovis, and younger branch, from the brother of Dagobert, of
the Merovingian house. Their ancient kingdom was reduced to the
duchy of Gascogne, to the counties of Fesenzac and Armagnac, at
the foot of the Pyrenees: their race was propagated till the
beginning of the sixteenth century; and after surviving their
Carlovingian tyrants, they were reserved to feel the injustice,
or the favors, of a third dynasty. By the reunion of Aquitain,
France was enlarged to its present boundaries, with the additions
of the Netherlands and Spain, as far as the Rhine. II. The
Saracens had been expelled from France by the grandfather and
father of Charlemagne; but they still possessed the greatest part
of Spain, from the rock of Gibraltar to the Pyrenees. Amidst
their civil divisions, an Arabian emir of Saragossa implored his
protection in the diet of Paderborn. Charlemagne undertook the
expedition, restored the emir, and, without distinction of faith,
impartially crushed the resistance of the Christians, and
rewarded the obedience and services of the Mahometans. In his
absence he instituted the Spanish
march, which extended from the Pyrenees to the
River Ebro: Barcelona was the residence of the French governor:
he possessed the counties of Rousillon
and Catalonia; and the infant kingdoms
of Navarre and
Arragon were subject to his
jurisdiction. III. As king of the Lombards, and patrician of
Rome, he reigned over the greatest part of Italy, a tract of a
thousand miles from the Alps to the borders of Calabria. The
duchy of Beneventum, a Lombard fief,
had spread, at the expense of the Greeks, over the modern kingdom
of Naples. But Arrechis, the reigning duke, refused to be
included in the slavery of his country; assumed the independent
title of prince; and opposed his sword to the Carlovingian
monarchy. His defence was firm, his submission was not
inglorious, and the emperor was content with an easy tribute, the
demolition of his fortresses, and the acknowledgment, on his
coins, of a supreme lord. The artful flattery of his son Grimoald
added the appellation of father, but he asserted his dignity with
prudence, and Benventum insensibly escaped from the French yoke.
IV. Charlemagne was the first who united Germany under the same
sceptre. The name of Oriental France is
preserved in the circle of Franconia;
and the people of Hesse and
Thuringia were recently incorporated
with the victors, by the conformity of religion and government.
The Alemanni, so formidable to the
Romans, were the faithful vassals and confederates of the Franks;
and their country was inscribed within the modern limits of
Alsace,
Swabia, and
Switzerland. The
Bavarians, with a similar indulgence of
their laws and manners, were less patient of a master: the
repeated treasons of Tasillo justified the abolition of their
hereditary dukes; and their power was shared among the counts,
who judged and guarded that important frontier. But the north of
Germany, from the Rhine and beyond the Elbe, was still hostile
and Pagan; nor was it till after a war of thirty-three years that
the Saxons bowed under the yoke of Christ and of Charlemagne. The
idols and their votaries were extirpated: the foundation of eight
bishoprics, of Munster, Osnaburgh, Paderborn, and Minden, of
Bremen, Verden, Hildesheim, and Halberstadt, define, on either
side of the Weser, the bounds of ancient Saxony these episcopal
seats were the first schools and cities of that savage land; and
the religion and humanity of the children atoned, in some degree,
for the massacre of the parents. Beyond the Elbe, the
Slavi, or Sclavonians, of similar
manners and various denominations, overspread the modern
dominions of Prussia, Poland, and Bohemia, and some transient
marks of obedience have tempted the French historian to extend
the empire to the Baltic and the Vistula. The conquest or
conversion of those countries is of a more recent age; but the
first union of Bohemia with the
Germanic body may be justly ascribed to the arms of Charlemagne.
V. He retaliated on the Avars, or Huns of Pannonia, the same
calamities which they had inflicted on the nations. Their rings,
the wooden fortifications which encircled their districts and
villages, were broken down by the triple effort of a French army,
that was poured into their country by land and water, through the
Carpathian mountains and along the plain of the Danube. After a
bloody conflict of eight years, the loss of some French generals
was avenged by the slaughter of the most noble Huns: the relics
of the nation submitted the royal residence of the chagan was
left desolate and unknown; and the treasures, the rapine of two
hundred and fifty years, enriched the victorious troops, or
decorated the churches of Italy and Gaul. After the reduction of
Pannonia, the empire of Charlemagne was bounded only by the
conflux of the Danube with the Teyss and the Save: the provinces
of Istria, Liburnia, and Dalmatia, were an easy, though
unprofitable, accession; and it was an effect of his moderation,
that he left the maritime cities under the real or nominal
sovereignty of the Greeks. But these distant possessions added
more to the reputation than to the power of the Latin emperor;
nor did he risk any ecclesiastical foundations to reclaim the
Barbarians from their vagrant life and idolatrous worship. Some
canals of communication between the rivers, the Saone and the
Meuse, the Rhine and the Danube, were faintly attempted. Their
execution would have vivified the empire; and more cost and labor
were often wasted in the structure of a cathedral. *
Chapter XLIX: Conquest Of Italy By The Franks. --
Part V.
If we retrace the outlines of this geographical picture, it
will be seen that the empire of the Franks extended, between east
and west, from the Ebro to the Elbe or Vistula; between the north
and south, from the duchy of Beneventum to the River Eyder, the
perpetual boundary of Germany and Denmark. The personal and
political importance of Charlemagne was magnified by the distress
and division of the rest of Europe. The islands of Great Britain
and Ireland were disputed by a crowd of princes of Saxon or
Scottish origin: and, after the loss of Spain, the Christian and
Gothic kingdom of Alphonso the Chaste was confined to the narrow
range of the Asturian mountains. These petty sovereigns revered
the power or virtue of the Carlovingian monarch, implored the
honor and support of his alliance, and styled him their common
parent, the sole and supreme emperor of the West. He maintained a
more equal intercourse with the caliph Harun al Rashid, whose
dominion stretched from Africa to India, and accepted from his
ambassadors a tent, a water-clock, an elephant, and the keys of
the Holy Sepulchre. It is not easy to conceive the private
friendship of a Frank and an Arab, who were strangers to each
other's person, and language, and religion: but their public
correspondence was founded on vanity, and their remote situation
left no room for a competition of interest. Two thirds of the
Western empire of Rome were subject to Charlemagne, and the
deficiency was amply supplied by his command of the inaccessible
or invincible nations of Germany. But in the choice of his
enemies, * we may be reasonably surprised that he so often
preferred the poverty of the north to the riches of the south.
The three-and-thirty campaigns laboriously consumed in the woods
and morasses of Germany would have sufficed to assert the
amplitude of his title by the expulsion of the Greeks from Italy
and the Saracens from Spain. The weakness of the Greeks would
have insured an easy victory; and the holy crusade against the
Saracens would have been prompted by glory and revenge, and
loudly justified by religion and policy. Perhaps, in his
expeditions beyond the Rhine and the Elbe, he aspired to save his
monarchy from the fate of the Roman empire, to disarm the enemies
of civilized society, and to eradicate the seed of future
emigrations. But it has been wisely observed, that, in a light of
precaution, all conquest must be ineffectual, unless it could be
universal, since the increasing circle must be involved in a
larger sphere of hostility. The subjugation of Germany withdrew
the veil which had so long concealed the continent or islands of
Scandinavia from the knowledge of Europe, and awakened the torpid
courage of their barbarous natives. The fiercest of the Saxon
idolaters escaped from the Christian tyrant to their brethren of
the North; the Ocean and Mediterranean were covered with their
piratical fleets; and Charlemagne beheld with a sigh the
destructive progress of the Normans, who, in less than seventy
years, precipitated the fall of his race and monarchy.
Had the pope and the Romans revived the primitive
constitution, the titles of emperor and Augustus were conferred
on Charlemagne for the term of his life; and his successors, on
each vacancy, must have ascended the throne by a formal or tacit
election. But the association of his son Lewis the Pious asserts
the independent right of monarchy and conquest, and the emperor
seems on this occasion to have foreseen and prevented the latent
claims of the clergy. The royal youth was commanded to take the
crown from the altar, and with his own hands to place it on his
head, as a gift which he held from God, his father, and the
nation. The same ceremony was repeated, though with less energy,
in the subsequent associations of Lothaire and Lewis the Second:
the Carlovingian sceptre was transmitted from father to son in a
lineal descent of four generations; and the ambition of the popes
was reduced to the empty honor of crowning and anointing these
hereditary princes, who were already invested with their power
and dominions. The pious Lewis survived his brothers, and
embraced the whole empire of Charlemagne; but the nations and the
nobles, his bishops and his children, quickly discerned that this
mighty mass was no longer inspired by the same soul; and the
foundations were undermined to the centre, while the external
surface was yet fair and entire. After a war, or battle, which
consumed one hundred thousand Franks, the empire was divided by
treaty between his three sons, who had violated every filial and
fraternal duty. The kingdoms of Germany and France were forever
separated; the provinces of Gaul, between the Rhone and the Alps,
the Meuse and the Rhine, were assigned, with Italy, to the
Imperial dignity of Lothaire. In the partition of his share,
Lorraine and Arles, two recent and transitory kingdoms, were
bestowed on the younger children; and Lewis the Second, his
eldest son, was content with the realm of Italy, the proper and
sufficient patrimony of a Roman emperor. On his death without any
male issue, the vacant throne was disputed by his uncles and
cousins, and the popes most dexterously seized the occasion of
judging the claims and merits of the candidates, and of bestowing
on the most obsequious, or most liberal, the Imperial office of
advocate of the Roman church. The dregs of the Carlovingian race
no longer exhibited any symptoms of virtue or power, and the
ridiculous epithets of the bard, the
stammerer, the
fat, and the
simple, distinguished the tame and
uniform features of a crowd of kings alike deserving of oblivion.
By the failure of the collateral branches, the whole inheritance
devolved to Charles the Fat, the last emperor of his family: his
insanity authorized the desertion of Germany, Italy, and France:
he was deposed in a diet, and solicited his daily bread from the
rebels by whose contempt his life and liberty had been spared.
According to the measure of their force, the governors, the
bishops, and the lords, usurped the fragments of the falling
empire; and some preference was shown to the female or
illegitimate blood of Charlemagne. Of the greater part, the title
and possession were alike doubtful, and the merit was adequate to
the contracted scale of their dominions. Those who could appear
with an army at the gates of Rome were crowned emperors in the
Vatican; but their modesty was more frequently satisfied with the
appellation of kings of Italy: and the whole term of seventy-four
years may be deemed a vacancy, from the abdication of Charles the
Fat to the establishment of Otho the First.
Otho was of the noble race of the dukes of Saxony; and if he
truly descended from Witikind, the adversary and proselyte of
Charlemagne, the posterity of a vanquished people was exalted to
reign over their conquerors. His father, Henry the Fowler, was
elected, by the suffrage of the nation, to save and institute the
kingdom of Germany. Its limits were enlarged on every side by his
son, the first and greatest of the Othos. A portion of Gaul, to
the west of the Rhine, along the banks of the Meuse and the
Moselle, was assigned to the Germans, by whose blood and language
it has been tinged since the time of Cæsar and Tacitus.
Between the Rhine, the Rhone, and the Alps, the successors of
Otho acquired a vain supremacy over the broken kingdoms of
Burgundy and Arles. In the North, Christianity was propagated by
the sword of Otho, the conqueror and apostle of the Slavic
nations of the Elbe and Oder: the marches of Brandenburgh and
Sleswick were fortified with German colonies; and the king of
Denmark, the dukes of Poland and Bohemia, confessed themselves
his tributary vassals. At the head of a victorious army, he
passed the Alps, subdued the kingdom of Italy, delivered the
pope, and forever fixed the Imperial crown in the name and nation
of Germany. From that memorable æra, two maxims of public
jurisprudence were introduced by force and ratified by time. I.
That the prince, who was elected in the
German diet, acquired, from that instant, the subject kingdoms of
Italy and Rome. II. But that he might not legally assume the
titles of emperor and Augustus, till he had received the crown
from the hands of the Roman pontiff.
The Imperial dignity of Charlemagne was announced to the East
by the alteration of his style; and instead of saluting his
fathers, the Greek emperors, he presumed to adopt the more equal
and familiar appellation of brother. Perhaps in his connection
with Irene he aspired to the name of husband: his embassy to
Constantinople spoke the language of peace and friendship, and
might conceal a treaty of marriage with that ambitious princess,
who had renounced the most sacred duties of a mother. The nature,
the duration, the probable consequences of such a union between
two distant and dissonant empires, it is impossible to
conjecture; but the unanimous silence of the Latins may teach us
to suspect, that the report was invented by the enemies of Irene,
to charge her with the guilt of betraying the church and state to
the strangers of the West. The French ambassadors were the
spectators, and had nearly been the victims, of the conspiracy of
Nicephorus, and the national hatred. Constantinople was
exasperated by the treason and sacrilege of ancient Rome: a
proverb, "That the Franks were good friends and bad neighbors,"
was in every one's mouth; but it was dangerous to provoke a
neighbor who might be tempted to reiterate, in the church of St.
Sophia, the ceremony of his Imperial coronation. After a tedious
journey of circuit and delay, the ambassadors of Nicephorus found
him in his camp, on the banks of the River Sala; and Charlemagne
affected to confound their vanity by displaying, in a Franconian
village, the pomp, or at least the pride, of the Byzantine
palace. The Greeks were successively led through four halls of
audience: in the first they were ready to fall prostrate before a
splendid personage in a chair of state, till he informed them
that he was only a servant, the constable, or master of the
horse, of the emperor. The same mistake, and the same answer,
were repeated in the apartments of the count palatine, the
steward, and the chamberlain; and their impatience was gradually
heightened, till the doors of the presence-chamber were thrown
open, and they beheld the genuine monarch, on his throne,
enriched with the foreign luxury which he despised, and encircled
with the love and reverence of his victorious chiefs. A treaty of
peace and alliance was concluded between the two empires, and the
limits of the East and West were defined by the right of present
possession. But the Greeks soon forgot this humiliating equality,
or remembered it only to hate the Barbarians by whom it was
extorted. During the short union of virtue and power, they
respectfully saluted the august
Charlemagne, with the acclamations of
basileus, and emperor of the Romans. As
soon as these qualities were separated in the person of his pious
son, the Byzantine letters were inscribed, "To the king, or, as
he styles himself, the emperor of the Franks and Lombards." When
both power and virtue were extinct, they despoiled Lewis the
Second of his hereditary title, and with the barbarous
appellation of rex or rega, degraded
him among the crowd of Latin princes. His reply is expressive of
his weakness: he proves, with some learning, that, both in sacred
and profane history, the name of king is synonymous with the
Greek word basileus: if, at
Constantinople, it were assumed in a more exclusive and imperial
sense, he claims from his ancestors, and from the popes, a just
participation of the honors of the Roman purple. The same
controversy was revived in the reign of the Othos; and their
ambassador describes, in lively colors, the insolence of the
Byzantine court. The Greeks affected to despise the poverty and
ignorance of the Franks and Saxons; and in their last decline
refused to prostitute to the kings of Germany the title of Roman
emperors.
These emperors, in the election of the popes, continued to
exercise the powers which had been assumed by the Gothic and
Grecian princes; and the importance of this prerogative increased
with the temporal estate and spiritual jurisdiction of the Roman
church. In the Christian aristocracy, the principal members of
the clergy still formed a senate to assist the administration,
and to supply the vacancy, of the bishop. Rome was divided into
twenty-eight parishes, and each parish was governed by a cardinal
priest, or presbyter, a title which, however common or modest in
its origin, has aspired to emulate the purple of kings. Their
number was enlarged by the association of the seven deacons of
the most considerable hospitals, the seven palatine judges of the
Lateran, and some dignitaries of the church. This ecclesiastical
senate was directed by the seven cardinal-bishops of the Roman
province, who were less occupied in the suburb dioceses of Ostia,
Porto, Velitræ, Tusculum, Præneste, Tibur, and the
Sabines, than by their weekly service in the Lateran, and their
superior share in the honors and authority of the apostolic see.
On the death of the pope, these bishops recommended a successor
to the suffrage of the college of cardinals, and their choice was
ratified or rejected by the applause or clamor of the Roman
people. But the election was imperfect; nor could the pontiff be
legally consecrated till the emperor, the advocate of the church,
had graciously signified his approbation and consent. The royal
commissioner examined, on the spot, the form and freedom of the
proceedings; nor was it till after a previous scrutiny into the
qualifications of the candidates, that he accepted an oath of
fidelity, and confirmed the donations which had successively
enriched the patrimony of St. Peter. In the frequent schisms, the
rival claims were submitted to the sentence of the emperor; and
in a synod of bishops he presumed to judge, to condemn, and to
punish, the crimes of a guilty pontiff. Otho the First imposed a
treaty on the senate and people, who engaged to prefer the
candidate most acceptable to his majesty: his successors
anticipated or prevented their choice: they bestowed the Roman
benefice, like the bishoprics of Cologne or Bamberg, on their
chancellors or preceptors; and whatever might be the merit of a
Frank or Saxon, his name sufficiently attests the interposition
of foreign power. These acts of prerogative were most speciously
excused by the vices of a popular election. The competitor who
had been excluded by the cardinals appealed to the passions or
avarice of the multitude; the Vatican and the Lateran were
stained with blood; and the most powerful senators, the marquises
of Tuscany and the counts of Tusculum, held the apostolic see in
a long and disgraceful servitude. The Roman pontiffs, of the
ninth and tenth centuries, were insulted, imprisoned, and
murdered, by their tyrants; and such was their indigence, after
the loss and usurpation of the ecclesiastical patrimonies, that
they could neither support the state of a prince, nor exercise
the charity of a priest. The influence of two sister prostitutes,
Marozia and Theodora, was founded on their wealth and beauty,
their political and amorous intrigues: the most strenuous of
their lovers were rewarded with the Roman mitre, and their reign
may have suggested to the darker ages the fable of a female pope.
The bastard son, the grandson, and the great-grandson of Marozia,
a rare genealogy, were seated in the chair of St. Peter, and it
was at the age of nineteen years that the second of these became
the head of the Latin church. * His youth and manhood were of a
suitable complexion; and the nations of pilgrims could bear
testimony to the charges that were urged against him in a Roman
synod, and in the presence of Otho the Great. As John XII. had
renounced the dress and decencies of his profession, the
soldier may not perhaps be dishonored
by the wine which he drank, the blood that he spilt, the flames
that he kindled, or the licentious pursuits of gaming and
hunting. His open simony might be the consequence of distress;
and his blasphemous invocation of Jupiter and Venus, if it be
true, could not possibly be serious. But we read, with some
surprise, that the worthy grandson of Marozia lived in public
adultery with the matrons of Rome; that the Lateran palace was
turned into a school for prostitution, and that his rapes of
virgins and widows had deterred the female pilgrims from visiting
the tomb of St. Peter, lest, in the devout act, they should be
violated by his successor. The Protestants have dwelt with
malicious pleasure on these characters of Antichrist; but to a
philosophic eye, the vices of the clergy are far less dangerous
than their virtues. After a long series of scandal, the apostolic
see was reformed and exalted by the austerity and zeal of Gregory
VII. That ambitious monk devoted his life to the execution of two
projects. I. To fix in the college of cardinals the freedom and
independence of election, and forever to abolish the right or
usurpation of the emperors and the Roman people. II. To bestow
and resume the Western empire as a fief or benefice of the
church, and to extend his temporal dominion over the kings and
kingdoms of the earth. After a contest of fifty years, the first
of these designs was accomplished by the firm support of the
ecclesiastical order, whose liberty was connected with that of
their chief. But the second attempt, though it was crowned with
some partial and apparent success, has been vigorously resisted
by the secular power, and finally extinguished by the improvement
of human reason.
In the revival of the empire of empire of Rome, neither the
bishop nor the people could bestow on Charlemagne or Otho the
provinces which were lost, as they had been won, by the chance of
arms. But the Romans were free to choose a master for themselves;
and the powers which had been delegated to the patrician, were
irrevocably granted to the French and Saxon emperors of the West.
The broken records of the times preserve some remembrance of
their palace, their mint, their tribunal, their edicts, and the
sword of justice, which, as late as the thirteenth century, was
derived from Cæsar to the præfect of the city.
Between the arts of the popes and the violence of the people,
this supremacy was crushed and annihilated. Content with the
titles of emperor and Augustus, the successors of Charlemagne
neglected to assert this local jurisdiction. In the hour of
prosperity, their ambition was diverted by more alluring objects;
and in the decay and division of the empire, they were oppressed
by the defence of their hereditary provinces. Amidst the ruins of
Italy, the famous Marozia invited one of the usurpers to assume
the character of her third husband; and Hugh, king of Burgundy
was introduced by her faction into the mole of Hadrian or Castle
of St. Angelo, which commands the principal bridge and entrance
of Rome. Her son by the first marriage, Alberic, was compelled to
attend at the nuptial banquet; but his reluctant and ungraceful
service was chastised with a blow by his new father. The blow was
productive of a revolution. "Romans," exclaimed the youth, "once
you were the masters of the world, and these Burgundians the most
abject of your slaves. They now reign, these voracious and brutal
savages, and my injury is the commencement of your servitude."
The alarum bell rang to arms in every quarter of the city: the
Burgundians retreated with haste and shame; Marozia was
imprisoned by her victorious son, and his brother, Pope John XI.,
was reduced to the exercise of his spiritual functions. With the
title of prince, Alberic possessed above twenty years the
government of Rome; and he is said to have gratified the popular
prejudice, by restoring the office, or at least the title, of
consuls and tribunes. His son and heir Octavian assumed, with the
pontificate, the name of John XII.: like his predecessor, he was
provoked by the Lombard princes to seek a deliverer for the
church and republic; and the services of Otho were rewarded with
the Imperial dignity. But the Saxon was imperious, the Romans
were impatient, the festival of the coronation was disturbed by
the secret conflict of prerogative and freedom, and Otho
commanded his sword-bearer not to stir from his person, lest he
should be assaulted and murdered at the foot of the altar. Before
he repassed the Alps, the emperor chastised the revolt of the
people and the ingratitude of John XII. The pope was degraded in
a synod; the præfect was mounted on an ass, whipped through
the city, and cast into a dungeon; thirteen of the most guilty
were hanged, others were mutilated or banished; and this severe
process was justified by the ancient laws of Theodosius and
Justinian. The voice of fame has accused the second Otho of a
perfidious and bloody act, the massacre of the senators, whom he
had invited to his table under the fair semblance of hospitality
and friendship. In the minority of his son Otho the Third, Rome
made a bold attempt to shake off the Saxon yoke, and the consul
Crescentius was the Brutus of the republic. From the condition of
a subject and an exile, he twice rose to the command of the city,
oppressed, expelled, and created the popes, and formed a
conspiracy for restoring the authority of the Greek emperors. *
In the fortress of St. Angelo, he maintained an obstinate siege,
till the unfortunate consul was betrayed by a promise of safety:
his body was suspended on a gibbet, and his head was exposed on
the battlements of the castle. By a reverse of fortune, Otho,
after separating his troops, was besieged three days, without
food, in his palace; and a disgraceful escape saved him from the
justice or fury of the Romans. The senator Ptolemy was the leader
of the people, and the widow of Crescentius enjoyed the pleasure
or the fame of revenging her husband, by a poison which she
administered to her Imperial lover. It was the design of Otho the
Third to abandon the ruder countries of the North, to erect his
throne in Italy, and to revive the institutions of the Roman
monarchy. But his successors only once in their lives appeared on
the banks of the Tyber, to receive their crown in the Vatican.
Their absence was contemptible, their presence odious and
formidable. They descended from the Alps, at the head of their
barbarians, who were strangers and enemies to the country; and
their transient visit was a scene of tumult and bloodshed. A
faint remembrance of their ancestors still tormented the Romans;
and they beheld with pious indignation the succession of Saxons,
Franks, Swabians, and Bohemians, who usurped the purple and
prerogatives of the Cæsars.
Chapter XLIX: Conquest Of Italy By The Franks. --
Part VI.
There is nothing perhaps more adverse to nature and reason
than to hold in obedience remote countries and foreign nations,
in opposition to their inclination and interest. A torrent of
Barbarians may pass over the earth, but an extensive empire must
be supported by a refined system of policy and oppression; in the
centre, an absolute power, prompt in action and rich in
resources; a swift and easy communication with the extreme parts;
fortifications to check the first effort of rebellion; a regular
administration to protect and punish; and a well-disciplined army
to inspire fear, without provoking discontent and despair. Far
different was the situation of the German Cæsars, who were
ambitious to enslave the kingdom of Italy. Their patrimonial
estates were stretched along the Rhine, or scattered in the
provinces; but this ample domain was alienated by the imprudence
or distress of successive princes; and their revenue, from minute
and vexatious prerogative, was scarcely sufficient for the
maintenance of their household. Their troops were formed by the
legal or voluntary service of their feudal vassals, who passed
the Alps with reluctance, assumed the license of rapine and
disorder, and capriciously deserted before the end of the
campaign. Whole armies were swept away by the pestilential
influence of the climate: the survivors brought back the bones of
their princes and nobles, and the effects of their own
intemperance were often imputed to the treachery and malice of
the Italians, who rejoiced at least in the calamities of the
Barbarians. This irregular tyranny might contend on equal terms
with the petty tyrants of Italy; nor can the people, or the
reader, be much interested in the event of the quarrel. But in
the eleventh and twelfth centuries, the Lombards rekindled the
flame of industry and freedom; and the generous example was at
length imitated by the republics of Tuscany. * In the Italian
cities a municipal government had never been totally abolished;
and their first privileges were granted by the favor and policy
of the emperors, who were desirous of erecting a plebeian barrier
against the independence of the nobles. But their rapid progress,
the daily extension of their power and pretensions, were founded
on the numbers and spirit of these rising communities. Each city
filled the measure of her diocese or district: the jurisdiction
of the counts and bishops, of the marquises and counts, was
banished from the land; and the proudest nobles were persuaded or
compelled to desert their solitary castles, and to embrace the
more honorable character of freemen and magistrates. The
legislative authority was inherent in the general assembly; but
the executive powers were intrusted to three consuls, annually
chosen from the three orders of
captains,
valvassors, and commons, into which the
republic was divided. Under the protection of equal law, the
labors of agriculture and commerce were gradually revived; but
the martial spirit of the Lombards was nourished by the presence
of danger; and as often as the bell was rung, or the standard
erected, the gates of the city poured forth a numerous and
intrepid band, whose zeal in their own cause was soon guided by
the use and discipline of arms. At the foot of these popular
ramparts, the pride of the Cæsars was overthrown; and the
invincible genius of liberty prevailed over the two Frederics,
the greatest princes of the middle age; the first, superior
perhaps in military prowess; the second, who undoubtedly excelled
in the softer accomplishments of peace and learning.
Ambitious of restoring the splendor of the purple, Frederic
the First invaded the republics of Lombardy, with the arts of a
statesman, the valor of a soldier, and the cruelty of a tyrant.
The recent discovery of the Pandects had renewed a science most
favorable to despotism; and his venal advocates proclaimed the
emperor the absolute master of the lives and properties of his
subjects. His royal prerogatives, in a less odious sense, were
acknowledged in the diet of Roncaglia; and the revenue of Italy
was fixed at thirty thousand pounds of silver, which were
multiplied to an indefinite demand by the rapine of the fiscal
officers. The obstinate cities were reduced by the terror or the
force of his arms: his captives were delivered to the
executioner, or shot from his military engines; and. after the
siege and surrender of Milan, the buildings of that stately
capital were razed to the ground, three hundred hostages were
sent into Germany, and the inhabitants were dispersed in four
villages, under the yoke of the inflexible conqueror. But Milan
soon rose from her ashes; and the league of Lombardy was cemented
by distress: their cause was espoused by Venice, Pope Alexander
the Third, and the Greek emperor: the fabric of oppression was
overturned in a day; and in the treaty of Constance, Frederic
subscribed, with some reservations, the freedom of
four-and-twenty cities. His grandson contended with their vigor
and maturity; but Frederic the Second was endowed with some
personal and peculiar advantages. His birth and education
recommended him to the Italians; and in the implacable discord of
the two factions, the Ghibelins were attached to the emperor,
while the Guelfs displayed the banner of liberty and the church.
The court of Rome had slumbered, when his father Henry the Sixth
was permitted to unite with the empire the kingdoms of Naples and
Sicily; and from these hereditary realms the son derived an ample
and ready supply of troops and treasure. Yet Frederic the Second
was finally oppressed by the arms of the Lombards and the
thunders of the Vatican: his kingdom was given to a stranger, and
the last of his family was beheaded at Naples on a public
scaffold. During sixty years, no emperor appeared in Italy, and
the name was remembered only by the ignominious sale of the last
relics of sovereignty.
The Barbarian conquerors of the West were pleased to decorate
their chief with the title of emperor; but it was not their
design to invest him with the despotism of Constantine and
Justinian. The persons of the Germans were free, their conquests
were their own, and their national character was animated by a
spirit which scorned the servile jurisprudence of the new or the
ancient Rome. It would have been a vain and dangerous attempt to
impose a monarch on the armed freemen, who were impatient of a
magistrate; on the bold, who refused to obey; on the powerful,
who aspired to command. The empire of Charlemagne and Otho was
distributed among the dukes of the nations or provinces, the
counts of the smaller districts, and the margraves of the marches
or frontiers, who all united the civil and military authority as
it had been delegated to the lieutenants of the first
Cæsars. The Roman governors, who, for the most part, were
soldiers of fortune, seduced their mercenary legions, assumed the
Imperial purple, and either failed or succeeded in their revolt,
without wounding the power and unity of government. If the dukes,
margraves, and counts of Germany, were less audacious in their
claims, the consequences of their success were more lasting and
pernicious to the state. Instead of aiming at the supreme rank,
they silently labored to establish and appropriate their
provincial independence. Their ambition was seconded by the
weight of their estates and vassals, their mutual example and
support, the common interest of the subordinate nobility, the
change of princes and families, the minorities of Otho the Third
and Henry the Fourth, the ambition of the popes, and the vain
pursuit of the fugitive crowns of Italy and Rome. All the
attributes of regal and territorial jurisdiction were gradually
usurped by the commanders of the provinces; the right of peace
and war, of life and death, of coinage and taxation, of foreign
alliance and domestic economy. Whatever had been seized by
violence, was ratified by favor or distress, was granted as the
price of a doubtful vote or a voluntary service; whatever had
been granted to one could not, without injury, be denied to his
successor or equal; and every act of local or temporary
possession was insensibly moulded into the constitution of the
Germanic kingdom. In every province, the visible presence of the
duke or count was interposed between the throne and the nobles;
the subjects of the law became the vassals of a private chief;
and the standard which he received from
his sovereign, was often raised against him in the field. The
temporal power of the clergy was cherished and exalted by the
superstition or policy of the Carlovingian and Saxon dynasties,
who blindly depended on their moderation and fidelity; and the
bishoprics of Germany were made equal in extent and privilege,
superior in wealth and population, to the most ample states of
the military order. As long as the emperors retained the
prerogative of bestowing on every vacancy these ecclesiastic and
secular benefices, their cause was maintained by the gratitude or
ambition of their friends and favorites. But in the quarrel of
the investitures, they were deprived of their influence over the
episcopal chapters; the freedom of election was restored, and the
sovereign was reduced, by a solemn mockery, to his
first prayers, the recommendation, once
in his reign, to a single prebend in each church. The secular
governors, instead of being recalled at the will of a superior,
could be degraded only by the sentence of their peers. In the
first age of the monarchy, the appointment of the son to the
duchy or county of his father, was solicited as a favor; it was
gradually obtained as a custom, and extorted as a right: the
lineal succession was often extended to the collateral or female
branches; the states of the empire (their popular, and at length
their legal, appellation) were divided and alienated by testament
and sale; and all idea of a public trust was lost in that of a
private and perpetual inheritance. The emperor could not even be
enriched by the casualties of forfeiture and extinction: within
the term of a year, he was obliged to dispose of the vacant fief;
and, in the choice of the candidate, it was his duty to consult
either the general or the provincial diet.
After the death of Frederic the Second, Germany was left a
monster with a hundred heads. A crowd of princes and prelates
disputed the ruins of the empire: the lords of innumerable
castles were less prone to obey, than to imitate, their
superiors; and, according to the measure of their strength, their
incessant hostilities received the names of conquest or robbery.
Such anarchy was the inevitable consequence of the laws and
manners of Europe; and the kingdoms of France and Italy were
shivered into fragments by the violence of the same tempest. But
the Italian cities and the French vassals were divided and
destroyed, while the union of the Germans has produced, under the
name of an empire, a great system of a federative republic. In
the frequent and at last the perpetual institution of diets, a
national spirit was kept alive, and the powers of a common
legislature are still exercised by the three branches or colleges
of the electors, the princes, and the free and Imperial cities of
Germany. I. Seven of the most powerful feudatories were permitted
to assume, with a distinguished name and rank, the exclusive
privilege of choosing the Roman emperor; and these electors were
the king of Bohemia, the duke of Saxony, the margrave of
Brandenburgh, the count palatine of the Rhine, and the three
archbishops of Mentz, of Treves, and of Cologne. II. The college
of princes and prelates purged themselves of a promiscuous
multitude: they reduced to four representative votes the long
series of independent counts, and excluded the nobles or
equestrian order, sixty thousand of whom, as in the Polish diets,
had appeared on horseback in the field of election. III. The
pride of birth and dominion, of the sword and the mitre, wisely
adopted the commons as the third branch of the legislature, and,
in the progress of society, they were introduced about the same
æra into the national assemblies of France England, and
Germany. The Hanseatic League commanded the trade and navigation
of the north: the confederates of the Rhine secured the peace and
intercourse of the inland country; the influence of the cities
has been adequate to their wealth and policy, and their negative
still invalidates the acts of the two superior colleges of
electors and princes.
It is in the fourteenth century that we may view in the
strongest light the state and contrast of the Roman empire of
Germany, which no longer held, except on the borders of the Rhine
and Danube, a single province of Trajan or Constantine. Their
unworthy successors were the counts of Hapsburgh, of Nassau, of
Luxemburgh, and Schwartzenburgh: the emperor Henry the Seventh
procured for his son the crown of Bohemia, and his grandson
Charles the Fourth was born among a people strange and barbarous
in the estimation of the Germans themselves. After the
excommunication of Lewis of Bavaria, he received the gift or
promise of the vacant empire from the Roman pontiffs, who, in the
exile and captivity of Avignon, affected the dominion of the
earth. The death of his competitors united the electoral college,
and Charles was unanimously saluted king of the Romans, and
future emperor; a title which, in the same age, was prostituted
to the Cæsars of Germany and Greece. The German emperor was
no more than the elective and impotent magistrate of an
aristocracy of princes, who had not left him a village that he
might call his own. His best prerogative was the right of
presiding and proposing in the national senate, which was
convened at his summons; and his native kingdom of Bohemia, less
opulent than the adjacent city of Nuremberg, was the firmest seat
of his power and the richest source of his revenue. The army with
which he passed the Alps consisted of three hundred horse. In the
cathedral of St. Ambrose, Charles was crowned with the
iron crown, which tradition ascribed to
the Lombard monarchy; but he was admitted only with a peaceful
train; the gates of the city were shut upon him; and the king of
Italy was held a captive by the arms of the Visconti, whom he
confirmed in the sovereignty of Milan. In the Vatican he was
again crowned with the golden crown of
the empire; but, in obedience to a secret treaty, the Roman
emperor immediately withdrew, without reposing a single night
within the walls of Rome. The eloquent Petrarch, whose fancy
revived the visionary glories of the Capitol, deplores and
upbraids the ignominious flight of the Bohemian; and even his
contemporaries could observe, that the sole exercise of his
authority was in the lucrative sale of privileges and titles. The
gold of Italy secured the election of his son; but such was the
shameful poverty of the Roman emperor, that his person was
arrested by a butcher in the streets of Worms, and was detained
in the public inn, as a pledge or hostage for the payment of his
expenses.
From this humiliating scene, let us turn to the apparent
majesty of the same Charles in the diets of the empire. The
golden bull, which fixes the Germanic constitution, is
promulgated in the style of a sovereign and legislator. A hundred
princes bowed before his throne, and exalted their own dignity by
the voluntary honors which they yielded to their chief or
minister. At the royal banquet, the hereditary great officers,
the seven electors, who in rank and title were equal to kings,
performed their solemn and domestic service of the palace. The
seals of the triple kingdom were borne in state by the
archbishops of Mentz, Cologne, and Treves, the perpetual
arch-chancellors of Germany, Italy, and Arles. The great marshal,
on horseback, exercised his function with a silver measure of
oats, which he emptied on the ground, and immediately dismounted
to regulate the order of the guests The great steward, the count
palatine of the Rhine, place the dishes on the table. The great
chamberlain, the margrave of Brandenburgh, presented, after the
repast, the golden ewer and basin, to wash. The king of Bohemia,
as great cup-bearer, was represented by the emperor's brother,
the duke of Luxemburgh and Brabant; and the procession was closed
by the great huntsmen, who introduced a boar and a stag, with a
loud chorus of horns and hounds. Nor was the supremacy of the
emperor confined to Germany alone: the hereditary monarchs of
Europe confessed the preëminence of his rank and dignity: he
was the first of the Christian princes, the temporal head of the
great republic of the West: to his person the title of majesty
was long appropriated; and he disputed with the pope the sublime
prerogative of creating kings and assembling councils. The oracle
of the civil law, the learned Bartolus, was a pensioner of
Charles the Fourth; and his school resounded with the doctrine,
that the Roman emperor was the rightful sovereign of the earth,
from the rising to the setting sun. The contrary opinion was
condemned, not as an error, but as a heresy, since even the
gospel had pronounced, "And there went forth a decree from
Cæsar Augustus, that all the
world should be taxed."
If we annihilate the interval of time and space between
Augustus and Charles, strong and striking will be the contrast
between the two Cæsars; the Bohemian who concealed his
weakness under the mask of ostentation, and the Roman, who
disguised his strength under the semblance of modesty. At the
head of his victorious legions, in his reign over the sea and
land, from the Nile and Euphrates to the Atlantic Ocean, Augustus
professed himself the servant of the state and the equal of his
fellow-citizens. The conqueror of Rome and her provinces assumed
a popular and legal form of a censor, a consul, and a tribune.
His will was the law of mankind, but in the declaration of his
laws he borrowed the voice of the senate and people; and from
their decrees their master accepted and renewed his temporary
commission to administer the republic. In his dress, his
domestics, his titles, in all the offices of social life,
Augustus maintained the character of a private Roman; and his
most artful flatterers respected the secret of his absolute and
perpetual monarchy.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants.
Part I.
Description Of Arabia And Its Inhabitants. -- Birth,
Character, And Doctrine Of Mahomet. -- He Preaches At Mecca. --
Flies To Medina. -- Propagates His Religion By The Sword. --
Voluntary Or Reluctant Submission Of The Arabs. -- His Death And
Successors. -- The Claims And Fortunes Of All And His
Descendants.
After pursuing above six hundred years the fleeting
Cæsars of Constantinople and Germany, I now descend, in the
reign of Heraclius, on the eastern borders of the Greek monarchy.
While the state was exhausted by the Persian war, and the church
was distracted by the Nestorian and Monophysite sects, Mahomet,
with the sword in one hand and the Koran in the other, erected
his throne on the ruins of Christianity and of Rome. The genius
of the Arabian prophet, the manners of his nation, and the spirit
of his religion, involve the causes of the decline and fall of
the Eastern empire; and our eyes are curiously intent on one of
the most memorable revolutions, which have impressed a new and
lasting character on the nations of the globe.
In the vacant space between Persia, Syria, Egypt, and
Æthiopia, the Arabian peninsula may be conceived as a
triangle of spacious but irregular dimensions. From the northern
point of Beles on the Euphrates, a line of fifteen hundred miles
is terminated by the Straits of Bebelmandel and the land of
frankincense. About half this length may be allowed for the
middle breadth, from east to west, from Bassora to Suez, from the
Persian Gulf to the Red Sea. The sides of the triangle are
gradually enlarged, and the southern basis presents a front of a
thousand miles to the Indian Ocean. The entire surface of the
peninsula exceeds in a fourfold proportion that of Germany or
France; but the far greater part has been justly stigmatized with
the epithets of the stony and the
sandy. Even the wilds of Tartary are
decked, by the hand of nature, with lofty trees and luxuriant
herbage; and the lonesome traveller derives a sort of comfort and
society from the presence of vegetable life. But in the dreary
waste of Arabia, a boundless level of sand is intersected by
sharp and naked mountains; and the face of the desert, without
shade or shelter, is scorched by the direct and intense rays of a
tropical sun. Instead of refreshing breezes, the winds,
particularly from the south-west, diffuse a noxious and even
deadly vapor; the hillocks of sand which they alternately raise
and scatter, are compared to the billows of the ocean, and whole
caravans, whole armies, have been lost and buried in the
whirlwind. The common benefits of water are an object of desire
and contest; and such is the scarcity of wood, that some art is
requisite to preserve and propagate the element of fire. Arabia
is destitute of navigable rivers, which fertilize the soil, and
convey its produce to the adjacent regions: the torrents that
fall from the hills are imbibed by the thirsty earth: the rare
and hardy plants, the tamarind or the acacia, that strike their
roots into the clefts of the rocks, are nourished by the dews of
the night: a scanty supply of rain is collected in cisterns and
aqueducts: the wells and springs are the secret treasure of the
desert; and the pilgrim of Mecca, after many a dry and sultry
march, is disgusted by the taste of the waters which have rolled
over a bed of sulphur or salt. Such is the general and genuine
picture of the climate of Arabia. The experience of evil enhances
the value of any local or partial enjoyments. A shady grove, a
green pasture, a stream of fresh water, are sufficient to attract
a colony of sedentary Arabs to the fortunate spots which can
afford food and refreshment to themselves and their cattle, and
which encourage their industry in the cultivation of the palmtree
and the vine. The high lands that border on the Indian Ocean are
distinguished by their superior plenty of wood and water; the air
is more temperate, the fruits are more delicious, the animals and
the human race more numerous: the fertility of the soil invites
and rewards the toil of the husbandman; and the peculiar gifts of
frankincense and coffee have attracted in different ages the
merchants of the world. If it be compared with the rest of the
peninsula, this sequestered region may truly deserve the
appellation of the happy; and the
splendid coloring of fancy and fiction has been suggested by
contrast, and countenanced by distance. It was for this earthly
paradise that Nature had reserved her choicest favors and her
most curious workmanship: the incompatible blessings of luxury
and innocence were ascribed to the natives: the soil was
impregnated with gold and gems, and both the land and sea were
taught to exhale the odors of aromatic sweets. This division of
the sandy, the
stony, and the
happy, so familiar to the Greeks and
Latins, is unknown to the Arabians themselves; and it is singular
enough, that a country, whose language and inhabitants have ever
been the same, should scarcely retain a vestige of its ancient
geography. The maritime districts of
Bahrein and
Oman are opposite to the realm of
Persia. The kingdom of Yemen displays
the limits, or at least the situation, of Arabia Felix: the name
of Neged is extended over the inland
space; and the birth of Mahomet has illustrated the province of
Hejaz along the coast of the Red
Sea.
The measure of population is regulated by the means of
subsistence; and the inhabitants of this vast peninsula might be
outnumbered by the subjects of a fertile and industrious
province. Along the shores of the Persian Gulf, of the ocean, and
even of the Red Sea, the Icthyophagi,
or fish eaters, continued to wander in quest of their precarious
food. In this primitive and abject state, which ill deserves the
name of society, the human brute, without arts or laws, almost
without sense or language, is poorly distinguished from the rest
of the animal creation. Generations and ages might roll away in
silent oblivion, and the helpless savage was restrained from
multiplying his race by the wants and pursuits which confined his
existence to the narrow margin of the seacoast. But in an early
period of antiquity the great body of the Arabs had emerged from
this scene of misery; and as the naked wilderness could not
maintain a people of hunters, they rose at once to the more
secure and plentiful condition of the pastoral life. The same
life is uniformly pursued by the roving tribes of the desert; and
in the portrait of the modern
Bedoweens, we may trace the features of
their ancestors, who, in the age of Moses or Mahomet, dwelt under
similar tents, and conducted their horses, and camels, and sheep,
to the same springs and the same pastures. Our toil is lessened,
and our wealth is increased, by our dominion over the useful
animals; and the Arabian shepherd had acquired the absolute
possession of a faithful friend and a laborious slave. Arabia, in
the opinion of the naturalist, is the genuine and original
country of the horse; the climate most
propitious, not indeed to the size, but to the spirit and
swiftness, of that generous animal. The merit of the Barb, the
Spanish, and the English breed, is derived from a mixture of
Arabian blood: the Bedoweens preserve, with superstitious care,
the honors and the memory of the purest race: the males are sold
at a high price, but the females are seldom alienated; and the
birth of a noble foal was esteemed among the tribes, as a subject
of joy and mutual congratulation. These horses are educated in
the tents, among the children of the Arabs, with a tender
familiarity, which trains them in the habits of gentleness and
attachment. They are accustomed only to walk and to gallop: their
sensations are not blunted by the incessant abuse of the spur and
the whip: their powers are reserved for the moments of flight and
pursuit: but no sooner do they feel the touch of the hand or the
stirrup, than they dart away with the swiftness of the wind; and
if their friend be dismounted in the rapid career, they instantly
stop till he has recovered his seat. In the sands of Africa and
Arabia, the camel is a sacred and
precious gift. That strong and patient beast of burden can
perform, without eating or drinking, a journey of several days;
and a reservoir of fresh water is preserved in a large bag, a
fifth stomach of the animal, whose body is imprinted with the
marks of servitude: the larger breed is capable of transporting a
weight of a thousand pounds; and the dromedary, of a lighter and
more active frame, outstrips the fleetest courser in the race.
Alive or dead, almost every part of the camel is serviceable to
man: her milk is plentiful and nutritious: the young and tender
flesh has the taste of veal: a valuable salt is extracted from
the urine: the dung supplies the deficiency of fuel; and the long
hair, which falls each year and is renewed, is coarsely
manufactured into the garments, the furniture, and the tents of
the Bedoweens. In the rainy seasons, they consume the rare and
insufficient herbage of the desert: during the heats of summer
and the scarcity of winter, they remove their encampments to the
sea-coast, the hills of Yemen, or the neighborhood of the
Euphrates, and have often extorted the dangerous license of
visiting the banks of the Nile, and the villages of Syria and
Palestine. The life of a wandering Arab is a life of danger and
distress; and though sometimes, by rapine or exchange, he may
appropriate the fruits of industry, a private citizen in Europe
is in the possession of more solid and pleasing luxury than the
proudest emir, who marches in the field at the head of ten
thousand horse.
Yet an essential difference may be found between the hordes of
Scythia and the Arabian tribes; since many of the latter were
collected into towns, and employed in the labors of trade and
agriculture. A part of their time and industry was still devoted
to the management of their cattle: they mingled, in peace and
war, with their brethren of the desert; and the Bedoweens derived
from their useful intercourse some supply of their wants, and
some rudiments of art and knowledge. Among the forty-two cities
of Arabia, enumerated by Abulfeda, the most ancient and populous
were situate in the happy Yemen: the
towers of Saana, and the marvellous reservoir of Merab, were
constructed by the kings of the Homerites; but their profane
lustre was eclipsed by the prophetic glories of Medina and Mecca,
near the Red Sea, and at the distance from each other of two
hundred and seventy miles. The last of these holy places was
known to the Greeks under the name of Macoraba; and the
termination of the word is expressive of its greatness, which has
not, indeed, in the most flourishing period, exceeded the size
and populousness of Marseilles. Some latent motive, perhaps of
superstition, must have impelled the founders, in the choice of a
most unpromising situation. They erected their habitations of mud
or stone, in a plain about two miles long and one mile broad, at
the foot of three barren mountains: the soil is a rock; the water
even of the holy well of Zemzem is bitter or brackish; the
pastures are remote from the city; and grapes are transported
above seventy miles from the gardens of Tayef. The fame and
spirit of the Koreishites, who reigned in Mecca, were conspicuous
among the Arabian tribes; but their ungrateful soil refused the
labors of agriculture, and their position was favorable to the
enterprises of trade. By the seaport of Gedda, at the distance
only of forty miles, they maintained an easy correspondence with
Abyssinia; and that Christian kingdom afforded the first refuge
to the disciples of Mahomet. The treasures of Africa were
conveyed over the Peninsula to Gerrha or Katif, in the province
of Bahrein, a city built, as it is said, of rock-salt, by the
Chaldæan exiles; and from thence with the native pearls of
the Persian Gulf, they were floated on rafts to the mouth of the
Euphrates. Mecca is placed almost at an equal distance, a month's
journey, between Yemen on the right, and Syria on the left hand.
The former was the winter, the latter the summer, station of her
caravans; and their seasonable arrival relieved the ships of
India from the tedious and troublesome navigation of the Red Sea.
In the markets of Saana and Merab, in the harbors of Oman and
Aden, the camels of the Koreishites were laden with a precious
cargo of aromatics; a supply of corn and manufactures was
purchased in the fairs of Bostra and Damascus; the lucrative
exchange diffused plenty and riches in the streets of Mecca; and
the noblest of her sons united the love of arms with the
profession of merchandise.
The perpetual independence of the Arabs has been the theme of
praise among strangers and natives; and the arts of controversy
transform this singular event into a prophecy and a miracle, in
favor of the posterity of Ismael. Some exceptions, that can
neither be dismissed nor eluded, render this mode of reasoning as
indiscreet as it is superfluous; the kingdom of Yemen has been
successively subdued by the Abyssinians, the Persians, the
sultans of Egypt, and the Turks; the holy cities of Mecca and
Medina have repeatedly bowed under a Scythian tyrant; and the
Roman province of Arabia embraced the peculiar wilderness in
which Ismael and his sons must have pitched their tents in the
face of their brethren. Yet these exceptions are temporary or
local; the body of the nation has escaped the yoke of the most
powerful monarchies: the arms of Sesostris and Cyrus, of Pompey
and Trajan, could never achieve the conquest of Arabia; the
present sovereign of the Turks may exercise a shadow of
jurisdiction, but his pride is reduced to solicit the friendship
of a people, whom it is dangerous to provoke, and fruitless to
attack. The obvious causes of their freedom are inscribed on the
character and country of the Arabs. Many ages before Mahomet,
their intrepid valor had been severely felt by their neighbors in
offensive and defensive war. The patient and active virtues of a
soldier are insensibly nursed in the habits and discipline of a
pastoral life. The care of the sheep and camels is abandoned to
the women of the tribe; but the martial youth, under the banner
of the emir, is ever on horseback, and in the field, to practise
the exercise of the bow, the javelin, and the cimeter. The long
memory of their independence is the firmest pledge of its
perpetuity and succeeding generations are animated to prove their
descent, and to maintain their inheritance. Their domestic feuds
are suspended on the approach of a common enemy; and in their
last hostilities against the Turks, the caravan of Mecca was
attacked and pillaged by fourscore thousand of the confederates.
When they advance to battle, the hope of victory is in the front;
in the rear, the assurance of a retreat. Their horses and camels,
who, in eight or ten days, can perform a march of four or five
hundred miles, disappear before the conqueror; the secret waters
of the desert elude his search, and his victorious troops are
consumed with thirst, hunger, and fatigue, in the pursuit of an
invisible foe, who scorns his efforts, and safely reposes in the
heart of the burning solitude. The arms and deserts of the
Bedoweens are not only the safeguards of their own freedom, but
the barriers also of the happy Arabia, whose inhabitants, remote
from war, are enervated by the luxury of the soil and climate.
The legions of Augustus melted away in disease and lassitude; and
it is only by a naval power that the reduction of Yemen has been
successfully attempted. When Mahomet erected his holy standard,
that kingdom was a province of the Persian empire; yet seven
princes of the Homerites still reigned in the mountains; and the
vicegerent of Chosroes was tempted to forget his distant country
and his unfortunate master. The historians of the age of
Justinian represent the state of the independent Arabs, who were
divided by interest or affection in the long quarrel of the East:
the tribe of Gassan was allowed to
encamp on the Syrian territory: the princes of
Hira were permitted to form a city
about forty miles to the southward of the ruins of Babylon. Their
service in the field was speedy and vigorous; but their
friendship was venal, their faith inconstant, their enmity
capricious: it was an easier task to excite than to disarm these
roving barbarians; and, in the familiar intercourse of war, they
learned to see, and to despise, the splendid weakness both of
Rome and of Persia. From Mecca to the Euphrates, the Arabian
tribes were confounded by the Greeks and Latins, under the
general appellation of Saracens, a name which every Christian
mouth has been taught to pronounce with terror and
abhorrence.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part II.
The slaves of domestic tyranny may vainly exult in their
national independence: but the Arab is personally free; and he
enjoys, in some degree, the benefits of society, without
forfeiting the prerogatives of nature. In every tribe,
superstition, or gratitude, or fortune, has exalted a particular
family above the heads of their equals. The dignities of sheick
and emir invariably descend in this chosen race; but the order of
succession is loose and precarious; and the most worthy or aged
of the noble kinsmen are preferred to the simple, though
important, office of composing disputes by their advice, and
guiding valor by their example. Even a female of sense and spirit
has been permitted to command the countrymen of Zenobia. The
momentary junction of several tribes produces an army: their more
lasting union constitutes a nation; and the supreme chief, the
emir of emirs, whose banner is displayed at their head, may
deserve, in the eyes of strangers, the honors of the kingly name.
If the Arabian princes abuse their power, they are quickly
punished by the desertion of their subjects, who had been
accustomed to a mild and parental jurisdiction. Their spirit is
free, their steps are unconfined, the desert is open, and the
tribes and families are held together by a mutual and voluntary
compact. The softer natives of Yemen supported the pomp and
majesty of a monarch; but if he could not leave his palace
without endangering his life, the active powers of government
must have been devolved on his nobles and magistrates. The cities
of Mecca and Medina present, in the heart of Asia, the form, or
rather the substance, of a commonwealth. The grandfather of
Mahomet, and his lineal ancestors, appear in foreign and domestic
transactions as the princes of their country; but they reigned,
like Pericles at Athens, or the Medici at Florence, by the
opinion of their wisdom and integrity; their influence was
divided with their patrimony; and the sceptre was transferred
from the uncles of the prophet to a younger branch of the tribe
of Koreish. On solemn occasions they convened the assembly of the
people; and, since mankind must be either compelled or persuaded
to obey, the use and reputation of oratory among the ancient
Arabs is the clearest evidence of public freedom. But their
simple freedom was of a very different cast from the nice and
artificial machinery of the Greek and Roman republics, in which
each member possessed an undivided share of the civil and
political rights of the community. In the more simple state of
the Arabs, the nation is free, because each of her sons disdains
a base submission to the will of a master. His breast is
fortified by the austere virtues of courage, patience, and
sobriety; the love of independence prompts him to exercise the
habits of self-command; and the fear of dishonor guards him from
the meaner apprehension of pain, of danger, and of death. The
gravity and firmness of the mind is conspicuous in his outward
demeanor; his speech is low, weighty, and concise; he is seldom
provoked to laughter; his only gesture is that of stroking his
beard, the venerable symbol of manhood; and the sense of his own
importance teaches him to accost his equals without levity, and
his superiors without awe. The liberty of the Saracens survived
their conquests: the first caliphs indulged the bold and familiar
language of their subjects; they ascended the pulpit to persuade
and edify the congregation; nor was it before the seat of empire
was removed to the Tigris, that the Abbasides adopted the proud
and pompous ceremonial of the Persian and Byzantine courts.
In the study of nations and men, we may observe the causes
that render them hostile or friendly to each other, that tend to
narrow or enlarge, to mollify or exasperate, the social
character. The separation of the Arabs from the rest of mankind
has accustomed them to confound the ideas of stranger and enemy;
and the poverty of the land has introduced a maxim of
jurisprudence, which they believe and practise to the present
hour. They pretend, that, in the division of the earth, the rich
and fertile climates were assigned to the other branches of the
human family; and that the posterity of the outlaw Ismael might
recover, by fraud or force, the portion of inheritance of which
he had been unjustly deprived. According to the remark of Pliny,
the Arabian tribes are equally addicted to theft and merchandise;
the caravans that traverse the desert are ransomed or pillaged;
and their neighbors, since the remote times of Job and Sesostris,
have been the victims of their rapacious spirit. If a Bedoween
discovers from afar a solitary traveller, he rides furiously
against him, crying, with a loud voice, "Undress thyself, thy
aunt (my wife) is without a garment." A
ready submission entitles him to mercy; resistance will provoke
the aggressor, and his own blood must expiate the blood which he
presumes to shed in legitimate defence. A single robber, or a few
associates, are branded with their genuine name; but the exploits
of a numerous band assume the character of lawful and honorable
war. The temper of a people thus armed against mankind was doubly
inflamed by the domestic license of rapine, murder, and revenge.
In the constitution of Europe, the right of peace and war is now
confined to a small, and the actual exercise to a much smaller,
list of respectable potentates; but each Arab, with impunity and
renown, might point his javelin against the life of his
countrymen. The union of the nation consisted only in a vague
resemblance of language and manners; and in each community, the
jurisdiction of the magistrate was mute and impotent. Of the time
of ignorance which preceded Mahomet, seventeen hundred battles
are recorded by tradition: hostility was imbittered with the
rancor of civil faction; and the recital, in prose or verse, of
an obsolete feud, was sufficient to rekindle the same passions
among the descendants of the hostile tribes. In private life
every man, at least every family, was the judge and avenger of
his own cause. The nice sensibility of honor, which weighs the
insult rather than the injury, sheds its deadly venom on the
quarrels of the Arabs: the honor of their women, and of their
beards, is most easily wounded; an
indecent action, a contemptuous word, can be expiated only by the
blood of the offender; and such is their patient inveteracy, that
they expect whole months and years the opportunity of revenge. A
fine or compensation for murder is familiar to the Barbarians of
every age: but in Arabia the kinsmen of the dead are at liberty
to accept the atonement, or to exercise with their own hands the
law of retaliation. The refined malice of the Arabs refuses even
the head of the murderer, substitutes an innocent for the guilty
person, and transfers the penalty to the best and most
considerable of the race by whom they have been injured. If he
falls by their hands, they are exposed, in their turn, to the
danger of reprisals, the interest and principal of the bloody
debt are accumulated: the individuals of either family lead a
life of malice and suspicion, and fifty years may sometimes
elapse before the account of vengeance be finally settled. This
sanguinary spirit, ignorant of pity or forgiveness, has been
moderated, however, by the maxims of honor, which require in
every private encounter some decent equality of age and strength,
of numbers and weapons. An annual festival of two, perhaps of
four, months, was observed by the Arabs before the time of
Mahomet, during which their swords were religiously sheathed both
in foreign and domestic hostility; and this partial truce is more
strongly expressive of the habits of anarchy and warfare.
But the spirit of rapine and revenge was attempered by the
milder influence of trade and literature. The solitary peninsula
is encompassed by the most civilized nations of the ancient
world; the merchant is the friend of mankind; and the annual
caravans imported the first seeds of knowledge and politeness
into the cities, and even the camps of the desert. Whatever may
be the pedigree of the Arabs, their language is derived from the
same original stock with the Hebrew, the Syriac, and the
Chaldæan tongues; the independence of the tribes was marked
by their peculiar dialects; but each, after their own, allowed a
just preference to the pure and perspicuous idiom of Mecca. In
Arabia, as well as in Greece, the perfection of language
outstripped the refinement of manners; and her speech could
diversify the fourscore names of honey, the two hundred of a
serpent, the five hundred of a lion, the thousand of a sword, at
a time when this copious dictionary was intrusted to the memory
of an illiterate people. The monuments of the Homerites were
inscribed with an obsolete and mysterious character; but the
Cufic letters, the groundwork of the present alphabet, were
invented on the banks of the Euphrates; and the recent invention
was taught at Mecca by a stranger who settled in that city after
the birth of Mahomet. The arts of grammar, of metre, and of
rhetoric, were unknown to the freeborn eloquence of the Arabians;
but their penetration was sharp, their fancy luxuriant, their wit
strong and sententious, and their more elaborate compositions
were addressed with energy and effect to the minds of their
hearers. The genius and merit of a rising poet was celebrated by
the applause of his own and the kindred tribes. A solemn banquet
was prepared, and a chorus of women, striking their tymbals, and
displaying the pomp of their nuptials, sung in the presence of
their sons and husbands the felicity of their native tribe; that
a champion had now appeared to vindicate their rights; that a
herald had raised his voice to immortalize their renown. The
distant or hostile tribes resorted to an annual fair, which was
abolished by the fanaticism of the first Moslems; a national
assembly that must have contributed to refine and harmonize the
Barbarians. Thirty days were employed in the exchange, not only
of corn and wine, but of eloquence and poetry. The prize was
disputed by the generous emulation of the bards; the victorious
performance was deposited in the archives of princes and emirs;
and we may read in our own language, the seven original poems
which were inscribed in letters of gold, and suspended in the
temple of Mecca. The Arabian poets were the historians and
moralists of the age; and if they sympathized with the
prejudices, they inspired and crowned the virtues, of their
countrymen. The indissoluble union of generosity and valor was
the darling theme of their song; and when they pointed their
keenest satire against a despicable race, they affirmed, in the
bitterness of reproach, that the men knew not how to give, nor
the women to deny. The same hospitality, which was practised by
Abraham, and celebrated by Homer, is still renewed in the camps
of the Arabs. The ferocious Bedoweens, the terror of the desert,
embrace, without inquiry or hesitation, the stranger who dares to
confide in their honor and to enter their tent. His treatment is
kind and respectful: he shares the wealth, or the poverty, of his
host; and, after a needful repose, he is dismissed on his way,
with thanks, with blessings, and perhaps with gifts. The heart
and hand are more largely expanded by the wants of a brother or a
friend; but the heroic acts that could deserve the public
applause, must have surpassed the narrow measure of discretion
and experience. A dispute had arisen, who, among the citizens of
Mecca, was entitled to the prize of generosity; and a successive
application was made to the three who were deemed most worthy of
the trial. Abdallah, the son of Abbas, had undertaken a distant
journey, and his foot was in the stirrup when he heard the voice
of a suppliant, "O son of the uncle of the apostle of God, I am a
traveller, and in distress!" He instantly dismounted to present
the pilgrim with his camel, her rich caparison, and a purse of
four thousand pieces of gold, excepting only the sword, either
for its intrinsic value, or as the gift of an honored kinsman.
The servant of Kais informed the second suppliant that his master
was asleep: but he immediately added, "Here is a purse of seven
thousand pieces of gold, (it is all we have in the house,) and
here is an order, that will entitle you to a camel and a slave;"
the master, as soon as he awoke, praised and enfranchised his
faithful steward, with a gentle reproof, that by respecting his
slumbers he had stinted his bounty. The third of these heroes,
the blind Arabah, at the hour of prayer, was supporting his steps
on the shoulders of two slaves. "Alas!" he replied, "my coffers
are empty! but these you may sell; if you refuse, I renounce
them." At these words, pushing away the youths, he groped along
the wall with his staff. The character of Hatem is the perfect
model of Arabian virtue: he was brave and liberal, an eloquent
poet, and a successful robber; forty camels were roasted at his
hospitable feast; and at the prayer of a suppliant enemy he
restored both the captives and the spoil. The freedom of his
countrymen disdained the laws of justice; they proudly indulged
the spontaneous impulse of pity and benevolence.
The religion of the Arabs, as well as of the Indians,
consisted in the worship of the sun, the moon, and the fixed
stars; a primitive and specious mode of superstition. The bright
luminaries of the sky display the visible image of a Deity: their
number and distance convey to a philosophic, or even a vulgar,
eye, the idea of boundless space: the character of eternity is
marked on these solid globes, that seem incapable of corruption
or decay: the regularity of their motions may be ascribed to a
principle of reason or instinct; and their real, or imaginary,
influence encourages the vain belief that the earth and its
inhabitants are the object of their peculiar care. The science of
astronomy was cultivated at Babylon; but the school of the Arabs
was a clear firmament and a naked plain. In their nocturnal
marches, they steered by the guidance of the stars: their names,
and order, and daily station, were familiar to the curiosity and
devotion of the Bedoween; and he was taught by experience to
divide, in twenty-eight parts, the zodiac of the moon, and to
bless the constellations who refreshed, with salutary rains, the
thirst of the desert. The reign of the heavenly orbs could not be
extended beyond the visible sphere; and some metaphysical powers
were necessary to sustain the transmigration of souls and the
resurrection of bodies: a camel was left to perish on the grave,
that he might serve his master in another life; and the
invocation of departed spirits implies that they were still
endowed with consciousness and power. I am ignorant, and I am
careless, of the blind mythology of the Barbarians; of the local
deities, of the stars, the air, and the earth, of their sex or
titles, their attributes or subordination. Each tribe, each
family, each independent warrior, created and changed the rites
and the object of his fantastic worship; but the nation, in every
age, has bowed to the religion, as well as to the language, of
Mecca. The genuine antiquity of the Caaba ascends beyond the
Christian æra; in describing the coast of the Red Sea, the
Greek historian Diodorus has remarked, between the Thamudites and
the Sabæans, a famous temple, whose superior sanctity was
revered by all the Arabians; the linen
or silken veil, which is annually renewed by the Turkish emperor,
was first offered by a pious king of the Homerites, who reigned
seven hundred years before the time of Mahomet. A tent, or a
cavern, might suffice for the worship of the savages, but an
edifice of stone and clay has been erected in its place; and the
art and power of the monarchs of the East have been confined to
the simplicity of the original model. A spacious portico encloses
the quadrangle of the Caaba; a square chapel, twenty-four cubits
long, twenty-three broad, and twenty-seven high: a door and a
window admit the light; the double roof is supported by three
pillars of wood; a spout (now of gold) discharges the rain-water,
and the well Zemzen is protected by a dome from accidental
pollution. The tribe of Koreish, by fraud and force, had acquired
the custody of the Caaba: the sacerdotal office devolved through
four lineal descents to the grandfather of Mahomet; and the
family of the Hashemites, from whence he sprung, was the most
respectable and sacred in the eyes of their country. The
precincts of Mecca enjoyed the rights of sanctuary; and, in the
last month of each year, the city and the temple were crowded
with a long train of pilgrims, who presented their vows and
offerings in the house of God. The same rites which are now
accomplished by the faithful Mussulman, were invented and
practised by the superstition of the idolaters. At an awful
distance they cast away their garments: seven times, with hasty
steps, they encircled the Caaba, and kissed the black stone:
seven times they visited and adored the adjacent mountains; seven
times they threw stones into the valley of Mina; and the
pilgrimage was achieved, as at the present hour, by a sacrifice
of sheep and camels, and the burial of their hair and nails in
the consecrated ground. Each tribe either found or introduced in
the Caaba their domestic worship: the temple was adorned, or
defiled, with three hundred and sixty idols of men, eagles,
lions, and antelopes; and most conspicuous was the statue of
Hebal, of red agate, holding in his hand seven arrows, without
heads or feathers, the instruments and symbols of profane
divination. But this statue was a monument of Syrian arts: the
devotion of the ruder ages was content with a pillar or a tablet;
and the rocks of the desert were hewn into gods or altars, in
imitation of the black stone of Mecca, which is deeply tainted
with the reproach of an idolatrous origin. From Japan to Peru,
the use of sacrifice has universally prevailed; and the votary
has expressed his gratitude, or fear, by destroying or consuming,
in honor of the gods, the dearest and most precious of their
gifts. The life of a man is the most precious oblation to
deprecate a public calamity: the altars of Phnicia and Egypt, of
Rome and Carthage, have been polluted with human gore: the cruel
practice was long preserved among the Arabs; in the third
century, a boy was annually sacrificed by the tribe of the
Dumatians; and a royal captive was piously slaughtered by the
prince of the Saracens, the ally and soldier of the emperor
Justinian. A parent who drags his son to the altar, exhibits the
most painful and sublime effort of fanaticism: the deed, or the
intention, was sanctified by the example of saints and heroes;
and the father of Mahomet himself was devoted by a rash vow, and
hardly ransomed for the equivalent of a hundred camels. In the
time of ignorance, the Arabs, like the Jews and Egyptians,
abstained from the taste of swine's flesh; they circumcised their
children at the age of puberty: the same customs, without the
censure or the precept of the Koran, have been silently
transmitted to their posterity and proselytes. It has been
sagaciously conjectured, that the artful legislator indulged the
stubborn prejudices of his countrymen. It is more simple to
believe that he adhered to the habits and opinions of his youth,
without foreseeing that a practice congenial to the climate of
Mecca might become useless or inconvenient on the banks of the
Danube or the Volga.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part III.
Arabia was free: the adjacent kingdoms were shaken by the
storms of conquest and tyranny, and the persecuted sects fled to
the happy land where they might profess what they thought, and
practise what they professed. The religions of the Sabians and
Magians, of the Jews and Christians, were disseminated from the
Persian Gulf to the Red Sea. In a remote period of antiquity,
Sabianism was diffused over Asia by the science of the
Chaldæans and the arms of the Assyrians. From the
observations of two thousand years, the priests and astronomers
of Babylon deduced the eternal laws of nature and providence.
They adored the seven gods or angels, who directed the course of
the seven planets, and shed their irresistible influence on the
earth. The attributes of the seven planets, with the twelve signs
of the zodiac, and the twenty-four constellations of the northern
and southern hemisphere, were represented by images and
talismans; the seven days of the week were dedicated to their
respective deities; the Sabians prayed thrice each day; and the
temple of the moon at Haran was the term of their pilgrimage. But
the flexible genius of their faith was always ready either to
teach or to learn: in the tradition of the creation, the deluge,
and the patriarchs, they held a singular agreement with their
Jewish captives; they appealed to the secret books of Adam, Seth,
and Enoch; and a slight infusion of the gospel has transformed
the last remnant of the Polytheists into the Christians of St.
John, in the territory of Bassora. The altars of Babylon were
overturned by the Magians; but the injuries of the Sabians were
revenged by the sword of Alexander; Persia groaned above five
hundred years under a foreign yoke; and the purest disciples of
Zoroaster escaped from the contagion of idolatry, and breathed
with their adversaries the freedom of the desert. Seven hundred
years before the death of Mahomet, the Jews were settled in
Arabia; and a far greater multitude was expelled from the Holy
Land in the wars of Titus and Hadrian. The industrious exiles
aspired to liberty and power: they erected synagogues in the
cities, and castles in the wilderness, and their Gentile converts
were confounded with the children of Israel, whom they resembled
in the outward mark of circumcision. The Christian missionaries
were still more active and successful: the Catholics asserted
their universal reign; the sects whom they oppressed,
successively retired beyond the limits of the Roman empire; the
Marcionites and Manichæans dispersed their
fantastic opinions and apocryphal
gospels; the churches of Yemen, and the princes of Hira and
Gassan, were instructed in a purer creed by the Jacobite and
Nestorian bishops. The liberty of choice was presented to the
tribes: each Arab was free to elect or to compose his private
religion: and the rude superstition of his house was mingled with
the sublime theology of saints and philosophers. A fundamental
article of faith was inculcated by the consent of the learned
strangers; the existence of one supreme God who is exalted above
the powers of heaven and earth, but who has often revealed
himself to mankind by the ministry of his angels and prophets,
and whose grace or justice has interrupted, by seasonable
miracles, the order of nature. The most rational of the Arabs
acknowledged his power, though they neglected his worship; and it
was habit rather than conviction that still attached them to the
relics of idolatry. The Jews and Christians were the people of
the Book; the Bible was already
translated into the Arabic language, and the volume of the Old
Testament was accepted by the concord of these implacable
enemies. In the story of the Hebrew patriarchs, the Arabs were
pleased to discover the fathers of their nation. They applauded
the birth and promises of Ismael; revered the faith and virtue of
Abraham; traced his pedigree and their own to the creation of the
first man, and imbibed, with equal credulity, the prodigies of
the holy text, and the dreams and traditions of the Jewish
rabbis.
The base and plebeian origin of Mahomet is an unskilful
calumny of the Christians, who exalt instead of degrading the
merit of their adversary. His descent from Ismael was a national
privilege or fable; but if the first steps of the pedigree are
dark and doubtful, he could produce many generations of pure and
genuine nobility: he sprung from the tribe of Koreish and the
family of Hashem, the most illustrious of the Arabs, the princes
of Mecca, and the hereditary guardians of the Caaba. The
grandfather of Mahomet was Abdol Motalleb, the son of Hashem, a
wealthy and generous citizen, who relieved the distress of famine
with the supplies of commerce. Mecca, which had been fed by the
liberality of the father, was saved by the courage of the son.
The kingdom of Yemen was subject to the Christian princes of
Abyssinia; their vassal Abrahah was provoked by an insult to
avenge the honor of the cross; and the holy city was invested by
a train of elephants and an army of Africans. A treaty was
proposed; and, in the first audience, the grandfather of Mahomet
demanded the restitution of his cattle. "And why," said Abrahah,
"do you not rather implore my clemency in favor of your temple,
which I have threatened to destroy?" "Because," replied the
intrepid chief, "the cattle is my own; the Caaba belongs to the
gods, and they will defend their house
from injury and sacrilege." The want of provisions, or the valor
of the Koreish, compelled the Abyssinians to a disgraceful
retreat: their discomfiture has been adorned with a miraculous
flight of birds, who showered down stones on the heads of the
infidels; and the deliverance was long commemorated by the
æra of the elephant. The glory of Abdol Motalleb was
crowned with domestic happiness; his life was prolonged to the
age of one hundred and ten years; and he became the father of six
daughters and thirteen sons. His best beloved Abdallah was the
most beautiful and modest of the Arabian youth; and in the first
night, when he consummated his marriage with Amina, of the noble
race of the Zahrites, two hundred virgins are said to have
expired of jealousy and despair. Mahomet, or more properly
Mohammed, the only son of Abdallah and Amina, was born at Mecca,
four years after the death of Justinian, and two months after the
defeat of the Abyssinians, whose victory would have introduced
into the Caaba the religion of the Christians. In his early
infancy, he was deprived of his father, his mother, and his
grandfather; his uncles were strong and numerous; and, in the
division of the inheritance, the orphan's share was reduced to
five camels and an Æthiopian maid-servant. At home and
abroad, in peace and war, Abu Taleb, the most respectable of his
uncles, was the guide and guardian of his youth; in his
twenty-fifth year, he entered into the service of Cadijah, a rich
and noble widow of Mecca, who soon rewarded his fidelity with the
gift of her hand and fortune. The marriage contract, in the
simple style of antiquity, recites the mutual love of Mahomet and
Cadijah; describes him as the most accomplished of the tribe of
Koreish; and stipulates a dowry of twelve ounces of gold and
twenty camels, which was supplied by the liberality of his uncle.
By this alliance, the son of Abdallah was restored to the station
of his ancestors; and the judicious matron was content with his
domestic virtues, till, in the fortieth year of his age, he
assumed the title of a prophet, and proclaimed the religion of
the Koran.
According to the tradition of his companions, Mahomet was
distinguished by the beauty of his person, an outward gift which
is seldom despised, except by those to whom it has been refused.
Before he spoke, the orator engaged on his side the affections of
a public or private audience. They applauded his commanding
presence, his majestic aspect, his piercing eye, his gracious
smile, his flowing beard, his countenance that painted every
sensation of the soul, and his gestures that enforced each
expression of the tongue. In the familiar offices of life he
scrupulously adhered to the grave and ceremonious politeness of
his country: his respectful attention to the rich and powerful
was dignified by his condescension and affability to the poorest
citizens of Mecca: the frankness of his manner concealed the
artifice of his views; and the habits of courtesy were imputed to
personal friendship or universal benevolence. His memory was
capacious and retentive; his wit easy and social; his imagination
sublime; his judgment clear, rapid, and decisive. He possessed
the courage both of thought and action; and, although his designs
might gradually expand with his success, the first idea which he
entertained of his divine mission bears the stamp of an original
and superior genius. The son of Abdallah was educated in the
bosom of the noblest race, in the use of the purest dialect of
Arabia; and the fluency of his speech was corrected and enhanced
by the practice of discreet and seasonable silence. With these
powers of eloquence, Mahomet was an illiterate Barbarian: his
youth had never been instructed in the arts of reading and
writing; the common ignorance exempted him from shame or
reproach, but he was reduced to a narrow circle of existence, and
deprived of those faithful mirrors, which reflect to our mind the
minds of sages and heroes. Yet the book of nature and of man was
open to his view; and some fancy has been indulged in the
political and philosophical observations which are ascribed to
the Arabian traveller. He compares the
nations and the regions of the earth; discovers the weakness of
the Persian and Roman monarchies; beholds, with pity and
indignation, the degeneracy of the times; and resolves to unite
under one God and one king the invincible spirit and primitive
virtues of the Arabs. Our more accurate inquiry will suggest,
that, instead of visiting the courts, the camps, the temples, of
the East, the two journeys of Mahomet into Syria were confined to
the fairs of Bostra and Damascus; that he was only thirteen years
of age when he accompanied the caravan of his uncle; and that his
duty compelled him to return as soon as he had disposed of the
merchandise of Cadijah. In these hasty and superficial
excursions, the eye of genius might discern some objects
invisible to his grosser companions; some seeds of knowledge
might be cast upon a fruitful soil; but his ignorance of the
Syriac language must have checked his curiosity; and I cannot
perceive, in the life or writings of Mahomet, that his prospect
was far extended beyond the limits of the Arabian world. From
every region of that solitary world, the pilgrims of Mecca were
annually assembled, by the calls of devotion and commerce: in the
free concourse of multitudes, a simple citizen, in his native
tongue, might study the political state and character of the
tribes, the theory and practice of the Jews and Christians. Some
useful strangers might be tempted, or forced, to implore the
rights of hospitality; and the enemies of Mahomet have named the
Jew, the Persian, and the Syrian monk, whom they accuse of
lending their secret aid to the composition of the Koran.
Conversation enriches the understanding, but solitude is the
school of genius; and the uniformity of a work denotes the hand
of a single artist. From his earliest youth Mahomet was addicted
to religious contemplation; each year, during the month of
Ramadan, he withdrew from the world, and from the arms of
Cadijah: in the cave of Hera, three miles from Mecca, he
consulted the spirit of fraud or enthusiasm, whose abode is not
in the heavens, but in the mind of the prophet. The faith which,
under the name of Islam, he preached to
his family and nation, is compounded of an eternal truth, and a
necessary fiction, That there is only one God, and that Mahomet
is the apostle of God.
It is the boast of the Jewish apologists, that while the
learned nations of antiquity were deluded by the fables of
polytheism, their simple ancestors of Palestine preserved the
knowledge and worship of the true God. The moral attributes of
Jehovah may not easily be reconciled with the standard of
human virtue: his metaphysical
qualities are darkly expressed; but each page of the Pentateuch
and the Prophets is an evidence of his power: the unity of his
name is inscribed on the first table of the law; and his
sanctuary was never defiled by any visible image of the invisible
essence. After the ruin of the temple, the faith of the Hebrew
exiles was purified, fixed, and enlightened, by the spiritual
devotion of the synagogue; and the authority of Mahomet will not
justify his perpetual reproach, that the Jews of Mecca or Medina
adored Ezra as the son of God. But the children of Israel had
ceased to be a people; and the religions of the world were
guilty, at least in the eyes of the prophet, of giving sons, or
daughters, or companions, to the supreme God. In the rude
idolatry of the Arabs, the crime is manifest and audacious: the
Sabians are poorly excused by the preëminence of the first
planet, or intelligence, in their celestial hierarchy; and in the
Magian system the conflict of the two principles betrays the
imperfection of the conqueror. The Christians of the seventh
century had insensibly relapsed into a semblance of Paganism:
their public and private vows were addressed to the relics and
images that disgraced the temples of the East: the throne of the
Almighty was darkened by a cloud of martyrs, and saints, and
angels, the objects of popular veneration; and the Collyridian
heretics, who flourished in the fruitful soil of Arabia, invested
the Virgin Mary with the name and honors of a goddess. The
mysteries of the Trinity and Incarnation
appear to contradict the principle of
the divine unity. In their obvious sense, they introduce three
equal deities, and transform the man Jesus into the substance of
the Son of God: an orthodox commentary will satisfy only a
believing mind: intemperate curiosity and zeal had torn the veil
of the sanctuary; and each of the Oriental sects was eager to
confess that all, except themselves, deserved the reproach of
idolatry and polytheism. The creed of Mahomet is free from
suspicion or ambiguity; and the Koran is a glorious testimony to
the unity of God. The prophet of Mecca rejected the worship of
idols and men, of stars and planets, on the rational principle
that whatever rises must set, that whatever is born must die,
that whatever is corruptible must decay and perish. In the Author
of the universe, his rational enthusiasm confessed and adored an
infinite and eternal being, without form or place, without issue
or similitude, present to our most secret thoughts, existing by
the necessity of his own nature, and deriving from himself all
moral and intellectual perfection. These sublime truths, thus
announced in the language of the prophet, are firmly held by his
disciples, and defined with metaphysical precision by the
interpreters of the Koran. A philosophic theist might subscribe
the popular creed of the Mahometans; a creed too sublime,
perhaps, for our present faculties. What object remains for the
fancy, or even the understanding, when we have abstracted from
the unknown substance all ideas of time and space, of motion and
matter, of sensation and reflection? The first principle of
reason and revolution was confirmed by the voice of Mahomet: his
proselytes, from India to Morocco, are distinguished by the name
of Unitarians; and the danger of
idolatry has been prevented by the interdiction of images. The
doctrine of eternal decrees and absolute predestination is
strictly embraced by the Mahometans; and they struggle, with the
common difficulties, how to reconcile
the prescience of God with the freedom and responsibility of man;
how to explain the permission of evil
under the reign of infinite power and infinite goodness.
The God of nature has written his existence on all his works,
and his law in the heart of man. To restore the knowledge of the
one, and the practice of the other, has been the real or
pretended aim of the prophets of every age: the liberality of
Mahomet allowed to his predecessors the same credit which he
claimed for himself; and the chain of inspiration was prolonged
from the fall of Adam to the promulgation of the Koran. During
that period, some rays of prophetic light had been imparted to
one hundred and twenty-four thousand of the elect, discriminated
by their respective measure of virtue and grace; three hundred
and thirteen apostles were sent with a special commission to
recall their country from idolatry and vice; one hundred and four
volumes have been dictated by the Holy Spirit; and six
legislators of transcendent brightness have announced to mankind
the six successive revelations of various rites, but of one
immutable religion. The authority and station of Adam, Noah,
Abraham, Moses, Christ, and Mahomet, rise in just gradation above
each other; but whosoever hates or rejects any one of the
prophets is numbered with the infidels. The writings of the
patriarchs were extant only in the apocryphal copies of the
Greeks and Syrians: the conduct of Adam had not entitled him to
the gratitude or respect of his children; the seven precepts of
Noah were observed by an inferior and imperfect class of the
proselytes of the synagogue; and the memory of Abraham was
obscurely revered by the Sabians in his native land of
Chaldæa: of the myriads of prophets, Moses and Christ alone
lived and reigned; and the remnant of the inspired writings was
comprised in the books of the Old and the New Testament. The
miraculous story of Moses is consecrated and embellished in the
Koran; and the captive Jews enjoy the secret revenge of imposing
their own belief on the nations whose recent creeds they deride.
For the author of Christianity, the Mahometans are taught by the
prophet to entertain a high and mysterious reverence. "Verily,
Christ Jesus, the son of Mary, is the apostle of God, and his
word, which he conveyed unto Mary, and a Spirit proceeding from
him; honorable in this world, and in the world to come, and one
of those who approach near to the presence of God." The wonders
of the genuine and apocryphal gospels are profusely heaped on his
head; and the Latin church has not disdained to borrow from the
Koran the immaculate conception of his virgin mother. Yet Jesus
was a mere mortal; and, at the day of judgment, his testimony
will serve to condemn both the Jews, who reject him as a prophet,
and the Christians, who adore him as the Son of God. The malice
of his enemies aspersed his reputation, and conspired against his
life; but their intention only was guilty; a phantom or a
criminal was substituted on the cross; and the innocent saint was
translated to the seventh heaven. During six hundred years the
gospel was the way of truth and salvation; but the Christians
insensibly forgot both the laws and example of their founder; and
Mahomet was instructed by the Gnostics to accuse the church, as
well as the synagogue, of corrupting the integrity of the sacred
text. The piety of Moses and of Christ rejoiced in the assurance
of a future prophet, more illustrious than themselves: the
evangelical promise of the Paraclete,
or Holy Ghost, was prefigured in the name, and accomplished in
the person, of Mahomet, the greatest and the last of the apostles
of God.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part IV.
The communication of ideas requires a similitude of thought
and language: the discourse of a philosopher would vibrate
without effect on the ear of a peasant; yet how minute is the
distance of their understandings, if it
be compared with the contact of an infinite and a finite mind,
with the word of God expressed by the tongue or the pen of a
mortal! The inspiration of the Hebrew prophets, of the apostles
and evangelists of Christ, might not be incompatible with the
exercise of their reason and memory; and the diversity of their
genius is strongly marked in the style and composition of the
books of the Old and New Testament. But Mahomet was content with
a character, more humble, yet more sublime, of a simple editor;
the substance of the Koran, according to himself or his
disciples, is uncreated and eternal; subsisting in the essence of
the Deity, and inscribed with a pen of light on the table of his
everlasting decrees. A paper copy, in a volume of silk and gems,
was brought down to the lowest heaven by the angel Gabriel, who,
under the Jewish economy, had indeed been despatched on the most
important errands; and this trusty messenger successively
revealed the chapters and verses to the Arabian prophet. Instead
of a perpetual and perfect measure of the divine will, the
fragments of the Koran were produced at the discretion of
Mahomet; each revelation is suited to the emergencies of his
policy or passion; and all contradiction is removed by the saving
maxim, that any text of Scripture is abrogated or modified by any
subsequent passage. The word of God, and of the apostle, was
diligently recorded by his disciples on palm-leaves and the
shoulder-bones of mutton; and the pages, without order or
connection, were cast into a domestic chest, in the custody of
one of his wives. Two years after the death of Mahomet, the
sacred volume was collected and published by his friend and
successor Abubeker: the work was revised by the caliph Othman, in
the thirtieth year of the Hegira; and the various editions of the
Koran assert the same miraculous privilege of a uniform and
incorruptible text. In the spirit of enthusiasm or vanity, the
prophet rests the truth of his mission on the merit of his book;
audaciously challenges both men and angels to imitate the
beauties of a single page; and presumes to assert that God alone
could dictate this incomparable performance. This argument is
most powerfully addressed to a devout Arabian, whose mind is
attuned to faith and rapture; whose ear is delighted by the music
of sounds; and whose ignorance is incapable of comparing the
productions of human genius. The harmony and copiousness of style
will not reach, in a version, the European infidel: he will
peruse with impatience the endless incoherent rhapsody of fable,
and precept, and declamation, which seldom excites a sentiment or
an idea, which sometimes crawls in the dust, and is sometimes
lost in the clouds. The divine attributes exalt the fancy of the
Arabian missionary; but his loftiest strains must yield to the
sublime simplicity of the book of Job, composed in a remote age,
in the same country, and in the same language. If the composition
of the Koran exceed the faculties of a man to what superior
intelligence should we ascribe the Iliad of Homer, or the
Philippics of Demosthenes? In all religions, the life of the
founder supplies the silence of his written revelation: the
sayings of Mahomet were so many lessons of truth; his actions so
many examples of virtue; and the public and private memorials
were preserved by his wives and companions. At the end of two
hundred years, the Sonna, or oral law, was fixed and consecrated
by the labors of Al Bochari, who discriminated seven thousand two
hundred and seventy-five genuine traditions, from a mass of three
hundred thousand reports, of a more doubtful or spurious
character. Each day the pious author prayed in the temple of
Mecca, and performed his ablutions with the water of Zemzem: the
pages were successively deposited on the pulpit and the sepulchre
of the apostle; and the work has been approved by the four
orthodox sects of the Sonnites.
The mission of the ancient prophets, of Moses and of Jesus had
been confirmed by many splendid prodigies; and Mahomet was
repeatedly urged, by the inhabitants of Mecca and Medina, to
produce a similar evidence of his divine legation; to call down
from heaven the angel or the volume of his revelation, to create
a garden in the desert, or to kindle a conflagration in the
unbelieving city. As often as he is pressed by the demands of the
Koreish, he involves himself in the obscure boast of vision and
prophecy, appeals to the internal proofs of his doctrine, and
shields himself behind the providence of God, who refuses those
signs and wonders that would depreciate the merit of faith, and
aggravate the guilt of infidelity But the modest or angry tone of
his apologies betrays his weakness and vexation; and these
passages of scandal established, beyond suspicion, the integrity
of the Koran. The votaries of Mahomet are more assured than
himself of his miraculous gifts; and their confidence and
credulity increase as they are farther removed from the time and
place of his spiritual exploits. They believe or affirm that
trees went forth to meet him; that he was saluted by stones; that
water gushed from his fingers; that he fed the hungry, cured the
sick, and raised the dead; that a beam groaned to him; that a
camel complained to him; that a shoulder of mutton informed him
of its being poisoned; and that both animate and inanimate nature
were equally subject to the apostle of God. His dream of a
nocturnal journey is seriously described as a real and corporeal
transaction. A mysterious animal, the Borak, conveyed him from
the temple of Mecca to that of Jerusalem: with his companion
Gabriel he successively ascended the seven heavens, and received
and repaid the salutations of the patriarchs, the prophets, and
the angels, in their respective mansions. Beyond the seventh
heaven, Mahomet alone was permitted to proceed; he passed the
veil of unity, approached within two bow-shots of the throne, and
felt a cold that pierced him to the heart, when his shoulder was
touched by the hand of God. After this familiar, though important
conversation, he again descended to Jerusalem, remounted the
Borak, returned to Mecca, and performed in the tenth part of a
night the journey of many thousand years. According to another
legend, the apostle confounded in a national assembly the
malicious challenge of the Koreish. His resistless word split
asunder the orb of the moon: the obedient planet stooped from her
station in the sky, accomplished the seven revolutions round the
Caaba, saluted Mahomet in the Arabian tongue, and, suddenly
contracting her dimensions, entered at the collar, and issued
forth through the sleeve, of his shirt. The vulgar are amused
with these marvellous tales; but the gravest of the Mussulman
doctors imitate the modesty of their master, and indulge a
latitude of faith or interpretation. They might speciously
allege, that in preaching the religion it was needless to violate
the harmony of nature; that a creed unclouded with mystery may be
excused from miracles; and that the sword of Mahomet was not less
potent than the rod of Moses.
The polytheist is oppressed and distracted by the variety of
superstition: a thousand rites of Egyptian origin were interwoven
with the essence of the Mosaic law; and the spirit of the gospel
had evaporated in the pageantry of the church. The prophet of
Mecca was tempted by prejudice, or policy, or patriotism, to
sanctify the rites of the Arabians, and the custom of visiting
the holy stone of the Caaba. But the precepts of Mahomet himself
inculcates a more simple and rational piety: prayer, fasting, and
alms, are the religious duties of a Mussulman; and he is
encouraged to hope, that prayer will carry him half way to God,
fasting will bring him to the door of his palace, and alms will
gain him admittance. I. According to the tradition of the
nocturnal journey, the apostle, in his personal conference with
the Deity, was commanded to impose on his disciples the daily
obligation of fifty prayers. By the advice of Moses, he applied
for an alleviation of this intolerable burden; the number was
gradually reduced to five; without any dispensation of business
or pleasure, or time or place: the devotion of the faithful is
repeated at daybreak, at noon, in the afternoon, in the evening,
and at the first watch of the night; and in the present decay of
religious fervor, our travellers are edified by the profound
humility and attention of the Turks and Persians. Cleanliness is
the key of prayer: the frequent lustration of the hands, the
face, and the body, which was practised of old by the Arabs, is
solemnly enjoined by the Koran; and a permission is formally
granted to supply with sand the scarcity of water. The words and
attitudes of supplication, as it is performed either sitting, or
standing, or prostrate on the ground, are prescribed by custom or
authority; but the prayer is poured forth in short and fervent
ejaculations; the measure of zeal is not exhausted by a tedious
liturgy; and each Mussulman for his own person is invested with
the character of a priest. Among the theists, who reject the use
of images, it has been found necessary to restrain the wanderings
of the fancy, by directing the eye and the thought towards a
kebla, or visible point of the horizon.
The prophet was at first inclined to gratify the Jews by the
choice of Jerusalem; but he soon returned to a more natural
partiality; and five times every day the eyes of the nations at
Astracan, at Fez, at Delhi, are devoutly turned to the holy
temple of Mecca. Yet every spot for the service of God is equally
pure: the Mahometans indifferently pray in their chamber or in
the street. As a distinction from the Jews and Christians, the
Friday in each week is set apart for the useful institution of
public worship: the people is assembled in the mosch; and the
imam, some respectable elder, ascends the pulpit, to begin the
prayer and pronounce the sermon. But the Mahometan religion is
destitute of priesthood or sacrifice; and the independent spirit
of fanaticism looks down with contempt on the ministers and the
slaves of superstition. * II. The voluntary penance of the
ascetics, the torment and glory of their lives, was odious to a
prophet who censured in his companions a rash vow of abstaining
from flesh, and women, and sleep; and firmly declared, that he
would suffer no monks in his religion. Yet he instituted, in each
year, a fast of thirty days; and strenuously recommended the
observance as a discipline which purifies the soul and subdues
the body, as a salutary exercise of obedience to the will of God
and his apostle. During the month of Ramadan, from the rising to
the setting of the sun, the Mussulman abstains from eating, and
drinking, and women, and baths, and perfumes; from all
nourishment that can restore his strength, from all pleasure that
can gratify his senses. In the revolution of the lunar year, the
Ramadan coincides, by turns, with the winter cold and the summer
heat; and the patient martyr, without assuaging his thirst with a
drop of water, must expect the close of a tedious and sultry day.
The interdiction of wine, peculiar to some orders of priests or
hermits, is converted by Mahomet alone into a positive and
general law; and a considerable portion of the globe has abjured,
at his command, the use of that salutary, though dangerous,
liquor. These painful restraints are, doubtless, infringed by the
libertine, and eluded by the hypocrite; but the legislator, by
whom they are enacted, cannot surely be accused of alluring his
proselytes by the indulgence of their sensual appetites. III. The
charity of the Mahometans descends to the animal creation; and
the Koran repeatedly inculcates, not as a merit, but as a strict
and indispensable duty, the relief of the indigent and
unfortunate. Mahomet, perhaps, is the only lawgiver who has
defined the precise measure of charity: the standard may vary
with the degree and nature of property, as it consists either in
money, in corn or cattle, in fruits or merchandise; but the
Mussulman does not accomplish the law, unless he bestows a
tenthof his revenue; and if his
conscience accuses him of fraud or extortion, the tenth, under
the idea of restitution, is enlarged to a
fifth. Benevolence is the foundation of
justice, since we are forbid to injure those whom we are bound to
assist. A prophet may reveal the secrets of heaven and of
futurity; but in his moral precepts he can only repeat the
lessons of our own hearts.
The two articles of belief, and the four practical duties, of
Islam, are guarded by rewards and punishments; and the faith of
the Mussulman is devoutly fixed on the event of the judgment and
the last day. The prophet has not presumed to determine the
moment of that awful catastrophe, though he darkly announces the
signs, both in heaven and earth, which will precede the universal
dissolution, when life shall be destroyed, and the order of
creation shall be confounded in the primitive chaos. At the blast
of the trumpet, new worlds will start into being: angels, genii,
and men will arise from the dead, and the human soul will again
be united to the body. The doctrine of the resurrection was first
entertained by the Egyptians; and their mummies were embalmed,
their pyramids were constructed, to preserve the ancient mansion
of the soul, during a period of three thousand years. But the
attempt is partial and unavailing; and it is with a more
philosophic spirit that Mahomet relies on the omnipotence of the
Creator, whose word can reanimate the breathless clay, and
collect the innumerable atoms, that no longer retain their form
or substance. The intermediate state of the soul it is hard to
decide; and those who most firmly believe her immaterial nature,
are at a loss to understand how she can think or act without the
agency of the organs of sense.
The reunion of the soul and body will be followed by the final
judgment of mankind; and in his copy of the Magian picture, the
prophet has too faithfully represented the forms of proceeding,
and even the slow and successive operations, of an earthly
tribunal. By his intolerant adversaries he is upbraided for
extending, even to themselves, the hope of salvation, for
asserting the blackest heresy, that every man who believes in
God, and accomplishes good works, may expect in the last day a
favorable sentence. Such rational indifference is ill adapted to
the character of a fanatic; nor is it probable that a messenger
from heaven should depreciate the value and necessity of his own
revelation. In the idiom of the Koran, the belief of God is
inseparable from that of Mahomet: the good works are those which
he has enjoined, and the two qualifications imply the profession
of Islam, to which all nations and all sects are equally invited.
Their spiritual blindness, though excused by ignorance and
crowned with virtue, will be scourged with everlasting torments;
and the tears which Mahomet shed over the tomb of his mother for
whom he was forbidden to pray, display a striking contrast of
humanity and enthusiasm. The doom of the infidels is common: the
measure of their guilt and punishment is determined by the degree
of evidence which they have rejected, by the magnitude of the
errors which they have entertained: the eternal mansions of the
Christians, the Jews, the Sabians, the Magians, and idolaters,
are sunk below each other in the abyss; and the lowest hell is
reserved for the faithless hypocrites who have assumed the mask
of religion. After the greater part of mankind has been condemned
for their opinions, the true believers only will be judged by
their actions. The good and evil of each Mussulman will be
accurately weighed in a real or allegorical balance; and a
singular mode of compensation will be allowed for the payment of
injuries: the aggressor will refund an equivalent of his own good
actions, for the benefit of the person whom he has wronged; and
if he should be destitute of any moral property, the weight of
his sins will be loaded with an adequate share of the demerits of
the sufferer. According as the shares of guilt or virtue shall
preponderate, the sentence will be pronounced, and all, without
distinction, will pass over the sharp and perilous bridge of the
abyss; but the innocent, treading in the footsteps of Mahomet,
will gloriously enter the gates of paradise, while the guilty
will fall into the first and mildest of the seven hells. The term
of expiation will vary from nine hundred to seven thousand years;
but the prophet has judiciously promised, that all his disciples,
whatever may be their sins, shall be saved, by their own faith
and his intercession from eternal damnation. It is not surprising
that superstition should act most powerfully on the fears of her
votaries, since the human fancy can paint with more energy the
misery than the bliss of a future life. With the two simple
elements of darkness and fire, we create a sensation of pain,
which may be aggravated to an infinite degree by the idea of
endless duration. But the same idea operates with an opposite
effect on the continuity of pleasure; and too much of our present
enjoyments is obtained from the relief, or the comparison, of
evil. It is natural enough that an Arabian prophet should dwell
with rapture on the groves, the fountains, and the rivers of
paradise; but instead of inspiring the blessed inhabitants with a
liberal taste for harmony and science, conversation and
friendship, he idly celebrates the pearls and diamonds, the robes
of silk, palaces of marble, dishes of gold, rich wines,
artificial dainties, numerous attendants, and the whole train of
sensual and costly luxury, which becomes insipid to the owner,
even in the short period of this mortal life. Seventy-two
Houris, or black-eyed girls, of
resplendent beauty, blooming youth, virgin purity, and exquisite
sensibility, will be created for the use of the meanest believer;
a moment of pleasure will be prolonged to a thousand years; and
his faculties will be increased a hundred fold, to render him
worthy of his felicity. Notwithstanding a vulgar prejudice, the
gates of heaven will be open to both sexes; but Mahomet has not
specified the male companions of the female elect, lest he should
either alarm the jealousy of their former husbands, or disturb
their felicity, by the suspicion of an everlasting marriage. This
image of a carnal paradise has provoked the indignation, perhaps
the envy, of the monks: they declaim against the impure religion
of Mahomet; and his modest apologists are driven to the poor
excuse of figures and allegories. But the sounder and more
consistent party adhere without shame, to the literal
interpretation of the Koran: useless would be the resurrection of
the body, unless it were restored to the possession and exercise
of its worthiest faculties; and the union of sensual and
intellectual enjoyment is requisite to complete the happiness of
the double animal, the perfect man. Yet the joys of the Mahometan
paradise will not be confined to the indulgence of luxury and
appetite; and the prophet has expressly declared that all meaner
happiness will be forgotten and despised by the saints and
martyrs, who shall be admitted to the beatitude of the divine
vision.
The first and most arduous conquests of Mahomet were those of
his wife, his servant, his pupil, and his friend; since he
presented himself as a prophet to those who were most conversant
with his infirmities as a man. Yet Cadijah believed the words,
and cherished the glory, of her husband; the obsequious and
affectionate Zeid was tempted by the prospect of freedom; the
illustrious Ali, the son of Abu Taleb, embraced the sentiments of
his cousin with the spirit of a youthful hero; and the wealth,
the moderation, the veracity of Abubeker confirmed the religion
of the prophet whom he was destined to succeed. By his
persuasion, ten of the most respectable citizens of Mecca were
introduced to the private lessons of Islam; they yielded to the
voice of reason and enthusiasm; they repeated the fundamental
creed, "There is but one God, and Mahomet is the apostle of God;"
and their faith, even in this life, was rewarded with riches and
honors, with the command of armies and the government of
kingdoms. Three years were silently employed in the conversion of
fourteen proselytes, the first-fruits of his mission; but in the
fourth year he assumed the prophetic office, and resolving to
impart to his family the light of divine truth, he prepared a
banquet, a lamb, as it is said, and a bowl of milk, for the
entertainment of forty guests of the race of Hashem. "Friends and
kinsmen," said Mahomet to the assembly, "I offer you, and I alone
can offer, the most precious of gifts, the treasures of this
world and of the world to come. God has commanded me to call you
to his service. Who among you will support my burden? Who among
you will be my companion and my vizier?" No answer was returned,
till the silence of astonishment, and doubt, and contempt, was at
length broken by the impatient courage of Ali, a youth in the
fourteenth year of his age. "O prophet, I am the man: whosoever
rises against thee, I will dash out his teeth, tear out his eyes,
break his legs, rip up his belly. O prophet, I will be thy vizier
over them." Mahomet accepted his offer with transport, and Abu
Taled was ironically exhorted to respect the superior dignity of
his son. In a more serious tone, the father of Ali advised his
nephew to relinquish his impracticable design. "Spare your
remonstrances," replied the intrepid fanatic to his uncle and
benefactor; "if they should place the sun on my right hand, and
the moon on my left, they should not divert me from my course."
He persevered ten years in the exercise of his mission; and the
religion which has overspread the East and the West advanced with
a slow and painful progress within the walls of Mecca. Yet
Mahomet enjoyed the satisfaction of beholding the increase of his
infant congregation of Unitarians, who revered him as a prophet,
and to whom he seasonably dispensed the spiritual nourishment of
the Koran. The number of proselytes may be esteemed by the
absence of eighty-three men and eighteen women, who retired to
Æthiopia in the seventh year of his mission; and his party
was fortified by the timely conversion of his uncle Hamza, and of
the fierce and inflexible Omar, who signalized in the cause of
Islam the same zeal, which he had exerted for its destruction.
Nor was the charity of Mahomet confined to the tribe of Koreish,
or the precincts of Mecca: on solemn festivals, in the days of
pilgrimage, he frequented the Caaba, accosted the strangers of
every tribe, and urged, both in private converse and public
discourse, the belief and worship of a sole Deity. Conscious of
his reason and of his weakness, he asserted the liberty of
conscience, and disclaimed the use of religious violence: but he
called the Arabs to repentance, and conjured them to remember the
ancient idolaters of Ad and Thamud, whom the divine justice had
swept away from the face of the earth.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part V.
The people of Mecca were hardened in their unbelief by
superstition and envy. The elders of the city, the uncles of the
prophet, affected to despise the presumption of an orphan, the
reformer of his country: the pious orations of Mahomet in the
Caaba were answered by the clamors of Abu Taleb. "Citizens and
pilgrims, listen not to the tempter, hearken not to his impious
novelties. Stand fast in the worship of Al Lâta and Al
Uzzah." Yet the son of Abdallah was ever dear to the aged chief:
and he protected the fame and person of his nephew against the
assaults of the Koreishites, who had long been jealous of the
preëminence of the family of Hashem. Their malice was
colored with the pretence of religion: in the age of Job, the
crime of impiety was punished by the Arabian magistrate; and
Mahomet was guilty of deserting and denying the national deities.
But so loose was the policy of Mecca, that the leaders of the
Koreish, instead of accusing a criminal, were compelled to employ
the measures of persuasion or violence. They repeatedly addressed
Abu Taleb in the style of reproach and menace. "Thy nephew
reviles our religion; he accuses our wise forefathers of
ignorance and folly; silence him quickly, lest he kindle tumult
and discord in the city. If he persevere, we shall draw our
swords against him and his adherents, and thou wilt be
responsible for the blood of thy fellow-citizens." The weight and
moderation of Abu Taleb eluded the violence of religious faction;
the most helpless or timid of the disciples retired to
Æthiopia, and the prophet withdrew himself to various
places of strength in the town and country. As he was still
supported by his family, the rest of the tribe of Koreish engaged
themselves to renounce all intercourse with the children of
Hashem, neither to buy nor sell, neither to marry not to give in
marriage, but to pursue them with implacable enmity, till they
should deliver the person of Mahomet to the justice of the gods.
The decree was suspended in the Caaba before the eyes of the
nation; the messengers of the Koreish pursued the Mussulman
exiles in the heart of Africa: they besieged the prophet and his
most faithful followers, intercepted their water, and inflamed
their mutual animosity by the retaliation of injuries and
insults. A doubtful truce restored the appearances of concord
till the death of Abu Taleb abandoned Mahomet to the power of his
enemies, at the moment when he was deprived of his domestic
comforts by the loss of his faithful and generous Cadijah. Abu
Sophian, the chief of the branch of Ommiyah, succeeded to the
principality of the republic of Mecca. A zealous votary of the
idols, a mortal foe of the line of Hashem, he convened an
assembly of the Koreishites and their allies, to decide the fate
of the apostle. His imprisonment might provoke the despair of his
enthusiasm; and the exile of an eloquent and popular fanatic
would diffuse the mischief through the provinces of Arabia. His
death was resolved; and they agreed that a sword from each tribe
should be buried in his heart, to divide the guilt of his blood,
and baffle the vengeance of the Hashemites. An angel or a spy
revealed their conspiracy; and flight was the only resource of
Mahomet. At the dead of night, accompanied by his friend
Abubeker, he silently escaped from his house: the assassins
watched at the door; but they were deceived by the figure of Ali,
who reposed on the bed, and was covered with the green vestment
of the apostle. The Koreish respected the piety of the heroic
youth; but some verses of Ali, which are still extant, exhibit an
interesting picture of his anxiety, his tenderness, and his
religious confidence. Three days Mahomet and his companion were
concealed in the cave of Thor, at the distance of a league from
Mecca; and in the close of each evening, they received from the
son and daughter of Abubeker a secret supply of intelligence and
food. The diligence of the Koreish explored every haunt in the
neighborhood of the city: they arrived at the entrance of the
cavern; but the providential deceit of a spider's web and a
pigeon's nest is supposed to convince them that the place was
solitary and inviolate. "We are only two," said the trembling
Abubeker. "There is a third," replied the prophet; "it is God
himself." No sooner was the pursuit abated than the two fugitives
issued from the rock, and mounted their camels: on the road to
Medina, they were overtaken by the emissaries of the Koreish;
they redeemed themselves with prayers and promises from their
hands. In this eventful moment, the lance of an Arab might have
changed the history of the world. The flight of the prophet from
Mecca to Medina has fixed the memorable æra of the
Hegira, which, at the end of twelve
centuries, still discriminates the lunar years of the Mahometan
nations.
The religion of the Koran might have perished in its cradle,
had not Medina embraced with faith and reverence the holy
outcasts of Mecca. Medina, or the city,
known under the name of Yathreb, before it was sanctified by the
throne of the prophet, was divided between the tribes of the
Charegites and the Awsites, whose hereditary feud was rekindled
by the slightest provocations: two colonies of Jews, who boasted
a sacerdotal race, were their humble allies, and without
converting the Arabs, they introduced the taste of science and
religion, which distinguished Medina as the city of the Book.
Some of her noblest citizens, in a pilgrimage to the Caaba, were
converted by the preaching of Mahomet; on their return, they
diffused the belief of God and his prophet, and the new alliance
was ratified by their deputies in two secret and nocturnal
interviews on a hill in the suburbs of Mecca. In the first, ten
Charegites and two Awsites united in faith and love, protested,
in the name of their wives, their children, and their absent
brethren, that they would forever profess the creed, and observe
the precepts, of the Koran. The second was a political
association, the first vital spark of the empire of the Saracens.
Seventy-three men and two women of Medina held a solemn
conference with Mahomet, his kinsman, and his disciples; and
pledged themselves to each other by a mutual oath of fidelity.
They promised, in the name of the city, that if he should be
banished, they would receive him as a confederate, obey him as a
leader, and defend him to the last extremity, like their wives
and children. "But if you are recalled by your country," they
asked with a flattering anxiety, "will you not abandon your new
allies?" "All things," replied Mahomet with a smile, "are now
common between us your blood is as my blood, your ruin as my
ruin. We are bound to each other by the ties of honor and
interest. I am your friend, and the enemy of your foes." "But if
we are killed in your service, what," exclaimed the deputies of
Medina, "will be our reward?" "Paradise," replied the prophet.
"Stretch forth thy hand." He stretched it forth, and they
reiterated the oath of allegiance and fidelity. Their treaty was
ratified by the people, who unanimously embraced the profession
of Islam; they rejoiced in the exile of the apostle, but they
trembled for his safety, and impatiently expected his arrival.
After a perilous and rapid journey along the sea-coast, he halted
at Koba, two miles from the city, and made his public entry into
Medina, sixteen days after his flight from Mecca. Five hundred of
the citizens advanced to meet him; he was hailed with
acclamations of loyalty and devotion; Mahomet was mounted on a
she-camel, an umbrella shaded his head, and a turban was unfurled
before him to supply the deficiency of a standard. His bravest
disciples, who had been scattered by the storm, assembled round
his person; and the equal, though various, merit of the Moslems
was distinguished by the names of
Mohagerians and
Ansars, the fugitives of Mecca, and the
auxiliaries of Medina. To eradicate the seeds of jealousy,
Mahomet judiciously coupled his principal followers with the
rights and obligations of brethren; and when Ali found himself
without a peer, the prophet tenderly declared, that
he would be the companion and brother
of the noble youth. The expedient was crowned with success; the
holy fraternity was respected in peace and war, and the two
parties vied with each other in a generous emulation of courage
and fidelity. Once only the concord was slightly ruffled by an
accidental quarrel: a patriot of Medina arraigned the insolence
of the strangers, but the hint of their expulsion was heard with
abhorrence; and his own son most eagerly offered to lay at the
apostle's feet the head of his father.
From his establishment at Medina, Mahomet assumed the exercise
of the regal and sacerdotal office; and it was impious to appeal
from a judge whose decrees were inspired by the divine wisdom. A
small portion of ground, the patrimony of two orphans, was
acquired by gift or purchase; on that chosen spot he built a
house and a mosch, more venerable in their rude simplicity than
the palaces and temples of the Assyrian caliphs. His seal of
gold, or silver, was inscribed with the apostolic title; when he
prayed and preached in the weekly assembly, he leaned against the
trunk of a palm-tree; and it was long before he indulged himself
in the use of a chair or pulpit of rough timber. After a reign of
six years, fifteen hundred Moslems, in arms and in the field,
renewed their oath of allegiance; and their chief repeated the
assurance of protection till the death of the last member, or the
final dissolution of the party. It was in the same camp that the
deputy of Mecca was astonished by the attention of the faithful
to the words and looks of the prophet, by the eagerness with
which they collected his spittle, a hair that dropped on the
ground, the refuse water of his lustrations, as if they
participated in some degree of the prophetic virtue. "I have
seen," said he, "the Chosroes of Persia and the Cæsar of
Rome, but never did I behold a king among his subjects like
Mahomet among his companions." The devout fervor of enthusiasm
acts with more energy and truth than the cold and formal
servility of courts.
In the state of nature, every man has a right to defend, by
force of arms, his person and his possessions; to repel, or even
to prevent, the violence of his enemies, and to extend his
hostilities to a reasonable measure of satisfaction and
retaliation. In the free society of the Arabs, the duties of
subject and citizen imposed a feeble restraint; and Mahomet, in
the exercise of a peaceful and benevolent mission, had been
despoiled and banished by the injustice of his countrymen. The
choice of an independent people had exalted the fugitive of Mecca
to the rank of a sovereign; and he was invested with the just
prerogative of forming alliances, and of waging offensive or
defensive war. The imperfection of human rights was supplied and
armed by the plenitude of divine power: the prophet of Medina
assumed, in his new revelations, a fiercer and more sanguinary
tone, which proves that his former moderation was the effect of
weakness: the means of persuasion had been tried, the season of
forbearance was elapsed, and he was now commanded to propagate
his religion by the sword, to destroy the monuments of idolatry,
and, without regarding the sanctity of days or months, to pursue
the unbelieving nations of the earth. The same bloody precepts,
so repeatedly inculcated in the Koran, are ascribed by the author
to the Pentateuch and the Gospel. But the mild tenor of the
evangelic style may explain an ambiguous text, that Jesus did not
bring peace on the earth, but a sword: his patient and humble
virtues should not be confounded with the intolerant zeal of
princes and bishops, who have disgraced the name of his
disciples. In the prosecution of religious war, Mahomet might
appeal with more propriety to the example of Moses, of the
Judges, and the kings of Israel. The military laws of the Hebrews
are still more rigid than those of the Arabian legislator. The
Lord of hosts marched in person before the Jews: if a city
resisted their summons, the males, without distinction, were put
to the sword: the seven nations of Canaan were devoted to
destruction; and neither repentance nor conversion, could shield
them from the inevitable doom, that no creature within their
precincts should be left alive. * The fair option of friendship,
or submission, or battle, was proposed to the enemies of Mahomet.
If they professed the creed of Islam, they were admitted to all
the temporal and spiritual benefits of his primitive disciples,
and marched under the same banner to extend the religion which
they had embraced. The clemency of the prophet was decided by his
interest: yet he seldom trampled on a prostrate enemy; and he
seems to promise, that on the payment of a tribute, the least
guilty of his unbelieving subjects might be indulged in their
worship, or at least in their imperfect faith. In the first
months of his reign he practised the lessons of holy warfare, and
displayed his white banner before the gates of Medina: the
martial apostle fought in person at nine battles or sieges; and
fifty enterprises of war were achieved in ten years by himself or
his lieutenants. The Arab continued to unite the professions of a
merchant and a robber; and his petty excursions for the defence
or the attack of a caravan insensibly prepared his troops for the
conquest of Arabia. The distribution of the spoil was regulated
by a divine law: the whole was faithfully collected in one common
mass: a fifth of the gold and silver, the prisoners and cattle,
the movables and immovables, was reserved by the prophet for
pious and charitable uses; the remainder was shared in adequate
portions by the soldiers who had obtained the victory or guarded
the camp: the rewards of the slain devolved to their widows and
orphans; and the increase of cavalry was encouraged by the
allotment of a double share to the horse and to the man. From all
sides the roving Arabs were allured to the standard of religion
and plunder: the apostle sanctified the license of embracing the
female captives as their wives or concubines, and the enjoyment
of wealth and beauty was a feeble type of the joys of paradise
prepared for the valiant martyrs of the faith. "The sword," says
Mahomet, "is the key of heaven and of hell; a drop of blood shed
in the cause of God, a night spent in arms, is of more avail than
two months of fasting or prayer: whosoever falls in battle, his
sins are forgiven: at the day of judgment his wounds shall be
resplendent as vermilion, and odoriferous as musk; and the loss
of his limbs shall be supplied by the wings of angels and
cherubim." The intrepid souls of the Arabs were fired with
enthusiasm: the picture of the invisible world was strongly
painted on their imagination; and the death which they had always
despised became an object of hope and desire. The Koran
inculcates, in the most absolute sense, the tenets of fate and
predestination, which would extinguish both industry and virtue,
if the actions of man were governed by his speculative belief.
Yet their influence in every age has exalted the courage of the
Saracens and Turks. The first companions of Mahomet advanced to
battle with a fearless confidence: there is no danger where there
is no chance: they were ordained to perish in their beds; or they
were safe and invulnerable amidst the darts of the enemy.
Perhaps the Koreish would have been content with the flight of
Mahomet, had they not been provoked and alarmed by the vengeance
of an enemy, who could intercept their Syrian trade as it passed
and repassed through the territory of Medina. Abu Sophian
himself, with only thirty or forty followers, conducted a wealthy
caravan of a thousand camels; the fortune or dexterity of his
march escaped the vigilance of Mahomet; but the chief of the
Koreish was informed that the holy robbers were placed in ambush
to await his return. He despatched a messenger to his brethren of
Mecca, and they were roused, by the fear of losing their
merchandise and their provisions, unless they hastened to his
relief with the military force of the city. The sacred band of
Mahomet was formed of three hundred and thirteen Moslems, of whom
seventy-seven were fugitives, and the rest auxiliaries; they
mounted by turns a train of seventy camels, (the camels of
Yathreb were formidable in war;) but such was the poverty of his
first disciples, that only two could appear on horseback in the
field. In the fertile and famous vale of Beder, three stations
from Medina, he was informed by his scouts of the caravan that
approached on one side; of the Koreish, one hundred horse, eight
hundred and fifty foot, who advanced on the other. After a short
debate, he sacrificed the prospect of wealth to the pursuit of
glory and revenge, and a slight intrenchment was formed, to cover
his troops, and a stream of fresh water, that glided through the
valley. "O God," he exclaimed, as the numbers of the Koreish
descended from the hills, "O God, if these are destroyed, by whom
wilt thou be worshipped on the earth? -- Courage, my children;
close your ranks; discharge your arrows, and the day is your
own." At these words he placed himself, with Abubeker, on a
throne or pulpit, and instantly demanded the succor of Gabriel
and three thousand angels. His eye was fixed on the field of
battle: the Mussulmans fainted and were pressed: in that decisive
moment the prophet started from his throne, mounted his horse,
and cast a handful of sand into the air: "Let their faces be
covered with confusion." Both armies heard the thunder of his
voice: their fancy beheld the angelic warriors: the Koreish
trembled and fled: seventy of the bravest were slain; and seventy
captives adorned the first victory of the faithful. The dead
bodies of the Koreish were despoiled and insulted: two of the
most obnoxious prisoners were punished with death; and the ransom
of the others, four thousand drams of silver, compensated in some
degree the escape of the caravan. But it was in vain that the
camels of Abu Sophian explored a new road through the desert and
along the Euphrates: they were overtaken by the diligence of the
Mussulmans; and wealthy must have been the prize, if twenty
thousand drams could be set apart for the fifth of the apostle.
The resentment of the public and private loss stimulated Abu
Sophian to collect a body of three thousand men, seven hundred of
whom were armed with cuirasses, and two hundred were mounted on
horseback; three thousand camels attended his march; and his wife
Henda, with fifteen matrons of Mecca, incessantly sounded their
timbrels to animate the troops, and to magnify the greatness of
Hobal, the most popular deity of the Caaba. The standard of ven
and Mahomet was upheld by nine hundred and fifty believers: the
disproportion of numbers was not more alarming than in the field
of Beder; and their presumption of victory prevailed against the
divine and human sense of the apostle. The second battle was
fought on Mount Ohud, six miles to the north of Medina; the
Koreish advanced in the form of a crescent; and the right wing of
cavalry was led by Caled, the fiercest and most successful of the
Arabian warriors. The troops of Mahomet were skilfully posted on
the declivity of the hill; and their rear was guarded by a
detachment of fifty archers. The weight of their charge impelled
and broke the centre of the idolaters: but in the pursuit they
lost the advantage of their ground: the archers deserted their
station: the Mussulmans were tempted by the spoil, disobeyed
their general, and disordered their ranks. The intrepid Caled,
wheeling his cavalry on their flank and rear, exclaimed, with a
loud voice, that Mahomet was slain. He was indeed wounded in the
face with a javelin: two of his teeth were shattered with a
stone; yet, in the midst of tumult and dismay, he reproached the
infidels with the murder of a prophet; and blessed the friendly
hand that stanched his blood, and conveyed him to a place of
safety Seventy martyrs died for the sins of the people; they
fell, said the apostle, in pairs, each brother embracing his
lifeless companion; their bodies were mangled by the inhuman
females of Mecca; and the wife of Abu Sophian tasted the entrails
of Hamza, the uncle of Mahomet. They might applaud their
superstition, and satiate their fury; but the Mussulmans soon
rallied in the field, and the Koreish wanted strength or courage
to undertake the siege of Medina. It was attacked the ensuing
year by an army of ten thousand enemies; and this third
expedition is variously named from the
nations, which marched under the banner
of Abu Sophian, from the ditch which
was drawn before the city, and a camp of three thousand
Mussulmans. The prudence of Mahomet declined a general
engagement: the valor of Ali was signalized in single combat; and
the war was protracted twenty days, till the final separation of
the confederates. A tempest of wind, rain, and hail, overturned
their tents: their private quarrels were fomented by an insidious
adversary; and the Koreish, deserted by their allies, no longer
hoped to subvert the throne, or to check the conquests, of their
invincible exile.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part VI.
The choice of Jerusalem for the first kebla of prayer
discovers the early propensity of Mahomet in favor of the Jews;
and happy would it have been for their temporal interest, had
they recognized, in the Arabian prophet, the hope of Israel and
the promised Messiah. Their obstinacy converted his friendship
into implacable hatred, with which he pursued that unfortunate
people to the last moment of his life; and in the double
character of an apostle and a conqueror, his persecution was
extended to both worlds. The Kainoka dwelt at Medina under the
protection of the city; he seized the occasion of an accidental
tumult, and summoned them to embrace his religion, or contend
with him in battle. "Alas!" replied the trembling Jews, "we are
ignorant of the use of arms, but we persevere in the faith and
worship of our fathers; why wilt thou reduce us to the necessity
of a just defence?" The unequal conflict was terminated in
fifteen days; and it was with extreme reluctance that Mahomet
yielded to the importunity of his allies, and consented to spare
the lives of the captives. But their riches were confiscated,
their arms became more effectual in the hands of the Mussulmans;
and a wretched colony of seven hundred exiles was driven, with
their wives and children, to implore a refuge on the confines of
Syria. The Nadhirites were more guilty, since they conspired, in
a friendly interview, to assassinate the prophet. He besieged
their castle, three miles from Medina; but their resolute defence
obtained an honorable capitulation; and the garrison, sounding
their trumpets and beating their drums, was permitted to depart
with the honors of war. The Jews had excited and joined the war
of the Koreish: no sooner had the
nations retired from the
ditch, than Mahomet, without laying
aside his armor, marched on the same day to extirpate the hostile
race of the children of Koraidha. After a resistance of
twenty-five days, they surrendered at discretion. They trusted to
the intercession of their old allies of Medina; they could not be
ignorant that fanaticism obliterates the feelings of humanity. A
venerable elder, to whose judgment they appealed, pronounced the
sentence of their death; seven hundred Jews were dragged in
chains to the market-place of the city; they descended alive into
the grave prepared for their execution and burial; and the
apostle beheld with an inflexible eye the slaughter of his
helpless enemies. Their sheep and camels were inherited by the
Mussulmans: three hundred cuirasses, five hundred piles, a
thousand lances, composed the most useful portion of the spoil.
Six days' journey to the north-east of Medina, the ancient and
wealthy town of Chaibar was the seat of the Jewish power in
Arabia: the territory, a fertile spot in the desert, was covered
with plantations and cattle, and protected by eight castles, some
of which were esteemed of impregnable strength. The forces of
Mahomet consisted of two hundred horse and fourteen hundred foot:
in the succession of eight regular and painful sieges they were
exposed to danger, and fatigue, and hunger; and the most
undaunted chiefs despaired of the event. The apostle revived
their faith and courage by the example of Ali, on whom he
bestowed the surname of the Lion of God: perhaps we may believe
that a Hebrew champion of gigantic stature was cloven to the
chest by his irresistible cimeter; but we cannot praise the
modesty of romance, which represents him as tearing from its
hinges the gate of a fortress and wielding the ponderous buckler
in his left hand. After the reduction of the castles, the town of
Chaibar submitted to the yoke. The chief of the tribe was
tortured, in the presence of Mahomet, to force a confession of
his hidden treasure: the industry of the shepherds and husbandmen
was rewarded with a precarious toleration: they were permitted,
so long as it should please the conqueror, to improve their
patrimony, in equal shares, for his
emolument and their own. Under the reign of Omar, the Jews of
Chaibar were transported to Syria; and the caliph alleged the
injunction of his dying master; that one and the true religion
should be professed in his native land of Arabia.
Five times each day the eyes of Mahomet were turned towards
Mecca, and he was urged by the most sacred and powerful motives
to revisit, as a conqueror, the city and the temple from whence
he had been driven as an exile. The Caaba was present to his
waking and sleeping fancy: an idle dream was translated into
vision and prophecy; he unfurled the holy banner; and a rash
promise of success too hastily dropped from the lips of the
apostle. His march from Medina to Mecca displayed the peaceful
and solemn pomp of a pilgrimage: seventy camels, chosen and
bedecked for sacrifice, preceded the van; the sacred territory
was respected; and the captives were dismissed without ransom to
proclaim his clemency and devotion. But no sooner did Mahomet
descend into the plain, within a day's journey of the city, than
he exclaimed, "They have clothed themselves with the skins of
tigers: " the numbers and resolution of the Koreish opposed his
progress; and the roving Arabs of the desert might desert or
betray a leader whom they had followed for the hopes of spoil.
The intrepid fanatic sunk into a cool and cautious politician: he
waived in the treaty his title of apostle of God; concluded with
the Koreish and their allies a truce of ten years; engaged to
restore the fugitives of Mecca who should embrace his religion;
and stipulated only, for the ensuing year, the humble privilege
of entering the city as a friend, and of remaining three days to
accomplish the rites of the pilgrimage. A cloud of shame and
sorrow hung on the retreat of the Mussulmans, and their
disappointment might justly accuse the failure of a prophet who
had so often appealed to the evidence of success. The faith and
hope of the pilgrims were rekindled by the prospect of Mecca:
their swords were sheathed; * seven times in the footsteps of the
apostle they encompassed the Caaba: the Koreish had retired to
the hills, and Mahomet, after the customary sacrifice, evacuated
the city on the fourth day. The people was edified by his
devotion; the hostile chiefs were awed, or divided, or seduced;
and both Kaled and Amrou, the future conquerors of Syria and
Egypt, most seasonably deserted the sinking cause of idolatry.
The power of Mahomet was increased by the submission of the
Arabian tribes; ten thousand soldiers were assembled for the
conquest of Mecca; and the idolaters, the weaker party, were
easily convicted of violating the truce. Enthusiasm and
discipline impelled the march, and preserved the secret till the
blaze of ten thousand fires proclaimed to the astonished Koreish
the design, the approach, and the irresistible force of the
enemy. The haughty Abu Sophian presented the keys of the city,
admired the variety of arms and ensigns that passed before him in
review; observed that the son of Abdallah had acquired a mighty
kingdom, and confessed, under the cimeter of Omar, that he was
the apostle of the true God. The return of Marius and Scylla was
stained with the blood of the Romans: the revenge of Mahomet was
stimulated by religious zeal, and his injured followers were
eager to execute or to prevent the order of a massacre. Instead
of indulging their passions and his own, the victorious exile
forgave the guilt, and united the factions, of Mecca. His troops,
in three divisions, marched into the city: eight-and-twenty of
the inhabitants were slain by the sword of Caled; eleven men and
six women were proscribed by the sentence of Mahomet; but he
blamed the cruelty of his lieutenant; and several of the most
obnoxious victims were indebted for their lives to his clemency
or contempt. The chiefs of the Koreish were prostrate at his
feet. "What mercy can you expect from the man whom you have
wronged?" "We confide in the generosity of our kinsman." "And you
shall not confide in vain: begone! you are safe, you are free"
The people of Mecca deserved their pardon by the profession of
Islam; and after an exile of seven years, the fugitive missionary
was enthroned as the prince and prophet of his native country.
But the three hundred and sixty idols of the Caaba were
ignominiously broken: the house of God was purified and adorned:
as an example to future times, the apostle again fulfilled the
duties of a pilgrim; and a perpetual law was enacted that no
unbeliever should dare to set his foot on the territory of the
holy city.
The conquest of Mecca determined the faith and obedience of
the Arabian tribes; who, according to the vicissitudes of
fortune, had obeyed, or disregarded, the eloquence or the arms of
the prophet. Indifference for rites and opinions still marks the
character of the Bedoweens; and they might accept, as loosely as
they hold, the doctrine of the Koran. Yet an obstinate remnant
still adhered to the religion and liberty of their ancestors, and
the war of Honain derived a proper appellation from the
idols, whom Mahomet had vowed to
destroy, and whom the confederates of Tayef had sworn to defend.
Four thousand Pagans advanced with secrecy and speed to surprise
the conqueror: they pitied and despised the supine negligence of
the Koreish, but they depended on the wishes, and perhaps the
aid, of a people who had so lately renounced their gods, and
bowed beneath the yoke of their enemy. The banners of Medina and
Mecca were displayed by the prophet; a crowd of Bedoweens
increased the strength or numbers of the army, and twelve
thousand Mussulmans entertained a rash and sinful presumption of
their invincible strength. They descended without precaution into
the valley of Honain: the heights had been occupied by the
archers and slingers of the confederates; their numbers were
oppressed, their discipline was confounded, their courage was
appalled, and the Koreish smiled at their impending destruction.
The prophet, on his white mule, was encompassed by the enemies:
he attempted to rush against their spears in search of a glorious
death: ten of his faithful companions interposed their weapons
and their breasts; three of these fell dead at his feet: "O my
brethren," he repeatedly cried, with sorrow and indignation, "I
am the son of Abdallah, I am the apostle of truth! O man, stand
fast in the faith! O God, send down thy succor!" His uncle Abbas,
who, like the heroes of Homer, excelled in the loudness of his
voice, made the valley resound with the recital of the gifts and
promises of God: the flying Moslems returned from all sides to
the holy standard; and Mahomet observed with pleasure that the
furnace was again rekindled: his conduct and example restored the
battle, and he animated his victorious troops to inflict a
merciless revenge on the authors of their shame. From the field
of Honain, he marched without delay to the siege of Tayef, sixty
miles to the south-east of Mecca, a fortress of strength, whose
fertile lands produce the fruits of Syria in the midst of the
Arabian desert. A friendly tribe, instructed (I know not how) in
the art of sieges, supplied him with a train of battering-rams
and military engines, with a body of five hundred artificers. But
it was in vain that he offered freedom to the slaves of Tayef;
that he violated his own laws by the extirpation of the
fruit-trees; that the ground was opened by the miners; that the
breach was assaulted by the troops. After a siege of twenty-days,
the prophet sounded a retreat; but he retreated with a song of
devout triumph, and affected to pray for the repentance and
safety of the unbelieving city. The spoils of this fortunate
expedition amounted to six thousand captives, twenty-four
thousand camels, forty thousand sheep, and four thousand ounces
of silver: a tribe who had fought at Honain redeemed their
prisoners by the sacrifice of their idols; but Mahomet
compensated the loss, by resigning to the soldiers his fifth of
the plunder, and wished, for their sake, that he possessed as
many head of cattle as there were trees in the province of
Tehama. Instead of chastising the disaffection of the Koreish, he
endeavored to cut out their tongues, (his own expression,) and to
secure their attachment by a superior measure of liberality: Abu
Sophian alone was presented with three hundred camels and twenty
ounces of silver; and Mecca was sincerely converted to the
profitable religion of the Koran.
The fugitives and
auxiliaries complained, that they who
had borne the burden were neglected in the season of victory
"Alas!" replied their artful leader, "suffer me to conciliate
these recent enemies, these doubtful proselytes, by the gift of
some perishable goods. To your guard I intrust my life and
fortunes. You are the companions of my exile, of my kingdom, of
my paradise." He was followed by the deputies of Tayef, who
dreaded the repetition of a siege. "Grant us, O apostle of God! a
truce of three years, with the toleration of our ancient
worship." "Not a month, not an hour." "Excuse us at least from
the obligation of prayer." "Without prayer religion is of no
avail." They submitted in silence: their temples were demolished,
and the same sentence of destruction was executed on all the
idols of Arabia. His lieutenants, on the shores of the Red Sea,
the Ocean, and the Gulf of Persia, were saluted by the
acclamations of a faithful people; and the ambassadors, who knelt
before the throne of Medina, were as numerous (says the Arabian
proverb) as the dates that fall from the maturity of a palm-tree.
The nation submitted to the God and the sceptre of Mahomet: the
opprobrious name of tribute was abolished: the spontaneous or
reluctant oblations of arms and tithes were applied to the
service of religion; and one hundred and fourteen thousand
Moslems accompanied the last pilgrimage of the apostle.
When Heraclius returned in triumph from the Persian war, he
entertained, at Emesa, one of the ambassadors of Mahomet, who
invited the princes and nations of the earth to the profession of
Islam. On this foundation the zeal of the Arabians has supposed
the secret conversion of the Christian emperor: the vanity of the
Greeks has feigned a personal visit of the prince of Medina, who
accepted from the royal bounty a rich domain, and a secure
retreat, in the province of Syria. But the friendship of
Heraclius and Mahomet was of short continuance: the new religion
had inflamed rather than assuaged the rapacious spirit of the
Saracens, and the murder of an envoy afforded a decent pretence
for invading, with three thousand soldiers, the territory of
Palestine, that extends to the eastward of the Jordan. The holy
banner was intrusted to Zeid; and such was the discipline or
enthusiasm of the rising sect, that the noblest chiefs served
without reluctance under the slave of the prophet. On the event
of his decease, Jaafar and Abdallah were successively substituted
to the command; and if the three should perish in the war, the
troops were authorized to elect their general. The three leaders
were slain in the battle of Muta, the first military action,
which tried the valor of the Moslems against a foreign enemy.
Zeid fell, like a soldier, in the foremost ranks: the death of
Jaafar was heroic and memorable: he lost his right hand: he
shifted the standard to his left: the left was severed from his
body: he embraced the standard with his bleeding stumps, till he
was transfixed to the ground with fifty honorable wounds. *
"Advance," cried Abdallah, who stepped into the vacant place,
"advance with confidence: either victory or paradise is our own."
The lance of a Roman decided the alternative; but the falling
standard was rescued by Caled, the proselyte of Mecca: nine
swords were broken in his hand; and his valor withstood and
repulsed the superior numbers of the Christians. In the nocturnal
council of the camp he was chosen to command: his skilful
evolutions of the ensuing day secured either the victory or the
retreat of the Saracens; and Caled is renowned among his brethren
and his enemies by the glorious appellation of the
Sword of God. In the pulpit, Mahomet
described, with prophetic rapture, the crowns of the blessed
martyrs; but in private he betrayed the feelings of human nature:
he was surprised as he wept over the daughter of Zeid: "What do I
see?" said the astonished votary. "You see," replied the apostle,
"a friend who is deploring the loss of his most faithful friend."
After the conquest of Mecca, the sovereign of Arabia affected to
prevent the hostile preparations of Heraclius; and solemnly
proclaimed war against the Romans, without attempting to disguise
the hardships and dangers of the enterprise. The Moslems were
discouraged: they alleged the want of money, or horses, or
provisions; the season of harvest, and the intolerable heat of
the summer: "Hell is much hotter," said the indignant prophet. He
disdained to compel their service: but on his return he
admonished the most guilty, by an excommunication of fifty days.
Their desertion enhanced the merit of Abubeker, Othman, and the
faithful companions who devoted their lives and fortunes; and
Mahomet displayed his banner at the head of ten thousand horse
and twenty thousand foot. Painful indeed was the distress of the
march: lassitude and thirst were aggravated by the scorching and
pestilential winds of the desert: ten men rode by turns on one
camel; and they were reduced to the shameful necessity of
drinking the water from the belly of that useful animal. In the
mid-way, ten days' journey from Medina and Damascus, they reposed
near the grove and fountain of Tabuc. Beyond that place Mahomet
declined the prosecution of the war: he declared himself
satisfied with the peaceful intentions, he was more probably
daunted by the martial array, of the emperor of the East. But the
active and intrepid Caled spread around the terror of his name;
and the prophet received the submission of the tribes and cities,
from the Euphrates to Ailah, at the head of the Red Sea. To his
Christian subjects, Mahomet readily granted the security of their
persons, the freedom of their trade, the property of their goods,
and the toleration of their worship. The weakness of their
Arabian brethren had restrained them from opposing his ambition;
the disciples of Jesus were endeared to the enemy of the Jews;
and it was the interest of a conqueror to propose a fair
capitulation to the most powerful religion of the earth.
Till the age of sixty-three years, the strength of Mahomet was
equal to the temporal and spiritual fatigues of his mission. His
epileptic fits, an absurd calumny of the Greeks, would be an
object of pity rather than abhorrence; but he seriously believed
that he was poisoned at Chaibar by the revenge of a Jewish
female. During four years, the health of the prophet declined;
his infirmities increased; but his mortal disease was a fever of
fourteen days, which deprived him by intervals of the use of
reason. As soon as he was conscious of his danger, he edified his
brethren by the humility of his virtue or penitence. "If there be
any man," said the apostle from the pulpit, "whom I have unjustly
scourged, I submit my own back to the lash of retaliation. Have I
aspersed the reputation of a Mussulman? let him proclaim
my thoughts in the face of the
congregation. Has any one been despoiled of his goods? the little
that I possess shall compensate the principal and the interest of
the debt." "Yes," replied a voice from the crowd, "I am entitled
to three drams of silver." Mahomet heard the complaint, satisfied
the demand, and thanked his creditor for accusing him in this
world rather than at the day of judgment. He beheld with
temperate firmness the approach of death; enfranchised his slaves
(seventeen men, as they are named, and eleven women;) minutely
directed the order of his funeral, and moderated the lamentations
of his weeping friends, on whom he bestowed the benediction of
peace. Till the third day before his death, he regularly
performed the function of public prayer: the choice of Abubeker
to supply his place, appeared to mark that ancient and faithful
friend as his successor in the sacerdotal and regal office; but
he prudently declined the risk and envy of a more explicit
nomination. At a moment when his faculties were visibly impaired,
he called for pen and ink to write, or, more properly, to
dictate, a divine book, the sum and accomplishment of all his
revelations: a dispute arose in the chamber, whether he should be
allowed to supersede the authority of the Koran; and the prophet
was forced to reprove the indecent vehemence of his disciples. If
the slightest credit may be afforded to the traditions of his
wives and companions, he maintained, in the bosom of his family,
and to the last moments of his life, the dignity * of an apostle,
and the faith of an enthusiast; described the visits of Gabriel,
who bade an everlasting farewell to the earth, and expressed his
lively confidence, not only of the mercy, but of the favor, of
the Supreme Being. In a familiar discourse he had mentioned his
special prerogative, that the angel of death was not allowed to
take his soul till he had respectfully asked the permission of
the prophet. The request was granted; and Mahomet immediately
fell into the agony of his dissolution: his head was reclined on
the lap of Ayesha, the best beloved of all his wives; he fainted
with the violence of pain; recovering his spirits, he raised his
eyes towards the roof of the house, and, with a steady look,
though a faltering voice, uttered the last broken, though
articulate, words: "O God! . . . . . pardon my sins . . . . . . .
Yes, . . . . . . I come, . . . . . . among my fellow-citizens on
high;" and thus peaceably expired on a carpet spread upon the
floor. An expedition for the conquest of Syria was stopped by
this mournful event; the army halted at the gates of Medina; the
chiefs were assembled round their dying master. The city, more
especially the house, of the prophet, was a scene of clamorous
sorrow of silent despair: fanaticism alone could suggest a ray of
hope and consolation. "How can he be dead, our witness, our
intercessor, our mediator, with God? By God he is not dead: like
Moses and Jesus, he is wrapped in a holy trance, and speedily
will he return to his faithful people." The evidence of sense was
disregarded; and Omar, unsheathing his cimeter, threatened to
strike off the heads of the infidels, who should dare to affirm
that the prophet was no more. The tumult was appeased by the
weight and moderation of Abubeker. "Is it Mahomet," said he to
Omar and the multitude, "or the God of Mahomet, whom you worship?
The God of Mahomet liveth forever; but the apostle was a mortal
like ourselves, and according to his own prediction, he has
experienced the common fate of mortality." He was piously
interred by the hands of his nearest kinsman, on the same spot on
which he expired: Medina has been sanctified by the death and
burial of Mahomet; and the innumerable pilgrims of Mecca often
turn aside from the way, to bow, in voluntary devotion, before
the simple tomb of the prophet.
At the conclusion of the life of Mahomet, it may perhaps be
expected, that I should balance his faults and virtues, that I
should decide whether the title of enthusiast or impostor more
properly belongs to that extraordinary man. Had I been intimately
conversant with the son of Abdallah, the task would still be
difficult, and the success uncertain: at the distance of twelve
centuries, I darkly contemplate his shade through a cloud of
religious incense; and could I truly delineate the portrait of an
hour, the fleeting resemblance would not equally apply to the
solitary of Mount Hera, to the preacher of Mecca, and to the
conqueror of Arabia. The author of a mighty revolution appears to
have been endowed with a pious and contemplative disposition: so
soon as marriage had raised him above the pressure of want, he
avoided the paths of ambition and avarice; and till the age of
forty he lived with innocence, and would have died without a
name. The unity of God is an idea most congenial to nature and
reason; and a slight conversation with the Jews and Christians
would teach him to despise and detest the idolatry of Mecca. It
was the duty of a man and a citizen to impart the doctrine of
salvation, to rescue his country from the dominion of sin and
error. The energy of a mind incessantly bent on the same object,
would convert a general obligation into a particular call; the
warm suggestions of the understanding or the fancy would be felt
as the inspirations of Heaven; the labor of thought would expire
in rapture and vision; and the inward sensation, the invisible
monitor, would be described with the form and attributes of an
angel of God. From enthusiasm to imposture, the step is perilous
and slippery: the dæmon of Socrates affords a memorable
instance, how a wise man may deceive himself, how a good man may
deceive others, how the conscience may slumber in a mixed and
middle state between self-illusion and voluntary fraud. Charity
may believe that the original motives of Mahomet were those of
pure and genuine benevolence; but a human missionary is incapable
of cherishing the obstinate unbelievers who reject his claims
despise his arguments, and persecute his life; he might forgive
his personal adversaries, he may lawfully hate the enemies of
God; the stern passions of pride and revenge were kindled in the
bosom of Mahomet, and he sighed, like the prophet of Nineveh, for
the destruction of the rebels whom he had condemned. The
injustice of Mecca and the choice of Medina, transformed the
citizen into a prince, the humble preacher into the leader of
armies; but his sword was consecrated by the example of the
saints; and the same God who afflicts a sinful world with
pestilence and earthquakes, might inspire for their conversion or
chastisement the valor of his servants. In the exercise of
political government, he was compelled to abate of the stern
rigor of fanaticism, to comply in some measure with the
prejudices and passions of his followers, and to employ even the
vices of mankind as the instruments of their salvation. The use
of fraud and perfidy, of cruelty and injustice, were often
subservient to the propagation of the faith; and Mahomet
commanded or approved the assassination of the Jews and idolaters
who had escaped from the field of battle. By the repetition of
such acts, the character of Mahomet must have been gradually
stained; and the influence of such pernicious habits would be
poorly compensated by the practice of the personal and social
virtues which are necessary to maintain the reputation of a
prophet among his sectaries and friends. Of his last years,
ambition was the ruling passion; and a politician will suspect,
that he secretly smiled (the victorious impostor!) at the
enthusiasm of his youth, and the credulity of his proselytes. A
philosopher will observe, that their
credulity and his success would tend
more strongly to fortify the assurance of his divine mission,
that his interest and religion were inseparably connected, and
that his conscience would be soothed by the persuasion, that he
alone was absolved by the Deity from the obligation of positive
and moral laws. If he retained any vestige of his native
innocence, the sins of Mahomet may be allowed as an evidence of
his sincerity. In the support of truth, the arts of fraud and
fiction may be deemed less criminal; and he would have started at
the foulness of the means, had he not been satisfied of the
importance and justice of the end. Even in a conqueror or a
priest, I can surprise a word or action of unaffected humanity;
and the decree of Mahomet, that, in the sale of captives, the
mothers should never be separated from their children, may
suspend, or moderate, the censure of the historian.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part VII.
The good sense of Mahomet despised the pomp of royalty: the
apostle of God submitted to the menial offices of the family: he
kindled the fire, swept the floor, milked the ewes, and mended
with his own hands his shoes and his woollen garment. Disdaining
the penance and merit of a hermit, he observed, without effort or
vanity, the abstemious diet of an Arab and a soldier. On solemn
occasions he feasted his companions with rustic and hospitable
plenty; but in his domestic life, many weeks would elapse without
a tire being kindled on the hearth of the prophet. The
interdiction of wine was confirmed by his example; his hunger was
appeased with a sparing allowance of barley-bread: he delighted
in the taste of milk and honey; but his ordinary food consisted
of dates and water. Perfumes and women were the two sensual
enjoyments which his nature required, and his religion did not
forbid; and Mahomet affirmed, that the fervor of his devotion was
increased by these innocent pleasures. The heat of the climate
inflames the blood of the Arabs; and their libidinous complexion
has been noticed by the writers of antiquity. Their incontinence
was regulated by the civil and religious laws of the Koran: their
incestuous alliances were blamed; the boundless license of
polygamy was reduced to four legitimate wives or concubines;
their rights both of bed and of dowry were equitably determined;
the freedom of divorce was discouraged, adultery was condemned as
a capital offence; and fornication, in either sex, was punished
with a hundred stripes. Such were the calm and rational precepts
of the legislator: but in his private conduct, Mahomet indulged
the appetites of a man, and abused the claims of a prophet. A
special revelation dispensed him from the laws which he had
imposed on his nation: the female sex, without reserve, was
abandoned to his desires; and this singular prerogative excited
the envy, rather than the scandal, the veneration, rather than
the envy, of the devout Mussulmans. If we remember the seven
hundred wives and three hundred concubines of the wise Solomon,
we shall applaud the modesty of the Arabian, who espoused no more
than seventeen or fifteen wives; eleven are enumerated who
occupied at Medina their separate apartments round the house of
the apostle, and enjoyed in their turns the favor of his conjugal
society. What is singular enough, they were all widows, excepting
only Ayesha, the daughter of Abubeker. She was doubtless a
virgin, since Mahomet consummated his nuptials (such is the
premature ripeness of the climate) when she was only nine years
of age. The youth, the beauty, the spirit of Ayesha, gave her a
superior ascendant: she was beloved and trusted by the prophet;
and, after his death, the daughter of Abubeker was long revered
as the mother of the faithful. Her behavior had been ambiguous
and indiscreet: in a nocturnal march she was accidentally left
behind; and in the morning Ayesha returned to the camp with a
man. The temper of Mahomet was inclined to jealousy; but a divine
revelation assured him of her innocence: he chastised her
accusers, and published a law of domestic peace, that no woman
should be condemned unless four male witnesses had seen her in
the act of adultery. In his adventures with Zeineb, the wife of
Zeid, and with Mary, an Egyptian captive, the amorous prophet
forgot the interest of his reputation. At the house of Zeid, his
freedman and adopted son, he beheld, in a loose undress, the
beauty of Zeineb, and burst forth into an ejaculation of devotion
and desire. The servile, or grateful, freedman understood the
hint, and yielded without hesitation to the love of his
benefactor. But as the filial relation had excited some doubt and
scandal, the angel Gabriel descended from heaven to ratify the
deed, to annul the adoption, and gently to reprove the apostle
for distrusting the indulgence of his God. One of his wives,
Hafna, the daughter of Omar, surprised him on her own bed, in the
embraces of his Egyptian captive: she promised secrecy and
forgiveness, he swore that he would renounce the possession of
Mary. Both parties forgot their engagements; and Gabriel again
descended with a chapter of the Koran, to absolve him from his
oath, and to exhort him freely to enjoy his captives and
concubines, without listening to the clamors of his wives. In a
solitary retreat of thirty days, he labored, alone with Mary, to
fulfil the commands of the angel. When his love and revenge were
satiated, he summoned to his presence his eleven wives,
reproached their disobedience and indiscretion, and threatened
them with a sentence of divorce, both in this world and in the
next; a dreadful sentence, since those who had ascended the bed
of the prophet were forever excluded from the hope of a second
marriage. Perhaps the incontinence of Mahomet may be palliated by
the tradition of his natural or preternatural gifts; he united
the manly virtue of thirty of the children of Adam: and the
apostle might rival the thirteenth labor of the Grecian Hercules.
A more serious and decent excuse may be drawn from his fidelity
to Cadijah. During the twenty-four years of their marriage, her
youthful husband abstained from the right of polygamy, and the
pride or tenderness of the venerable matron was never insulted by
the society of a rival. After her death, he placed her in the
rank of the four perfect women, with the sister of Moses, the
mother of Jesus, and Fatima, the best beloved of his daughters.
"Was she not old?" said Ayesha, with the insolence of a blooming
beauty; "has not God given you a better in her place?" "No, by
God," said Mahomet, with an effusion of honest gratitude, "there
never can be a better! She believed in me when men despised me;
she relieved my wants, when I was poor and persecuted by the
world."
In the largest indulgence of polygamy, the founder of a
religion and empire might aspire to multiply the chances of a
numerous posterity and a lineal succession. The hopes of Mahomet
were fatally disappointed. The virgin Ayesha, and his ten widows
of mature age and approved fertility, were barren in his potent
embraces. The four sons of Cadijah died in their infancy. Mary,
his Egyptian concubine, was endeared to him by the birth of
Ibrahim. At the end of fifteen months the prophet wept over his
grave; but he sustained with firmness the raillery of his
enemies, and checked the adulation or credulity of the Moslems,
by the assurance that an eclipse of the sun was not occasioned by
the death of the infant. Cadijah had likewise given him four
daughters, who were married to the most faithful of his
disciples: the three eldest died before their father; but Fatima,
who possessed his confidence and love, became the wife of her
cousin Ali, and the mother of an illustrious progeny. The merit
and misfortunes of Ali and his descendants will lead me to
anticipate, in this place, the series of the Saracen caliphs, a
title which describes the commanders of the faithful as the
vicars and successors of the apostle of God.
The birth, the alliance, the character of Ali, which exalted
him above the rest of his countrymen, might justify his claim to
the vacant throne of Arabia. The son of Abu Taleb was, in his own
right, the chief of the family of Hashem, and the hereditary
prince or guardian of the city and temple of Mecca. The light of
prophecy was extinct; but the husband of Fatima might expect the
inheritance and blessing of her father: the Arabs had sometimes
been patient of a female reign; and the two grandsons of the
prophet had often been fondled in his lap, and shown in his
pulpit as the hope of his age, and the chief of the youth of
paradise. The first of the true believers might aspire to march
before them in this world and in the next; and if some were of a
graver and more rigid cast, the zeal and virtue of Ali were never
outstripped by any recent proselyte. He united the qualifications
of a poet, a soldier, and a saint: his wisdom still breathes in a
collection of moral and religious sayings; and every antagonist,
in the combats of the tongue or of the sword, was subdued by his
eloquence and valor. From the first hour of his mission to the
last rites of his funeral, the apostle was never forsaken by a
generous friend, whom he delighted to name his brother, his
vicegerent, and the faithful Aaron of a second Moses. The son of
Abu Taleb was afterwards reproached for neglecting to secure his
interest by a solemn declaration of his right, which would have
silenced all competition, and sealed his succession by the
decrees of Heaven. But the unsuspecting hero confided in himself:
the jealousy of empire, and perhaps the fear of opposition, might
suspend the resolutions of Mahomet; and the bed of sickness was
besieged by the artful Ayesha, the daughter of Abubeker, and the
enemy of Ali. *
The silence and death of the prophet restored the liberty of
the people; and his companions convened an assembly to deliberate
on the choice of his successor. The hereditary claim and lofty
spirit of Ali were offensive to an aristocracy of elders,
desirous of bestowing and resuming the sceptre by a free and
frequent election: the Koreish could never be reconciled to the
proud preëminence of the line of Hashem; the ancient discord
of the tribes was rekindled, the
fugitives of Mecca and the
auxiliaries of Medina asserted their
respective merits; and the rash proposal of choosing two
independent caliphs would have crushed in their infancy the
religion and empire of the Saracens. The tumult was appeased by
the disinterested resolution of Omar, who, suddenly renouncing
his own pretensions, stretched forth his hand, and declared
himself the first subject of the mild and venerable Abubeker. *
The urgency of the moment, and the acquiescence of the people,
might excuse this illegal and precipitate measure; but Omar
himself confessed from the pulpit, that if any Mussulman should
hereafter presume to anticipate the suffrage of his brethren,
both the elector and the elected would be worthy of death. After
the simple inauguration of Abubeker, he was obeyed in Medina,
Mecca, and the provinces of Arabia: the Hashemites alone declined
the oath of fidelity; and their chief, in his own house,
maintained, above six months, a sullen and independent reserve;
without listening to the threats of Omar, who attempted to
consume with fire the habitation of the daughter of the apostle.
The death of Fatima, and the decline of his party, subdued the
indignant spirit of Ali: he condescended to salute the commander
of the faithful, accepted his excuse of the necessity of
preventing their common enemies, and wisely rejected his
courteous offer of abdicating the government of the Arabians.
After a reign of two years, the aged caliph was summoned by the
angel of death. In his testament, with the tacit approbation of
his companions, he bequeathed the sceptre to the firm and
intrepid virtue of Omar. "I have no occasion," said the modest
candidate, "for the place." "But the place has occasion for you,"
replied Abubeker; who expired with a fervent prayer, that the God
of Mahomet would ratify his choice, and direct the Mussulmans in
the way of concord and obedience. The prayer was not ineffectual,
since Ali himself, in a life of privacy and prayer, professed to
revere the superior worth and dignity of his rival; who comforted
him for the loss of empire, by the most flattering marks of
confidence and esteem. In the twelfth year of his reign, Omar
received a mortal wound from the hand of an assassin: he rejected
with equal impartiality the names of his son and of Ali, refused
to load his conscience with the sins of his successor, and
devolved on six of the most respectable companions the arduous
task of electing a commander of the faithful. On this occasion,
Ali was again blamed by his friends for submitting his right to
the judgment of men, for recognizing their jurisdiction by
accepting a place among the six electors. He might have obtained
their suffrage, had he deigned to promise a strict and servile
conformity, not only to the Koran and tradition, but likewise to
the determinations of two seniors. With
these limitations, Othman, the secretary of Mahomet, accepted the
government; nor was it till after the third caliph, twenty-four
years after the death of the prophet, that Ali was invested, by
the popular choice, with the regal and sacerdotal office. The
manners of the Arabians retained their primitive simplicity, and
the son of Abu Taleb despised the pomp and vanity of this world.
At the hour of prayer, he repaired to the mosch of Medina,
clothed in a thin cotton gown, a coarse turban on his head, his
slippers in one hand, and his bow in the other, instead of a
walking-staff. The companions of the prophet, and the chiefs of
the tribes, saluted their new sovereign, and gave him their right
hands as a sign of fealty and allegiance.
The mischiefs that flow from the contests of ambition are
usually confined to the times and countries in which they have
been agitated. But the religious discord of the friends and
enemies of Ali has been renewed in every age of the Hegira, and
is still maintained in the immortal hatred of the Persians and
Turks. The former, who are branded with the appellation of
Shiites or sectaries, have enriched the
Mahometan creed with a new article of faith; and if Mahomet be
the apostle, his companion Ali is the vicar, of God. In their
private converse, in their public worship, they bitterly execrate
the three usurpers who intercepted his indefeasible right to the
dignity of Imam and Caliph; and the name of Omar expresses in
their tongue the perfect accomplishment of wickedness and
impiety. The Sonnites, who are
supported by the general consent and orthodox tradition of the
Mussulmans, entertain a more impartial, or at least a more
decent, opinion. They respect the memory of Abubeker, Omar,
Othman, and Ali, the holy and legitimate successors of the
prophet. But they assign the last and most humble place to the
husband of Fatima, in the persuasion that the order of succession
was determined by the decrees of sanctity. An historian who
balances the four caliphs with a hand unshaken by superstition,
will calmly pronounce that their manners were alike pure and
exemplary; that their zeal was fervent, and probably sincere; and
that, in the midst of riches and power, their lives were devoted
to the practice of moral and religious duties. But the public
virtues of Abubeker and Omar, the prudence of the first, the
severity of the second, maintained the peace and prosperity of
their reigns. The feeble temper and declining age of Othman were
incapable of sustaining the weight of conquest and empire. He
chose, and he was deceived; he trusted, and he was betrayed: the
most deserving of the faithful became useless or hostile to his
government, and his lavish bounty was productive only of
ingratitude and discontent. The spirit of discord went forth in
the provinces: their deputies assembled at Medina; and the
Charegites, the desperate fanatics who disclaimed the yoke of
subordination and reason, were confounded among the free-born
Arabs, who demanded the redress of their wrongs and the
punishment of their oppressors. From Cufa, from Bassora, from
Egypt, from the tribes of the desert, they rose in arms, encamped
about a league from Medina, and despatched a haughty mandate to
their sovereign, requiring him to execute justice, or to descend
from the throne. His repentance began to disarm and disperse the
insurgents; but their fury was rekindled by the arts of his
enemies; and the forgery of a perfidious secretary was contrived
to blast his reputation and precipitate his fall. The caliph had
lost the only guard of his predecessors, the esteem and
confidence of the Moslems: during a siege of six weeks his water
and provisions were intercepted, and the feeble gates of the
palace were protected only by the scruples of the more timorous
rebels. Forsaken by those who had abused his simplicity, the
hopeless and venerable caliph expected the approach of death: the
brother of Ayesha marched at the head of the assassins; and
Othman, with the Koran in his lap, was pierced with a multitude
of wounds. * A tumultuous anarchy of five days was appeased by
the inauguration of Ali: his refusal would have provoked a
general massacre. In this painful situation he supported the
becoming pride of the chief of the Hashemites; declared that he
had rather serve than reign; rebuked the presumption of the
strangers; and required the formal, if not the voluntary, assent
of the chiefs of the nation. He has never been accused of
prompting the assassin of Omar; though Persia indiscreetly
celebrates the festival of that holy martyr. The quarrel between
Othman and his subjects was assuaged by the early mediation of
Ali; and Hassan, the eldest of his sons, was insulted and wounded
in the defence of the caliph. Yet it is doubtful whether the
father of Hassan was strenuous and sincere in his opposition to
the rebels; and it is certain that he enjoyed the benefit of
their crime. The temptation was indeed of such magnitude as might
stagger and corrupt the most obdurate virtue. The ambitious
candidate no longer aspired to the barren sceptre of Arabia; the
Saracens had been victorious in the East and West; and the
wealthy kingdoms of Persia, Syria, and Egypt were the patrimony
of the commander of the faithful.
Chapter L: Description Of Arabia And Its
Inhabitants. -- Part VIII.
A life of prayer and contemplation had not chilled the martial
activity of Ali; but in a mature age, after a long experience of
mankind, he still betrayed in his conduct the rashness and
indiscretion of youth. * In the first days of his reign, he
neglected to secure, either by gifts or fetters, the doubtful
allegiance of Telha and Zobeir, two of the most powerful of the
Arabian chiefs. They escaped from Medina to Mecca, and from
thence to Bassora; erected the standard of revolt; and usurped
the government of Irak, or Assyria, which they had vainly
solicited as the reward of their services. The mask of patriotism
is allowed to cover the most glaring inconsistencies; and the
enemies, perhaps the assassins, of Othman now demanded vengeance
for his blood. They were accompanied in their flight by Ayesha,
the widow of the prophet, who cherished, to the last hour of her
life, an implacable hatred against the husband and the posterity
of Fatima. The most reasonable Moslems were scandalized, that the
mother of the faithful should expose in a camp her person and
character; but the superstitious crowd was confident that her
presence would sanctify the justice, and assure the success, of
their cause. At the head of twenty thousand of his loyal Arabs,
and nine thousand valiant auxiliaries of Cufa, the caliph
encountered and defeated the superior numbers of the rebels under
the walls of Bassora. Their leaders, Telha and Zobeir, §
were slain in the first battle that stained with civil blood the
arms of the Moslems. || After passing through the ranks to
animate the troops, Ayesha had chosen her post amidst the dangers
of the field. In the heat of the action, seventy men, who held
the bridle of her camel, were successively killed or wounded; and
the cage or litter, in which she sat, was stuck with javelins and
darts like the quills of a porcupine. The venerable captive
sustained with firmness the reproaches of the conqueror, and was
speedily dismissed to her proper station at the tomb of Mahomet,
with the respect and tenderness that was still due to the widow
of the apostle. * After this victory, which was styled the Day of
the Camel, Ali marched against a more formidable adversary;
against Moawiyah, the son of Abu Sophian, who had assumed the
title of caliph, and whose claim was supported by the forces of
Syria and the interest of the house of Ommiyah. From the passage
of Thapsacus, the plain of Siffin extends along the western bank
of the Euphrates. On this spacious and level theatre, the two
competitors waged a desultory war of one hundred and ten days. In
the course of ninety actions or skirmishes, the loss of Ali was
estimated at twenty-five, that of Moawiyah at forty-five,
thousand soldiers; and the list of the slain was dignified with
the names of five-and-twenty veterans who had fought at Beder
under the standard of Mahomet. In this sanguinary contest the
lawful caliph displayed a superior character of valor and
humanity. His troops were strictly enjoined to await the first
onset of the enemy, to spare their flying brethren, and to
respect the bodies of the dead, and the chastity of the female
captives. He generously proposed to save the blood of the Moslems
by a single combat; but his trembling rival declined the
challenge as a sentence of inevitable death. The ranks of the
Syrians were broken by the charge of a hero who was mounted on a
piebald horse, and wielded with irresistible force his ponderous
and two-edged sword. As often as he smote a rebel, he shouted the
Allah Acbar, "God is victorious!" and in the tumult of a
nocturnal battle, he was heard to repeat four hundred times that
tremendous exclamation. The prince of Damascus already meditated
his flight; but the certain victory was snatched from the grasp
of Ali by the disobedience and enthusiasm of his troops. Their
conscience was awed by the solemn appeal to the books of the
Koran which Moawiyah exposed on the foremost lances; and Ali was
compelled to yield to a disgraceful truce and an insidious
compromise. He retreated with sorrow and indignation to Cufa; his
party was discouraged; the distant provinces of Persia, of Yemen,
and of Egypt, were subdued or seduced by his crafty rival; and
the stroke of fanaticism, which was aimed against the three
chiefs of the nation, was fatal only to the cousin of Mahomet. In
the temple of Mecca, three Charegites or enthusiasts discoursed
of the disorders of the church and state: they soon agreed, that
the deaths of Ali, of Moawiyah, and of his friend Amrou, the
viceroy of Egypt, would restore the peace and unity of religion.
Each of the assassins chose his victim, poisoned his dagger,
devoted his life, and secretly repaired to the scene of action.
Their resolution was equally desperate: but the first mistook the
person of Amrou, and stabbed the deputy who occupied his seat;
the prince of Damascus was dangerously hurt by the second; the
lawful caliph, in the mosch of Cufa, received a mortal wound from
the hand of the third. He expired in the sixty-third year of his
age, and mercifully recommended to his children, that they would
despatch the murderer by a single stroke. * The sepulchre of Ali
was concealed from the tyrants of the house of Ommiyah; but in
the fourth age of the Hegira, a tomb, a temple, a city, arose
near the ruins of Cufa. Many thousands of the Shiites repose in
holy ground at the feet of the vicar of God; and the desert is
vivified by the numerous and annual visits of the Persians, who
esteem their devotion not less meritorious than the pilgrimage of
Mecca.
The persecutors of Mahomet usurped the inheritance of his
children; and the champions of idolatry became the supreme heads
of his religion and empire. The opposition of Abu Sophian had
been fierce and obstinate; his conversion was tardy and
reluctant; his new faith was fortified by necessity and interest;
he served, he fought, perhaps he believed; and the sins of the
time of ignorance were expiated by the recent merits of the
family of Ommiyah. Moawiyah, the son of Abu Sophian, and of the
cruel Henda, was dignified, in his early youth, with the office
or title of secretary of the prophet: the judgment of Omar
intrusted him with the government of Syria; and he administered
that important province above forty years, either in a
subordinate or supreme rank. Without renouncing the fame of valor
and liberality, he affected the reputation of humanity and
moderation: a grateful people was attached to their benefactor;
and the victorious Moslems were enriched with the spoils of
Cyprus and Rhodes. The sacred duty of pursuing the assassins of
Othman was the engine and pretence of his ambition. The bloody
shirt of the martyr was exposed in the mosch of Damascus: the
emir deplored the fate of his injured kinsman; and sixty thousand
Syrians were engaged in his service by an oath of fidelity and
revenge. Amrou, the conqueror of Egypt, himself an army, was the
first who saluted the new monarch, and divulged the dangerous
secret, that the Arabian caliphs might be created elsewhere than
in the city of the prophet. The policy of Moawiyah eluded the
valor of his rival; and, after the death of Ali, he negotiated
the abdication of his son Hassan, whose mind was either above or
below the government of the world, and who retired without a sigh
from the palace of Cufa to an humble cell near the tomb of his
grandfather. The aspiring wishes of the caliph were finally
crowned by the important change of an elective to an hereditary
kingdom. Some murmurs of freedom or fanaticism attested the
reluctance of the Arabs, and four citizens of Medina refused the
oath of fidelity; but the designs of Moawiyah were conducted with
vigor and address; and his son Yezid, a feeble and dissolute
youth, was proclaimed as the commander of the faithful and the
successor on the apostle of God.
A familiar story is related of the benevolence of one of the
sons of Ali. In serving at table, a slave had inadvertently
dropped a dish of scalding broth on his master: the heedless
wretch fell prostrate, to deprecate his punishment, and repeated
a verse of the Koran: "Paradise is for those who command their
anger: " -- "I am not angry: " -- "and for those who pardon
offences: " -- "I pardon your offence: " -- "and for those who
return good for evil: " -- "I give you your liberty and four
hundred pieces of silver." With an equal measure of piety,
Hosein, the younger brother of Hassan, inherited a remnant of his
father's spirit, and served with honor against the Christians in
the siege of Constantinople. The primogeniture of the line of
Hashem, and the holy character of grandson of the apostle, had
centred in his person, and he was at liberty to prosecute his
claim against Yezid, the tyrant of Damascus, whose vices he
despised, and whose title he had never deigned to acknowledge. A
list was secretly transmitted from Cufa to Medina, of one hundred
and forty thousand Moslems, who professed their attachment to his
cause, and who were eager to draw their swords so soon as he
should appear on the banks of the Euphrates. Against the advice
of his wisest friends, he resolved to trust his person and family
in the hands of a perfidious people. He traversed the desert of
Arabia with a timorous retinue of women and children; but as he
approached the confines of Irak he was alarmed by the solitary or
hostile face of the country, and suspected either the defection
or ruin of his party. His fears were just: Obeidollah, the
governor of Cufa, had extinguished the first sparks of an
insurrection; and Hosein, in the plain of Kerbela, was
encompassed by a body of five thousand horse, who intercepted his
communication with the city and the river. He might still have
escaped to a fortress in the desert, that had defied the power of
Cæsar and Chosroes, and confided in the fidelity of the
tribe of Tai, which would have armed ten thousand warriors in his
defence. In a conference with the chief of the enemy, he proposed
the option of three honorable conditions: that he should be
allowed to return to Medina, or be stationed in a frontier
garrison against the Turks, or safely conducted to the presence
of Yezid. But the commands of the caliph, or his lieutenant, were
stern and absolute; and Hosein was informed that he must either
submit as a captive and a criminal to the commander of the
faithful, or expect the consequences of his rebellion. "Do you
think," replied he, "to terrify me with death?" And, during the
short respite of a night, * he prepared with calm and solemn
resignation to encounter his fate. He checked the lamentations of
his sister Fatima, who deplored the impending ruin of his house.
"Our trust," said Hosein, "is in God alone. All things, both in
heaven and earth, must perish and return to their Creator. My
brother, my father, my mother, were better than me, and every
Mussulman has an example in the prophet." He pressed his friends
to consult their safety by a timely flight: they unanimously
refused to desert or survive their beloved master: and their
courage was fortified by a fervent prayer and the assurance of
paradise. On the morning of the fatal day, he mounted on
horseback, with his sword in one hand and the Koran in the other:
his generous band of martyrs consisted only of thirty-two horse
and forty foot; but their flanks and rear were secured by the
tent-ropes, and by a deep trench which they had filled with
lighted fagots, according to the practice of the Arabs. The enemy
advanced with reluctance, and one of their chiefs deserted, with
thirty followers, to claim the partnership of inevitable death.
In every close onset, or single combat, the despair of the
Fatimites was invincible; but the surrounding multitudes galled
them from a distance with a cloud of arrows, and the horses and
men were successively slain; a truce was allowed on both sides
for the hour of prayer; and the battle at length expired by the
death of the last companions of Hosein. Alone, weary, and
wounded, he seated himself at the door of his tent. As he tasted
a drop of water, he was pierced in the mouth with a dart; and his
son and nephew, two beautiful youths, were killed in his arms. He
lifted his hands to heaven; they were full of blood; and he
uttered a funeral prayer for the living and the dead. In a
transport of despair his sister issued from the tent, and adjured
the general of the Cufians, that he would not suffer Hosein to be
murdered before his eyes: a tear trickled down his venerable
beard; and the boldest of his soldiers fell back on every side as
the dying hero threw himself among them. The remorseless Shamer,
a name detested by the faithful, reproached their cowardice; and
the grandson of Mahomet was slain with three-and-thirty strokes
of lances and swords. After they had trampled on his body, they
carried his head to the castle of Cufa, and the inhuman
Obeidollah struck him on the mouth with a cane: "Alas," exclaimed
an aged Mussulman, "on these lips have I seen the lips of the
apostle of God!" In a distant age and climate, the tragic scene
of the death of Hosein will awaken the sympathy of the coldest
reader. * On the annual festival of his martyrdom, in the devout
pilgrimage to his sepulchre, his Persian votaries abandon their
souls to the religious frenzy of sorrow and indignation.
When the sisters and children of Ali were brought in chains to
the throne of Damascus, the caliph was advised to extirpate the
enmity of a popular and hostile race, whom he had injured beyond
the hope of reconciliation. But Yezid preferred the councils of
mercy; and the mourning family was honorably dismissed to mingle
their tears with their kindred at Medina. The glory of martyrdom
superseded the right of primogeniture; and the twelve imams, or
pontiffs, of the Persian creed, are Ali, Hassan, Hosein, and the
lineal descendants of Hosein to the ninth generation. Without
arms, or treasures, or subjects, they successively enjoyed the
veneration of the people, and provoked the jealousy of the
reigning caliphs: their tombs, at Mecca or Medina, on the banks
of the Euphrates, or in the province of Chorasan, are still
visited by the devotion of their sect. Their names were often the
pretence of sedition and civil war; but these royal saints
despised the pomp of the world: submitted to the will of God and
the injustice of man; and devoted their innocent lives to the
study and practice of religion. The twelfth and last of the
Imams, conspicuous by the title of
Mahadi, or the Guide, surpassed the
solitude and sanctity of his predecessors. He concealed himself
in a cavern near Bagdad: the time and place of his death are
unknown; and his votaries pretend that he still lives, and will
appear before the day of judgment to overthrow the tyranny of
Dejal, or the Antichrist. In the lapse of two or three centuries,
the posterity of Abbas, the uncle of Mahomet, had multiplied to
the number of thirty-three thousand: the race of Ali might be
equally prolific: the meanest individual was above the first and
greatest of princes; and the most eminent were supposed to excel
the perfection of angels. But their adverse fortune, and the wide
extent of the Mussulman empire, allowed an ample scope for every
bold and artful imposture, who claimed affinity with the holy
seed: the sceptre of the Almohades, in Spain and Africa; of the
Fatimites, in Egypt and Syria; of the Sultans of Yemen; and of
the Sophis of Persia; has been consecrated by this vague and
ambiguous title. Under their reigns it might be dangerous to
dispute the legitimacy of their birth; and one of the Fatimite
caliphs silenced an indiscreet question by drawing his cimeter:
"This," said Moez, "is my pedigree; and these," casting a handful
of gold to his soldiers, -- "and these are my kindred and my
children." In the various conditions of princes, or doctors, or
nobles, or merchants, or beggars, a swarm of the genuine or
fictitious descendants of Mahomet and Ali is honored with the
appellation of sheiks, or sherifs, or emirs. In the Ottoman
empire they are distinguished by a green turban; receive a
stipend from the treasury; are judged only by their chief; and,
however debased by fortune or character, still assert the proud
preëminence of their birth. A family of three hundred
persons, the pure and orthodox branch of the caliph Hassan, is
preserved without taint or suspicion in the holy cities of Mecca
and Medina, and still retains, after the revolutions of twelve
centuries, the custody of the temple, and the sovereignty of
their native land. The fame and merit of Mahomet would ennoble a
plebeian race, and the ancient blood of the Koreish transcends
the recent majesty of the kings of the earth.
The talents of Mahomet are entitled to our applause; but his
success has, perhaps, too strongly attracted our admiration. Are
we surprised that a multitude of proselytes should embrace the
doctrine and the passions of an eloquent fanatic? In the heresies
of the church, the same seduction has been tried and repeated
from the time of the apostles to that of the reformers. Does it
seem incredible that a private citizen should grasp the sword and
the sceptre, subdue his native country, and erect a monarchy by
his victorious arms? In the moving picture of the dynasties of
the East, a hundred fortunate usurpers have arisen from a baser
origin, surmounted more formidable obstacles, and filled a larger
scope of empire and conquest. Mahomet was alike instructed to
preach and to fight; and the union of these opposite qualities,
while it enhanced his merit, contributed to his success: the
operation of force and persuasion, of enthusiasm and fear,
continually acted on each other, till every barrier yielded to
their irresistible power. His voice invited the Arabs to freedom
and victory, to arms and rapine, to the indulgence of their
darling passions in this world and the other: the restraints
which he imposed were requisite to establish the credit of the
prophet, and to exercise the obedience of the people; and the
only objection to his success was his rational creed of the unity
and perfections of God. It is not the propagation, but the
permanency, of his religion, that deserves our wonder: the same
pure and perfect impression which he engraved at Mecca and
Medina, is preserved, after the revolutions of twelve centuries,
by the Indian, the African, and the Turkish proselytes of the
Koran. If the Christian apostles, St. Peter or St. Paul, could
return to the Vatican, they might possibly inquire the name of
the Deity who is worshipped with such mysterious rites in that
magnificent temple: at Oxford or Geneva, they would experience
less surprise; but it might still be incumbent on them to peruse
the catechism of the church, and to study the orthodox
commentators on their own writings and the words of their Master.
But the Turkish dome of St. Sophia, with an increase of splendor
and size, represents the humble tabernacle erected at Medina by
the hands of Mahomet. The Mahometans have uniformly withstood the
temptation of reducing the object of their faith and devotion to
a level with the senses and imagination of man. "I believe in one
God, and Mahomet the apostle of God," is the simple and
invariable profession of Islam. The intellectual image of the
Deity has never been degraded by any visible idol; the honors of
the prophet have never transgressed the measure of human virtue;
and his living precepts have restrained the gratitude of his
disciples within the bounds of reason and religion. The votaries
of Ali have, indeed, consecrated the memory of their hero, his
wife, and his children; and some of the Persian doctors pretend
that the divine essence was incarnate in the person of the Imams;
but their superstition is universally condemned by the Sonnites;
and their impiety has afforded a seasonable warning against the
worship of saints and martyrs. The metaphysical questions on the
attributes of God, and the liberty of man, have been agitated in
the schools of the Mahometans, as well as in those of the
Christians; but among the former they have never engaged the
passions of the people, or disturbed the tranquillity of the
state. The cause of this important difference may be found in the
separation or union of the regal and sacerdotal characters. It
was the interest of the caliphs, the successors of the prophet
and commanders of the faithful, to repress and discourage all
religious innovations: the order, the discipline, the temporal
and spiritual ambition of the clergy, are unknown to the Moslems;
and the sages of the law are the guides of their conscience and
the oracles of their faith. From the Atlantic to the Ganges, the
Koran is acknowledged as the fundamental code, not only of
theology, but of civil and criminal jurisprudence; and the laws
which regulate the actions and the property of mankind are
guarded by the infallible and immutable sanction of the will of
God. This religious servitude is attended with some practical
disadvantage; the illiterate legislator had been often misled by
his own prejudices and those of his country; and the institutions
of the Arabian desert may be ill adapted to the wealth and
numbers of Ispahan and Constantinople. On these occasions, the
Cadhi respectfully places on his head the holy volume, and
substitutes a dexterous interpretation more apposite to the
principles of equity, and the manners and policy of the
times.
His beneficial or pernicious influence on the public happiness
is the last consideration in the character of Mahomet. The most
bitter or most bigoted of his Christian or Jewish foes will
surely allow that he assumed a false commission to inculcate a
salutary doctrine, less perfect only than their own. He piously
supposed, as the basis of his religion, the truth and sanctity of
their prior revolutions, the virtues
and miracles of their founders. The idols of Arabia were broken
before the throne of God; the blood of human victims was expiated
by prayer, and fasting, and alms, the laudable or innocent arts
of devotion; and his rewards and punishments of a future life
were painted by the images most congenial to an ignorant and
carnal generation. Mahomet was, perhaps, incapable of dictating a
moral and political system for the use of his countrymen: but he
breathed among the faithful a spirit of charity and friendship;
recommended the practice of the social virtues; and checked, by
his laws and precepts, the thirst of revenge, and the oppression
of widows and orphans. The hostile tribes were united in faith
and obedience, and the valor which had been idly spent in
domestic quarrels was vigorously directed against a foreign
enemy. Had the impulse been less powerful, Arabia, free at home
and formidable abroad, might have flourished under a succession
of her native monarchs. Her sovereignty was lost by the extent
and rapidity of conquest. The colonies of the nation were
scattered over the East and West, and their blood was mingled
with the blood of their converts and captives. After the reign of
three caliphs, the throne was transported from Medina to the
valley of Damascus and the banks of the Tigris; the holy cities
were violated by impious war; Arabia was ruled by the rod of a
subject, perhaps of a stranger; and the Bedoweens of the desert,
awakening from their dream of dominion, resumed their old and
solitary independence.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs.
Part I.
The Conquest Of Persia, Syria, Egypt, Africa, And Spain, By
The Arabs Or Saracens. -- Empire Of The Caliphs, Or Successors Of
Mahomet. -- State Of The Christians, &c., Under Their
Government.
The revolution of Arabia had not changed the character of the
Arabs: the death of Mahomet was the signal of independence; and
the hasty structure of his power and religion tottered to its
foundations. A small and faithful band of his primitive disciples
had listened to his eloquence, and shared his distress; had fled
with the apostle from the persecution of Mecca, or had received
the fugitive in the walls of Medina. The increasing myriads, who
acknowledged Mahomet as their king and prophet, had been
compelled by his arms, or allured by his prosperity. The
polytheists were confounded by the simple idea of a solitary and
invisible God; the pride of the Christians and Jews disdained the
yoke of a mortal and contemporary legislator. The habits of faith
and obedience were not sufficiently confirmed; and many of the
new converts regretted the venerable antiquity of the law of
Moses, or the rites and mysteries of the Catholic church; or the
idols, the sacrifices, the joyous festivals, of their Pagan
ancestors. The jarring interests and hereditary feuds of the
Arabian tribes had not yet coalesced in a system of union and
subordination; and the Barbarians were impatient of the mildest
and most salutary laws that curbed their passions, or violated
their customs. They submitted with reluctance to the religious
precepts of the Koran, the abstinence from wine, the fast of the
Ramadan, and the daily repetition of five prayers; and the alms
and tithes, which were collected for the treasury of Medina,
could be distinguished only by a name from the payment of a
perpetual and ignominious tribute. The example of Mahomet had
excited a spirit of fanaticism or imposture, and several of his
rivals presumed to imitate the conduct, and defy the authority,
of the living prophet. At the head of the
fugitives and
auxiliaries, the first caliph was
reduced to the cities of Mecca, Medina, and Tayef; and perhaps
the Koreish would have restored the idols of the Caaba, if their
levity had not been checked by a seasonable reproof. "Ye men of
Mecca, will ye be the last to embrace, and the first to abandon,
the religion of Islam?" After exhorting the Moslems to confide in
the aid of God and his apostle, Abubeker resolved, by a vigorous
attack, to prevent the junction of the rebels. The women and
children were safely lodged in the cavities of the mountains: the
warriors, marching under eleven banners, diffused the terror of
their arms; and the appearance of a military force revived and
confirmed the loyalty of the faithful. The inconstant tribes
accepted, with humble repentance, the duties of prayer, and
fasting, and alms; and, after some examples of success and
severity, the most daring apostates fell prostrate before the
sword of the Lord and of Caled. In the fertile province of
Yemanah, between the Red Sea and the Gulf of Persia, in a city
not inferior to Medina itself, a powerful chief (his name was
Moseilama) had assumed the character of a prophet, and the tribe
of Hanifa listened to his voice. A female prophetess * was
attracted by his reputation; the decencies of words and actions
were spurned by these favorites of Heaven; and they employed
several days in mystic and amorous converse. An obscure sentence
of his Koran, or book, is yet extant; and in the pride of his
mission, Moseilama condescended to offer a partition of the
earth. The proposal was answered by Mahomet with contempt; but
the rapid progress of the impostor awakened the fears of his
successor: forty thousand Moslems were assembled under the
standard of Caled; and the existence of their faith was resigned
to the event of a decisive battle. * In the first action they
were repulsed by the loss of twelve hundred men; but the skill
and perseverance of their general prevailed; their defeat was
avenged by the slaughter of ten thousand infidels; and Moseilama
himself was pierced by an Æthiopian slave with the same
javelin which had mortally wounded the uncle of Mahomet. The
various rebels of Arabia without a chief or a cause, were
speedily suppressed by the power and discipline of the rising
monarchy; and the whole nation again professed, and more
steadfastly held, the religion of the Koran. The ambition of the
caliphs provided an immediate exercise for the restless spirit of
the Saracens: their valor was united in the prosecution of a holy
war; and their enthusiasm was equally confirmed by opposition and
victory.
From the rapid conquests of the Saracens a presumption will
naturally arise, that the caliphs commanded in person the armies
of the faithful, and sought the crown of martyrdom in the
foremost ranks of the battle. The courage of Abubeker, Omar, and
Othman, had indeed been tried in the persecution and wars of the
prophet; and the personal assurance of paradise must have taught
them to despise the pleasures and dangers of the present world.
But they ascended the throne in a venerable or mature age; and
esteemed the domestic cares of religion and justice the most
important duties of a sovereign. Except the presence of Omar at
the siege of Jerusalem, their longest expeditions were the
frequent pilgrimage from Medina to Mecca; and they calmly
received the tidings of victory as they prayed or preached before
the sepulchre of the prophet. The austere and frugal measure of
their lives was the effect of virtue or habit, and the pride of
their simplicity insulted the vain magnificence of the kings of
the earth. When Abubeker assumed the office of caliph, he
enjoined his daughter Ayesha to take a strict account of his
private patrimony, that it might be evident whether he were
enriched or impoverished by the service of the state. He thought
himself entitled to a stipend of three pieces of gold, with the
sufficient maintenance of a single camel and a black slave; but
on the Friday of each week he distributed the residue of his own
and the public money, first to the most worthy, and then to the
most indigent, of the Moslems. The remains of his wealth, a
coarse garment, and five pieces of gold, were delivered to his
successor, who lamented with a modest sigh his own inability to
equal such an admirable model. Yet the abstinence and humility of
Omar were not inferior to the virtues of Abubeker: his food
consisted of barley bread or dates; his drink was water; he
preached in a gown that was torn or tattered in twelve places;
and the Persian satrap, who paid his homage to the conqueror,
found him asleep among the beggars on the steps of the mosch of
Medina. conomy is the source of liberality, and the increase of
the revenue enabled Omar to establish a just and perpetual reward
for the past and present services of the faithful. Careless of
his own emolument, he assigned to Abbas, the uncle of the
prophet, the first and most ample allowance of twenty-five
thousand drachms or pieces of silver. Five thousand were allotted
to each of the aged warriors, the relics of the field of Beder;
and the last and meanest of the companions of Mahomet was
distinguished by the annual reward of three thousand pieces. One
thousand was the stipend of the veterans who had fought in the
first battles against the Greeks and Persians; and the decreasing
pay, as low as fifty pieces of silver, was adapted to the
respective merit and seniority of the soldiers of Omar. Under his
reign, and that of his predecessor, the conquerors of the East
were the trusty servants of God and the people; the mass of the
public treasure was consecrated to the expenses of peace and war;
a prudent mixture of justice and bounty maintained the discipline
of the Saracens, and they united, by a rare felicity, the
despatch and execution of despotism with the equal and frugal
maxims of a republican government. The heroic courage of Ali, the
consummate prudence of Moawiyah, excited the emulation of their
subjects; and the talents which had been exercised in the school
of civil discord were more usefully applied to propagate the
faith and dominion of the prophet. In the sloth and vanity of the
palace of Damascus, the succeeding princes of the house of
Ommiyah were alike destitute of the qualifications of statesmen
and of saints. Yet the spoils of unknown nations were continually
laid at the foot of their throne, and the uniform ascent of the
Arabian greatness must be ascribed to the spirit of the nation
rather than the abilities of their chiefs. A large deduction must
be allowed for the weakness of their enemies. The birth of
Mahomet was fortunately placed in the most degenerate and
disorderly period of the Persians, the Romans, and the Barbarians
of Europe: the empires of Trajan, or even of Constantine or
Charlemagne, would have repelled the assault of the naked
Saracens, and the torrent of fanaticism might have been obscurely
lost in the sands of Arabia.
In the victorious days of the Roman republic, it had been the
aim of the senate to confine their councils and legions to a
single war, and completely to suppress a first enemy before they
provoked the hostilities of a second. These timid maxims of
policy were disdained by the magnanimity or enthusiasm of the
Arabian caliphs. With the same vigor and success they invaded the
successors of Augustus and those of Artaxerxes; and the rival
monarchies at the same instant became the prey of an enemy whom
they had been so long accustomed to despise. In the ten years of
the administration of Omar, the Saracens reduced to his obedience
thirty-six thousand cities or castles, destroyed four thousand
churches or temples of the unbelievers, and edified fourteen
hundred moschs for the exercise of the religion of Mahomet. One
hundred years after his flight from Mecca, the arms and the reign
of his successors extended from India to the Atlantic Ocean, over
the various and distant provinces, which may be comprised under
the names of, I. Persia; II. Syria; III. Egypt; IV. Africa; and,
V. Spain. Under this general division, I shall proceed to unfold
these memorable transactions; despatching with brevity the remote
and less interesting conquests of the East, and reserving a
fuller narrative for those domestic countries which had been
included within the pale of the Roman empire. Yet I must excuse
my own defects by a just complaint of the blindness and
insufficiency of my guides. The Greeks, so loquacious in
controversy, have not been anxious to celebrate the triumphs of
their enemies. After a century of ignorance, the first annals of
the Mussulmans were collected in a great measure from the voice
of tradition. Among the numerous productions of Arabic and
Persian literature, our interpreters have selected the imperfect
sketches of a more recent age. The art and genius of history have
ever been unknown to the Asiatics; they are ignorant of the laws
of criticism; and our monkish chronicle of the same period may be
compared to their most popular works, which are never vivified by
the spirit of philosophy and freedom. The Oriental
library of a Frenchman would instruct the most
learned mufti of the East; and perhaps the Arabs might not find
in a single historian so clear and comprehensive a narrative of
their own exploits as that which will be deduced in the ensuing
sheets.
I. In the first year of the first caliph, his lieutenant
Caled, the Sword of God, and the scourge of the infidels,
advanced to the banks of the Euphrates, and reduced the cities of
Anbar and Hira. Westward of the ruins of Babylon, a tribe of
sedentary Arabs had fixed themselves on the verge of the desert;
and Hira was the seat of a race of kings who had embraced the
Christian religion, and reigned above six hundred years under the
shadow of the throne of Persia. The last of the Mondars * was
defeated and slain by Caled; his son was sent a captive to
Medina; his nobles bowed before the successor of the prophet; the
people was tempted by the example and success of their
countrymen; and the caliph accepted as the first-fruits of
foreign conquest an annual tribute of seventy thousand pieces of
gold. The conquerors, and even their historians, were astonished
by the dawn of their future greatness: "In the same year," says
Elmacin, "Caled fought many signal battles: an immense multitude
of the infidels was slaughtered; and spoils infinite and
innumerable were acquired by the victorious Moslems." But the
invincible Caled was soon transferred to the Syrian war: the
invasion of the Persian frontier was conducted by less active or
less prudent commanders: the Saracens were repulsed with loss in
the passage of the Euphrates; and, though they chastised the
insolent pursuit of the Magians, their remaining forces still
hovered in the desert of Babylon.
The indignation and fears of the Persians suspended for a
moment their intestine divisions. By the unanimous sentence of
the priests and nobles, their queen Arzema was deposed; the sixth
of the transient usurpers, who had arisen and vanished in three
or four years since the death of Chosroes, and the retreat of
Heraclius. Her tiara was placed on the head of Yezdegerd, the
grandson of Chosroes; and the same æra, which coincides
with an astronomical period, has recorded the fall of the
Sassanian dynasty and the religion of Zoroaster. The youth and
inexperience of the prince (he was only fifteen years of age)
declined a perilous encounter: the royal standard was delivered
into the hands of his general Rustam; and a remnant of thirty
thousand regular troops was swelled in truth, or in opinion, to
one hundred and twenty thousand subjects, or allies, of the great
king. The Moslems, whose numbers were reënforced from twelve
to thirty thousand, had pitched their camp in the plains of
Cadesia: and their line, though it consisted of fewer
men, could produce more
soldiers, than the unwieldy host of the
infidels. I shall here observe, what I must often repeat, that
the charge of the Arabs was not, like that of the Greeks and
Romans, the effort of a firm and compact infantry: their military
force was chiefly formed of cavalry and archers; and the
engagement, which was often interrupted and often renewed by
single combats and flying skirmishes, might be protracted without
any decisive event to the continuance of several days. The
periods of the battle of Cadesia were distinguished by their
peculiar appellations. The first, from the well-timed appearance
of six thousand of the Syrian brethren, was denominated the day
of succor. The day of
concussion might express the disorder
of one, or perhaps of both, of the contending armies. The third,
a nocturnal tumult, received the whimsical name of the night of
barking, from the discordant clamors,
which were compared to the inarticulate sounds of the fiercest
animals. The morning of the succeeding day * determined the fate
of Persia; and a seasonable whirlwind drove a cloud of dust
against the faces of the unbelievers. The clangor of arms was
reechoed to the tent of Rustam, who, far unlike the ancient hero
of his name, was gently reclining in a cool and tranquil shade,
amidst the baggage of his camp, and the train of mules that were
laden with gold and silver. On the sound of danger he started
from his couch; but his flight was overtaken by a valiant Arab,
who caught him by the foot, struck off his head, hoisted it on a
lance, and instantly returning to the field of battle, carried
slaughter and dismay among the thickest ranks of the Persians.
The Saracens confess a loss of seven thousand five hundred men;
and the battle of Cadesia is justly described by the epithets of
obstinate and atrocious. The standard of the monarchy was
overthrown and captured in the field -- a leathern apron of a
blacksmith, who in ancient times had arisen the deliverer of
Persia; but this badge of heroic poverty was disguised, and
almost concealed, by a profusion of precious gems. After this
victory, the wealthy province of Irak, or Assyria, submitted to
the caliph, and his conquests were firmly established by the
speedy foundation of Bassora, a place which ever commands the
trade and navigation of the Persians. As the distance of
fourscore miles from the Gulf, the Euphrates and Tigris unite in
a broad and direct current, which is aptly styled the river of
the Arabs. In the midway, between the junction and the mouth of
these famous streams, the new settlement was planted on the
western bank: the first colony was composed of eight hundred
Moslems; but the influence of the situation soon reared a
flourishing and populous capital. The air, though excessively
hot, is pure and healthy: the meadows are filled with palm-trees
and cattle; and one of the adjacent valleys has been celebrated
among the four paradises or gardens of Asia. Under the first
caliphs the jurisdiction of this Arabian colony extended over the
southern provinces of Persia: the city has been sanctified by the
tombs of the companions and martyrs; and the vessels of Europe
still frequent the port of Bassora, as a convenient station and
passage of the Indian trade.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
II.
After the defeat of Cadesia, a country intersected by rivers
and canals might have opposed an insuperable barrier to the
victorious cavalry; and the walls of Ctesiphon or Madayn, which
had resisted the battering-rams of the Romans, would not have
yielded to the darts of the Saracens. But the flying Persians
were overcome by the belief, that the last day of their religion
and empire was at hand; the strongest posts were abandoned by
treachery or cowardice; and the king, with a part of his family
and treasures, escaped to Holwan at the foot of the Median hills.
In the third month after the battle, Said, the lieutenant of
Omar, passed the Tigris without opposition; the capital was taken
by assault; and the disorderly resistance of the people gave a
keener edge to the sabres of the Moslems, who shouted with
religious transport, "This is the white palace of Chosroes; this
is the promise of the apostle of God!" The naked robbers of the
desert were suddenly enriched beyond the measure of their hope or
knowledge. Each chamber revealed a new treasure secreted with
art, or ostentatiously displayed; the gold and silver, the
various wardrobes and precious furniture, surpassed (says
Abulfeda) the estimate of fancy or numbers; and another historian
defines the untold and almost infinite mass, by the fabulous
computation of three thousands of thousands of thousands of
pieces of gold. Some minute though curious facts represent the
contrast of riches and ignorance. From the remote islands of the
Indian Ocean a large provision of camphire had been imported,
which is employed with a mixture of wax to illuminate the palaces
of the East. Strangers to the name and properties of that
odoriferous gum, the Saracens, mistaking it for salt, mingled the
camphire in their bread, and were astonished at the bitterness of
the taste. One of the apartments of the palace was decorated with
a carpet of silk, sixty cubits in length, and as many in breadth:
a paradise or garden was depictured on the ground: the flowers,
fruits, and shrubs, were imitated by the figures of the gold
embroidery, and the colors of the precious stones; and the ample
square was encircled by a variegated and verdant border. The
Arabian general persuaded his soldiers to relinquish their claim,
in the reasonable hope that the eyes of the caliph would be
delighted with the splendid workmanship of nature and industry.
Regardless of the merit of art, and the pomp of royalty, the
rigid Omar divided the prize among his brethren of Medina: the
picture was destroyed; but such was the intrinsic value of the
materials, that the share of Ali alone was sold for twenty
thousand drams. A mule that carried away the tiara and cuirass,
the belt and bracelets of Chosroes, was overtaken by the
pursuers; the gorgeous trophy was presented to the commander of
the faithful; and the gravest of the companions condescended to
smile when they beheld the white beard, the hairy arms, and
uncouth figure of the veteran, who was invested with the spoils
of the Great King. The sack of Ctesiphon was followed by its
desertion and gradual decay. The Saracens disliked the air and
situation of the place, and Omar was advised by his general to
remove the seat of government to the western side of the
Euphrates. In every age, the foundation and ruin of the Assyrian
cities has been easy and rapid: the country is destitute of stone
and timber; and the most solid structures are composed of bricks
baked in the sun, and joined by a cement of the native bitumen.
The name of Cufa describes a habitation
of reeds and earth; but the importance of the new capital was
supported by the numbers, wealth, and spirit, of a colony of
veterans; and their licentiousness was indulged by the wisest
caliphs, who were apprehensive of provoking the revolt of a
hundred thousand swords: "Ye men of Cufa," said Ali, who
solicited their aid, "you have been always conspicuous by your
valor. You conquered the Persian king, and scattered his forces,
till you had taken possession of his inheritance." This mighty
conquest was achieved by the battles of Jalula and Nehavend.
After the loss of the former, Yezdegerd fled from Holwan, and
concealed his shame and despair in the mountains of Farsistan,
from whence Cyrus had descended with his equal and valiant
companions. The courage of the nation survived that of the
monarch: among the hills to the south of Ecbatana or Hamadan, one
hundred and fifty thousand Persians made a third and final stand
for their religion and country; and the decisive battle of
Nehavend was styled by the Arabs the victory of victories. If it
be true that the flying general of the Persians was stopped and
overtaken in a crowd of mules and camels laden with honey, the
incident, however slight and singular, will denote the luxurious
impediments of an Oriental army.
The geography of Persia is darkly delineated by the Greeks and
Latins; but the most illustrious of her cities appear to be more
ancient than the invasion of the Arabs. By the reduction of
Hamadan and Ispahan, of Caswin, Tauris, and Rei, they gradually
approached the shores of the Caspian Sea: and the orators of
Mecca might applaud the success and spirit of the faithful, who
had already lost sight of the northern bear, and had almost
transcended the bounds of the habitable world. Again, turning
towards the West and the Roman empire, they repassed the Tigris
over the bridge of Mosul, and, in the captive provinces of
Armenia and Mesopotamia, embraced their victorious brethren of
the Syrian army. From the palace of Madayn their Eastern progress
was not less rapid or extensive. They advanced along the Tigris
and the Gulf; penetrated through the passes of the mountains into
the valley of Estachar or Persepolis, and profaned the last
sanctuary of the Magian empire. The grandson of Chosroes was
nearly surprised among the falling columns and mutilated figures;
a sad emblem of the past and present fortune of Persia: he fled
with accelerated haste over the desert of Kirman, implored the
aid of the warlike Segestans, and sought an humble refuge on the
verge of the Turkish and Chinese power. But a victorious army is
insensible of fatigue: the Arabs divided their forces in the
pursuit of a timorous enemy; and the caliph Othman promised the
government of Chorasan to the first general who should enter that
large and populous country, the kingdom of the ancient Bactrians.
The condition was accepted; the prize was deserved; the standard
of Mahomet was planted on the walls of Herat, Merou, and Balch;
and the successful leader neither halted nor reposed till his
foaming cavalry had tasted the waters of the Oxus. In the public
anarchy, the independent governors of the cities and castles
obtained their separate capitulations: the terms were granted or
imposed by the esteem, the prudence, or the compassion, of the
victors; and a simple profession of faith established the
distinction between a brother and a slave. After a noble defence,
Harmozan, the prince or satrap of Ahwaz and Susa, was compelled
to surrender his person and his state to the discretion of the
caliph; and their interview exhibits a portrait of the Arabian
manners. In the presence, and by the command, of Omar, the gay
Barbarian was despoiled of his silken robes embroidered with
gold, and of his tiara bedecked with rubies and emeralds: "Are
you now sensible," said the conqueror to his naked captive --
"are you now sensible of the judgment of God, and of the
different rewards of infidelity and obedience?" "Alas!" replied
Harmozan, "I feel them too deeply. In the days of our common
ignorance, we fought with the weapons of the flesh, and my nation
was superior. God was then neuter: since he has espoused your
quarrel, you have subverted our kingdom and religion." Oppressed
by this painful dialogue, the Persian complained of intolerable
thirst, but discovered some apprehension lest he should be killed
whilst he was drinking a cup of water. "Be of good courage," said
the caliph; "your life is safe till you have drunk this water: "
the crafty satrap accepted the assurance, and instantly dashed
the vase against the ground. Omar would have avenged the deceit,
but his companions represented the sanctity of an oath; and the
speedy conversion of Harmozan entitled him not only to a free
pardon, but even to a stipend of two thousand pieces of gold. The
administration of Persia was regulated by an actual survey of the
people, the cattle, and the fruits of the earth; and this
monument, which attests the vigilance of the caliphs, might have
instructed the philosophers of every age.
The flight of Yezdegerd had carried him beyond the Oxus, and
as far as the Jaxartes, two rivers of ancient and modern renown,
which descend from the mountains of India towards the Caspian
Sea. He was hospitably entertained by Tarkhan, prince of Fargana,
a fertile province on the Jaxartes: the king of Samarcand, with
the Turkish tribes of Sogdiana and Scythia, were moved by the
lamentations and promises of the fallen monarch; and he
solicited, by a suppliant embassy, the more solid and powerful
friendship of the emperor of China. The virtuous Taitsong, the
first of the dynasty of the Tang may be justly compared with the
Antonines of Rome: his people enjoyed the blessings of prosperity
and peace; and his dominion was acknowledged by forty-four hordes
of the Barbarians of Tartary. His last garrisons of Cashgar and
Khoten maintained a frequent intercourse with their neighbors of
the Jaxartes and Oxus; a recent colony of Persians had introduced
into China the astronomy of the Magi; and Taitsong might be
alarmed by the rapid progress and dangerous vicinity of the
Arabs. The influence, and perhaps the supplies, of China revived
the hopes of Yezdegerd and the zeal of the worshippers of fire;
and he returned with an army of Turks to conquer the inheritance
of his fathers. The fortunate Moslems, without unsheathing their
swords, were the spectators of his ruin and death. The grandson
of Chosroes was betrayed by his servant, insulted by the
seditious inhabitants of Merou, and oppressed, defeated, and
pursued by his Barbarian allies. He reached the banks of a river,
and offered his rings and bracelets for an instant passage in a
miller's boat. Ignorant or insensible of royal distress, the
rustic replied, that four drams of silver were the daily profit
of his mill, and that he would not suspend his work unless the
loss were repaid. In this moment of hesitation and delay, the
last of the Sassanian kings was overtaken and slaughtered by the
Turkish cavalry, in the nineteenth year of his unhappy reign. *
His son Firuz, an humble client of the Chinese emperor, accepted
the station of captain of his guards; and the Magian worship was
long preserved by a colony of loyal exiles in the province of
Bucharia. His grandson inherited the regal name; but after a
faint and fruitless enterprise, he returned to China, and ended
his days in the palace of Sigan. The male line of the Sassanides
was extinct; but the female captives, the daughters of Persia,
were given to the conquerors in servitude, or marriage; and the
race of the caliphs and imams was ennobled by the blood of their
royal mothers.
After the fall of the Persian kingdom, the River Oxus divided
the territories of the Saracens and of the Turks. This narrow
boundary was soon overleaped by the spirit of the Arabs; the
governors of Chorasan extended their successive inroads; and one
of their triumphs was adorned with the buskin of a Turkish queen,
which she dropped in her precipitate flight beyond the hills of
Bochara. But the final conquest of Transoxiana, as well as of
Spain, was reserved for the glorious reign of the inactive Walid;
and the name of Catibah, the camel driver, declares the origin
and merit of his successful lieutenant. While one of his
colleagues displayed the first Mahometan banner on the banks of
the Indus, the spacious regions between the Oxus, the Jaxartes,
and the Caspian Sea, were reduced by the arms of Catibah to the
obedience of the prophet and of the caliph. A tribute of two
millions of pieces of gold was imposed on the infidels; their
idols were burnt or broken; the Mussulman chief pronounced a
sermon in the new mosch of Carizme; after several battles, the
Turkish hordes were driven back to the desert; and the emperors
of China solicited the friendship of the victorious Arabs. To
their industry, the prosperity of the province, the Sogdiana of
the ancients, may in a great measure be ascribed; but the
advantages of the soil and climate had been understood and
cultivated since the reign of the Macedonian kings. Before the
invasion of the Saracens, Carizme, Bochara, and Samarcand were
rich and populous under the yoke of the shepherds of the north. *
These cities were surrounded with a double wall; and the exterior
fortification, of a larger circumference, enclosed the fields and
gardens of the adjacent district. The mutual wants of India and
Europe were supplied by the diligence of the Sogdian merchants;
and the inestimable art of transforming linen into paper has been
diffused from the manufacture of Samarcand over the western
world.
II. No sooner had Abubeker restored the unity of faith and
government, than he despatched a circular letter to the Arabian
tribes. "In the name of the most merciful God, to the rest of the
true believers. Health and happiness, and the mercy and blessing
of God, be upon you. I praise the most high God, and I pray for
his prophet Mahomet. This is to acquaint you, that I intend to
send the true believers into Syria to take it out of the hands of
the infidels. And I would have you know, that the fighting for
religion is an act of obedience to God." His messengers returned
with the tidings of pious and martial ardor which they had
kindled in every province; and the camp of Medina was
successively filled with the intrepid bands of the Saracens, who
panted for action, complained of the heat of the season and the
scarcity of provisions, and accused with impatient murmurs the
delays of the caliph. As soon as their numbers were complete,
Abubeker ascended the hill, reviewed the men, the horses, and the
arms, and poured forth a fervent prayer for the success of their
undertaking. In person, and on foot, he accompanied the first
day's march; and when the blushing leaders attempted to dismount,
the caliph removed their scruples by a declaration, that those
who rode, and those who walked, in the service of religion, were
equally meritorious. His instructions to the chiefs of the Syrian
army were inspired by the warlike fanaticism which advances to
seize, and affects to despise, the objects of earthly ambition.
"Remember," said the successor of the prophet, "that you are
always in the presence of God, on the verge of death, in the
assurance of judgment, and the hope of paradise. Avoid injustice
and oppression; consult with your brethren, and study to preserve
the love and confidence of your troops. When you fight the
battles of the Lord, acquit yourselves like men, without turning
your backs; but let not your victory be stained with the blood of
women or children. Destroy no palm-trees, nor burn any fields of
corn. Cut down no fruit-trees, nor do any mischief to cattle,
only such as you kill to eat. When you make any covenant or
article, stand to it, and be as good as your word. As you go on,
you will find some religious persons who live retired in
monasteries, and propose to themselves to serve God that way: let
them alone, and neither kill them nor destroy their monasteries:
And you will find another sort of people, that belong to the
synagogue of Satan, who have shaven crowns; be sure you cleave
their skulls, and give them no quarter till they either turn
Mahometans or pay "tribute." All profane or frivolous
conversation, all dangerous recollection of ancient quarrels, was
severely prohibited among the Arabs: in the tumult of a camp, the
exercises of religion were assiduously practised; and the
intervals of action were employed in prayer, meditation, and the
study of the Koran. The abuse, or even the use, of wine was
chastised by fourscore strokes on the soles of the feet, and in
the fervor of their primitive zeal, many secret sinners revealed
their fault, and solicited their punishment. After some
hesitation, the command of the Syrian army was delegated to Abu
Obeidah, one of the fugitives of Mecca, and companions of
Mahomet; whose zeal and devotion was assuaged, without being
abated, by the singular mildness and benevolence of his temper.
But in all the emergencies of war, the soldiers demanded the
superior genius of Caled; and whoever might be the choice of the
prince, the Sword of God was both in
fact and fame the foremost leader of the Saracens. He obeyed
without reluctance; * he was consulted without jealousy; and such
was the spirit of the man, or rather of the times, that Caled
professed his readiness to serve under the banner of the faith,
though it were in the hands of a child or an enemy. Glory, and
riches, and dominion, were indeed promised to the victorious
Mussulman; but he was carefully instructed, that if the goods of
this life were his only incitement,
they likewise would be his only
reward.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
III.
One of the fifteen provinces of Syria, the cultivated lands to
the eastward of the Jordan, had been decorated by Roman vanity
with the name of Arabia; and the first
arms of the Saracens were justified by the semblance of a
national right. The country was enriched by the various benefits
of trade; by the vigilance of the emperors it was covered with a
line of forts; and the populous cities of Gerasa, Philadelphia,
and Bosra, were secure, at least from a surprise, by the solid
structure of their walls. The last of these cities was the
eighteenth station from Medina: the road was familiar to the
caravans of Hejaz and Irak, who annually visited this plenteous
market of the province and the desert: the perpetual jealousy of
the Arabs had trained the inhabitants to arms; and twelve
thousand horse could sally from the gates of Bosra, an
appellation which signifies, in the Syriac language, a strong
tower of defence. Encouraged by their first success against the
open towns and flying parties of the borders, a detachment of
four thousand Moslems presumed to summon and attack the fortress
of Bosra. They were oppressed by the numbers of the Syrians; they
were saved by the presence of Caled, with fifteen hundred horse:
he blamed the enterprise, restored the battle, and rescued his
friend, the venerable Serjabil, who had vainly invoked the unity
of God and the promises of the apostle. After a short repose, the
Moslems performed their ablutions with sand instead of water; and
the morning prayer was recited by Caled before they mounted on
horseback. Confident in their strength, the people of Bosra threw
open their gates, drew their forces into the plain, and swore to
die in the defence of their religion. But a religion of peace was
incapable of withstanding the fanatic cry of "Fight, fight!
Paradise, paradise!" that reechoed in the ranks of the Saracens;
and the uproar of the town, the ringing of bells, and the
exclamations of the priests and monks increased the dismay and
disorder of the Christians. With the loss of two hundred and
thirty men, the Arabs remained masters of the field; and the
ramparts of Bosra, in expectation of human or divine aid, were
crowded with holy crosses and consecrated banners. The governor
Romanus had recommended an early submission: despised by the
people, and degraded from his office, he still retained the
desire and opportunity of revenge. In a nocturnal interview, he
informed the enemy of a subterraneous passage from his house
under the wall of the city; the son of the caliph, with a hundred
volunteers, were committed to the faith of this new ally, and
their successful intrepidity gave an easy entrance to their
companions. After Caled had imposed the terms of servitude and
tribute, the apostate or convert avowed in the assembly of the
people his meritorious treason: "I renounce your society," said
Romanus, "both in this world and the world to come. And I deny
him that was crucified, and whosoever worships him. And I choose
God for my Lord, Islam for my faith, Mecca for my temple, the
Moslems for my brethren, and Mahomet for my prophet; who was sent
to lead us into the right way, and to exalt the true religion in
spite of those who join partners with God."
The conquest of Bosra, four days' journey from Damascus,
encouraged the Arabs to besiege the ancient capital of Syria. At
some distance from the walls, they encamped among the groves and
fountains of that delicious territory, and the usual option of
the Mahometan faith, of tribute or of war, was proposed to the
resolute citizens, who had been lately strengthened by a
reenforcement of five thousand Greeks. In the decline, as in the
infancy, of the military art, a hostile defiance was frequently
offered and accepted by the generals themselves: many a lance was
shivered in the plain of Damascus, and the personal prowess of
Caled was signalized in the first sally of the besieged. After an
obstinate combat, he had overthrown and made prisoner one of the
Christian leaders, a stout and worthy antagonist. He instantly
mounted a fresh horse, the gift of the governor of Palmyra, and
pushed forwards to the front of the battle. "Repose yourself for
a moment," said his friend Derar, "and permit me to supply your
place: you are fatigued with fighting with this dog." "O Dear!"
replied the indefatigable Saracen, "we shall rest in the world to
come. He that labors to-day shall rest to-morrow." With the same
unabated ardor, Caled answered, encountered, and vanquished a
second champion; and the heads of his two captives who refused to
abandon their religion were indignantly hurled into the midst of
the city. The event of some general and partial actions reduced
the Damascenes to a closer defence: but a messenger, whom they
dropped from the walls, returned with the promise of speedy and
powerful succor, and their tumultuous joy conveyed the
intelligence to the camp of the Arabs. After some debate, it was
resolved by the generals to raise, or rather to suspend, the
siege of Damascus, till they had given battle to the forces of
the emperor. In the retreat, Caled would have chosen the more
perilous station of the rear-guard; he modestly yielded to the
wishes of Abu Obeidah. But in the hour of danger he flew to the
rescue of his companion, who was rudely pressed by a sally of six
thousand horse and ten thousand foot, and few among the
Christians could relate at Damascus the circumstances of their
defeat. The importance of the contest required the junction of
the Saracens, who were dispersed on the frontiers of Syria and
Palestine; and I shall transcribe one of the circular mandates
which was addressed to Amrou, the future conqueror of Egypt. "In
the name of the most merciful God: from Caled to Amrou, health
and happiness. Know that thy brethren the Moslems design to march
to Aiznadin, where there is an army of seventy thousand Greeks,
who purpose to come against us, that they may
extinguish the light of God with their mouths; but God preserveth
his light in spite of the infidels. As soon
therefore as this letter of mine shall be delivered to thy hands,
come with those that are with thee to Aiznadin, where thou shalt
find us if it please the most high God." The summons was
cheerfully obeyed, and the forty-five thousand Moslems, who met
on the same day, on the same spot ascribed to the blessing of
Providence the effects of their activity and zeal.
About four years after the triumph of the Persian war, the
repose of Heraclius and the empire was again disturbed by a new
enemy, the power of whose religion was more strongly felt, than
it was clearly understood, by the Christians of the East. In his
palace of Constantinople or Antioch, he was awakened by the
invasion of Syria, the loss of Bosra, and the danger of Damascus.
* An army of seventy thousand veterans, or new levies, was
assembled at Hems or Emesa, under the command of his general
Werdan: and these troops consisting chiefly of cavalry, might be
indifferently styled either Syrians, or Greeks, or Romans:
Syrians, from the place of their birth
or warfare; Greeks from the religion
and language of their sovereign; and
Romans, from the proud appellation
which was still profaned by the successors of Constantine. On the
plain of Aiznadin, as Werdan rode on a white mule decorated with
gold chains, and surrounded with ensigns and standards, he was
surprised by the near approach of a fierce and naked warrior, who
had undertaken to view the state of the enemy. The adventurous
valor of Derar was inspired, and has perhaps been adorned, by the
enthusiasm of his age and country. The hatred of the Christians,
the love of spoil, and the contempt of danger, were the ruling
passions of the audacious Saracen; and the prospect of instant
death could never shake his religious confidence, or ruffle the
calmness of his resolution, or even suspend the frank and martial
pleasantry of his humor. In the most hopeless enterprises, he was
bold, and prudent, and fortunate: after innumerable hazards,
after being thrice a prisoner in the hands of the infidels, he
still survived to relate the achievements, and to enjoy the
rewards, of the Syrian conquest. On this occasion, his single
lance maintained a flying fight against thirty Romans, who were
detached by Werdan; and, after killing or unhorsing seventeen of
their number, Derar returned in safety to his applauding
brethren. When his rashness was mildly censured by the general,
he excused himself with the simplicity of a soldier. "Nay," said
Derar, "I did not begin first: but they came out to take me, and
I was afraid that God should see me turn my back: and indeed I
fought in good earnest, and without doubt God assisted me against
them; and had I not been apprehensive of disobeying your orders,
I should not have come away as I did; and I perceive already that
they will fall into our hands." In the presence of both armies, a
venerable Greek advanced from the ranks with a liberal offer of
peace; and the departure of the Saracens would have been
purchased by a gift to each soldier, of a turban, a robe, and a
piece of gold; ten robes and a hundred pieces to their leader;
one hundred robes and a thousand pieces to the caliph. A smile of
indignation expressed the refusal of Caled. "Ye Christian dogs,
you know your option; the Koran, the tribute, or the sword. We
are a people whose delight is in war, rather than in peace: and
we despise your pitiful alms, since we shall be speedily masters
of your wealth, your families, and your persons." Notwithstanding
this apparent disdain, he was deeply conscious of the public
danger: those who had been in Persia, and had seen the armies of
Chosroes confessed that they never beheld a more formidable
array. From the superiority of the enemy, the artful Saracen
derived a fresh incentive of courage: "You see before you," said
he, "the united force of the Romans; you cannot hope to escape,
but you may conquer Syria in a single day. The event depends on
your discipline and patience. Reserve yourselves till the
evening. It was in the evening that the Prophet was accustomed to
vanquish." During two successive engagements, his temperate
firmness sustained the darts of the enemy, and the murmurs of his
troops. At length, when the spirits and quivers of the adverse
line were almost exhausted, Caled gave the signal of onset and
victory. The remains of the Imperial army fled to Antioch, or
Cæsarea, or Damascus; and the death of four hundred and
seventy Moslems was compensated by the opinion that they had sent
to hell above fifty thousand of the infidels. The spoil was
inestimable; many banners and crosses of gold and silver,
precious stones, silver and gold chains, and innumerable suits of
the richest armor and apparel. The general distribution was
postponed till Damascus should be taken; but the seasonable
supply of arms became the instrument of new victories. The
glorious intelligence was transmitted to the throne of the
caliph; and the Arabian tribes, the coldest or most hostile to
the prophet's mission, were eager and importunate to share the
harvest of Syria.
The sad tidings were carried to Damascus by the speed of grief
and terror; and the inhabitants beheld from their walls the
return of the heroes of Aiznadin. Amrou led the van at the head
of nine thousand horse: the bands of the Saracens succeeded each
other in formidable review; and the rear was closed by Caled in
person, with the standard of the black eagle. To the activity of
Derar he intrusted the commission of patrolling round the city
with two thousand horse, of scouring the plain, and of
intercepting all succor or intelligence. The rest of the Arabian
chiefs were fixed in their respective stations before the seven
gates of Damascus; and the siege was renewed with fresh vigor and
confidence. The art, the labor, the military engines, of the
Greeks and Romans are seldom to be found in the simple, though
successful, operations of the Saracens: it was sufficient for
them to invest a city with arms, rather than with trenches; to
repel the allies of the besieged; to attempt a stratagem or an
assault; or to expect the progress of famine and discontent.
Damascus would have acquiesced in the trial of Aiznadin, as a
final and peremptory sentence between the emperor and the caliph;
her courage was rekindled by the example and authority of Thomas,
a noble Greek, illustrious in a private condition by the alliance
of Heraclius. The tumult and illumination of the night proclaimed
the design of the morning sally; and the Christian hero, who
affected to despise the enthusiasm of the Arabs, employed the
resource of a similar superstition. At the principal gate, in the
sight of both armies, a lofty crucifix was erected; the bishop,
with his clergy, accompanied the march, and laid the volume of
the New Testament before the image of Jesus; and the contending
parties were scandalized or edified by a prayer that the Son of
God would defend his servants and vindicate his truth. The battle
raged with incessant fury; and the dexterity of Thomas, an
incomparable archer, was fatal to the boldest Saracens, till
their death was revenged by a female heroine. The wife of Aban,
who had followed him to the holy war, embraced her expiring
husband. "Happy," said she, "happy art thou, my dear: thou art
gone to they Lord, who first joined us together, and then parted
us asunder. I will revenge thy death, and endeavor to the utmost
of my power to come to the place where thou art, because I love
thee. Henceforth shall no man ever touch me more, for I have
dedicated myself to the service of God." Without a groan, without
a tear, she washed the corpse of her husband, and buried him with
the usual rites. Then grasping the manly weapons, which in her
native land she was accustomed to wield, the intrepid widow of
Aban sought the place where his murderer fought in the thickest
of the battle. Her first arrow pierced the hand of his
standard-bearer; her second wounded Thomas in the eye; and the
fainting Christians no longer beheld their ensign or their
leader. Yet the generous champion of Damascus refused to withdraw
to his palace: his wound was dressed on the rampart; the fight
was continued till the evening; and the Syrians rested on their
arms. In the silence of the night, the signal was given by a
stroke on the great bell; the gates were thrown open, and each
gate discharged an impetuous column on the sleeping camp of the
Saracens. Caled was the first in arms: at the head of four
hundred horse he flew to the post of danger, and the tears
trickled down his iron cheeks, as he uttered a fervent
ejaculation; "O God, who never sleepest, look upon they servants,
and do not deliver them into the hands of their enemies." The
valor and victory of Thomas were arrested by the presence of the
Sword of God; with the knowledge of the
peril, the Moslems recovered their ranks, and charged the
assailants in the flank and rear. After the loss of thousands,
the Christian general retreated with a sigh of despair, and the
pursuit of the Saracens was checked by the military engines of
the rampart.
After a siege of seventy days, the patience, and perhaps the
provisions, of the Damascenes were exhausted; and the bravest of
their chiefs submitted to the hard dictates of necessity. In the
occurrences of peace and war, they had been taught to dread the
fierceness of Caled, and to revere the mild virtues of Abu
Obeidah. At the hour of midnight, one hundred chosen deputies of
the clergy and people were introduced to the tent of that
venerable commander. He received and dismissed them with
courtesy. They returned with a written agreement, on the faith of
a companion of Mahomet, that all hostilities should cease; that
the voluntary emigrants might depart in safety, with as much as
they could carry away of their effects; and that the tributary
subjects of the caliph should enjoy their lands and houses, with
the use and possession of seven churches. On these terms, the
most respectable hostages, and the gate nearest to his camp, were
delivered into his hands: his soldiers imitated the moderation of
their chief; and he enjoyed the submissive gratitude of a people
whom he had rescued from destruction. But the success of the
treaty had relaxed their vigilance, and in the same moment the
opposite quarter of the city was betrayed and taken by assault. A
party of a hundred Arabs had opened the eastern gate to a more
inexorable foe. "No quarter," cried the rapacious and sanguinary
Caled, "no quarter to the enemies of the Lord: " his trumpets
sounded, and a torrent of Christian blood was poured down the
streets of Damascus. When he reached the church of St. Mary, he
was astonished and provoked by the peaceful aspect of his
companions; their swords were in the scabbard, and they were
surrounded by a multitude of priests and monks. Abu Obeidah
saluted the general: "God," said he, "has delivered the city into
my hands by way of surrender, and has saved the believers the
trouble of fighting." "And am I not," replied the indignant
Caled, "am I not the lieutenant of the commander of the faithful?
Have I not taken the city by storm? The unbelievers shall perish
by the sword. Fall on." The hungry and cruel Arabs would have
obeyed the welcome command; and Damascus was lost, if the
benevolence of Abu Obeidah had not been supported by a decent and
dignified firmness. Throwing himself between the trembling
citizens and the most eager of the Barbarians, he adjured them,
by the holy name of God, to respect his promise, to suspend their
fury, and to wait the determination of their chiefs. The chiefs
retired into the church of St. Mary; and after a vehement debate,
Caled submitted in some measure to the reason and authority of
his colleague; who urged the sanctity of a covenant, the
advantage as well as the honor which the Moslems would derive
from the punctual performance of their word, and the obstinate
resistance which they must encounter from the distrust and
despair of the rest of the Syrian cities. It was agreed that the
sword should be sheathed, that the part of Damascus which had
surrendered to Abu Obeidah, should be immediately entitled to the
benefit of his capitulation, and that the final decision should
be referred to the justice and wisdom of the caliph. A large
majority of the people accepted the terms of toleration and
tribute; and Damascus is still peopled by twenty thousand
Christians. But the valiant Thomas, and the free-born patriots
who had fought under his banner, embraced the alternative of
poverty and exile. In the adjacent meadow, a numerous encampment
was formed of priests and laymen, of soldiers and citizens, of
women and children: they collected, with haste and terror, their
most precious movables; and abandoned, with loud lamentations, or
silent anguish, their native homes, and the pleasant banks of the
Pharpar. The inflexible soul of Caled was not touched by the
spectacle of their distress: he disputed with the Damascenes the
property of a magazine of corn; endeavored to exclude the
garrison from the benefit of the treaty; consented, with
reluctance, that each of the fugitives should arm himself with a
sword, or a lance, or a bow; and sternly declared, that, after a
respite of three days, they might be pursued and treated as the
enemies of the Moslems.
The passion of a Syrian youth completed the ruin of the exiles
of Damascus. A nobleman of the city, of the name of Jonas, was
betrothed to a wealthy maiden; but her parents delayed the
consummation of his nuptials, and their daughter was persuaded to
escape with the man whom she had chosen. They corrupted the
nightly watchmen of the gate Keisan; the lover, who led the way,
was encompassed by a squadron of Arabs; but his exclamation in
the Greek tongue, "The bird is taken," admonished his mistress to
hasten her return. In the presence of Caled, and of death, the
unfortunate Jonas professed his belief in one God and his apostle
Mahomet; and continued, till the season of his martyrdom, to
discharge the duties of a brave and sincere Mussulman. When the
city was taken, he flew to the monastery, where Eudocia had taken
refuge; but the lover was forgotten; the apostate was scorned;
she preferred her religion to her country; and the justice of
Caled, though deaf to mercy, refused to detain by force a male or
female inhabitant of Damascus. Four days was the general confined
to the city by the obligation of the treaty, and the urgent cares
of his new conquest. His appetite for blood and rapine would have
been extinguished by the hopeless computation of time and
distance; but he listened to the importunities of Jonas, who
assured him that the weary fugitives might yet be overtaken. At
the head of four thousand horse, in the disguise of Christian
Arabs, Caled undertook the pursuit. They halted only for the
moments of prayer; and their guide had a perfect knowledge of the
country. For a long way the footsteps of the Damascenes were
plain and conspicuous: they vanished on a sudden; but the
Saracens were comforted by the assurance that the caravan had
turned aside into the mountains, and must speedily fall into
their hands. In traversing the ridges of the Libanus, they
endured intolerable hardships, and the sinking spirits of the
veteran fanatics were supported and cheered by the unconquerable
ardor of a lover. From a peasant of the country, they were
informed that the emperor had sent orders to the colony of exiles
to pursue without delay the road of the sea-coast, and of
Constantinople, apprehensive, perhaps, that the soldiers and
people of Antioch might be discouraged by the sight and the story
of their sufferings. The Saracens were conducted through the
territories of Gabala and Laodicea, at a cautious distance from
the walls of the cities; the rain was incessant, the night was
dark, a single mountain separated them from the Roman army; and
Caled, ever anxious for the safety of his brethren, whispered an
ominous dream in the ear of his companion. With the dawn of day,
the prospect again cleared, and they saw before them, in a
pleasant valley, the tents of Damascus. After a short interval of
repose and prayer, Caled divided his cavalry into four squadrons,
committing the first to his faithful Derar, and reserving the
last for himself. They successively rushed on the promiscuous
multitude, insufficiently provided with arms, and already
vanquished by sorrow and fatigue. Except a captive, who was
pardoned and dismissed, the Arabs enjoyed the satisfaction of
believing that not a Christian of either sex escaped the edge of
their cimeters. The gold and silver of Damascus was scattered
over the camp, and a royal wardrobe of three hundred load of silk
might clothe an army of naked Barbarians. In the tumult of the
battle, Jonas sought and found the object of his pursuit: but her
resentment was inflamed by the last act of his perfidy; and as
Eudocia struggled in his hateful embraces, she struck a dagger to
her heart. Another female, the widow of Thomas, and the real or
supposed daughter of Heraclius, was spared and released without a
ransom; but the generosity of Caled was the effect of his
contempt; and the haughty Saracen insulted, by a message of
defiance, the throne of the Cæsars. Caled had penetrated
above a hundred and fifty miles into the heart of the Roman
province: he returned to Damascus with the same secrecy and speed
On the accession of Omar, the Sword of
God was removed from the command; but the caliph,
who blamed the rashness, was compelled to applaud the vigor and
conduct, of the enterprise.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
IV.
Another expedition of the conquerors of Damascus will equally
display their avidity and their contempt for the riches of the
present world. They were informed that the produce and
manufactures of the country were annually collected in the fair
of Abyla, about thirty miles from the city; that the cell of a
devout hermit was visited at the same time by a multitude of
pilgrims; and that the festival of trade and superstition would
be ennobled by the nuptials of the daughter of the governor of
Tripoli. Abdallah, the son of Jaafar, a glorious and holy martyr,
undertook, with a banner of five hundred horse, the pious and
profitable commission of despoiling the infidels. As he
approached the fair of Abyla, he was astonished by the report of
this mighty concourse of Jews and Christians, Greeks, and
Armenians, of natives of Syria and of strangers of Egypt, to the
number of ten thousand, besides a guard of five thousand horse
that attended the person of the bride. The Saracens paused: "For
my own part," said Abdallah, "I dare
not go back: our foes are many, our danger is
great, but our reward is splendid and secure, either in this life
or in the life to come. Let every man, according to his
inclination, advance or retire." Not a Mussulman deserted his
standard. "Lead the way," said Abdallah to his Christian guide,
"and you shall see what the companions of the prophet can
perform." They charged in five squadrons; but after the first
advantage of the surprise, they were encompassed and almost
overwhelmed by the multitude of their enemies; and their valiant
band is fancifully compared to a white spot in the skin of a
black camel. About the hour of sunset, when their weapons dropped
from their hands, when they panted on the verge of eternity, they
discovered an approaching cloud of dust; they heard the welcome
sound of the tecbir, and they soon
perceived the standard of Caled, who flew to their relief with
the utmost speed of his cavalry. The Christians were broken by
his attack, and slaughtered in their flight, as far as the river
of Tripoli. They left behind them the various riches of the fair;
the merchandises that were exposed for sale, the money that was
brought for purchase, the gay decorations of the nuptials, and
the governor's daughter, with forty of her female attendants. The
fruits, provisions, and furniture, the money, plate, and jewels,
were diligently laden on the backs of horses, asses, and mules;
and the holy robbers returned in triumph to Damascus. The hermit,
after a short and angry controversy with Caled, declined the
crown of martyrdom, and was left alive in the solitary scene of
blood and devastation.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
V.
Syria, one of the countries that have been improved by the
most early cultivation, is not unworthy of the preference. The
heat of the climate is tempered by the vicinity of the sea and
mountains, by the plenty of wood and water; and the produce of a
fertile soil affords the subsistence, and encourages the
propagation, of men and animals. From the age of David to that of
Heraclius, the country was overspread with ancient and
flourishing cities: the inhabitants were numerous and wealthy;
and, after the slow ravage of despotism and superstition, after
the recent calamities of the Persian war, Syria could still
attract and reward the rapacious tribes of the desert. A plain,
of ten days' journey, from Damascus to Aleppo and Antioch, is
watered, on the western side, by the winding course of the
Orontes. The hills of Libanus and Anti-Libanus are planted from
north to south, between the Orontes and the Mediterranean; and
the epithet of hollow (Clesyria) was
applied to a long and fruitful valley, which is confined in the
same direction, by the two ridges of snowy mountains. Among the
cities, which are enumerated by Greek and Oriental names in the
geography and conquest of Syria, we may distinguish Emesa or
Hems, Heliopolis or Baalbec, the former as the metropolis of the
plain, the latter as the capital of the valley. Under the last of
the Cæsars, they were strong and populous; the turrets
glittered from afar: an ample space was covered with public and
private buildings; and the citizens were illustrious by their
spirit, or at least by their pride; by their riches, or at least
by their luxury. In the days of Paganism, both Emesa and
Heliopolis were addicted to the worship of Baal, or the sun; but
the decline of their superstition and splendor has been marked by
a singular variety of fortune. Not a vestige remains of the
temple of Emesa, which was equalled in poetic style to the
summits of Mount Libanus, while the ruins of Baalbec, invisible
to the writers of antiquity, excite the curiosity and wonder of
the European traveller. The measure of the temple is two hundred
feet in length, and one hundred in breadth: the front is adorned
with a double portico of eight columns; fourteen may be counted
on either side; and each column, forty-five feet in height, is
composed of three massy blocks of stone or marble. The
proportions and ornaments of the Corinthian order express the
architecture of the Greeks: but as Baalbec has never been the
seat of a monarch, we are at a loss to conceive how the expense
of these magnificent structures could be supplied by private or
municipal liberality. From the conquest of Damascus the Saracens
proceeded to Heliopolis and Emesa: but I shall decline the
repetition of the sallies and combats which have been already
shown on a larger scale. In the prosecution of the war, their
policy was not less effectual than their sword. By short and
separate truces they dissolved the union of the enemy; accustomed
the Syrians to compare their friendship with their enmity;
familiarized the idea of their language, religion, and manners;
and exhausted, by clandestine purchase, the magazines and
arsenals of the cities which they returned to besiege. They
aggravated the ransom of the more wealthy, or the more obstinate;
and Chalcis alone was taxed at five thousand ounces of gold, five
thousand ounces of silver, two thousand robes of silk, and as
many figs and olives as would load five thousand asses. But the
terms of truce or capitulation were faithfully observed; and the
lieutenant of the caliph, who had promised not to enter the walls
of the captive Baalbec, remained tranquil and immovable in his
tent till the jarring factions solicited the interposition of a
foreign master. The conquest of the plain and valley of Syria was
achieved in less than two years. Yet the commander of the
faithful reproved the slowness of their progress; and the
Saracens, bewailing their fault with tears of rage and
repentance, called aloud on their chiefs to lead them forth to
fight the battles of the Lord. In a recent action, under the
walls of Emesa, an Arabian youth, the cousin of Caled, was heard
aloud to exclaim, "Methinks I see the black-eyed girls looking
upon me; one of whom, should she appear in this world, all
mankind would die for love of her. And I see in the hand of one
of them a handkerchief of green silk, and a cap of precious
stones, and she beckons me, and calls out, Come hither quickly,
for I love thee." With these words, charging the Christians, he
made havoc wherever he went, till, observed at length by the
governor of Hems, he was struck through with a javelin.
It was incumbent on the Saracens to exert the full powers of
their valor and enthusiasm against the forces of the emperor, who
was taught, by repeated losses, that the rovers of the desert had
undertaken, and would speedily achieve, a regular and permanent
conquest. From the provinces of Europe and Asia, fourscore
thousand soldiers were transported by sea and land to Antioch and
Cæsarea: the light troops of the army consisted of sixty
thousand Christian Arabs of the tribe of Gassan. Under the banner
of Jabalah, the last of their princes, they marched in the van;
and it was a maxim of the Greeks, that for the purpose of cutting
diamond, a diamond was the most effectual. Heraclius withheld his
person from the dangers of the field; but his presumption, or
perhaps his despondency, suggested a peremptory order, that the
fate of the province and the war should be decided by a single
battle. The Syrians were attached to the standard of Rome and of
the cross: but the noble, the citizen, the peasant, were
exasperated by the injustice and cruelty of a licentious host,
who oppressed them as subjects, and despised them as strangers
and aliens. A report of these mighty preparations was conveyed to
the Saracens in their camp of Emesa, and the chiefs, though
resolved to fight, assembled a council: the faith of Abu Obeidah
would have expected on the same spot the glory of martyrdom; the
wisdom of Caled advised an honorable retreat to the skirts of
Palestine and Arabia, where they might await the succors of their
friends, and the attack of the unbelievers. A speedy messenger
soon returned from the throne of Medina, with the blessings of
Omar and Ali, the prayers of the widows of the prophet, and a
reënforcement of eight thousand Moslems. In their way they
overturned a detachment of Greeks, and when they joined at Yermuk
the camp of their brethren, they found the pleasing intelligence,
that Caled had already defeated and scattered the Christian Arabs
of the tribe of Gassan. In the neighborhood of Bosra, the springs
of Mount Hermon descend in a torrent to the plain of Decapolis,
or ten cities; and the Hieromax, a name which has been corrupted
to Yermuk, is lost, after a short course, in the Lake of
Tiberias. The banks of this obscure stream were illustrated by a
long and bloody encounter. * On this momentous occasion, the
public voice, and the modesty of Abu Obeidah, restored the
command to the most deserving of the Moslems. Caled assumed his
station in the front, his colleague was posted in the rear, that
the disorder of the fugitive might be checked by his venerable
aspect, and the sight of the yellow banner which Mahomet had
displayed before the walls of Chaibar. The last line was occupied
by the sister of Derar, with the Arabian women who had enlisted
in this holy war, who were accustomed to wield the bow and the
lance, and who in a moment of captivity had defended, against the
uncircumcised ravishers, their chastity and religion. The
exhortation of the generals was brief and forcible: "Paradise is
before you, the devil and hell-fire in your rear." Yet such was
the weight of the Roman cavalry, that the right wing of the Arabs
was broken and separated from the main body. Thrice did they
retreat in disorder, and thrice were they driven back to the
charge by the reproaches and blows of the women. In the intervals
of action, Abu Obeidah visited the tents of his brethren,
prolonged their repose by repeating at once the prayers of two
different hours, bound up their wounds with his own hands, and
administered the comfortable reflection, that the infidels
partook of their sufferings without partaking of their reward.
Four thousand and thirty of the Moslems were buried in the field
of battle; and the skill of the Armenian archers enabled seven
hundred to boast that they had lost an eye in that meritorious
service. The veterans of the Syrian war acknowledged that it was
the hardest and most doubtful of the days which they had seen.
But it was likewise the most decisive: many thousands of the
Greeks and Syrians fell by the swords of the Arabs; many were
slaughtered, after the defeat, in the woods and mountains; many,
by mistaking the ford, were drowned in the waters of the Yermuk;
and however the loss may be magnified, the Christian writers
confess and bewail the bloody punishment of their sins. Manuel,
the Roman general, was either killed at Damascus, or took refuge
in the monastery of Mount Sinai. An exile in the Byzantine court,
Jabalah lamented the manners of Arabia, and his unlucky
preference of the Christian cause. He had once inclined to the
profession of Islam; but in the pilgrimage of Mecca, Jabalah was
provoked to strike one of his brethren, and fled with amazement
from the stern and equal justice of the caliph These victorious
Saracens enjoyed at Damascus a month of pleasure and repose: the
spoil was divided by the discretion of Abu Obeidah: an equal
share was allotted to a soldier and to his horse, and a double
portion was reserved for the noble coursers of the Arabian
breed.
After the battle of Yermuk, the Roman army no longer appeared
in the field; and the Saracens might securely choose, among the
fortified towns of Syria, the first object of their attack. They
consulted the caliph whether they should march to Cæsarea
or Jerusalem; and the advice of Ali determined the immediate
siege of the latter. To a profane eye, Jerusalem was the first or
second capital of Palestine; but after Mecca and Medina, it was
revered and visited by the devout Moslems, as the temple of the
Holy Land which had been sanctified by the revelation of Moses,
of Jesus, and of Mahomet himself. The son of Abu Sophian was sent
with five thousand Arabs to try the first experiment of surprise
or treaty; but on the eleventh day, the town was invested by the
whole force of Abu Obeidah. He addressed the customary summons to
the chief commanders and people of
Ælia.
"Health and happiness to every one that follows the right way!
We require of you to testify that there is but one God, and that
Mahomet is his apostle. If you refuse this, consent to pay
tribute, and be under us forthwith. Otherwise I shall bring men
against you who love death better than you do the drinking of
wine or eating hog's flesh. Nor will I ever stir from you, if it
please God, till I have destroyed those that fight for you, and
made slaves of your children." But the city was defended on every
side by deep valleys and steep ascents; since the invasion of
Syria, the walls and towers had been anxiously restored; the
bravest of the fugitives of Yermuk had stopped in the nearest
place of refuge; and in the defence of the sepulchre of Christ,
the natives and strangers might feel some sparks of the
enthusiasm, which so fiercely glowed in the bosoms of the
Saracens. The siege of Jerusalem lasted four months; not a day
was lost without some action of sally or assault; the military
engines incessantly played from the ramparts; and the inclemency
of the winter was still more painful and destructive to the
Arabs. The Christians yielded at length to the perseverance of
the besiegers. The patriarch Sophronius appeared on the walls,
and by the voice of an interpreter demanded a conference. * After
a vain attempt to dissuade the lieutenant of the caliph from his
impious enterprise, he proposed, in the name of the people, a
fair capitulation, with this extraordinary clause, that the
articles of security should be ratified by the authority and
presence of Omar himself. The question was debated in the council
of Medina; the sanctity of the place, and the advice of Ali,
persuaded the caliph to gratify the wishes of his soldiers and
enemies; and the simplicity of his journey is more illustrious
than the royal pageants of vanity and oppression. The conqueror
of Persia and Syria was mounted on a red camel, which carried,
besides his person, a bag of corn, a bag of dates, a wooden dish,
and a leathern bottle of water. Wherever he halted, the company,
without distinction, was invited to partake of his homely fare,
and the repast was consecrated by the prayer and exhortation of
the commander of the faithful. But in this expedition or
pilgrimage, his power was exercised in the administration of
justice: he reformed the licentious polygamy of the Arabs,
relieved the tributaries from extortion and cruelty, and
chastised the luxury of the Saracens, by despoiling them of their
rich silks, and dragging them on their faces in the dirt. When he
came within sight of Jerusalem, the caliph cried with a loud
voice, "God is victorious. O Lord, give us an easy conquest!"
and, pitching his tent of coarse hair, calmly seated himself on
the ground. After signing the capitulation, he entered the city
without fear or precaution; and courteously discoursed with the
patriarch concerning its religious antiquities. Sophronius bowed
before his new master, and secretly muttered, in the words of
Daniel, "The abomination of desolation is in the holy place." At
the hour of prayer they stood together in the church of the
resurrection; but the caliph refused to perform his devotions,
and contented himself with praying on the steps of the church of
Constantine. To the patriarch he disclosed his prudent and
honorable motive. "Had I yielded," said Omar, "to your request,
the Moslems of a future age would have infringed the treaty under
color of imitating my example." By his command the ground of the
temple of Solomon was prepared for the foundation of a mosch;
and, during a residence of ten days, he regulated the present and
future state of his Syrian conquests. Medina might be jealous,
lest the caliph should be detained by the sanctity of Jerusalem
or the beauty of Damascus; her apprehensions were dispelled by
his prompt and voluntary return to the tomb of the apostle.
To achieve what yet remained of the Syrian war the caliph had
formed two separate armies; a chosen detachment, under Amrou and
Yezid, was left in the camp of Palestine; while the larger
division, under the standard of Abu Obeidah and Caled, marched
away to the north against Antioch and Aleppo. The latter of
these, the Beræa of the Greeks, was not yet illustrious as
the capital of a province or a kingdom; and the inhabitants, by
anticipating their submission and pleading their poverty,
obtained a moderate composition for their lives and religion. But
the castle of Aleppo, distinct from the city, stood erect on a
lofty artificial mound the sides were sharpened to a precipice,
and faced with free-stone; and the breadth of the ditch might be
filled with water from the neighboring springs. After the loss of
three thousand men, the garrison was still equal to the defence;
and Youkinna, their valiant and hereditary chief, had murdered
his brother, a holy monk, for daring to pronounce the name of
peace. In a siege of four or five months, the hardest of the
Syrian war, great numbers of the Saracens were killed and
wounded: their removal to the distance of a mile could not seduce
the vigilance of Youkinna; nor could the Christians be terrified
by the execution of three hundred captives, whom they beheaded
before the castle wall. The silence, and at length the
complaints, of Abu Obeidah informed the caliph that their hope
and patience were consumed at the foot of this impregnable
fortress. "I am variously affected," replied Omar, "by the
difference of your success; but I charge you by no means to raise
the siege of the castle. Your retreat would diminish the
reputation of our arms, and encourage the infidels to fall upon
you on all sides. Remain before Aleppo till God shall determine
the event, and forage with your horse round the adjacent
country." The exhortation of the commander of the faithful was
fortified by a supply of volunteers from all the tribes of
Arabia, who arrived in the camp on horses or camels. Among these
was Dames, of a servile birth, but of gigantic size and intrepid
resolution. The forty-seventh day of his service he proposed,
with only thirty men, to make an attempt on the castle. The
experience and testimony of Caled recommended his offer; and Abu
Obeidah admonished his brethren not to despise the baser origin
of Dames, since he himself, could he relinquish the public care,
would cheerfully serve under the banner of the slave. His design
was covered by the appearance of a retreat; and the camp of the
Saracens was pitched about a league from Aleppo. The thirty
adventurers lay in ambush at the foot of the hill; and Dames at
length succeeded in his inquiries, though he was provoked by the
ignorance of his Greek captives. "God curse these dogs," said the
illiterate Arab; "what a strange barbarous language they speak!"
At the darkest hour of the night, he scaled the most accessible
height, which he had diligently surveyed, a place where the
stones were less entire, or the slope less perpendicular, or the
guard less vigilant. Seven of the stoutest Saracens mounted on
each other's shoulders, and the weight of the column was
sustained on the broad and sinewy back of the gigantic slave. The
foremost in this painful ascent could grasp and climb the lowest
part of the battlements; they silently stabbed and cast down the
sentinels; and the thirty brethren, repeating a pious
ejaculation, "O apostle of God, help and deliver us!" were
successively drawn up by the long folds of their turbans. With
bold and cautious footsteps, Dames explored the palace of the
governor, who celebrated, in riotous merriment, the festival of
his deliverance. From thence, returning to his companions, he
assaulted on the inside the entrance of the castle. They
overpowered the guard, unbolted the gate, let down the
drawbridge, and defended the narrow pass, till the arrival of
Caled, with the dawn of day, relieved their danger and assured
their conquest. Youkinna, a formidable foe, became an active and
useful proselyte; and the general of the Saracens expressed his
regard for the most humble merit, by detaining the army at Aleppo
till Dames was cured of his honorable wounds. The capital of
Syria was still covered by the castle of Aazaz and the iron
bridge of the Orontes. After the loss of those important posts,
and the defeat of the last of the Roman armies, the luxury of
Antioch trembled and obeyed. Her safety was ransomed with three
hundred thousand pieces of gold; but the throne of the successors
of Alexander, the seat of the Roman government of the East, which
had been decorated by Cæsar with the titles of free, and
holy, and inviolate was degraded under the yoke of the caliphs to
the secondary rank of a provincial town.
In the life of Heraclius, the glories of the Persian war are
clouded on either hand by the disgrace and weakness of his more
early and his later days. When the successors of Mahomet
unsheathed the sword of war and religion, he was astonished at
the boundless prospect of toil and danger; his nature was
indolent, nor could the infirm and frigid age of the emperor be
kindled to a second effort. The sense of shame, and the
importunities of the Syrians, prevented the hasty departure from
the scene of action; but the hero was no more; and the loss of
Damascus and Jerusalem, the bloody fields of Aiznadin and Yermuk,
may be imputed in some degree to the absence or misconduct of the
sovereign. Instead of defending the sepulchre of Christ, he
involved the church and state in a metaphysical controversy for
the unity of his will; and while Heraclius crowned the offspring
of his second nuptials, he was tamely stripped of the most
valuable part of their inheritance. In the cathedral of Antioch,
in the presence of the bishops, at the foot of the crucifix, he
bewailed the sins of the prince and people; but his confession
instructed the world, that it was vain, and perhaps impious, to
resist the judgment of God. The Saracens were invincible in fact,
since they were invincible in opinion; and the desertion of
Youkinna, his false repentance and repeated perfidy, might
justify the suspicion of the emperor, that he was encompassed by
traitors and apostates, who conspired to betray his person and
their country to the enemies of Christ. In the hour of adversity,
his superstition was agitated by the omens and dreams of a
falling crown; and after bidding an eternal farewell to Syria, he
secretly embarked with a few attendants, and absolved the faith
of his subjects. Constantine, his eldest son, had been stationed
with forty thousand men at Cæsarea, the civil metropolis of
the three provinces of Palestine. But his private interest
recalled him to the Byzantine court; and, after the flight of his
father, he felt himself an unequal champion to the united force
of the caliph. His vanguard was boldly attacked by three hundred
Arabs and a thousand black slaves, who, in the depth of winter,
had climbed the snowy mountains of Libanus, and who were speedily
followed by the victorious squadrons of Caled himself. From the
north and south the troops of Antioch and Jerusalem advanced
along the sea-shore till their banners were joined under the
walls of the Phnician cities: Tripoli and Tyre were betrayed; and
a fleet of fifty transports, which entered without distrust the
captive harbors, brought a seasonable supply of arms and
provisions to the camp of the Saracens. Their labors were
terminated by the unexpected surrender of Cæsarea: the
Roman prince had embarked in the night; and the defenceless
citizens solicited their pardon with an offering of two hundred
thousand pieces of gold. The remainder of the province, Ramlah,
Ptolemais or Acre, Sichem or Neapolis, Gaza, Ascalon, Berytus,
Sidon, Gabala, Laodicea, Apamea, Hierapolis, no longer presumed
to dispute the will of the conqueror; and Syria bowed under the
sceptre of the caliphs seven hundred years after Pompey had
despoiled the last of the Macedonian kings.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
VI.
The sieges and battles of six campaigns had consumed many
thousands of the Moslems. They died with the reputation and the
cheerfulness of martyrs; and the simplicity of their faith may be
expressed in the words of an Arabian youth, when he embraced, for
the last time, his sister and mother: "It is not," said he, "the
delicacies of Syria, or the fading delights of this world, that
have prompted me to devote my life in the cause of religion. But
I seek the favor of God and his apostle; and I have heard, from
one of the companions of the prophet, that the spirits of the
martyrs will be lodged in the crops of green birds, who shall
taste the fruits, and drink of the rivers, of paradise. Farewell,
we shall meet again among the groves and fountains which God has
provided for his elect." The faithful captives might exercise a
passive and more arduous resolution; and a cousin of Mahomet is
celebrated for refusing, after an abstinence of three days, the
wine and pork, the only nourishment that was allowed by the
malice of the infidels. The frailty of some weaker brethren
exasperated the implacable spirit of fanaticism; and the father
of Amer deplored, in pathetic strains, the apostasy and damnation
of a son, who had renounced the promises of God, and the
intercession of the prophet, to occupy, with the priests and
deacons, the lowest mansions of hell. The more fortunate Arabs,
who survived the war and persevered in the faith, were restrained
by their abstemious leader from the abuse of prosperity. After a
refreshment of three days, Abu Obeidah withdrew his troops from
the pernicious contagion of the luxury of Antioch, and assured
the caliph that their religion and virtue could only be preserved
by the hard discipline of poverty and labor. But the virtue of
Omar, however rigorous to himself, was kind and liberal to his
brethren. After a just tribute of praise and thanksgiving, he
dropped a tear of compassion; and sitting down on the ground,
wrote an answer, in which he mildly censured the severity of his
lieutenant: "God," said the successor of the prophet, "has not
forbidden the use of the good things of this world to faithful
men, and such as have performed good works. Therefore you ought
to have given them leave to rest themselves, and partake freely
of those good things which the country affordeth. If any of the
Saracens have no family in Arabia, they may marry in Syria; and
whosoever of them wants any female slaves, he may purchase as
many as he hath occasion for." The conquerors prepared to use, or
to abuse, this gracious permission; but the year of their triumph
was marked by a mortality of men and cattle; and twenty-five
thousand Saracens were snatched away from the possession of
Syria. The death of Abu Obeidah might be lamented by the
Christians; but his brethren recollected that he was one of the
ten elect whom the prophet had named as the heirs of paradise.
Caled survived his brethren about three years: and the tomb of
the Sword of God is shown in the neighborhood of Emesa. His
valor, which founded in Arabia and Syria the empire of the
caliphs, was fortified by the opinion of a special providence;
and as long as he wore a cap, which had been blessed by Mahomet,
he deemed himself invulnerable amidst the darts of the infidels.
*
The place of the first conquerors was supplied by a new
generation of their children and countrymen: Syria became the
seat and support of the house of Ommiyah; and the revenue, the
soldiers, the ships of that powerful kingdom were consecrated to
enlarge on every side the empire of the caliphs. But the Saracens
despise a superfluity of fame; and their historians scarcely
condescend to mention the subordinate conquests which are lost in
the splendor and rapidity of their victorious career. To the
north of Syria, they passed Mount
Taurus, and reduced to their obedience the province of Cilicia,
with its capital Tarsus, the ancient monument of the Assyrian
kings. Beyond a second ridge of the same mountains, they spread
the flame of war, rather than the light of religion, as far as
the shores of the Euxine, and the neighborhood of Constantinople.
To the east they advanced to the banks
and sources of the Euphrates and Tigris: the long disputed
barrier of Rome and Persia was forever confounded the walls of
Edessa and Amida, of Dara and Nisibis, which had resisted the
arms and engines of Sapor or Nushirvan, were levelled in the
dust; and the holy city of Abgarus might vainly produce the
epistle or the image of Christ to an unbelieving conqueror. To
the west the Syrian kingdom is bounded
by the sea: and the ruin of Aradus, a small island or peninsula
on the coast, was postponed during ten years. But the hills of
Libanus abounded in timber; the trade of Phnicia was populous in
mariners; and a fleet of seventeen hundred barks was equipped and
manned by the natives of the desert. The Imperial navy of the
Romans fled before them from the Pamphylian rocks to the
Hellespont; but the spirit of the emperor, a grandson of
Heraclius, had been subdued before the combat by a dream and a
pun. The Saracens rode masters of the sea; and the islands of
Cyprus, Rhodes, and the Cyclades, were successively exposed to
their rapacious visits. Three hundred years before the Christian
æra, the memorable though fruitless siege of Rhodes by
Demetrius had furnished that maritime republic with the materials
and the subject of a trophy. A gigantic statue of Apollo, or the
sun, seventy cubits in height, was erected at the entrance of the
harbor, a monument of the freedom and the arts of Greece. After
standing fifty-six years, the colossus of Rhodes was overthrown
by an earthquake; but the massy trunk, and huge fragments, lay
scattered eight centuries on the ground, and are often described
as one of the wonders of the ancient world. They were collected
by the diligence of the Saracens, and sold to a Jewish merchant
of Edessa, who is said to have laden nine hundred camels with the
weight of the brass metal; an enormous weight, though we should
include the hundred colossal figures, and the three thousand
statues, which adorned the prosperity of the city of the sun.
II. The conquest of Egypt may be explained by the character of
the victorious Saracen, one of the first of his nation, in an age
when the meanest of the brethren was exalted above his nature by
the spirit of enthusiasm. The birth of Amrou was at once base and
illustrious; his mother, a notorious prostitute, was unable to
decide among five of the Koreish; but the proof of resemblance
adjudged the child to Aasi, the oldest of her lovers. The youth
of Amrou was impelled by the passions and prejudices of his
kindred: his poetic genius was exercised in satirical verses
against the person and doctrine of Mahomet; his dexterity was
employed by the reigning faction to pursue the religious exiles
who had taken refuge in the court of the Æthiopian king.
Yet he returned from this embassy a secret proselyte; his reason
or his interest determined him to renounce the worship of idols;
he escaped from Mecca with his friend Caled; and the prophet of
Medina enjoyed at the same moment the satisfaction of embracing
the two firmest champions of his cause. The impatience of Amrou
to lead the armies of the faithful was checked by the reproof of
Omar, who advised him not to seek power and dominion, since he
who is a subject to-day, may be a prince to-morrow. Yet his merit
was not overlooked by the two first successors of Mahomet; they
were indebted to his arms for the conquest of Palestine; and in
all the battles and sieges of Syria, he united with the temper of
a chief the valor of an adventurous soldier. In a visit to
Medina, the caliph expressed a wish to survey the sword which had
cut down so many Christian warriors; the son of Aasi unsheathed a
short and ordinary cimeter; and as he perceived the surprise of
Omar, "Alas," said the modest Saracen, "the sword itself, without
the arm of its master, is neither sharper nor more weighty than
the sword of Pharezdak the poet." After the conquest of Egypt, he
was recalled by the jealousy of the caliph Othman; but in the
subsequent troubles, the ambition of a soldier, a statesman, and
an orator, emerged from a private station. His powerful support,
both in council and in the field, established the throne of the
Ommiades; the administration and revenue of Egypt were restored
by the gratitude of Moawiyah to a faithful friend who had raised
himself above the rank of a subject; and Amrou ended his days in
the palace and city which he had founded on the banks of the
Nile. His dying speech to his children is celebrated by the
Arabians as a model of eloquence and wisdom: he deplored the
errors of his youth but if the penitent was still infected by the
vanity of a poet, he might exaggerate the venom and mischief of
his impious compositions.
From his camp in Palestine, Amrou had surprised or anticipated
the caliph's leave for the invasion of Egypt. The magnanimous
Omar trusted in his God and his sword, which had shaken the
thrones of Chosroes and Cæsar: but when he compared the
slender force of the Moslems with the greatness of the
enterprise, he condemned his own rashness, and listened to his
timid companions. The pride and the greatness of Pharaoh were
familiar to the readers of the Koran; and a tenfold repetition of
prodigies had been scarcely sufficient to effect, not the
victory, but the flight, of six hundred thousand of the children
of Israel: the cities of Egypt were many and populous; their
architecture was strong and solid; the Nile, with its numerous
branches, was alone an insuperable barrier; and the granary of
the Imperial city would be obstinately defended by the Roman
powers. In this perplexity, the commander of the faithful
resigned himself to the decision of chance, or, in his opinion,
of Providence. At the head of only four thousand Arabs, the
intrepid Amrou had marched away from his station of Gaza when he
was overtaken by the messenger of Omar. "If you are still in
Syria," said the ambiguous mandate, "retreat without delay; but
if, at the receipt of this epistle, you have already reached the
frontiers of Egypt, advance with confidence, and depend on the
succor of God and of your brethren." The experience, perhaps the
secret intelligence, of Amrou had taught him to suspect the
mutability of courts; and he continued his march till his tents
were unquestionably pitched on Egyptian ground. He there
assembled his officers, broke the seal, perused the epistle,
gravely inquired the name and situation of the place, and
declared his ready obedience to the commands of the caliph. After
a siege of thirty days, he took possession of Farmah or Pelusium;
and that key of Egypt, as it has been justly named, unlocked the
entrance of the country as far as the ruins of Heliopolis and the
neighborhood of the modern Cairo.
On the Western side of the Nile, at a small distance to the
east of the Pyramids, at a small distance to the south of the
Delta, Memphis, one hundred and fifty furlongs in circumference,
displayed the magnificence of ancient kings. Under the reign of
the Ptolemies and Cæsars, the seat of government was
removed to the sea-coast; the ancient capital was eclipsed by the
arts and opulence of Alexandria; the palaces, and at length the
temples, were reduced to a desolate and ruinous condition: yet,
in the age of Augustus, and even in that of Constantine, Memphis
was still numbered among the greatest and most populous of the
provincial cities. The banks of the Nile, in this place of the
breadth of three thousand feet, were united by two bridges of
sixty and of thirty boats, connected in the middle stream by the
small island of Rouda, which was covered with gardens and
habitations. The eastern extremity of the bridge was terminated
by the town of Babylon and the camp of a Roman legion, which
protected the passage of the river and the second capital of
Egypt. This important fortress, which might fairly be described
as a part of Memphis or Misrah, was
invested by the arms of the lieutenant of Omar: a
reënforcement of four thousand Saracens soon arrived in his
camp; and the military engines, which battered the walls, may be
imputed to the art and labor of his Syrian allies. Yet the siege
was protracted to seven months; and the rash invaders were
encompassed and threatened by the inundation of the Nile. Their
last assault was bold and successful: they passed the ditch,
which had been fortified with iron spikes, applied their scaling
ladders, entered the fortress with the shout of "God is
victorious!" and drove the remnant of the Greeks to their boats
and the Isle of Rouda. The spot was afterwards recommended to the
conqueror by the easy communication with the gulf and the
peninsula of Arabia; the remains of Memphis were deserted; the
tents of the Arabs were converted into permanent habitations; and
the first mosch was blessed by the presence of fourscore
companions of Mahomet. A new city arose in their camp, on the
eastward bank of the Nile; and the contiguous quarters of Babylon
and Fostat are confounded in their present decay by the
appellation of old Misrah, or Cairo, of which they form an
extensive suburb. But the name of Cairo, the town of victory,
more strictly belongs to the modern capital, which was founded in
the tenth century by the Fatimite caliphs. It has gradually
receded from the river; but the continuity of buildings may be
traced by an attentive eye from the monuments of Sesostris to
those of Saladin.
Yet the Arabs, after a glorious and profitable enterprise,
must have retreated to the desert, had they not found a powerful
alliance in the heart of the country. The rapid conquest of
Alexander was assisted by the superstition and revolt of the
natives: they abhorred their Persian oppressors, the disciples of
the Magi, who had burnt the temples of Egypt, and feasted with
sacrilegious appetite on the flesh of the god Apis. After a
period of ten centuries, the same revolution was renewed by a
similar cause; and in the support of an incomprehensible creed,
the zeal of the Coptic Christians was equally ardent. I have
already explained the origin and progress of the Monophysite
controversy, and the persecution of the emperors, which converted
a sect into a nation, and alienated Egypt from their religion and
government. The Saracens were received as the deliverers of the
Jacobite church; and a secret and effectual treaty was opened
during the siege of Memphis between a victorious army and a
people of slaves. A rich and noble Egyptian, of the name of
Mokawkas, had dissembled his faith to obtain the administration
of his province: in the disorders of the Persian war he aspired
to independence: the embassy of Mahomet ranked him among princes;
but he declined, with rich gifts and ambiguous compliments, the
proposal of a new religion. The abuse of his trust exposed him to
the resentment of Heraclius: his submission was delayed by
arrogance and fear; and his conscience was prompted by interest
to throw himself on the favor of the nation and the support of
the Saracens. In his first conference with Amrou, he heard
without indignation the usual option of the Koran, the tribute,
or the sword. "The Greeks," replied Mokawkas, "are determined to
abide the determination of the sword; but with the Greeks I
desire no communion, either in this world or in the next, and I
abjure forever the Byzantine tyrant, his synod of Chalcedon, and
his Melchite slaves. For myself and my brethren, we are resolved
to live and die in the profession of the gospel and unity of
Christ. It is impossible for us to embrace the revelations of
your prophet; but we are desirous of peace, and cheerfully submit
to pay tribute and obedience to his temporal successors." The
tribute was ascertained at two pieces of gold for the head of
every Christian; but old men, monks, women, and children, of both
sexes, under sixteen years of age, were exempted from this
personal assessment: the Copts above and below Memphis swore
allegiance to the caliph, and promised a hospitable entertainment
of three days to every Mussulman who should travel through their
country. By this charter of security, the ecclesiastical and
civil tyranny of the Melchites was destroyed: the anathemas of
St. Cyril were thundered from every pulpit; and the sacred
edifices, with the patrimony of the church, were restored to the
national communion of the Jacobites, who enjoyed without
moderation the moment of triumph and revenge. At the pressing
summons of Amrou, their patriarch Benjamin emerged from his
desert; and after the first interview, the courteous Arab
affected to declare that he had never conversed with a Christian
priest of more innocent manners and a more venerable aspect. In
the march from Memphis to Alexandria, the lieutenant of Omar
intrusted his safety to the zeal and gratitude of the Egyptians:
the roads and bridges were diligently repaired; and in every step
of his progress, he could depend on a constant supply of
provisions and intelligence. The Greeks of Egypt, whose numbers
could scarcely equal a tenth of the natives, were overwhelmed by
the universal defection: they had ever been hated, they were no
longer feared: the magistrate fled from his tribunal, the bishop
from his altar; and the distant garrisons were surprised or
starved by the surrounding multitudes. Had not the Nile afforded
a safe and ready conveyance to the sea, not an individual could
have escaped, who by birth, or language, or office, or religion,
was connected with their odious name.
By the retreat of the Greeks from the provinces of Upper
Egypt, a considerable force was collected in the Island of Delta;
the natural and artificial channels of the Nile afforded a
succession of strong and defensible posts; and the road to
Alexandria was laboriously cleared by the victory of the Saracens
in two-and-twenty days of general or partial combat. In their
annals of conquest, the siege of Alexandria is perhaps the most
arduous and important enterprise. The first trading city in the
world was abundantly replenished with the means of subsistence
and defence. Her numerous inhabitants fought for the dearest of
human rights, religion and property; and the enmity of the
natives seemed to exclude them from the common benefit of peace
and toleration. The sea was continually open; and if Heraclius
had been awake to the public distress, fresh armies of Romans and
Barbarians might have been poured into the harbor to save the
second capital of the empire. A circumference of ten miles would
have scattered the forces of the Greeks, and favored the
stratagems of an active enemy; but the two sides of an oblong
square were covered by the sea and the Lake Maræotis, and
each of the narrow ends exposed a front of no more than ten
furlongs. The efforts of the Arabs were not inadequate to the
difficulty of the attempt and the value of the prize. From the
throne of Medina, the eyes of Omar were fixed on the camp and
city: his voice excited to arms the Arabian tribes and the
veterans of Syria; and the merit of a holy war was recommended by
the peculiar fame and fertility of Egypt. Anxious for the ruin or
expulsion of their tyrants, the faithful natives devoted their
labors to the service of Amrou: some sparks of martial spirit
were perhaps rekindled by the example of their allies; and the
sanguine hopes of Mokawkas had fixed his sepulchre in the church
of St. John of Alexandria. Eutychius the patriarch observes, that
the Saracens fought with the courage of lions: they repulsed the
frequent and almost daily sallies of the besieged, and soon
assaulted in their turn the walls and towers of the city. In
every attack, the sword, the banner of Amrou, glittered in the
van of the Moslems. On a memorable day, he was betrayed by his
imprudent valor: his followers who had entered the citadel were
driven back; and the general, with a friend and slave, remained a
prisoner in the hands of the Christians. When Amrou was conducted
before the præfect, he remembered his dignity, and forgot
his situation: a lofty demeanor, and resolute language, revealed
the lieutenant of the caliph, and the battle-axe of a soldier was
already raised to strike off the head of the audacious captive.
His life was saved by the readiness of his slave, who instantly
gave his master a blow on the face, and commanded him, with an
angry tone, to be silent in the presence of his superiors. The
credulous Greek was deceived: he listened to the offer of a
treaty, and his prisoners were dismissed in the hope of a more
respectable embassy, till the joyful acclamations of the camp
announced the return of their general, and insulted the folly of
the infidels. At length, after a siege of fourteen months, and
the loss of three-and-twenty thousand men, the Saracens
prevailed: the Greeks embarked their dispirited and diminished
numbers, and the standard of Mahomet was planted on the walls of
the capital of Egypt. "I have taken," said Amrou to the caliph,
"the great city of the West. It is impossible for me to enumerate
the variety of its riches and beauty; and I shall content myself
with observing, that it contains four thousand palaces, four
thousand baths, four hundred theatres or places of amusement,
twelve thousand shops for the sale of vegetable food, and forty
thousand tributary Jews. The town has been subdued by force of
arms, without treaty or capitulation, and the Moslems are
impatient to seize the fruits of their victory." The commander of
the faithful rejected with firmness the idea of pillage, and
directed his lieutenant to reserve the wealth and revenue of
Alexandria for the public service and the propagation of the
faith: the inhabitants were numbered; a tribute was imposed, the
zeal and resentment of the Jacobites were curbed, and the
Melchites who submitted to the Arabian yoke were indulged in the
obscure but tranquil exercise of their worship. The intelligence
of this disgraceful and calamitous event afflicted the declining
health of the emperor; and Heraclius died of a dropsy about seven
weeks after the loss of Alexandria. Under the minority of his
grandson, the clamors of a people, deprived of their daily
sustenance, compelled the Byzantine court to undertake the
recovery of the capital of Egypt. In the space of four years, the
harbor and fortifications of Alexandria were twice occupied by a
fleet and army of Romans. They were twice expelled by the valor
of Amrou, who was recalled by the domestic peril from the distant
wars of Tripoli and Nubia. But the facility of the attempt, the
repetition of the insult, and the obstinacy of the resistance,
provoked him to swear, that if a third time he drove the infidels
into the sea, he would render Alexandria as accessible on all
sides as the house of a prostitute. Faithful to his promise, he
dismantled several parts of the walls and towers; but the people
was spared in the chastisement of the city, and the mosch of
Mercy was erected on the spot where the
victorious general had stopped the fury of his troops.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
VII.
I should deceive the expectation of the reader, if I passed in
silence the fate of the Alexandrian library, as it is described
by the learned Abulpharagius. The spirit of Amrou was more
curious and liberal than that of his brethren, and in his leisure
hours, the Arabian chief was pleased with the conversation of
John, the last disciple of Ammonius, and who derived the surname
of Philoponus from his laborious
studies of grammar and philosophy. Emboldened by this familiar
intercourse, Philoponus presumed to solicit a gift, inestimable
in his opinion, contemptible in that of
the Barbarians -- the royal library, which alone, among the
spoils of Alexandria, had not been appropriated by the visit and
the seal of the conqueror. Amrou was inclined to gratify the wish
of the grammarian, but his rigid integrity refused to alienate
the minutest object without the consent of the caliph; and the
well-known answer of Omar was inspired by the ignorance of a
fanatic. "If these writings of the Greeks agree with the book of
God, they are useless, and need not be preserved: if they
disagree, they are pernicious, and ought to be destroyed." The
sentence was executed with blind obedience: the volumes of paper
or parchment were distributed to the four thousand baths of the
city; and such was their incredible multitude, that six months
were barely sufficient for the consumption of this precious fuel.
Since the Dynasties of Abulpharagius have been given to the world
in a Latin version, the tale has been repeatedly transcribed; and
every scholar, with pious indignation, has deplored the
irreparable shipwreck of the learning, the arts, and the genius,
of antiquity. For my own part, I am strongly tempted to deny both
the fact and the consequences. * The fact is indeed marvellous.
"Read and wonder!" says the historian himself: and the solitary
report of a stranger who wrote at the end of six hundred years on
the confines of Media, is overbalanced by the silence of two
annalist of a more early date, both Christians, both natives of
Egypt, and the most ancient of whom, the patriarch Eutychius, has
amply described the conquest of Alexandria. The rigid sentence of
Omar is repugnant to the sound and orthodox precept of the
Mahometan casuists they expressly declare, that the religious
books of the Jews and Christians, which are acquired by the right
of war, should never be committed to the flames; and that the
works of profane science, historians or poets, physicians or
philosophers, may be lawfully applied to the use of the faithful.
A more destructive zeal may perhaps be attributed to the first
successors of Mahomet; yet in this instance, the conflagration
would have speedily expired in the deficiency of materials. I
should not recapitulate the disasters of the Alexandrian library,
the involuntary flame that was kindled by Cæsar in his own
defence, or the mischievous bigotry of the Christians, who
studied to destroy the monuments of idolatry. But if we gradually
descend from the age of the Antonines to that of Theodosius, we
shall learn from a chain of contemporary witnesses, that the
royal palace and the temple of Serapis no longer contained the
four, or the seven, hundred thousand volumes, which had been
assembled by the curiosity and magnificence of the Ptolemies.
Perhaps the church and seat of the patriarchs might be enriched
with a repository of books; but if the ponderous mass of Arian
and Monophysite controversy were indeed consumed in the public
baths, a philosopher may allow, with a smile, that it was
ultimately devoted to the benefit of mankind. I sincerely regret
the more valuable libraries which have been involved in the ruin
of the Roman empire; but when I seriously compute the lapse of
ages, the waste of ignorance, and the calamities of war, our
treasures, rather than our losses, are the objects of my
surprise. Many curious and interesting facts are buried in
oblivion: the three great historians of Rome have been
transmitted to our hands in a mutilated state, and we are
deprived of many pleasing compositions of the lyric, iambic, and
dramatic poetry of the Greeks. Yet we should gratefully remember,
that the mischances of time and accident have spared the classic
works to which the suffrage of antiquity had adjudged the first
place of genius and glory: the teachers of ancient knowledge, who
are still extant, had perused and compared the writings of their
predecessors; nor can it fairly be presumed that any important
truth, any useful discovery in art or nature, has been snatched
away from the curiosity of modern ages.
In the administration of Egypt, Amrou balanced the demands of
justice and policy; the interest of the people of the law, who
were defended by God; and of the people of the alliance, who were
protected by man. In the recent tumult of conquest and
deliverance, the tongue of the Copts and the sword of the Arabs
were most adverse to the tranquillity of the province. To the
former, Amrou declared, that faction and falsehood would be
doubly chastised; by the punishment of the accusers, whom he
should detest as his personal enemies, and by the promotion of
their innocent brethren, whom their envy had labored to injure
and supplant. He excited the latter by the motives of religion
and honor to sustain the dignity of their character, to endear
themselves by a modest and temperate conduct to God and the
caliph, to spare and protect a people who had trusted to their
faith, and to content themselves with the legitimate and splendid
rewards of their victory. In the management of the revenue, he
disapproved the simple but oppressive mode of a capitation, and
preferred with reason a proportion of taxes deducted on every
branch from the clear profits of agriculture and commerce. A
third part of the tribute was appropriated to the annual repairs
of the dikes and canals, so essential to the public welfare.
Under his administration, the fertility of Egypt supplied the
dearth of Arabia; and a string of camels, laden with corn and
provisions, covered almost without an interval the long road from
Memphis to Medina. But the genius of Amrou soon renewed the
maritime communication which had been attempted or achieved by
the Pharaohs the Ptolemies, or the Cæsars; and a canal, at
least eighty miles in length, was opened from the Nile to the Red
Sea. * This inland navigation, which would have joined the
Mediterranean and the Indian Ocean, was soon discontinued as
useless and dangerous: the throne was removed from Medina to
Damascus, and the Grecian fleets might have explored a passage to
the holy cities of Arabia.
Of his new conquest, the caliph Omar had an imperfect
knowledge from the voice of fame and the legends of the Koran. He
requested that his lieutenant would place before his eyes the
realm of Pharaoh and the Amalekites; and the answer of Amrou
exhibits a lively and not unfaithful picture of that singular
country. "O commander of the faithful, Egypt is a compound of
black earth and green plants, between a pulverized mountain and a
red sand. The distance from Syene to the sea is a month's journey
for a horseman. Along the valley descends a river, on which the
blessing of the Most High reposes both in the evening and
morning, and which rises and falls with the revolutions of the
sun and moon. When the annual dispensation of Providence unlocks
the springs and fountains that nourish the earth, the Nile rolls
his swelling and sounding waters through the realm of Egypt: the
fields are overspread by the salutary flood; and the villages
communicate with each other in their painted barks. The retreat
of the inundation deposits a fertilizing mud for the reception of
the various seeds: the crowds of husbandmen who blacken the land
may be compared to a swarm of industrious ants; and their native
indolence is quickened by the lash of the task-master, and the
promise of the flowers and fruits of a plentiful increase. Their
hope is seldom deceived; but the riches which they extract from
the wheat, the barley, and the rice, the legumes, the
fruit-trees, and the cattle, are unequally shared between those
who labor and those who possess. According to the vicissitudes of
the seasons, the face of the country is adorned with a
silver wave, a verdant
emerald, and the deep yellow of a
golden harvest." Yet this beneficial
order is sometimes interrupted; and the long delay and sudden
swell of the river in the first year of the conquest might afford
some color to an edifying fable. It is said, that the annual
sacrifice of a virgin had been interdicted by the piety of Omar;
and that the Nile lay sullen and inactive in his shallow bed,
till the mandate of the caliph was cast into the obedient stream,
which rose in a single night to the height of sixteen cubits. The
admiration of the Arabs for their new conquest encouraged the
license of their romantic spirit. We may read, in the gravest
authors, that Egypt was crowded with twenty thousand cities or
villages: that, exclusive of the Greeks
and Arabs, the Copts alone were found, on the assessment, six
millions of tributary subjects, or twenty millions of either sex,
and of every age: that three hundred
millions of gold or silver were annually paid to the treasury of
the caliphs. Our reason must be startled by these extravagant
assertions; and they will become more palpable, if we assume the
compass and measure the extent of habitable ground: a valley from
the tropic to Memphis seldom broader than twelve miles, and the
triangle of the Delta, a flat surface of two thousand one hundred
square leagues, compose a twelfth part of the magnitude of
France. A more accurate research will justify a more reasonable
estimate. The three hundred millions, created by the error of a
scribe, are reduced to the decent revenue of four millions three
hundred thousand pieces of gold, of which nine hundred thousand
were consumed by the pay of the soldiers. Two authentic lists, of
the present and of the twelfth century, are circumscribed within
the respectable number of two thousand seven hundred villages and
towns. After a long residence at Cairo, a French consul has
ventured to assign about four millions of Mahometans, Christians,
and Jews, for the ample, though not incredible, scope of the
population of Egypt.
IV. The conquest of Africa, from the Nile to the Atlantic
Ocean, was first attempted by the arms of the caliph Othman. The
pious design was approved by the companions of Mahomet and the
chiefs of the tribes; and twenty thousand Arabs marched from
Medina, with the gifts and the blessing of the commander of the
faithful. They were joined in the camp of Memphis by twenty
thousand of their countrymen; and the conduct of the war was
intrusted to Abdallah, the son of Said and the foster-brother of
the caliph, who had lately supplanted the conqueror and
lieutenant of Egypt. Yet the favor of the prince, and the merit
of his favorite, could not obliterate the guilt of his apostasy.
The early conversion of Abdallah, and his skilful pen, had
recommended him to the important office of transcribing the
sheets of the Koran: he betrayed his trust, corrupted the text,
derided the errors which he had made, and fled to Mecca to escape
the justice, and expose the ignorance, of the apostle. After the
conquest of Mecca, he fell prostrate at the feet of Mahomet; his
tears, and the entreaties of Othman, extorted a reluctant pardon;
out the prophet declared that he had so long hesitated, to allow
time for some zealous disciple to avenge his injury in the blood
of the apostate. With apparent fidelity and effective merit, he
served the religion which it was no longer his interest to
desert: his birth and talents gave him an honorable rank among
the Koreish; and, in a nation of cavalry, Abdallah was renowned
as the boldest and most dexterous horseman of Arabia. At the head
of forty thousand Moslems, he advanced from Egypt into the
unknown countries of the West. The sands of Barca might be
impervious to a Roman legion but the Arabs were attended by their
faithful camels; and the natives of the desert beheld without
terror the familiar aspect of the soil and climate. After a
painful march, they pitched their tents before the walls of
Tripoli, a maritime city in which the name, the wealth, and the
inhabitants of the province had gradually centred, and which now
maintains the third rank among the states of Barbary. A
reënforcement of Greeks was surprised and cut in pieces on
the sea-shore; but the fortifications of Tripoli resisted the
first assaults; and the Saracens were tempted by the approach of
the præfect Gregory to relinquish the labors of the siege
for the perils and the hopes of a decisive action. If his
standard was followed by one hundred and twenty thousand men, the
regular bands of the empire must have been lost in the naked and
disorderly crowd of Africans and Moors, who formed the strength,
or rather the numbers, of his host. He rejected with indignation
the option of the Koran or the tribute; and during several days
the two armies were fiercely engaged from the dawn of light to
the hour of noon, when their fatigue and the excessive heat
compelled them to seek shelter and refreshment in their
respective camps. The daughter of Gregory, a maid of incomparable
beauty and spirit, is said to have fought by his side: from her
earliest youth she was trained to mount on horseback, to draw the
bow, and to wield the cimeter; and the richness of her arms and
apparel were conspicuous in the foremost ranks of the battle. Her
hand, with a hundred thousand pieces of gold, was offered for the
head of the Arabian general, and the youths of Africa were
excited by the prospect of the glorious prize. At the pressing
solicitation of his brethren, Abdallah withdrew his person from
the field; but the Saracens were discouraged by the retreat of
their leader, and the repetition of these equal or unsuccessful
conflicts.
A noble Arabian, who afterwards became the adversary of Ali,
and the father of a caliph, had signalized his valor in Egypt,
and Zobeir was the first who planted the scaling-ladder against
the walls of Babylon. In the African war he was detached from the
standard of Abdallah. On the news of the battle, Zobeir, with
twelve companions, cut his way through the camp of the Greeks,
and pressed forwards, without tasting either food or repose, to
partake of the dangers of his brethren. He cast his eyes round
the field: "Where," said he, "is our general?" "In his tent." "Is
the tent a station for the general of the Moslems?" Abdallah
represented with a blush the importance of his own life, and the
temptation that was held forth by the Roman præfect.
"Retort," said Zobeir, "on the infidels their ungenerous attempt.
Proclaim through the ranks that the head of Gregory shall be
repaid with his captive daughter, and the equal sum of one
hundred thousand pieces of gold." To the courage and discretion
of Zobeir the lieutenant of the caliph intrusted the execution of
his own stratagem, which inclined the long-disputed balance in
favor of the Saracens. Supplying by activity and artifice the
deficiency of numbers, a part of their forces lay concealed in
their tents, while the remainder prolonged an irregular skirmish
with the enemy till the sun was high in the heavens. On both
sides they retired with fainting steps: their horses were
unbridled, their armor was laid aside, and the hostile nations
prepared, or seemed to prepare, for the refreshment of the
evening, and the encounter of the ensuing day. On a sudden the
charge was sounded; the Arabian camp poured forth a swarm of
fresh and intrepid warriors; and the long line of the Greeks and
Africans was surprised, assaulted, overturned, by new squadrons
of the faithful, who, to the eye of fanaticism, might appear as a
band of angels descending from the sky. The præfect himself
was slain by the hand of Zobeir: his daughter, who sought revenge
and death, was surrounded and made prisoner; and the fugitives
involved in their disaster the town of Sufetula, to which they
escaped from the sabres and lances of the Arabs. Sufetula was
built one hundred and fifty miles to the south of Carthage: a
gentle declivity is watered by a running stream, and shaded by a
grove of juniper-trees; and, in the ruins of a triumphal arch, a
portico, and three temples of the Corinthian order, curiosity may
yet admire the magnificence of the Romans. After the fall of this
opulent city, the provincials and Barbarians implored on all
sides the mercy of the conqueror. His vanity or his zeal might be
flattered by offers of tribute or professions of faith: but his
losses, his fatigues, and the progress of an epidemical disease,
prevented a solid establishment; and the Saracens, after a
campaign of fifteen months, retreated to the confines of Egypt,
with the captives and the wealth of their African expedition. The
caliph's fifth was granted to a favorite, on the nominal payment
of five hundred thousand pieces of gold; but the state was doubly
injured by this fallacious transaction, if each foot-soldier had
shared one thousand, and each horseman three thousand, pieces, in
the real division of the plunder. The author of the death of
Gregory was expected to have claimed the most precious reward of
the victory: from his silence it might be presumed that he had
fallen in the battle, till the tears and exclamations of the
præfect's daughter at the sight of Zobeir revealed the
valor and modesty of that gallant soldier. The unfortunate virgin
was offered, and almost rejected as a slave, by her father's
murderer, who coolly declared that his sword was consecrated to
the service of religion; and that he labored for a recompense far
above the charms of mortal beauty, or the riches of this
transitory life. A reward congenial to his temper was the
honorable commission of announcing to the caliph Othman the
success of his arms. The companions the chiefs, and the people,
were assembled in the mosch of Medina, to hear the interesting
narrative of Zobeir; and as the orator forgot nothing except the
merit of his own counsels and actions, the name of Abdallah was
joined by the Arabians with the heroic names of Caled and
Amrou.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
VIII.
The Western conquests of the Saracens were suspended near
twenty years, till their dissensions were composed by the
establishment of the house of Ommiyah; and the caliph Moawiyah
was invited by the cries of the Africans themselves. The
successors of Heraclius had been informed of the tribute which
they had been compelled to stipulate with the Arabs, but instead
of being moved to pity and relieve their distress, they imposed,
as an equivalent or a fine, a second tribute of a similar amount.
The ears of the Byzantine ministers were shut against the
complaints of their poverty and ruin: their despair was reduced
to prefer the dominion of a single master; and the extortions of
the patriarch of Carthage, who was invested with civil and
military power, provoked the sectaries, and even the Catholics of
the Roman province, to abjure the religion as well as the
authority of their tyrants. The first lieutenant of Moawiyah
acquired a just renown, subdued an important city, defeated an
army of thirty thousand Greeks, swept away fourscore thousand
captives, and enriched with their spoils the bold adventures of
Syria and Egypt. But the title of conqueror of Africa is more
justly due to his successor Akbah. He marched from Damascus at
the head of ten thousand of the bravest Arabs; and the genuine
force of the Moslems was enlarged by the doubtful aid and
conversion of many thousand Barbarians. It would be difficult,
nor is it necessary, to trace the accurate line of the progress
of Akbah. The interior regions have been peopled by the Orientals
with fictitious armies and imaginary citadels. In the warlike
province of Zab, or Numidia, fourscore thousand of the natives
might assemble in arms; but the number of three hundred and sixty
towns is incompatible with the ignorance or decay of husbandry;
and a circumference of three leagues will not be justified by the
ruins of Erbe or Lambesa, the ancient metropolis of that inland
country. As we approach the seacoast, the well-known cities of
Bugia and Tangier define the more certain limits of the Saracen
victories. A remnant of trade still adheres to the commodious
harbor of Bugia which, in a more prosperous age, is said to have
contained about twenty thousand houses; and the plenty of iron
which is dug from the adjacent mountains might have supplied a
braver people with the instruments of defence. The remote
position and venerable antiquity of Tingi, or Tangier, have been
decorated by the Greek and Arabian fables; but the figurative
expressions of the latter, that the walls were constructed of
brass, and that the roofs were covered with gold and silver, may
be interpreted as the emblems of strength and opulence. The
provinces of Mauritania Tingitana, which assumed the name of the
capital, had been imperfectly discovered and settled by the
Romans; the five colonies were confined to a narrow pale, and the
more southern parts were seldom explored except by the agents of
luxury, who searched the forests for ivory and the citron-wood,
and the shores of the ocean for the purple shell-fish. The
fearless Akbah plunged into the heart of the country, traversed
the wilderness in which his successors erected the splendid
capitals of Fez and Morocco, and at length penetrated to the
verge of the Atlantic and the great desert. The river Sus
descends from the western sides of Mount Atlas, fertilizes, like
the Nile, the adjacent soil, and falls into the sea at a moderate
distance from the Canary, or Fortunate Islands. Its banks were
inhabited by the last of the Moors, a race of savages, without
laws, or discipline, or religion; they were astonished by the
strange and irresistible terrors of the Oriental arms; and as
they possessed neither gold nor silver, the riches spoil was the
beauty of the female captives, some of whom were afterwards sold
for a thousand pieces of gold. The career, though not the zeal,
of Akbah was checked by the prospect of a boundless ocean. He
spurred his horse into the waves, and raising his eyes to heaven,
exclaimed with a tone of a fanatic, "Great God! if my course were
not stopped by this sea, I would still go on, to the unknown
kingdoms of the West, preaching the unity of thy holy name, and
putting to the sword the rebellious nations who worship any other
Gods than thee." Yet this Mahometan Alexander, who sighed for new
worlds, was unable to preserve his recent conquests. By the
universal defection of the Greeks and Africans, he was recalled
from the shores of the Atlantic, and the surrounding multitudes
left him only the resource of an honorable death. The last scene
was dignified by an example of national virtue. An ambitious
chief, who had disputed the command and failed in the attempt,
was led about as a prisoner in the camp of the Arabian general.
The insurgents had trusted to his discontent and revenge; he
disdained their offers, and revealed their designs. In the hour
of danger, the grateful Akbah unlocked his fetters, and advised
him to retire; he chose to die under the banner of his rival.
Embracing as friends and martyrs, they unsheathed their cimeters,
broke their scabbards, and maintained an obstinate combat, till
they fell by each other's side on the last of their slaughtered
countrymen. The third general or governor of Africa, Zuheir,
avenged and encountered the fate of his predecessor. He
vanquished the natives in many battles; he was overthrown by a
powerful army, which Constantinople had sent to the relief of
Carthage.
It had been the frequent practice of the Moorish tribes to
join the invaders, to share the plunder, to profess the faith,
and to revolt to their savage state of independence and idolatry,
on the first retreat or misfortune of the Moslems. The prudence
of Akbah had proposed to found an Arabian colony in the heart of
Africa; a citadel that might curb the levity of the Barbarians, a
place of refuge to secure, against the accidents of war, the
wealth and the families of the Saracens. With this view, and
under the modest title of the station of a caravan, he planted
this colony in the fiftieth year of the Hegira. In the present
decay, Cairoan still holds the second rank in the kingdom of
Tunis, from which it is distant about fifty miles to the south:
its inland situation, twelve miles westward of the sea, has
protected the city from the Greek and Sicilian fleets. When the
wild beasts and serpents were extirpated, when the forest, or
rather wilderness, was cleared, the vestiges of a Roman town were
discovered in a sandy plain: the vegetable food of Cairoan is
brought from afar; and the scarcity of springs constrains the
inhabitants to collect in cisterns and reservoirs a precarious
supply of rain-water. These obstacles were subdued by the
industry of Akbah; he traced a circumference of three thousand
and six hundred paces, which he encompassed with a brick wall; in
the space of five years, the governor's palace was surrounded
with a sufficient number of private habitations; a spacious mosch
was supported by five hundred columns of granite, porphyry, and
Numidian marble; and Cairoan became the seat of learning as well
as of empire. But these were the glories of a later age; the new
colony was shaken by the successive defeats of Akbah and Zuheir,
and the western expeditions were again interrupted by the civil
discord of the Arabian monarchy. The son of the valiant Zobeir
maintained a war of twelve years, a siege of seven months against
the house of Ommiyah. Abdallah was said to unite the fierceness
of the lion with the subtlety of the fox; but if he inherited the
courage, he was devoid of the generosity, of his father.
The return of domestic peace allowed the caliph Abdalmalek to
resume the conquest of Africa; the standard was delivered to
Hassan, governor of Egypt, and the revenue of that kingdom, with
an army of forty thousand men, was consecrated to the important
service. In the vicissitudes of war, the interior provinces had
been alternately won and lost by the Saracens. But the sea-coast
still remained in the hands of the Greeks; the predecessors of
Hassan had respected the name and fortifications of Carthage; and
the number of its defenders was recruited by the fugitives of
Cabes and Tripoli. The arms of Hassan, were bolder and more
fortunate: he reduced and pillaged the metropolis of Africa; and
the mention of scaling-ladders may justify the suspicion that he
anticipated, by a sudden assault, the more tedious operations of
a regular siege. But the joy of the conquerors was soon disturbed
by the appearance of the Christian succors. The præfect and
patrician John, a general of experience and renown, embarked at
Constantinople the forces of the Eastern empire; they were joined
by the ships and soldiers of Sicily, and a powerful reenforcement
of Goths was obtained from the fears and religion of the Spanish
monarch. The weight of the confederate navy broke the chain that
guarded the entrance of the harbor; the Arabs retired to Cairoan,
or Tripoli; the Christians landed; the citizens hailed the ensign
of the cross, and the winter was idly wasted in the dream of
victory or deliverance. But Africa was irrecoverably lost; the
zeal and resentment of the commander of the faithful prepared in
the ensuing spring a more numerous armament by sea and land; and
the patrician in his turn was compelled to evacuate the post and
fortifications of Carthage. A second battle was fought in the
neighborhood of Utica: the Greeks and Goths were again defeated;
and their timely embarkation saved them from the sword of Hassan,
who had invested the slight and insufficient rampart of their
camp. Whatever yet remained of Carthage was delivered to the
flames, and the colony of Dido and Cæsar lay desolate above
two hundred years, till a part, perhaps a twentieth, of the old
circumference was repeopled by the first of the Fatimite caliphs.
In the beginning of the sixteenth century, the second capital of
the West was represented by a mosch, a college without students,
twenty-five or thirty shops, and the huts of five hundred
peasants, who, in their abject poverty, displayed the arrogance
of the Punic senators. Even that paltry village was swept away by
the Spaniards whom Charles the Fifth had stationed in the
fortress of the Goletta. The ruins of Carthage have perished; and
the place might be unknown if some broken arches of an aqueduct
did not guide the footsteps of the inquisitive traveller.
The Greeks were expelled, but the Arabians were not yet
masters of the country. In the interior provinces the Moors or
Berbers, so feeble under the first
Cæsars, so formidable to the Byzantine princes, maintained
a disorderly resistance to the religion and power of the
successors of Mahomet. Under the standard of their queen Cahina,
the independent tribes acquired some degree of union and
discipline; and as the Moors respected in their females the
character of a prophetess, they attacked the invaders with an
enthusiasm similar to their own. The veteran bands of Hassan were
inadequate to the defence of Africa: the conquests of an age were
lost in a single day; and the Arabian chief, overwhelmed by the
torrent, retired to the confines of Egypt, and expected, five
years, the promised succors of the caliph. After the retreat of
the Saracens, the victorious prophetess assembled the Moorish
chiefs, and recommended a measure of strange and savage policy.
"Our cities," said she, "and the gold and silver which they
contain, perpetually attract the arms of the Arabs. These vile
metals are not the objects of our ambition; we content ourselves
with the simple productions of the earth. Let us destroy these
cities; let us bury in their ruins those pernicious treasures;
and when the avarice of our foes shall be destitute of
temptation, perhaps they will cease to disturb the tranquillity
of a warlike people." The proposal was accepted with unanimous
applause. From Tangier to Tripoli, the buildings, or at least the
fortifications, were demolished, the fruit-trees were cut down,
the means of subsistence were extirpated, a fertile and populous
garden was changed into a desert, and the historians of a more
recent period could discern the frequent traces of the prosperity
and devastation of their ancestors. Such is the tale of the
modern Arabians. Yet I strongly suspect that their ignorance of
antiquity, the love of the marvellous, and the fashion of
extolling the philosophy of Barbarians, has induced them to
describe, as one voluntary act, the calamities of three hundred
years since the first fury of the Donatists and Vandals. In the
progress of the revolt, Cahina had most probably contributed her
share of destruction; and the alarm of universal ruin might
terrify and alienate the cities that had reluctantly yielded to
her unworthy yoke. They no longer hoped, perhaps they no longer
wished, the return of their Byzantine sovereigns: their present
servitude was not alleviated by the benefits of order and
justice; and the most zealous Catholic must prefer the imperfect
truths of the Koran to the blind and rude idolatry of the Moors.
The general of the Saracens was again received as the savior of
the province: the friends of civil society conspired against the
savages of the land; and the royal prophetess was slain, in the
first battle, which overturned the baseless fabric of her
superstition and empire. The same spirit revived under the
successor of Hassan: it was finally quelled by the activity of
Musa and his two sons; but the number of the rebels may be
presumed from that of three hundred thousand captives; sixty
thousand of whom, the caliph's fifth, were sold for the profit of
the public treasury. Thirty thousand of the Barbarian youth were
enlisted in the troops; and the pious labors of Musa, to
inculcate the knowledge and practice of the Koran, accustomed the
Africans to obey the apostle of God and the commander of the
faithful. In their climate and government, their diet and
habitation, the wandering Moors resembled the Bedoweens of the
desert. With the religion they were proud to adopt the language,
name, and origin, of Arabs: the blood of the strangers and
natives was insensibly mingled; and from the Euphrates to the
Atlantic, the same nation might seem to be diffused over the
sandy plains of Asia and Africa. Yet I will not deny that fifty
thousand tents of pure Arabians might be transported over the
Nile, and scattered through the Libyan desert: and I am not
ignorant that five of the Moorish tribes still retain their
barbarous idiom, with the appellation
and character of white Africans.
V. In the progress of conquest from the north and south, the
Goths and the Saracens encountered each other on the confines of
Europe and Africa. In the opinion of the latter, the difference
of religion is a reasonable ground of enmity and warfare.
As early as the time of Othman, their piratical squadrons had
ravaged the coast of Andalusia; nor had they forgotten the relief
of Carthage by the Gothic succors. In that age, as well as in the
present, the kings of Spain were possessed of the fortress of
Ceuta; one of the columns of Hercules, which is divided by a
narrow strait from the opposite pillar or point of Europe. A
small portion of Mauritania was still wanting to the African
conquest; but Musa, in the pride of victory, was repulsed from
the walls of Ceuta, by the vigilance and courage of Count Julian,
the general of the Goths. From his disappointment and perplexity,
Musa was relieved by an unexpected message of the Christian
chief, who offered his place, his person, and his sword, to the
successors of Mahomet, and solicited the disgraceful honor of
introducing their arms into the heart of Spain. If we inquire
into the cause of his treachery, the Spaniards will repeat the
popular story of his daughter Cava; * of a virgin who was
seduced, or ravished, by her sovereign; of a father who
sacrificed his religion and country to the thirst of revenge. The
passions of princes have often been licentious and destructive;
but this well-known tale, romantic in itself, is indifferently
supported by external evidence; and the history of Spain will
suggest some motive of interest and policy more congenial to the
breast of a veteran statesman. After the decease or deposition of
Witiza, his two sons were supplanted by the ambition of Roderic,
a noble Goth, whose father, the duke or governor of a province,
had fallen a victim to the preceding tyranny. The monarchy was
still elective; but the sons of Witiza, educated on the steps of
the throne, were impatient of a private station. Their resentment
was the more dangerous, as it was varnished with the
dissimulation of courts: their followers were excited by the
remembrance of favors and the promise of a revolution; and their
uncle Oppas, archbishop of Toledo and Seville, was the first
person in the church, and the second in the state. It is probable
that Julian was involved in the disgrace of the unsuccessful
faction; that he had little to hope and much to fear from the new
reign; and that the imprudent king could not forget or forgive
the injuries which Roderic and his family had sustained. The
merit and influence of the count rendered him a useful or
formidable subject: his estates were ample, his followers bold
and numerous; and it was too fatally shown, that, by his
Andalusian and Mauritanian commands, he held in his hand the keys
of the Spanish monarchy. Too feeble, however, to meet his
sovereign in arms, he sought the aid of a foreign power; and his
rash invitation of the Moors and Arabs produced the calamities of
eight hundred years. In his epistles, or in a personal interview,
he revealed the wealth and nakedness of his country; the weakness
of an unpopular prince; the degeneracy of an effeminate people.
The Goths were no longer the victorious Barbarians , who had
humbled the pride of Rome, despoiled the queen of nations, and
penetrated from the Danube to the Atlantic Ocean. Secluded from
the world by the Pyrenæan mountains, the successors of
Alaric had slumbered in a long peace: the walls of the cities
were mouldered into dust: the youth had abandoned the exercise of
arms; and the presumption of their ancient renown would expose
them in a field of battle to the first assault of the invaders.
The ambitious Saracen was fired by the ease and importance of the
attempt; but the execution was delayed till he had consulted the
commander of the faithful; and his messenger returned with the
permission of Walid to annex the unknown kingdoms of the West to
the religion and throne of the caliphs. In his residence of
Tangier, Musa, with secrecy and caution, continued his
correspondence and hastened his preparations. But the remorse of
the conspirators was soothed by the fallacious assurance that he
should content himself with the glory and spoil, without aspiring
to establish the Moslems beyond the sea that separates Africa
from Europe.
Before Musa would trust an army of the faithful to the
traitors and infidels of a foreign land, he made a less dangerous
trial of their strength and veracity. One hundred Arabs, and four
hundred Africans, passed over, in four vessels, from Tangier or
Ceuta: the place of their descent on the opposite shore of the
strait is marked by the name of Tarif their chief; and the date
of this memorable event is fixed to the month of Ramadan, of the
ninety-first year of the Hegira, to the month of July, seven
hundred and forty-eight years from the Spanish æra of
Cæsar, seven hundred and ten after the birth of Christ.
From their first station, they marched eighteen miles through a
hilly country to the castle and town of Julian: on which (it is
still called Algezire) they bestowed the name of the Green
Island, from a verdant cape that advances into the sea. Their
hospitable entertainment, the Christians who joined their
standard, their inroad into a fertile and unguarded province, the
richness of their spoil, and the safety of their return,
announced to their brethren and the most favorable omens of
victory. In the ensuing spring, five thousand veterans and
volunteers were embarked under the command of Tarik, a dauntless
and skilful soldier, who surpassed the expectation of his chief;
and the necessary transports were provided by the industry of
their too faithful ally. The Saracens landed at the pillar or
point of Europe; the corrupt and familiar appellation of
Gibraltar (Gebel al Tarik) describes
the mountain of Tarik; and the intrenchments of his camp were the
first outline of those fortifications, which, in the hands of our
countrymen, have resisted the art and power of the house of
Bourbon. The adjacent governors informed the court of Toledo of
the descent and progress of the Arabs; and the defeat of his
lieutenant Edeco, who had been commanded to seize and bind the
presumptuous strangers, admonished Roderic of the magnitude of
the danger. At the royal summons, the dukes and counts, the
bishops and nobles of the Gothic monarchy, assembled at the head
of their followers; and the title of King of the Romans, which is
employed by an Arabic historian, may be excused by the close
affinity of language, religion, and manners, between the nations
of Spain. His army consisted of ninety or a hundred thousand men;
a formidable power, if their fidelity and discipline had been
adequate to their numbers. The troops of Tarik had been augmented
to twelve thousand Saracens; but the Christian malecontents were
attracted by the influence of Julian, and a crowd of Africans
most greedily tasted the temporal blessings of the Koran. In the
neighborhood of Cadiz, the town of Xeres has been illustrated by
the encounter which determined the fate of the kingdom; the
stream of the Guadalete, which falls into the bay, divided the
two camps, and marked the advancing and retreating skirmishes of
three successive and bloody days. On the fourth day, the two
armies joined a more serious and decisive issue; but Alaric would
have blushed at the sight of his unworthy successor, sustaining
on his head a diadem of pearls, encumbered with a flowing robe of
gold and silken embroidery, and reclining on a litter or car of
ivory drawn by two white mules. Notwithstanding the valor of the
Saracens, they fainted under the weight of multitudes, and the
plain of Xeres was overspread with sixteen thousand of their dead
bodies. "My brethren," said Tarik to his surviving companions,
"the enemy is before you, the sea is behind; whither would ye
fly? Follow your genera: I am resolved either to lose my life, or
to trample on the prostrate king of the Romans." Besides the
resource of despair, he confided in the secret correspondence and
nocturnal interviews of Count Julian with the sons and the
brother of Witiza. The two princes and the archbishop of Toledo
occupied the most important post: their well-timed defection
broke the ranks of the Christians; each warrior was prompted by
fear or suspicion to consult his personal safety; and the remains
of the Gothic army were scattered or destroyed in the flight and
pursuit of the three following days. Amidst the general disorder,
Roderic started from his car, and mounted Orelia, the fleetest of
his horses; but he escaped from a soldier's death to perish more
ignobly in the waters of the Btis or Guadalquivir. His diadem,
his robes, and his courser, were found on the bank; but as the
body of the Gothic prince was lost in the waves, the pride and
ignorance of the caliph must have been gratified with some meaner
head, which was exposed in triumph before the palace of Damascus.
"And such," continues a valiant historian of the Arabs, "is the
fate of those kings who withdraw themselves from a field of
battle."
Count Julian had plunged so deep into guilt and infamy, that
his only hope was in the ruin of his country. After the battle of
Xeres, he recommended the most effectual measures to the
victorious Saracen. "The king of the Goths is slain; their
princes have fled before you, the army is routed, the nation is
astonished. Secure with sufficient detachments the cities of
Btica; but in person, and without delay, march to the royal city
of Toledo, and allow not the distracted Christians either time or
tranquillity for the election of a new monarch." Tarik listened
to his advice. A Roman captive and proselyte, who had been
enfranchised by the caliph himself, assaulted Cordova with seven
hundred horse: he swam the river, surprised the town, and drove
the Christians into the great church, where they defended
themselves above three months. Another detachment reduced the
sea-coast of Btica, which in the last period of the Moorish power
has comprised in a narrow space the populous kingdom of Grenada.
The march of Tarik from the Btis to the Tagus was directed
through the Sierra Morena, that separates Andalusia and Castille,
till he appeared in arms under the walls of Toledo. The most
zealous of the Catholics had escaped with the relics of their
saints; and if the gates were shut, it was only till the victor
had subscribed a fair and reasonable capitulation. The voluntary
exiles were allowed to depart with their effects; seven churches
were appropriated to the Christian worship; the archbishop and
his clergy were at liberty to exercise their functions, the monks
to practise or neglect their penance; and the Goths and Romans
were left in all civil and criminal cases to the subordinate
jurisdiction of their own laws and magistrates. But if the
justice of Tarik protected the Christians, his gratitude and
policy rewarded the Jews, to whose secret or open aid he was
indebted for his most important acquisitions. Persecuted by the
kings and synods of Spain, who had often pressed the alternative
of banishment or baptism, that outcast nation embraced the moment
of revenge: the comparison of their past and present state was
the pledge of their fidelity; and the alliance between the
disciples of Moses and of Mahomet was maintained till the final
æra of their common expulsion. From the royal seat of
Toledo, the Arabian leader spread his conquests to the north,
over the modern realms of Castille and Leon; but it is needless
to enumerate the cities that yielded on his approach, or again to
describe the table of emerald, transported from the East by the
Romans, acquired by the Goths among the spoils of Rome, and
presented by the Arabs to the throne of Damascus. Beyond the
Asturian mountains, the maritime town of Gijon was the term of
the lieutenant of Musa, who had performed, with the speed of a
traveller, his victorious march, of seven hundred miles, from the
rock of Gibraltar to the Bay of Biscay. The failure of land
compelled him to retreat; and he was recalled to Toledo, to
excuse his presumption of subduing a kingdom in the absence of
his general. Spain, which, in a more savage and disorderly state,
had resisted, two hundred years, the arms of the Romans, was
overrun in a few months by those of the Saracens; and such was
the eagerness of submission and treaty, that the governor of
Cordova is recorded as the only chief who fell, without
conditions, a prisoner into their hands. The cause of the Goths
had been irrevocably judged in the field of Xeres; and, in the
national dismay, each part of the monarchy declined a contest
with the antagonist who had vanquished the united strength of the
whole. That strength had been wasted by two successive seasons of
famine and pestilence; and the governors, who were impatient to
surrender, might exaggerate the difficulty of collecting the
provisions of a siege. To disarm the Christians, superstition
likewise contributed her terrors: and the subtle Arab encouraged
the report of dreams, omens, and prophecies, and of the portraits
of the destined conquerors of Spain, that were discovered on
breaking open an apartment of the royal palace. Yet a spark of
the vital flame was still alive: some invincible fugitives
preferred a life of poverty and freedom in the Asturian valleys;
the hardy mountaineers repulsed the slaves of the caliph; and the
sword of Pelagius has been transformed into the sceptre of the
Catholic kings.
Chapter LI: Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
IX.
On the intelligence of this rapid success, the applause of
Musa degenerated into envy; and he began, not to complain, but to
fear, that Tarik would leave him nothing to subdue. At the head
of ten thousand Arabs and eight thousand Africans, he passed over
in person from Mauritania to Spain: the first of his companions
were the noblest of the Koreish; his eldest son was left in the
command of Africa; the three younger brethren were of an age and
spirit to second the boldest enterprises of their father. At his
landing in Algezire, he was respectfully entertained by Count
Julian, who stifled his inward remorse, and testified, both in
words and actions, that the victory of the Arabs had not impaired
his attachment to their cause. Some enemies yet remained for the
sword of Musa. The tardy repentance of the Goths had compared
their own numbers and those of the invaders; the cities from
which the march of Tarik had declined considered themselves as
impregnable; and the bravest patriots defended the fortifications
of Seville and Merida. They were successively besieged and
reduced by the labor of Musa, who transported his camp from the
Btis to the Anas, from the Guadalquivir to the Guadiana. When he
beheld the works of Roman magnificence, the bridge, the
aqueducts, the triumphal arches, and the theatre, of the ancient
metropolis of Lusitania, "I should imagine," said he to his four
companions, "that the human race must have united their art and
power in the foundation of this city: happy is the man who shall
become its master!" He aspired to that happiness, but the
Emeritans sustained on this occasion
the honor of their descent from the veteran legionaries of
Augustus Disdaining the confinement of their walls, they gave
battle to the Arabs on the plain; but an ambuscade rising from
the shelter of a quarry, or a ruin, chastised their indiscretion,
and intercepted their return. The wooden turrets of assault were
rolled forwards to the foot of the rampart; but the defence of
Merida was obstinate and long; and the castle of the
martyrs was a perpetual testimony of the losses of
the Moslems. The constancy of the besieged was at length subdued
by famine and despair; and the prudent victor disguised his
impatience under the names of clemency and esteem. The
alternative of exile or tribute was allowed; the churches were
divided between the two religions; and the wealth of those who
had fallen in the siege, or retired to Gallicia, was confiscated
as the reward of the faithful. In the midway between Merida and
Toledo, the lieutenant of Musa saluted the vicegerent of the
caliph, and conducted him to the palace of the Gothic kings.
Their first interview was cold and formal: a rigid account was
exacted of the treasures of Spain: the character of Tarik was
exposed to suspicion and obloquy; and the hero was imprisoned,
reviled, and ignominiously scourged by the hand, or the command,
of Musa. Yet so strict was the discipline, so pure the zeal, or
so tame the spirit, of the primitive Moslems, that, after this
public indignity, Tarik could serve and be trusted in the
reduction of the Tarragonest province. A mosch was erected at
Saragossa, by the liberality of the Koreish: the port of
Barcelona was opened to the vessels of Syria; and the Goths were
pursued beyond the Pyrenæan mountains into their Gallic
province of Septimania or Languedoc. In the church of St. Mary at
Carcassone, Musa found, but it is improbable that he left, seven
equestrian statues of massy silver; and from his
term or column of Narbonne, he returned
on his footsteps to the Gallician and Lusitanian shores of the
ocean. During the absence of the father, his son Abdelaziz
chastised the insurgents of Seville, and reduced, from Malaga to
Valentia, the sea-coast of the Mediterranean: his original treaty
with the discreet and valiant Theodemir will represent the
manners and policy of the times. "The conditions of
peace agreed and sworn between Abdelaziz, the son of Musa, the
son of Nassir, and Theodemir prince of the Goths.
In the name of the most merciful God, Abdelaziz makes peace on
these conditions: that Theodemir shall
not be disturbed in his principality; nor any injury be offered
to the life or property, the wives and children, the religion and
temples, of the Christians:
thatTheodemir shall freely deliver his
seven * cities, Orihuela, Valentola, Alicanti Mola, Vacasora,
Bigerra, (now Bejar,) Ora, (or Opta,) and Lorca:
that he shall not assist or entertain
the enemies of the caliph, but shall faithfully communicate his
knowledge of their hostile designs:
that himself, and each of the Gothic
nobles, shall annually pay one piece of gold, four measures of
wheat, as many of barley, with a certain proportion of honey,
oil, and vinegar; and that each of their vassals shall be taxed
at one moiety of the said imposition. Given the fourth of Regeb,
in the year of the Hegira ninety-four, and subscribed with the
names of four Mussulman witnesses." Theodemir and his subjects
were treated with uncommon lenity; but the rate of tribute
appears to have fluctuated from a tenth to a fifth, according to
the submission or obstinacy of the Christians. In this
revolution, many partial calamities were inflicted by the carnal
or religious passions of the enthusiasts: some churches were
profaned by the new worship: some relics or images were
confounded with idols: the rebels were put to the sword; and one
town (an obscure place between Cordova and Seville) was razed to
its foundations. Yet if we compare the invasion of Spain by the
Goths, or its recovery by the kings of Castile and Arragon, we
must applaud the moderation and discipline of the Arabian
conquerors.
The exploits of Musa were performed in the evening of life,
though he affected to disguise his age by coloring with a red
powder the whiteness of his beard. But in the love of action and
glory, his breast was still fired with the ardor of youth; and
the possession of Spain was considered only as the first step to
the monarchy of Europe. With a powerful armament by sea and land,
he was preparing to repass the Pyrenees, to extinguish in Gaul
and Italy the declining kingdoms of the Franks and Lombards, and
to preach the unity of God on the altar of the Vatican. From
thence, subduing the Barbarians of Germany, he proposed to follow
the course of the Danube from its source to the Euxine Sea, to
overthrow the Greek or Roman empire of Constantinople, and
returning from Europe to Asia, to unite his new acquisitions with
Antioch and the provinces of Syria. But his vast enterprise,
perhaps of easy execution, must have seemed extravagant to vulgar
minds; and the visionary conqueror was soon reminded of his
dependence and servitude. The friends of Tarik had effectually
stated his services and wrongs: at the court of Damascus, the
proceedings of Musa were blamed, his intentions were suspected,
and his delay in complying with the first invitation was
chastised by a harsher and more peremptory summons. An intrepid
messenger of the caliph entered his camp at Lugo in Gallicia, and
in the presence of the Saracens and Christians arrested the
bridle of his horse. His own loyalty, or that of his troops,
inculcated the duty of obedience: and his disgrace was alleviated
by the recall of his rival, and the permission of investing with
his two governments his two sons, Abdallah and Abdelaziz. His
long triumph from Ceuta to Damascus displayed the spoils of
Africa and the treasures of Spain: four hundred Gothic nobles,
with gold coronets and girdles, were distinguished in his train;
and the number of male and female captives, selected for their
birth or beauty, was computed at eighteen, or even at thirty,
thousand persons. As soon as he reached Tiberias in Palestine, he
was apprised of the sickness and danger of the caliph, by a
private message from Soliman, his brother and presumptive heir;
who wished to reserve for his own reign the spectacle of victory.
Had Walid recovered, the delay of Musa would have been criminal:
he pursued his march, and found an enemy on the throne. In his
trial before a partial judge against a popular antagonist, he was
convicted of vanity and falsehood; and a fine of two hundred
thousand pieces of gold either exhausted his poverty or proved
his rapaciousness. The unworthy treatment of Tarik was revenged
by a similar indignity; and the veteran commander, after a public
whipping, stood a whole day in the sun before the palace gate,
till he obtained a decent exile, under the pious name of a
pilgrimage to Mecca. The resentment of the caliph might have been
satiated with the ruin of Musa; but his fears demanded the
extirpation of a potent and injured family. A sentence of death
was intimated with secrecy and speed to the trusty servants of
the throne both in Africa and Spain; and the forms, if not the
substance, of justice were superseded in this bloody execution.
In the mosch or palace of Cordova, Abdelaziz was slain by the
swords of the conspirators; they accused their governor of
claiming the honors of royalty; and his scandalous marriage with
Egilona, the widow of Roderic, offended the prejudices both of
the Christians and Moslems. By a refinement of cruelty, the head
of the son was presented to the father, with an insulting
question, whether he acknowledged the features of the rebel? "I
know his features," he exclaimed with indignation: "I assert his
innocence; and I imprecate the same, a juster fate, against the
authors of his death." The age and despair of Musa raised him
above the power of kings; and he expired at Mecca of the anguish
of a broken heart. His rival was more favorably treated: his
services were forgiven; and Tarik was permitted to mingle with
the crowd of slaves. I am ignorant whether Count Julian was
rewarded with the death which he deserved indeed, though not from
the hands of the Saracens; but the tale of their ingratitude to
the sons of Witiza is disproved by the most unquestionable
evidence. The two royal youths were reinstated in the private
patrimony of their father; but on the decease of Eba, the elder,
his daughter was unjustly despoiled of her portion by the
violence of her uncle Sigebut. The Gothic maid pleaded her cause
before the caliph Hashem, and obtained the restitution of her
inheritance; but she was given in marriage to a noble Arabian,
and their two sons, Isaac and Ibrahim, were received in Spain
with the consideration that was due to their origin and
riches.
A province is assimilated to the victorious state by the
introduction of strangers and the imitative spirit of the
natives; and Spain, which had been successively tinctured with
Punic, and Roman, and Gothic blood, imbibed, in a few
generations, the name and manners of the Arabs. The first
conquerors, and the twenty successive lieutenants of the caliphs,
were attended by a numerous train of civil and military
followers, who preferred a distant fortune to a narrow home: the
private and public interest was promoted by the establishment of
faithful colonies; and the cities of Spain were proud to
commemorate the tribe or country of their Eastern progenitors.
The victorious though motley bands of Tarik and Musa asserted, by
the name of Spaniards, their original
claim of conquest; yet they allowed their brethren of Egypt to
share their establishments of Murcia and Lisbon. The royal legion
of Damascus was planted at Cordova; that of Emesa at Seville;
that of Kinnisrin or Chalcis at Jaen; that of Palestine at
Algezire and Medina Sidonia. The natives of Yemen and Persia were
scattered round Toledo and the inland country, and the fertile
seats of Grenada were bestowed on ten thousand horsemen of Syria
and Irak, the children of the purest and most noble of the
Arabian tribes. A spirit of emulation, sometimes beneficial, more
frequently dangerous, was nourished by these hereditary factions.
Ten years after the conquest, a map of the province was presented
to the caliph: the seas, the rivers, and the harbors, the
inhabitants and cities, the climate, the soil, and the mineral
productions of the earth. In the space of two centuries, the
gifts of nature were improved by the agriculture, the
manufactures, and the commerce, of an industrious people; and the
effects of their diligence have been magnified by the idleness of
their fancy. The first of the Ommiades who reigned in Spain
solicited the support of the Christians; and in his edict of
peace and protection, he contents himself with a modest
imposition of ten thousand ounces of gold, ten thousand pounds of
silver, ten thousand horses, as many mules, one thousand
cuirasses, with an equal number of helmets and lances. The most
powerful of his successors derived from the same kingdom the
annual tribute of twelve millions and forty-five thousand dinars
or pieces of gold, about six millions of sterling money; a sum
which, in the tenth century, most probably surpassed the united
revenues of the Christians monarchs. His royal seat of Cordova
contained six hundred moschs, nine hundred baths, and two hundred
thousand houses; he gave laws to eighty cities of the first, to
three hundred of the second and third order; and the fertile
banks of the Guadalquivir were adorned with twelve thousand
villages and hamlets. The Arabs might exaggerate the truth, but
they created and they describe the most prosperous æra of
the riches, the cultivation, and the populousness of Spain.
The wars of the Moslems were sanctified by the prophet; but
among the various precepts and examples of his life, the caliphs
selected the lessons of toleration that might tend to disarm the
resistance of the unbelievers. Arabia was the temple and
patrimony of the God of Mahomet; but he beheld with less jealousy
and affection the nations of the earth. The polytheists and
idolaters, who were ignorant of his name, might be lawfully
extirpated by his votaries; but a wise policy supplied the
obligation of justice; and after some acts of intolerant zeal,
the Mahometan conquerors of Hindostan have spared the pagods of
that devout and populous country. The disciples of Abraham, of
Moses, and of Jesus, were solemnly invited to accept the more
perfect revelation of Mahomet; but if
they preferred the payment of a moderate tribute, they were
entitled to the freedom of conscience and religious worship. In a
field of battle the forfeit lives of the prisoners were redeemed
by the profession of Islam; the females
were bound to embrace the religion of their masters, and a race
of sincere proselytes was gradually multiplied by the education
of the infant captives. But the millions of African and Asiatic
converts, who swelled the native band of the faithful Arabs, must
have been allured, rather than constrained, to declare their
belief in one God and the apostle of God. By the repetition of a
sentence and the loss of a foreskin, the subject or the slave,
the captive or the criminal, arose in a moment the free and equal
companion of the victorious Moslems. Every sin was expiated,
every engagement was dissolved: the vow of celibacy was
superseded by the indulgence of nature; the active spirits who
slept in the cloister were awakened by the trumpet of the
Saracens; and in the convulsion of the world, every member of a
new society ascended to the natural level of his capacity and
courage. The minds of the multitude were tempted by the invisible
as well as temporal blessings of the Arabian prophet; and charity
will hope that many of his proselytes entertained a serious
conviction of the truth and sanctity of his revelation. In the
eyes of an inquisitive polytheist, it must appear worthy of the
human and the divine nature. More pure than the system of
Zoroaster, more liberal than the law of Moses, the religion of
Mahomet might seem less inconsistent with reason than the creed
of mystery and superstition, which, in the seventh century,
disgraced the simplicity of the gospel.
In the extensive provinces of Persia and Africa, the national
religion has been eradicated by the Mahometan faith. The
ambiguous theology of the Magi stood alone among the sects of the
East; but the profane writings of Zoroaster might, under the
reverend name of Abraham, be dexterously connected with the chain
of divine revelation. Their evil principle, the dæmon
Ahriman, might be represented as the rival, or as the creature,
of the God of light. The temples of Persia were devoid of images;
but the worship of the sun and of fire might be stigmatized as a
gross and criminal idolatry. The milder sentiment was consecrated
by the practice of Mahomet and the prudence of the caliphs; the
Magians or Ghebers were ranked with the Jews and Christians among
the people of the written law; and as late as the third century
of the Hegira, the city of Herat will afford a lively contrast of
private zeal and public toleration. Under the payment of an
annual tribute, the Mahometan law secured to the Ghebers of Herat
their civil and religious liberties: but the recent and humble
mosch was overshadowed by the antique splendor of the adjoining
temple of fire. A fanatic Iman deplored, in his sermons, the
scandalous neighborhood, and accused the weakness or indifference
of the faithful. Excited by his voice, the people assembled in
tumult; the two houses of prayer were consumed by the flames, but
the vacant ground was immediately occupied by the foundations of
a new mosch. The injured Magi appealed to the sovereign of
Chorasan; he promised justice and relief; when, behold! four
thousand citizens of Herat, of a grave character and mature age,
unanimously swore that the idolatrous fane had
never existed; the inquisition was
silenced and their conscience was satisfied (says the historian
Mirchond ) with this holy and meritorious perjury. But the
greatest part of the temples of Persia were ruined by the
insensible and general desertion of their votaries. It was
insensible, since it is not accompanied
with any memorial of time or place, of persecution or resistance.
It was general, since the whole realm,
from Shiraz to Samarcand, imbibed the faith of the Koran; and the
preservation of the native tongue reveals the descent of the
Mahometans of Persia. In the mountains and deserts, an obstinate
race of unbelievers adhered to the superstition of their fathers;
and a faint tradition of the Magian theology is kept alive in the
province of Kirman, along the banks of the Indus, among the
exiles of Surat, and in the colony which, in the last century,
was planted by Shaw Abbas at the gates of Ispahan. The chief
pontiff has retired to Mount Elbourz, eighteen leagues from the
city of Yezd: the perpetual fire (if it continues to burn) is
inaccessible to the profane; but his residence is the school, the
oracle, and the pilgrimage of the Ghebers, whose hard and uniform
features attest the unmingled purity of their blood. Under the
jurisdiction of their elders, eighty thousand families maintain
an innocent and industrious life: their subsistence is derived
from some curious manufactures and mechanic trades; and they
cultivate the earth with the fervor of a religious duty. Their
ignorance withstood the despotism of Shaw Abbas, who demanded
with threats and tortures the prophetic books of Zoroaster; and
this obscure remnant of the Magians is spared by the moderation
or contempt of their present sovereigns.
The Northern coast of Africa is the only land in which the
light of the gospel, after a long and perfect establishment, has
been totally extinguished. The arts, which had been taught by
Carthage and Rome, were involved in a cloud of ignorance; the
doctrine of Cyprian and Augustin was no longer studied. Five
hundred episcopal churches were overturned by the hostile fury of
the Donatists, the Vandals, and the Moors. The zeal and numbers
of the clergy declined; and the people, without discipline, or
knowledge, or hope, submissively sunk under the yoke of the
Arabian prophet Within fifty years after the expulsion of the
Greeks, a lieutenant of Africa informed the caliph that the
tribute of the infidels was abolished by their conversion; and,
though he sought to disguise his fraud and rebellion, his
specious pretence was drawn from the rapid and extensive progress
of the Mahometan faith. In the next age, an extraordinary mission
of five bishops was detached from Alexandria to Cairoan. They
were ordained by the Jacobite patriarch to cherish and revive the
dying embers of Christianity: but the interposition of a foreign
prelate, a stranger to the Latins, an enemy to the Catholics,
supposes the decay and dissolution of the African hierarchy. It
was no longer the time when the successor of St. Cyprian, at the
head of a numerous synod, could maintain an equal contest with
the ambition of the Roman pontiff. In the eleventh century, the
unfortunate priest who was seated on the ruins of Carthage
implored the arms and the protection of the Vatican; and he
bitterly complains that his naked body had been scourged by the
Saracens, and that his authority was disputed by the four
suffragans, the tottering pillars of his throne. Two epistles of
Gregory the Seventh are destined to soothe the distress of the
Catholics and the pride of a Moorish prince. The pope assures the
sultan that they both worship the same God, and may hope to meet
in the bosom of Abraham; but the complaint that three bishops
could no longer be found to consecrate a brother, announces the
speedy and inevitable ruin of the episcopal order. The Christians
of Africa and Spain had long since submitted to the practice of
circumcision and the legal abstinence from wine and pork; and the
name of Mozarabes (adoptive Arabs) was
applied to their civil or religious conformity. About the middle
of the twelfth century, the worship of Christ and the succession
of pastors were abolished along the coast of Barbary, and in the
kingdoms of Cordova and Seville, of Valencia and Grenada. The
throne of the Almohades, or Unitarians, was founded on the
blindest fanaticism, and their extraordinary rigor might be
provoked or justified by the recent victories and intolerant zeal
of the princes of Sicily and Castille, of Arragon and Portugal.
The faith of the Mozarabes was occasionally revived by the papal
missionaries; and, on the landing of Charles the Fifth, some
families of Latin Christians were encouraged to rear their heads
at Tunis and Algiers. But the seed of the gospel was quickly
eradicated, and the long province from Tripoli to the Atlantic
has lost all memory of the language and religion of Rome.
After the revolution of eleven centuries, the Jews and
Christians of the Turkish empire enjoy the liberty of conscience
which was granted by the Arabian caliphs. During the first age of
the conquest, they suspected the loyalty of the Catholics, whose
name of Melchites betrayed their secret attachment to the Greek
emperor, while the Nestorians and Jacobites, his inveterate
enemies, approved themselves the sincere and voluntary friends of
the Mahometan government. Yet this partial jealousy was healed by
time and submission; the churches of Egypt were shared with the
Catholics; and all the Oriental sects were included in the common
benefits of toleration. The rank, the immunities, the domestic
jurisdiction of the patriarchs, the bishops, and the clergy, were
protected by the civil magistrate: the learning of individuals
recommended them to the employments of secretaries and
physicians: they were enriched by the lucrative collection of the
revenue; and their merit was sometimes raised to the command of
cities and provinces. A caliph of the house of Abbas was heard to
declare that the Christians were most worthy of trust in the
administration of Persia. "The Moslems," said he, "will abuse
their present fortune; the Magians regret their fallen greatness;
and the Jews are impatient for their approaching deliverance."
But the slaves of despotism are exposed to the alternatives of
favor and disgrace. The captive churches of the East have been
afflicted in every age by the avarice or bigotry of their rulers;
and the ordinary and legal restraints must be offensive to the
pride, or the zeal, of the Christians. About two hundred years
after Mahomet, they were separated from their fellow-subjects by
a turban or girdle of a less honorable color; instead of horses
or mules. they were condemned to ride on asses, in the attitude
of women. Their public and private building were measured by a
diminutive standard; in the streets or the baths it is their duty
to give way or bow down before the meanest of the people; and
their testimony is rejected, if it may tend to the prejudice of a
true believer. The pomp of processions, the sound of bells or of
psalmody, is interdicted in their worship; a decent reverence for
the national faith is imposed on their sermons and conversations;
and the sacrilegious attempt to enter a mosch, or to seduce a
Mussulman, will not be suffered to escape with impunity. In a
time, however, of tranquillity and justice, the Christians have
never been compelled to renounce the Gospel, or to embrace the
Koran; but the punishment of death is inflicted upon the
apostates who have professed and deserted the law of Mahomet. The
martyrs of Cordova provoked the sentence of the cadhi, by the
public confession of their inconstancy, or their passionate
invectives against the person and religion of the prophet.
At the end of the first century of the Hegira, the caliphs
were the most potent and absolute monarchs of the globe. Their
prerogative was not circumscribed, either in right or in fact, by
the power of the nobles, the freedom of the commons, the
privileges of the church, the votes of a senate, or the memory of
a free constitution. The authority of the companions of Mahomet
expired with their lives; and the chiefs or emirs of the Arabian
tribes left behind, in the desert, the spirit of equality and
independence. The regal and sacerdotal characters were united in
the successors of Mahomet; and if the Koran was the rule of their
actions, they were the supreme judges and interpreters of that
divine book. They reigned by the right of conquest over the
nations of the East, to whom the name of liberty was unknown, and
who were accustomed to applaud in their tyrants the acts of
violence and severity that were exercised at their own expense.
Under the last of the Ommiades, the Arabian empire extended two
hundred days' journey from east to west, from the confines of
Tartary and India to the shores of the Atlantic Ocean. And if we
retrench the sleeve of the robe, as it is styled by their
writers, the long and narrow province of Africa, the solid and
compact dominion from Fargana to Aden, from Tarsus to Surat, will
spread on every side to the measure of four or five months of the
march of a caravan. We should vainly seek the indissoluble union
and easy obedience that pervaded the government of Augustus and
the Antonines; but the progress of the Mahometan religion
diffused over this ample space a general resemblance of manners
and opinions. The language and laws of the Koran were studied
with equal devotion at Samarcand and Seville: the Moor and the
Indian embraced as countrymen and brothers in the pilgrimage of
Mecca; and the Arabian language was adopted as the popular idiom
in all the provinces to the westward of the Tigris.
Chapter LII: More Conquests By The Arabs.
Part I.
The Two Sieges Of Constantinople By The Arabs. -- Their
Invasion Of France, And Defeat By Charles Martel. -- Civil War Of
The Ommiades And Abbassides. -- Learning Of The Arabs. -- Luxury
Of The Caliphs. -- Naval Enterprises On Crete, Sicily, And Rome.
-- Decay And Division Of The Empire Of The Caliphs. -- Defeats
And Victories Of The Greek Emperors.
When the Arabs first issued from the desert, they must have
been surprised at the ease and rapidity of their own success. But
when they advanced in the career of victory to the banks of the
Indus and the summit of the Pyrenees; when they had repeatedly
tried the edge of their cimeters and the energy of their faith,
they might be equally astonished that any nation could resist
their invincible arms; that any boundary should confine the
dominion of the successor of the prophet. The confidence of
soldiers and fanatics may indeed be excused, since the calm
historian of the present hour, who strives to follow the rapid
course of the Saracens, must study to explain by what means the
church and state were saved from this impending, and, as it
should seem, from this inevitable, danger. The deserts of Scythia
and Sarmatia might be guarded by their extent, their climate,
their poverty, and the courage of the northern shepherds; China
was remote and inaccessible; but the greatest part of the
temperate zone was subject to the Mahometan conquerors, the
Greeks were exhausted by the calamities of war and the loss of
their fairest provinces, and the Barbarians of Europe might
justly tremble at the precipitate fall of the Gothic monarchy. In
this inquiry I shall unfold the events that rescued our ancestors
of Britain, and our neighbors of Gaul, from the civil and
religious yoke of the Koran; that protected the majesty of Rome,
and delayed the servitude of Constantinople; that invigorated the
defence of the Christians, and scattered among their enemies the
seeds of division and decay.
Forty-six years after the flight of Mahomet from Mecca, his
disciples appeared in arms under the walls of Constantinople.
They were animated by a genuine or fictitious saying of the
prophet, that, to the first army which besieged the city of the
Cæsars, their sins were forgiven: the long series of Roman
triumphs would be meritoriously transferred to the conquerors of
New Rome; and the wealth of nations was deposited in this
well-chosen seat of royalty and commerce. No sooner had the
caliph Moawiyah suppressed his rivals and established his throne,
than he aspired to expiate the guilt of civil blood, by the
success and glory of this holy expedition; his preparations by
sea and land were adequate to the importance of the object; his
standard was intrusted to Sophian, a veteran warrior, but the
troops were encouraged by the example and presence of Yezid, the
son and presumptive heir of the commander of the faithful. The
Greeks had little to hope, nor had their enemies any reason of
fear, from the courage and vigilance of the reigning emperor, who
disgraced the name of Constantine, and imitated only the
inglorious years of his grandfather Heraclius. Without delay or
opposition, the naval forces of the Saracens passed through the
unguarded channel of the Hellespont, which even now, under the
feeble and disorderly government of the Turks, is maintained as
the natural bulwark of the capital. The Arabian fleet cast
anchor, and the troops were disembarked near the palace of
Hebdomon, seven miles from the city. During many days, from the
dawn of light to the evening, the line of assault was extended
from the golden gate to the eastern promontory and the foremost
warriors were impelled by the weight and effort of the succeeding
columns. But the besiegers had formed an insufficient estimate of
the strength and resources of Constantinople. The solid and lofty
walls were guarded by numbers and discipline: the spirit of the
Romans was rekindled by the last danger of their religion and
empire: the fugitives from the conquered provinces more
successfully renewed the defence of Damascus and Alexandria; and
the Saracens were dismayed by the strange and prodigious effects
of artificial fire. This firm and effectual resistance diverted
their arms to the more easy attempt of plundering the European
and Asiatic coasts of the Propontis; and, after keeping the sea
from the month of April to that of September, on the approach of
winter they retreated fourscore miles from the capital, to the
Isle of Cyzicus, in which they had established their magazine of
spoil and provisions. So patient was their perseverance, or so
languid were their operations, that they repeated in the six
following summers the same attack and retreat, with a gradual
abatement of hope and vigor, till the mischances of shipwreck and
disease, of the sword and of fire, compelled them to relinquish
the fruitless enterprise. They might bewail the loss, or
commemorate the martyrdom, of thirty thousand Moslems, who fell
in the siege of Constantinople; and the solemn funeral of Abu
Ayub, or Job, excited the curiosity of the Christians themselves.
That venerable Arab, one of the last of the companions of
Mahomet, was numbered among the ansars,
or auxiliaries, of Medina, who sheltered the head of the flying
prophet. In his youth he fought, at Beder and Ohud, under the
holy standard: in his mature age he was the friend and follower
of Ali; and the last remnant of his strength and life was
consumed in a distant and dangerous war against the enemies of
the Koran. His memory was revered; but the place of his burial
was neglected and unknown, during a period of seven hundred and
eighty years, till the conquest of Constantinople by Mahomet the
Second. A seasonable vision (for such are the manufacture of
every religion) revealed the holy spot at the foot of the walls
and the bottom of the harbor; and the mosch of Ayub has been
deservedly chosen for the simple and martial inauguration of the
Turkish sultans.
The event of the siege revived, both in the East and West, the
reputation of the Roman arms, and cast a momentary shade over the
glories of the Saracens. The Greek ambassador was favorably
received at Damascus, a general council of the emirs or Koreish:
a peace, or truce, of thirty years was ratified between the two
empires; and the stipulation of an annual tribute, fifty horses
of a noble breed, fifty slaves, and three thousand pieces of
gold, degraded the majesty of the commander of the faithful. The
aged caliph was desirous of possessing his dominions, and ending
his days in tranquillity and repose: while the Moors and Indians
trembled at his name, his palace and city of Damascus was
insulted by the Mardaites, or Maronites, of Mount Libanus, the
firmest barrier of the empire, till they were disarmed and
transplanted by the suspicious policy of the Greeks. After the
revolt of Arabia and Persia, the house of Ommiyah was reduced to
the kingdoms of Syria and Egypt: their distress and fear enforced
their compliance with the pressing demands of the Christians; and
the tribute was increased to a slave, a horse, and a thousand
pieces of gold, for each of the three hundred and sixty-five days
of the solar year. But as soon as the empire was again united by
the arms and policy of Abdalmalek, he disclaimed a badge of
servitude not less injurious to his conscience than to his pride;
he discontinued the payment of the tribute; and the resentment of
the Greeks was disabled from action by the mad tyranny of the
second Justinian, the just rebellion of his subjects, and the
frequent change of his antagonists and successors. Till the reign
of Abdalmalek, the Saracens had been content with the free
possession of the Persian and Roman treasures, in the coins of
Chosroes and Cæsar. By the command of that caliph, a
national mint was established, both for silver and gold, and the
inscription of the Dinar, though it might be censured by some
timorous casuists, proclaimed the unity of the God of Mahomet.
Under the reign of the caliph Walid, the Greek language and
characters were excluded from the accounts of the public revenue.
If this change was productive of the invention or familiar use of
our present numerals, the Arabic or Indian ciphers, as they are
commonly styled, a regulation of office has promoted the most
important discoveries of arithmetic, algebra, and the
mathematical sciences.
Whilst the caliph Walid sat idle on the throne of Damascus,
whilst his lieutenants achieved the conquest of Transoxiana and
Spain, a third army of Saracens overspread the provinces of Asia
Minor, and approached the borders of the Byzantine capital. But
the attempt and disgrace of the second siege was reserved for his
brother Soliman, whose ambition appears to have been quickened by
a more active and martial spirit. In the revolutions of the Greek
empire, after the tyrant Justinian had been punished and avenged,
an humble secretary, Anastasius or Artemius, was promoted by
chance or merit to the vacant purple. He was alarmed by the sound
of war; and his ambassador returned from Damascus with the
tremendous news, that the Saracens were preparing an armament by
sea and land, such as would transcend the experience of the past,
or the belief of the present age. The precautions of Anastasius
were not unworthy of his station, or of the impending danger. He
issued a peremptory mandate, that all persons who were not
provided with the means of subsistence for a three years' siege
should evacuate the city: the public granaries and arsenals were
abundantly replenished; the walls were restored and strengthened;
and the engines for casting stones, or darts, or fire, were
stationed along the ramparts, or in the brigantines of war, of
which an additional number was hastily constructed. To prevent is
safer, as well as more honorable, than to repel, an attack; and a
design was meditated, above the usual spirit of the Greeks, of
burning the naval stores of the enemy, the cypress timber that
had been hewn in Mount Libanus, and was piled along the sea-shore
of Phnicia, for the service of the Egyptian fleet. This generous
enterprise was defeated by the cowardice or treachery of the
troops, who, in the new language of the empire, were styled of
the Obsequian Theme. They murdered
their chief, deserted their standard in the Isle of Rhodes,
dispersed themselves over the adjacent continent, and deserved
pardon or reward by investing with the purple a simple officer of
the revenue. The name of Theodosius might recommend him to the
senate and people; but, after some months, he sunk into a
cloister, and resigned, to the firmer hand of Leo the Isaurian,
the urgent defence of the capital and empire. The most formidable
of the Saracens, Moslemah, the brother of the caliph, was
advancing at the head of one hundred and twenty thousand Arabs
and Persians, the greater part mounted on horses or camels; and
the successful sieges of Tyana, Amorium, and Pergamus, were of
sufficient duration to exercise their skill and to elevate their
hopes. At the well-known passage of Abydus, on the Hellespont,
the Mahometan arms were transported, for the first time, * from
Asia to Europe. From thence, wheeling round the Thracian cities
of the Propontis, Moslemah invested Constantinople on the land
side, surrounded his camp with a ditch and rampart, prepared and
planted his engines of assault, and declared, by words and
actions, a patient resolution of expecting the return of
seed-time and harvest, should the obstinacy of the besieged prove
equal to his own. The Greeks would gladly have ransomed their
religion and empire, by a fine or assessment of a piece of gold
on the head of each inhabitant of the city; but the liberal offer
was rejected with disdain, and the presumption of Moslemah was
exalted by the speedy approach and invincible force of the
natives of Egypt and Syria. They are said to have amounted to
eighteen hundred ships: the number betrays their inconsiderable
size; and of the twenty stout and capacious vessels, whose
magnitude impeded their progress, each was manned with no more
than one hundred heavy-armed soldiers. This huge armada proceeded
on a smooth sea, and with a gentle gale, towards the mouth of the
Bosphorus; the surface of the strait was overshadowed, in the
language of the Greeks, with a moving forest, and the same fatal
night had been fixed by the Saracen chief for a general assault
by sea and land. To allure the confidence of the enemy, the
emperor had thrown aside the chain that usually guarded the
entrance of the harbor; but while they hesitated whether they
should seize the opportunity, or apprehend the snare, the
ministers of destruction were at hand. The fire-ships of the
Greeks were launched against them; the Arabs, their arms, and
vessels, were involved in the same flames; the disorderly
fugitives were dashed against each other or overwhelmed in the
waves; and I no longer find a vestige of the fleet, that had
threatened to extirpate the Roman name. A still more fatal and
irreparable loss was that of the caliph Soliman, who died of an
indigestion, in his camp near Kinnisrin or Chalcis in Syria, as
he was preparing to lead against Constantinople the remaining
forces of the East. The brother of Moslemah was succeeded by a
kinsman and an enemy; and the throne of an active and able prince
was degraded by the useless and pernicious virtues of a bigot.
While he started and satisfied the scruples of a blind
conscience, the siege was continued through the winter by the
neglect, rather than by the resolution of the caliph Omar. The
winter proved uncommonly rigorous: above a hundred days the
ground was covered with deep snow, and the natives of the sultry
climes of Egypt and Arabia lay torpid and almost lifeless in
their frozen camp. They revived on the return of spring; a second
effort had been made in their favor; and their distress was
relieved by the arrival of two numerous fleets, laden with corn,
and arms, and soldiers; the first from Alexandria, of four
hundred transports and galleys; the second of three hundred and
sixty vessels from the ports of Africa. But the Greek fires were
again kindled; and if the destruction was less complete, it was
owing to the experience which had taught the Moslems to remain at
a safe distance, or to the perfidy of the Egyptian mariners, who
deserted with their ships to the emperor of the Christians. The
trade and navigation of the capital were restored; and the
produce of the fisheries supplied the wants, and even the luxury,
of the inhabitants. But the calamities of famine and disease were
soon felt by the troops of Moslemah, and as the former was
miserably assuaged, so the latter was dreadfully propagated, by
the pernicious nutriment which hunger compelled them to extract
from the most unclean or unnatural food. The spirit of conquest,
and even of enthusiasm, was extinct: the Saracens could no longer
struggle, beyond their lines, either single or in small parties,
without exposing themselves to the merciless retaliation of the
Thracian peasants. An army of Bulgarians was attracted from the
Danube by the gifts and promises of Leo; and these savage
auxiliaries made some atonement for the evils which they had
inflicted on the empire, by the defeat and slaughter of
twenty-two thousand Asiatics. A report was dexterously scattered,
that the Franks, the unknown nations of the Latin world, were
arming by sea and land in the defence of the Christian cause, and
their formidable aid was expected with far different sensations
in the camp and city. At length, after a siege of thirteen
months, the hopeless Moslemah received from the caliph the
welcome permission of retreat. * The march of the Arabian cavalry
over the Hellespont and through the provinces of Asia, was
executed without delay or molestation; but an army of their
brethren had been cut in pieces on the side of Bithynia, and the
remains of the fleet were so repeatedly damaged by tempest and
fire, that only five galleys entered the port of Alexandria to
relate the tale of their various and almost incredible
disasters.
In the two sieges, the deliverance of Constantinople may be
chiefly ascribed to the novelty, the terrors, and the real
efficacy of the Greek fire. The
important secret of compounding and directing this artificial
flame was imparted by Callinicus, a native of Heliopolis in
Syria, who deserted from the service of the caliph to that of the
emperor. The skill of a chemist and engineer was equivalent to
the succor of fleets and armies; and this discovery or
improvement of the military art was fortunately reserved for the
distressful period, when the degenerate Romans of the East were
incapable of contending with the warlike enthusiasm and youthful
vigor of the Saracens. The historian who presumes to analyze this
extraordinary composition should suspect his own ignorance and
that of his Byzantine guides, so prone to the marvellous, so
careless, and, in this instance, so jealous of the truth. From
their obscure, and perhaps fallacious, hints it should seem that
the principal ingredient of the Greek fire was the
naphtha, or liquid bitumen, a light,
tenacious, and inflammable oil, which springs from the earth, and
catches fire as soon as it comes in contact with the air. The
naphtha was mingled, I know not by what methods or in what
proportions, with sulphur and with the pitch that is extracted
from evergreen firs. From this mixture, which produced a thick
smoke and a loud explosion, proceeded a fierce and obstinate
flame, which not only rose in perpendicular ascent, but likewise
burnt with equal vehemence in descent or lateral progress;
instead of being extinguished, it was nourished and quickened by
the element of water; and sand, urine, or vinegar, were the only
remedies that could damp the fury of this powerful agent, which
was justly denominated by the Greeks the
liquid, or the
maritime, fire. For the annoyance of
the enemy, it was employed with equal effect, by sea and land, in
battles or in sieges. It was either poured from the rampart in
large boilers, or launched in red-hot balls of stone and iron, or
darted in arrows and javelins, twisted round with flax and tow,
which had deeply imbibed the inflammable oil; sometimes it was
deposited in fire-ships, the victims and instruments of a more
ample revenge, and was most commonly blown through long tubes of
copper which were planted on the prow of a galley, and fancifully
shaped into the mouths of savage monsters, that seemed to vomit a
stream of liquid and consuming fire. This important art was
preserved at Constantinople, as the palladium of the state: the
galleys and artillery might
occasionally be lent to the allies of Rome; but the composition
of the Greek fire was concealed with the most jealous scruple,
and the terror of the enemies was increased and prolonged by
their ignorance and surprise. In the treaties of the
administration of the empire, the royal author suggests the
answers and excuses that might best elude the indiscreet
curiosity and importunate demands of the Barbarians. They should
be told that the mystery of the Greek fire had been revealed by
an angel to the first and greatest of the Constantines, with a
sacred injunction, that this gift of Heaven, this peculiar
blessing of the Romans, should never be communicated to any
foreign nation; that the prince and the subject were alike bound
to religious silence under the temporal and spiritual penalties
of treason and sacrilege; and that the impious attempt would
provoke the sudden and supernatural vengeance of the God of the
Christians. By these precautions, the secret was confined, above
four hundred years, to the Romans of the East; and at the end of
the eleventh century, the Pisans, to whom every sea and every art
were familiar, suffered the effects, without understanding the
composition, of the Greek fire. It was at length either
discovered or stolen by the Mahometans; and, in the holy wars of
Syria and Egypt, they retorted an invention, contrived against
themselves, on the heads of the Christians. A knight, who
despised the swords and lances of the Saracens, relates, with
heartfelt sincerity, his own fears, and those of his companions,
at the sight and sound of the mischievous engine that discharged
a torrent of the Greek fire, the feu
Gregeois, as it is styled by the more early of the
French writers. It came flying through the air, says Joinville,
like a winged long-tailed dragon, about the thickness of a
hogshead, with the report of thunder and the velocity of
lightning; and the darkness of the night was dispelled by this
deadly illumination. The use of the Greek, or, as it might now be
called, of the Saracen fire, was continued to the middle of the
fourteenth century, when the scientific or casual compound of
nitre, sulphur, and charcoal, effected a new revolution in the
art of war and the history of mankind.
Chapter LII: More Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
II.
Constantinople and the Greek fire might exclude the Arabs from
the eastern entrance of Europe; but in the West, on the side of
the Pyrenees, the provinces of Gaul were threatened and invaded
by the conquerors of Spain. The decline of the French monarchy
invited the attack of these insatiate fanatics. The descendants
of Clovis had lost the inheritance of his martial and ferocious
spirit; and their misfortune or demerit has affixed the epithet
of lazy to the last kings of the
Merovingian race. They ascended the throne without power, and
sunk into the grave without a name. A country palace, in the
neighborhood of Compiegne was allotted for their residence or
prison: but each year, in the month of March or May, they were
conducted in a wagon drawn by oxen to the assembly of the Franks,
to give audience to foreign ambassadors, and to ratify the acts
of the mayor of the palace. That domestic officer was become the
minister of the nation and the master of the prince. A public
employment was converted into the patrimony of a private family:
the elder Pepin left a king of mature years under the
guardianship of his own widow and her child; and these feeble
regents were forcibly dispossessed by the most active of his
bastards. A government, half savage and half corrupt, was almost
dissolved; and the tributary dukes, and provincial counts, and
the territorial lords, were tempted to despise the weakness of
the monarch, and to imitate the ambition of the mayor. Among
these independent chiefs, one of the boldest and most successful
was Eudes, duke of Aquitain, who in the southern provinces of
Gaul usurped the authority, and even the title of king. The
Goths, the Gascons, and the Franks, assembled under the standard
of this Christian hero: he repelled the first invasion of the
Saracens; and Zama, lieutenant of the caliph, lost his army and
his life under the walls of Thoulouse. The ambition of his
successors was stimulated by revenge; they repassed the Pyrenees
with the means and the resolution of conquest. The advantageous
situation which had recommended Narbonne as the first Roman
colony, was again chosen by the Moslems: they claimed the
province of Septimania or Languedoc as a just dependence of the
Spanish monarchy: the vineyards of Gascony and the city of
Bourdeaux were possessed by the sovereign of Damascus and
Samarcand; and the south of France, from the mouth of the Garonne
to that of the Rhone, assumed the manners and religion of
Arabia.
But these narrow limits were scorned by the spirit of
Abdalraman, or Abderame, who had been restored by the caliph
Hashem to the wishes of the soldiers and people of Spain. That
veteran and daring commander adjudged to the obedience of the
prophet whatever yet remained of France or of Europe; and
prepared to execute the sentence, at the head of a formidable
host, in the full confidence of surmounting all opposition either
of nature or of man. His first care was to suppress a domestic
rebel, who commanded the most important passes of the Pyrenees:
Manuza, a Moorish chief, had accepted the alliance of the duke of
Aquitain; and Eudes, from a motive of private or public interest,
devoted his beauteous daughter to the embraces of the African
misbeliever. But the strongest fortresses of Cerdagne were
invested by a superior force; the rebel was overtaken and slain
in the mountains; and his widow was sent a captive to Damascus,
to gratify the desires, or more probably the vanity, of the
commander of the faithful. From the Pyrenees, Abderame proceeded
without delay to the passage of the Rhone and the siege of Arles.
An army of Christians attempted the relief of the city: the tombs
of their leaders were yet visible in the thirteenth century; and
many thousands of their dead bodies were carried down the rapid
stream into the Mediterranean Sea. The arms of Abderame were not
less successful on the side of the ocean. He passed without
opposition the Garonne and Dordogne, which unite their waters in
the Gulf of Bourdeaux; but he found, beyond those rivers, the
camp of the intrepid Eudes, who had formed a second army and
sustained a second defeat, so fatal to the Christians, that,
according to their sad confession, God alone could reckon the
number of the slain. The victorious Saracen overran the provinces
of Aquitain, whose Gallic names are disguised, rather than lost,
in the modern appellations of Perigord, Saintonge, and Poitou:
his standards were planted on the walls, or at least before the
gates, of Tours and of Sens; and his detachments overspread the
kingdom of Burgundy as far as the well-known cities of Lyons and
Besancon. The memory of these devastations (for Abderame did not
spare the country or the people) was long preserved by tradition;
and the invasion of France by the Moors or Mahometans affords the
groundwork of those fables, which have been so wildly disfigured
in the romances of chivalry, and so elegantly adorned by the
Italian muse. In the decline of society and art, the deserted
cities could supply a slender booty to the Saracens; their
richest spoil was found in the churches and monasteries, which
they stripped of their ornaments and delivered to the flames: and
the tutelar saints, both Hilary of Poitiers and Martin of Tours,
forgot their miraculous powers in the defence of their own
sepulchres. A victorious line of march had been prolonged above a
thousand miles from the rock of Gibraltar to the banks of the
Loire; the repetition of an equal space would have carried the
Saracens to the confines of Poland and the Highlands of Scotland;
the Rhine is not more impassable than the Nile or Euphrates, and
the Arabian fleet might have sailed without a naval combat into
the mouth of the Thames. Perhaps the interpretation of the Koran
would now be taught in the schools of Oxford, and her pulpits
might demonstrate to a circumcised people the sanctity and truth
of the revelation of Mahomet.
From such calamities was Christendom delivered by the genius
and fortune of one man. Charles, the illegitimate son of the
elder Pepin, was content with the titles of mayor or duke of the
Franks; but he deserved to become the father of a line of kings.
In a laborious administration of twenty-four years, he restored
and supported the dignity of the throne, and the rebels of
Germany and Gaul were successively crushed by the activity of a
warrior, who, in the same campaign, could display his banner on
the Elbe, the Rhone, and the shores of the ocean. In the public
danger he was summoned by the voice of his country; and his
rival, the duke of Aquitain, was reduced to appear among the
fugitives and suppliants. "Alas!" exclaimed the Franks, "what a
misfortune! what an indignity! We have long heard of the name and
conquests of the Arabs: we were apprehensive of their attack from
the East; they have now conquered Spain, and invade our country
on the side of the West. Yet their numbers, and (since they have
no buckler) their arms, are inferior to our own." "If you follow
my advice," replied the prudent mayor of the palace, "you will
not interrupt their march, nor precipitate your attack. They are
like a torrent, which it is dangerous to stem in its career. The
thirst of riches, and the consciousness of success, redouble
their valor, and valor is of more avail than arms or numbers. Be
patient till they have loaded themselves with the encumbrance of
wealth. The possession of wealth will divide their councils and
assure your victory." This subtile policy is perhaps a refinement
of the Arabian writers; and the situation of Charles will suggest
a more narrow and selfish motive of procrastination -- the secret
desire of humbling the pride and wasting the provinces of the
rebel duke of Aquitain. It is yet more probable, that the delays
of Charles were inevitable and reluctant. A standing army was
unknown under the first and second race; more than half the
kingdom was now in the hands of the Saracens: according to their
respective situation, the Franks of Neustria and Austrasia were
to conscious or too careless of the impending danger; and the
voluntary aids of the Gepidæ and Germans were separated by
a long interval from the standard of the Christian general. No
sooner had he collected his forces, than he sought and found the
enemy in the centre of France, between Tours and Poitiers. His
well-conducted march was covered with a range of hills, and
Abderame appears to have been surprised by his unexpected
presence. The nations of Asia, Africa, and Europe, advanced with
equal ardor to an encounter which would change the history of the
world. In the six first days of desultory combat, the horsemen
and archers of the East maintained their advantage: but in the
closer onset of the seventh day, the Orientals were oppressed by
the strength and stature of the Germans, who, with stout hearts
and iron hands, asserted the civil and
religious freedom of their posterity. The epithet of
Martel, the
Hammer, which has been added to the
name of Charles, is expressive of his weighty and irresistible
strokes: the valor of Eudes was excited by resentment and
emulation; and their companions, in the eye of history, are the
true Peers and Paladins of French chivalry. After a bloody field,
in which Abderame was slain, the Saracens, in the close of the
evening, retired to their camp. In the disorder and despair of
the night, the various tribes of Yemen and Damascus, of Africa
and Spain, were provoked to turn their arms against each other:
the remains of their host were suddenly dissolved, and each
emir consulted his safety by a hasty
and separate retreat. At the dawn of the day, the stillness of a
hostile camp was suspected by the victorious Christians: on the
report of their spies, they ventured to explore the riches of the
vacant tents; but if we except some celebrated relics, a small
portion of the spoil was restored to the innocent and lawful
owners. The joyful tidings were soon diffused over the Catholic
world, and the monks of Italy could affirm and believe that three
hundred and fifty, or three hundred and seventy-five, thousand of
the Mahometans had been crushed by the hammer of Charles, while
no more than fifteen hundred Christians were slain in the field
of Tours. But this incredible tale is sufficiently disproved by
the caution of the French general, who apprehended the snares and
accidents of a pursuit, and dismissed his German allies to their
native forests. The inactivity of a conqueror betrays the loss of
strength and blood, and the most cruel execution is inflicted,
not in the ranks of battle, but on the backs of a flying enemy.
Yet the victory of the Franks was complete and final; Aquitain
was recovered by the arms of Eudes; the Arabs never resumed the
conquest of Gaul, and they were soon driven beyond the Pyrenees
by Charles Martel and his valiant race. It might have been
expected that the savior of Christendom would have been
canonized, or at least applauded, by the gratitude of the clergy,
who are indebted to his sword for their present existence. But in
the public distress, the mayor of the palace had been compelled
to apply the riches, or at least the revenues, of the bishops and
abbots, to the relief of the state and the reward of the
soldiers. His merits were forgotten, his sacrilege alone was
remembered, and, in an epistle to a Carlovingian prince, a Gallic
synod presumes to declare that his ancestor was damned; that on
the opening of his tomb, the spectators were affrighted by a
smell of fire and the aspect of a horrid dragon; and that a saint
of the times was indulged with a pleasant vision of the soul and
body of Charles Martel, burning, to all eternity, in the abyss of
hell.
The loss of an army, or a province, in the Western world, was
less painful to the court of Damascus, than the rise and progress
of a domestic competitor. Except among the Syrians, the caliphs
of the house of Ommiyah had never been the objects of the public
favor. The life of Mahomet recorded their perseverance in
idolatry and rebellion: their conversion had been reluctant,
their elevation irregular and factious, and their throne was
cemented with the most holy and noble blood of Arabia. The best
of their race, the pious Omar, was dissatisfied with his own
title: their personal virtues were insufficient to justify a
departure from the order of succession; and the eyes and wishes
of the faithful were turned towards the line of Hashem, and the
kindred of the apostle of God. Of these the Fatimites were either
rash or pusillanimous; but the descendants of Abbas cherished,
with courage and discretion, the hopes of their rising fortunes.
From an obscure residence in Syria, they secretly despatched
their agents and missionaries, who preached in the Eastern
provinces their hereditary indefeasible right; and Mohammed, the
son of Ali, the son of Abdallah, the son of Abbas, the uncle of
the prophet, gave audience to the deputies of Chorasan, and
accepted their free gift of four hundred thousand pieces of gold.
After the death of Mohammed, the oath of allegiance was
administered in the name of his son Ibrahim to a numerous band of
votaries, who expected only a signal and a leader; and the
governor of Chorasan continued to deplore his fruitless
admonitions and the deadly slumber of the caliphs of Damascus,
till he himself, with all his adherents, was driven from the city
and palace of Meru, by the rebellious arms of Abu Moslem. That
maker of kings, the author, as he is named, of the
call of the Abbassides, was at length
rewarded for his presumption of merit with the usual gratitude of
courts. A mean, perhaps a foreign, extraction could not repress
the aspiring energy of Abu Moslem. Jealous of his wives, liberal
of his wealth, prodigal of his own blood and of that of others,
he could boast with pleasure, and possibly with truth, that he
had destroyed six hundred thousand of his enemies; and such was
the intrepid gravity of his mind and countenance, that he was
never seen to smile except on a day of battle. In the visible
separation of parties, the green was
consecrated to the Fatimites; the Ommiades were distinguished by
the white; and the
black, as the most adverse, was
naturally adopted by the Abbassides. Their turbans and garments
were stained with that gloomy color: two black standards, on pike
staves nine cubits long, were borne aloft in the van of Abu
Moslem; and their allegorical names of the night and the shadow
obscurely represented the indissoluble union and perpetual
succession of the line of Hashem. From the Indus to the
Euphrates, the East was convulsed by the quarrel of the white and
the black factions: the Abbassides were most frequently
victorious; but their public success was clouded by the personal
misfortune of their chief. The court of Damascus, awakening from
a long slumber, resolved to prevent the pilgrimage of Mecca,
which Ibrahim had undertaken with a splendid retinue, to
recommend himself at once to the favor of the prophet and of the
people. A detachment of cavalry intercepted his march and
arrested his person; and the unhappy Ibrahim, snatched away from
the promise of untasted royalty, expired in iron fetters in the
dungeons of Haran. His two younger brothers, Saffah * and
Almansor, eluded the search of the tyrant, and lay concealed at
Cufa, till the zeal of the people and the approach of his Eastern
friends allowed them to expose their persons to the impatient
public. On Friday, in the dress of a caliph, in the colors of the
sect, Saffah proceeded with religious and military pomp to the
mosch: ascending the pulpit, he prayed and preached as the lawful
successor of Mahomet; and after his departure, his kinsmen bound
a willing people by an oath of fidelity. But it was on the banks
of the Zab, and not in the mosch of Cufa, that this important
controversy was determined. Every advantage appeared to be on the
side of the white faction: the authority of established
government; an army of a hundred and twenty thousand soldiers,
against a sixth part of that number; and the presence and merit
of the caliph Mervan, the fourteenth and last of the house of
Ommiyah. Before his accession to the throne, he had deserved, by
his Georgian warfare, the honorable epithet of the ass of
Mesopotamia; and he might have been ranked amongst the greatest
princes, had not, says Abulfeda, the eternal order decreed that
moment for the ruin of his family; a decree against which all
human fortitude and prudence must struggle in vain. The orders of
Mervan were mistaken, or disobeyed: the return of his horse, from
which he had dismounted on a necessary occasion, impressed the
belief of his death; and the enthusiasm of the black squadrons
was ably conducted by Abdallah, the uncle of his competitor.
After an irretrievable defeat, the caliph escaped to Mosul; but
the colors of the Abbassides were displayed from the rampart; he
suddenly repassed the Tigris, cast a melancholy look on his
palace of Haran, crossed the Euphrates, abandoned the
fortifications of Damascus, and, without halting in Palestine,
pitched his last and fatal camp at Busir, on the banks of the
Nile. His speed was urged by the incessant diligence of Abdallah,
who in every step of the pursuit acquired strength and
reputation: the remains of the white faction were finally
vanquished in Egypt; and the lance, which terminated the life and
anxiety of Mervan, was not less welcome perhaps to the
unfortunate than to the victorious chief. The merciless
inquisition of the conqueror eradicated the most distant branches
of the hostile race: their bones were scattered, their memory was
accursed, and the martyrdom of Hossein was abundantly revenged on
the posterity of his tyrants. Fourscore of the Ommiades, who had
yielded to the faith or clemency of their foes, were invited to a
banquet at Damascus. The laws of hospitality were violated by a
promiscuous massacre: the board was spread over their fallen
bodies; and the festivity of the guests was enlivened by the
music of their dying groans. By the event of the civil war, the
dynasty of the Abbassides was firmly established; but the
Christians only could triumph in the mutual hatred and common
loss of the disciples of Mahomet.
Yet the thousands who were swept away by the sword of war
might have been speedily retrieved in the succeeding generation,
if the consequences of the revolution had not tended to dissolve
the power and unity of the empire of the Saracens. In the
proscription of the Ommiades, a royal youth of the name of
Abdalrahman alone escaped the rage of his enemies, who hunted the
wandering exile from the banks of the Euphrates to the valleys of
Mount Atlas. His presence in the neighborhood of Spain revived
the zeal of the white faction. The name and cause of the
Abbassides had been first vindicated by the Persians: the West
had been pure from civil arms; and the servants of the abdicated
family still held, by a precarious tenure, the inheritance of
their lands and the offices of government. Strongly prompted by
gratitude, indignation, and fear, they invited the grandson of
the caliph Hashem to ascend the throne of his ancestors; and, in
his desperate condition, the extremes of rashness and prudence
were almost the same. The acclamations of the people saluted his
landing on the coast of Andalusia: and, after a successful
struggle, Abdalrahman established the throne of Cordova, and was
the father of the Ommiades of Spain, who reigned above two
hundred and fifty years from the Atlantic to the Pyrenees. He
slew in battle a lieutenant of the Abbassides, who had invaded
his dominions with a fleet and army: the head of Ala, in salt and
camphire, was suspended by a daring messenger before the palace
of Mecca; and the caliph Almansor rejoiced in his safety, that he
was removed by seas and lands from such a formidable adversary.
Their mutual designs or declarations of offensive war evaporated
without effect; but instead of opening a door to the conquest of
Europe, Spain was dissevered from the trunk of the monarchy,
engaged in perpetual hostility with the East, and inclined to
peace and friendship with the Christian sovereigns of
Constantinople and France. The example of the Ommiades was
imitated by the real or fictitious progeny of Ali, the Edrissites
of Mauritania, and the more powerful Fatimites of Africa and
Egypt. In the tenth century, the chair of Mahomet was disputed by
three caliphs or commanders of the faithful, who reigned at
Bagdad, Cairoan, and Cordova, excommunicating each other, and
agreed only in a principle of discord, that a sectary is more
odious and criminal than an unbeliever.
Mecca was the patrimony of the line of Hashem, yet the
Abbassides were never tempted to reside either in the birthplace
or the city of the prophet. Damascus was disgraced by the choice,
and polluted with the blood, of the Ommiades; and, after some
hesitation, Almansor, the brother and successor of Saffah, laid
the foundations of Bagdad, the Imperial seat of his posterity
during a reign of five hundred years. The chosen spot is on the
eastern bank of the Tigris, about fifteen miles above the ruins
of Modain: the double wall was of a circular form; and such was
the rapid increase of a capital, now dwindled to a provincial
town, that the funeral of a popular saint might be attended by
eight hundred thousand men and sixty thousand women of Bagdad and
the adjacent villages. In this city of
peace, amidst the riches of the East, the
Abbassides soon disdained the abstinence and frugality of the
first caliphs, and aspired to emulate the magnificence of the
Persian kings. After his wars and buildings, Almansor left behind
him in gold and silver about thirty millions sterling: and this
treasure was exhausted in a few years by the vices or virtues of
his children. His son Mahadi, in a single pilgrimage to Mecca,
expended six millions of dinars of gold. A pious and charitable
motive may sanctify the foundation of cisterns and caravanseras,
which he distributed along a measured road of seven hundred
miles; but his train of camels, laden with snow, could serve only
to astonish the natives of Arabia, and to refresh the fruits and
liquors of the royal banquet. The courtiers would surely praise
the liberality of his grandson Almamon, who gave away four fifths
of the income of a province, a sum of two millions four hundred
thousand gold dinars, before he drew his foot from the stirrup.
At the nuptials of the same prince, a thousand pearls of the
largest size were showered on the head of the bride, and a
lottery of lands and houses displayed the capricious bounty of
fortune. The glories of the court were brightened, rather than
impaired, in the decline of the empire, and a Greek ambassador
might admire, or pity, the magnificence of the feeble Moctader.
"The caliph's whole army," says the historian Abulfeda, "both
horse and foot, was under arms, which together made a body of one
hundred and sixty thousand men. His state officers, the favorite
slaves, stood near him in splendid apparel, their belts
glittering with gold and gems. Near them were seven thousand
eunuchs, four thousand of them white, the remainder black. The
porters or door-keepers were in number seven hundred. Barges and
boats, with the most superb decorations, were seen swimming upon
the Tigris. Nor was the palace itself less splendid, in which
were hung up thirty-eight thousand pieces of tapestry, twelve
thousand five hundred of which were of silk embroidered with
gold. The carpets on the floor were twenty-two thousand. A
hundred lions were brought out, with a keeper to each lion. Among
the other spectacles of rare and stupendous luxury was a tree of
gold and silver spreading into eighteen large branches, on which,
and on the lesser boughs, sat a variety of birds made of the same
precious metals, as well as the leaves of the tree. While the
machinery affected spontaneous motions, the several birds warbled
their natural harmony. Through this scene of magnificence, the
Greek ambassador was led by the vizier to the foot of the
caliph's throne." In the West, the Ommiades of Spain supported,
with equal pomp, the title of commander of the faithful. Three
miles from Cordova, in honor of his favorite sultana, the third
and greatest of the Abdalrahmans constructed the city, palace,
and gardens of Zehra. Twenty-five years, and above three millions
sterling, were employed by the founder: his liberal taste invited
the artists of Constantinople, the most skilful sculptors and
architects of the age; and the buildings were sustained or
adorned by twelve hundred columns of Spanish and African, of
Greek and Italian marble. The hall of audience was incrusted with
gold and pearls, and a great basin in the centre was surrounded
with the curious and costly figures of birds and quadrupeds. In a
lofty pavilion of the gardens, one of these basins and fountains,
so delightful in a sultry climate, was replenished not with
water, but with the purest quicksilver. The seraglio of
Abdalrahman, his wives, concubines, and black eunuchs, amounted
to six thousand three hundred persons: and he was attended to the
field by a guard of twelve thousand horse, whose belts and
cimeters were studded with gold.
Chapter LII: More Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
III.
In a private condition, our desires are perpetually repressed
by poverty and subordination; but the lives and labors of
millions are devoted to the service of a despotic prince, whose
laws are blindly obeyed, and whose wishes are instantly
gratified. Our imagination is dazzled by the splendid picture;
and whatever may be the cool dictates of reason, there are few
among us who would obstinately refuse a trial of the comforts and
the cares of royalty. It may therefore be of some use to borrow
the experience of the same Abdalrahman, whose magnificence has
perhaps excited our admiration and envy, and to transcribe an
authentic memorial which was found in the closet of the deceased
caliph. "I have now reigned above fifty years in victory or
peace; beloved by my subjects, dreaded by my enemies, and
respected by my allies. Riches and honors, power and pleasure,
have waited on my call, nor does any earthly blessing appear to
have been wanting to my felicity. In this situation, I have
diligently numbered the days of pure and genuine happiness which
have fallen to my lot: they amount to Fourteen: -- O man! place
not thy confidence in this present world!" The luxury of the
caliphs, so useless to their private happiness, relaxed the
nerves, and terminated the progress, of the Arabian empire.
Temporal and spiritual conquest had been the sole occupation of
the first successors of Mahomet; and after supplying themselves
with the necessaries of life, the whole revenue was scrupulously
devoted to that salutary work. The Abbassides were impoverished
by the multitude of their wants, and their contempt of conomy.
Instead of pursuing the great object of ambition, their leisure,
their affections, the powers of their mind, were diverted by pomp
and pleasure: the rewards of valor were embezzled by women and
eunuchs, and the royal camp was encumbered by the luxury of the
palace. A similar temper was diffused among the subjects of the
caliph. Their stern enthusiasm was softened by time and
prosperity. they sought riches in the occupations of industry,
fame in the pursuits of literature, and happiness in the
tranquillity of domestic life. War was no longer the passion of
the Saracens; and the increase of pay, the repetition of
donatives, were insufficient to allure the posterity of those
voluntary champions who had crowded to the standard of Abubeker
and Omar for the hopes of spoil and of paradise.
Under the reign of the Ommiades, the studies of the Moslems
were confined to the interpretation of the Koran, and the
eloquence and poetry of their native tongue. A people continually
exposed to the dangers of the field must esteem the healing
powers of medicine, or rather of surgery; but the starving
physicians of Arabia murmured a complaint that exercise and
temperance deprived them of the greatest part of their practice.
After their civil and domestic wars, the subjects of the
Abbassides, awakening from this mental lethargy, found leisure
and felt curiosity for the acquisition of profane science. This
spirit was first encouraged by the caliph Almansor, who, besides
his knowledge of the Mahometan law, had applied himself with
success to the study of astronomy. But when the sceptre devolved
to Almamon, the seventh of the Abbassides, he completed the
designs of his grandfather, and invited the muses from their
ancient seats. His ambassadors at Constantinople, his agents in
Armenia, Syria, and Egypt, collected the volumes of Grecian
science at his command they were translated by the most skilful
interpreters into the Arabic language: his subjects were exhorted
assiduously to peruse these instructive writings; and the
successor of Mahomet assisted with pleasure and modesty at the
assemblies and disputations of the learned. "He was not
ignorant," says Abulpharagius, "that they are the elect of God,
his best and most useful servants, whose lives are devoted to the
improvement of their rational faculties. The mean ambition of the
Chinese or the Turks may glory in the industry of their hands or
the indulgence of their brutal appetites. Yet these dexterous
artists must view, with hopeless emulation, the hexagons and
pyramids of the cells of a beehive: these fortitudinous heroes
are awed by the superior fierceness of the lions and tigers; and
in their amorous enjoyments they are much inferior to the vigor
of the grossest and most sordid quadrupeds. The teachers of
wisdom are the true luminaries and legislators of a world, which,
without their aid, would again sink in ignorance and barbarism."
The zeal and curiosity of Almamon were imitated by succeeding
princes of the line of Abbas: their rivals, the Fatimites of
Africa and the Ommiades of Spain, were the patrons of the
learned, as well as the commanders of the faithful; the same
royal prerogative was claimed by their independent emirs of the
provinces; and their emulation diffused the taste and the rewards
of science from Samarcand and Bochara to Fez and Cordova. The
vizier of a sultan consecrated a sum of two hundred thousand
pieces of gold to the foundation of a college at Bagdad, which he
endowed with an annual revenue of fifteen thousand dinars. The
fruits of instruction were communicated, perhaps at different
times, to six thousand disciples of every degree, from the son of
the noble to that of the mechanic: a sufficient allowance was
provided for the indigent scholars; and the merit or industry of
the professors was repaid with adequate stipends. In every city
the productions of Arabic literature were copied and collected by
the curiosity of the studious and the vanity of the rich. A
private doctor refused the invitation of the sultan of Bochara,
because the carriage of his books would have required four
hundred camels. The royal library of the Fatimites consisted of
one hundred thousand manuscripts, elegantly transcribed and
splendidly bound, which were lent, without jealousy or avarice,
to the students of Cairo. Yet this collection must appear
moderate, if we can believe that the Ommiades of Spain had formed
a library of six hundred thousand volumes, forty-four of which
were employed in the mere catalogue. Their capital, Cordova, with
the adjacent towns of Malaga, Almeria, and Murcia, had given
birth to more than three hundred writers, and above seventy
public libraries were opened in the cities of the Andalusian
kingdom. The age of Arabian learning continued about five hundred
years, till the great eruption of the Moguls, and was coeval with
the darkest and most slothful period of European annals; but
since the sun of science has arisen in the West, it should seem
that the Oriental studies have languished and declined.
In the libraries of the Arabians, as in those of Europe, the
far greater part of the innumerable volumes were possessed only
of local value or imaginary merit. The shelves were crowded with
orators and poets, whose style was adapted to the taste and
manners of their countrymen; with general and partial histories,
which each revolving generation supplied with a new harvest of
persons and events; with codes and commentaries of jurisprudence,
which derived their authority from the law of the prophet; with
the interpreters of the Koran, and orthodox tradition; and with
the whole theological tribe, polemics, mystics, scholastics, and
moralists, the first or the last of writers, according to the
different estimates of sceptics or believers. The works of
speculation or science may be reduced to the four classes of
philosophy, mathematics, astronomy, and physic. The sages of
Greece were translated and illustrated in the Arabic language,
and some treatises, now lost in the original, have been recovered
in the versions of the East, which possessed and studied the
writings of Aristotle and Plato, of Euclid and Apollonius, of
Ptolemy, Hippocrates, and Galen. Among the ideal systems which
have varied with the fashion of the times, the Arabians adopted
the philosophy of the Stagirite, alike intelligible or alike
obscure for the readers of every age. Plato wrote for the
Athenians, and his allegorical genius is too closely blended with
the language and religion of Greece. After the fall of that
religion, the Peripatetics, emerging from their obscurity,
prevailed in the controversies of the Oriental sects, and their
founder was long afterwards restored by the Mahometans of Spain
to the Latin schools. The physics, both of the Academy and the
Lycæum, as they are built, not on observation, but on
argument, have retarded the progress of real knowledge. The
metaphysics of infinite, or finite, spirit, have too often been
enlisted in the service of superstition. But the human faculties
are fortified by the art and practice of dialectics; the ten
predicaments of Aristotle collect and methodize our ideas, and
his syllogism is the keenest weapon of dispute. It was
dexterously wielded in the schools of the Saracens, but as it is
more effectual for the detection of error than for the
investigation of truth, it is not surprising that new generations
of masters and disciples should still revolve in the same circle
of logical argument. The mathematics are distinguished by a
peculiar privilege, that, in the course of ages, they may always
advance, and can never recede. But the ancient geometry, if I am
not misinformed, was resumed in the same state by the Italians of
the fifteenth century; and whatever may be the origin of the
name, the science of algebra is ascribed to the Grecian
Diophantus by the modest testimony of the Arabs themselves. They
cultivated with more success the sublime science of astronomy,
which elevates the mind of man to disdain his diminutive planet
and momentary existence. The costly instruments of observation
were supplied by the caliph Almamon, and the land of the
Chaldæans still afforded the same spacious level, the same
unclouded horizon. In the plains of Sinaar, and a second time in
those of Cufa, his mathematicians accurately measured a degree of
the great circle of the earth, and determined at twenty-four
thousand miles the entire circumference of our globe. From the
reign of the Abbassides to that of the grandchildren of
Tamerlane, the stars, without the aid of glasses, were diligently
observed; and the astronomical tables of Bagdad, Spain, and
Samarcand, correct some minute errors, without daring to renounce
the hypothesis of Ptolemy, without advancing a step towards the
discovery of the solar system. In the Eastern courts, the truths
of science could be recommended only by ignorance and folly, and
the astronomer would have been disregarded, had he not debased
his wisdom or honesty by the vain predictions of astrology. But
in the science of medicine, the Arabians have been deservedly
applauded. The names of Mesua and Geber, of Razis and Avicenna,
are ranked with the Grecian masters; in the city of Bagdad, eight
hundred and sixty physicians were licensed to exercise their
lucrative profession: in Spain, the life of the Catholic princes
was intrusted to the skill of the Saracens, and the school of
Salerno, their legitimate offspring, revived in Italy and Europe
the precepts of the healing art. The success of each professor
must have been influenced by personal and accidental causes; but
we may form a less fanciful estimate of their general knowledge
of anatomy, botany, and chemistry, the threefold basis of their
theory and practice. A superstitious reverence for the dead
confined both the Greeks and the Arabians to the dissection of
apes and quadrupeds; the more solid and visible parts were known
in the time of Galen, and the finer scrutiny of the human frame
was reserved for the microscope and the injections of modern
artists. Botany is an active science, and the discoveries of the
torrid zone might enrich the herbal of Dioscorides with two
thousand plants. Some traditionary knowledge might be secreted in
the temples and monasteries of Egypt; much useful experience had
been acquired in the practice of arts and manufactures; but the
science of chemistry owes its origin
and improvement to the industry of the Saracens. They first
invented and named the alembic for the purposes of distillation,
analyzed the substances of the three kingdoms of nature, tried
the distinction and affinities of alcalis and acids, and
converted the poisonous minerals into soft and salutary
medicines. But the most eager search of Arabian chemistry was the
transmutation of metals, and the elixir of immortal health: the
reason and the fortunes of thousands were evaporated in the
crucibles of alchemy, and the consummation of the great work was
promoted by the worthy aid of mystery, fable, and
superstition.
But the Moslems deprived themselves of the principal benefits
of a familiar intercourse with Greece and Rome, the knowledge of
antiquity, the purity of taste, and the freedom of thought.
Confident in the riches of their native tongue, the Arabians
disdained the study of any foreign idiom. The Greek interpreters
were chosen among their Christian subjects; they formed their
translations, sometimes on the original text, more frequently
perhaps on a Syriac version; and in the crowd of astronomers and
physicians, there is no example of a poet, an orator, or even an
historian, being taught to speak the language of the Saracens.
The mythology of Homer would have provoked the abhorrence of
those stern fanatics: they possessed in lazy ignorance the
colonies of the Macedonians, and the provinces of Carthage and
Rome: the heroes of Plutarch and Livy were buried in oblivion;
and the history of the world before Mahomet was reduced to a
short legend of the patriarchs, the prophets, and the Persian
kings. Our education in the Greek and Latin schools may have
fixed in our minds a standard of exclusive taste; and I am not
forward to condemn the literature and judgment of nations, of
whose language I am ignorant. Yet I
know that the classics have much to
teach, and I believe that the Orientals
have much to learn; the temperate dignity of style, the graceful
proportions of art, the forms of visible and intellectual beauty,
the just delineation of character and passion, the rhetoric of
narrative and argument, the regular fabric of epic and dramatic
poetry. The influence of truth and reason is of a less ambiguous
complexion. The philosophers of Athens and Rome enjoyed the
blessings, and asserted the rights, of civil and religious
freedom. Their moral and political writings might have gradually
unlocked the fetters of Eastern despotism, diffused a liberal
spirit of inquiry and toleration, and encouraged the Arabian
sages to suspect that their caliph was a tyrant, and their
prophet an impostor. The instinct of superstition was alarmed by
the introduction even of the abstract sciences; and the more
rigid doctors of the law condemned the rash and pernicious
curiosity of Almamon. To the thirst of martyrdom, the vision of
paradise, and the belief of predestination, we must ascribe the
invincible enthusiasm of the prince and people. And the sword of
the Saracens became less formidable when their youth was drawn
away from the camp to the college, when the armies of the
faithful presumed to read and to reflect. Yet the foolish vanity
of the Greeks was jealous of their studies, and reluctantly
imparted the sacred fire to the Barbarians of the East.
In the bloody conflict of the Ommiades and Abbassides, the
Greeks had stolen the opportunity of avenging their wrongs and
enlarging their limits. But a severe retribution was exacted by
Mohadi, the third caliph of the new dynasty, who seized, in his
turn, the favorable opportunity, while a woman and a child, Irene
and Constantine, were seated on the Byzantine throne. An army of
ninety-five thousand Persians and Arabs was sent from the Tigris
to the Thracian Bosphorus, under the command of Harun, or Aaron,
the second son of the commander of the faithful. His encampment
on the opposite heights of Chrysopolis, or Scutari, informed
Irene, in her palace of Constantinople, of the loss of her troops
and provinces. With the consent or connivance of their sovereign,
her ministers subscribed an ignominious peace; and the exchange
of some royal gifts could not disguise the annual tribute of
seventy thousand dinars of gold, which was imposed on the Roman
empire. The Saracens had too rashly advanced into the midst of a
distant and hostile land: their retreat was solicited by the
promise of faithful guides and plentiful markets; and not a Greek
had courage to whisper, that their weary forces might be
surrounded and destroyed in their necessary passage between a
slippery mountain and the River Sangarius. Five years after this
expedition, Harun ascended the throne of his father and his elder
brother; the most powerful and vigorous monarch of his race,
illustrious in the West, as the ally of Charlemagne, and familiar
to the most childish readers, as the perpetual hero of the
Arabian tales. His title to the name of Al
Rashid (the Just) is
sullied by the extirpation of the generous, perhaps the innocent,
Barmecides; yet he could listen to the complaint of a poor widow
who had been pillaged by his troops, and who dared, in a passage
of the Koran, to threaten the inattentive despot with the
judgment of God and posterity. His court was adorned with luxury
and science; but, in a reign of three-and-twenty years, Harun
repeatedly visited his provinces from Chorasan to Egypt; nine
times he performed the pilgrimage of Mecca; eight times he
invaded the territories of the Romans; and as often as they
declined the payment of the tribute, they were taught to feel
that a month of depredation was more costly than a year of
submission. But when the unnatural mother of Constantine was
deposed and banished, her successor, Nicephorus, resolved to
obliterate this badge of servitude and disgrace. The epistle of
the emperor to the caliph was pointed with an allusion to the
game of chess, which had already spread from Persia to Greece.
"The queen (he spoke of Irene) considered you as a rook, and
herself as a pawn. That pusillanimous female submitted to pay a
tribute, the double of which she ought to have exacted from the
Barbarians. Restore therefore the fruits of your injustice, or
abide the determination of the sword." At these words the
ambassadors cast a bundle of swords before the foot of the
throne. The caliph smiled at the menace, and drawing his cimeter,
samsamah, a weapon of historic or
fabulous renown, he cut asunder the feeble arms of the Greeks,
without turning the edge, or endangering the temper, of his
blade. He then dictated an epistle of tremendous brevity: "In the
name of the most merciful God, Harun al Rashid, commander of the
faithful, to Nicephorus, the Roman dog. I have read thy letter, O
thou son of an unbelieving mother. Thou shalt not hear, thou
shalt behold, my reply." It was written in characters of blood
and fire on the plains of Phrygia; and the warlike celerity of
the Arabs could only be checked by the arts of deceit and the
show of repentance. The triumphant caliph retired, after the
fatigues of the campaign, to his favorite palace of Racca on the
Euphrates: but the distance of five hundred miles, and the
inclemency of the season, encouraged his adversary to violate the
peace. Nicephorus was astonished by the bold and rapid march of
the commander of the faithful, who repassed, in the depth of
winter, the snows of Mount Taurus: his stratagems of policy and
war were exhausted; and the perfidious Greek escaped with three
wounds from a field of battle overspread with forty thousand of
his subjects. Yet the emperor was ashamed of submission, and the
caliph was resolved on victory. One hundred and thirty-five
thousand regular soldiers received pay, and were inscribed in the
military roll; and above three hundred thousand persons of every
denomination marched under the black standard of the Abbassides.
They swept the surface of Asia Minor far beyond Tyana and Ancyra,
and invested the Pontic Heraclea, once a flourishing state, now a
paltry town; at that time capable of sustaining, in her antique
walls, a month's siege against the forces of the East. The ruin
was complete, the spoil was ample; but if Harun had been
conversant with Grecian story, he would have regretted the statue
of Hercules, whose attributes, the club, the bow, the quiver, and
the lion's hide, were sculptured in massy gold. The progress of
desolation by sea and land, from the Euxine to the Isle of
Cyprus, compelled the emperor Nicephorus to retract his haughty
defiance. In the new treaty, the ruins of Heraclea were left
forever as a lesson and a trophy; and the coin of the tribute was
marked with the image and superscription of Harun and his three
sons. Yet this plurality of lords might contribute to remove the
dishonor of the Roman name. After the death of their father, the
heirs of the caliph were involved in civil discord, and the
conqueror, the liberal Almamon, was sufficiently engaged in the
restoration of domestic peace and the introduction of foreign
science.
Chapter LII: More Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
IV.
Under the reign of Almamon at Bagdad, of Michael the Stammerer
at Constantinople, the islands of Crete and Sicily were subdued
by the Arabs. The former of these conquests is disdained by their
own writers, who were ignorant of the fame of Jupiter and Minos,
but it has not been overlooked by the Byzantine historians, who
now begin to cast a clearer light on the affairs of their own
times. A band of Andalusian volunteers, discontented with the
climate or government of Spain, explored the adventures of the
sea; but as they sailed in no more than ten or twenty galleys,
their warfare must be branded with the name of piracy. As the
subjects and sectaries of the
whiteparty, they might lawfully invade
the dominions of the black caliphs. A
rebellious faction introduced them into Alexandria; they cut in
pieces both friends and foes, pillaged the churches and the
moschs, sold above six thousand Christian captives, and
maintained their station in the capital of Egypt, till they were
oppressed by the forces and the presence of Almamon himself. From
the mouth of the Nile to the Hellespont, the islands and
sea-coasts both of the Greeks and Moslems were exposed to their
depredations; they saw, they envied, they tasted the fertility of
Crete, and soon returned with forty galleys to a more serious
attack. The Andalusians wandered over the land fearless and
unmolested; but when they descended with their plunder to the
sea-shore, their vessels were in flames, and their chief, Abu
Caab, confessed himself the author of the mischief. Their clamors
accused his madness or treachery. "Of what do you complain?"
replied the crafty emir. "I have brought you to a land flowing
with milk and honey. Here is your true country; repose from your
toils, and forget the barren place of your nativity." "And our
wives and children?" "Your beauteous captives will supply the
place of your wives, and in their embraces you will soon become
the fathers of a new progeny." The first habitation was their
camp, with a ditch and rampart, in the Bay of Suda; but an
apostate monk led them to a more desirable position in the
eastern parts; and the name of Candax, their fortress and colony,
has been extended to the whole island, under the corrupt and
modern appellation of Candia. The
hundred cities of the age of Minos were diminished to thirty; and
of these, only one, most probably Cydonia, had courage to retain
the substance of freedom and the profession of Christianity. The
Saracens of Crete soon repaired the loss of their navy; and the
timbers of Mount Ida were launched into the main. During a
hostile period of one hundred and thirty-eight years, the princes
of Constantinople attacked these licentious corsairs with
fruitless curses and ineffectual arms.
The loss of Sicily was occasioned by an act of superstitious
rigor. An amorous youth, who had stolen a nun from her cloister,
was sentenced by the emperor to the amputation of his tongue.
Euphemius appealed to the reason and policy of the Saracens of
Africa; and soon returned with the Imperial purple, a fleet of
one hundred ships, and an army of seven hundred horse and ten
thousand foot. They landed at Mazara near the ruins of the
ancient Selinus; but after some partial victories, Syracuse was
delivered by the Greeks, the apostate was slain before her walls,
and his African friends were reduced to the necessity of feeding
on the flesh of their own horses. In their turn they were
relieved by a powerful reënforcement of their brethren of
Andalusia; the largest and western part of the island was
gradually reduced, and the commodious harbor of Palermo was
chosen for the seat of the naval and military power of the
Saracens. Syracuse preserved about fifty years the faith which
she had sworn to Christ and to Cæsar. In the last and fatal
siege, her citizens displayed some remnant of the spirit which
had formerly resisted the powers of Athens and Carthage. They
stood above twenty days against the battering-rams and
catapult, the mines and tortoises of
the besiegers; and the place might have been relieved, if the
mariners of the Imperial fleet had not been detained at
Constantinople in building a church to the Virgin Mary. The
deacon Theodosius, with the bishop and clergy, was dragged in
chains from the altar to Palermo, cast into a subterraneous
dungeon, and exposed to the hourly peril of death or apostasy.
His pathetic, and not inelegant, complaint may be read as the
epitaph of his country. From the Roman conquest to this final
calamity, Syracuse, now dwindled to the primitive Isle of
Ortygea, had insensibly declined. Yet the relics were still
precious; the plate of the cathedral weighed five thousand pounds
of silver; the entire spoil was computed at one million of pieces
of gold, (about four hundred thousand pounds sterling,) and the
captives must outnumber the seventeen thousand Christians, who
were transported from the sack of Tauromenium into African
servitude. In Sicily, the religion and language of the Greeks
were eradicated; and such was the docility of the rising
generation, that fifteen thousand boys were circumcised and
clothed on the same day with the son of the Fatimite caliph. The
Arabian squadrons issued from the harbors of Palermo, Biserta,
and Tunis; a hundred and fifty towns of Calabria and Campania
were attacked and pillaged; nor could the suburbs of Rome be
defended by the name of the Cæsars and apostles. Had the
Mahometans been united, Italy must have fallen an easy and
glorious accession to the empire of the prophet. But the caliphs
of Bagdad had lost their authority in the West; the Aglabites and
Fatimites usurped the provinces of Africa, their emirs of Sicily
aspired to independence; and the design of conquest and dominion
was degraded to a repetition of predatory inroads.
In the sufferings of prostrate Italy, the name of Rome awakens
a solemn and mournful recollection. A fleet of Saracens from the
African coast presumed to enter the mouth of the Tyber, and to
approach a city which even yet, in her fallen state, was revered
as the metropolis of the Christian world. The gates and ramparts
were guarded by a trembling people; but the tombs and temples of
St. Peter and St. Paul were left exposed in the suburbs of the
Vatican and of the Ostian way. Their invisible sanctity had
protected them against the Goths, the Vandals, and the Lombards;
but the Arabs disdained both the gospel and the legend; and their
rapacious spirit was approved and animated by the precepts of the
Koran. The Christian idols were
stripped of their costly offerings; a silver altar was torn away
from the shrine of St. Peter; and if the bodies or the buildings
were left entire, their deliverance must be imputed to the haste,
rather than the scruples, of the Saracens. In their course along
the Appian way, they pillaged Fundi and besieged Gayeta; but they
had turned aside from the walls of Rome, and by their divisions,
the Capitol was saved from the yoke of the prophet of Mecca. The
same danger still impended on the heads of the Roman people; and
their domestic force was unequal to the assault of an African
emir. They claimed the protection of their Latin sovereign; but
the Carlovingian standard was overthrown by a detachment of the
Barbarians: they meditated the restoration of the Greek emperors;
but the attempt was treasonable, and the succor remote and
precarious. Their distress appeared to receive some aggravation
from the death of their spiritual and temporal chief; but the
pressing emergency superseded the forms and intrigues of an
election; and the unanimous choice of Pope Leo the Fourth was the
safety of the church and city. This pontiff was born a Roman; the
courage of the first ages of the republic glowed in his breast;
and, amidst the ruins of his country, he stood erect, like one of
the firm and lofty columns that rear their heads above the
fragments of the Roman forum. The first days of his reign were
consecrated to the purification and removal of relics, to prayers
and processions, and to all the solemn offices of religion, which
served at least to heal the imagination, and restore the hopes,
of the multitude. The public defence had been long neglected, not
from the presumption of peace, but from the distress and poverty
of the times. As far as the scantiness of his means and the
shortness of his leisure would allow, the ancient walls were
repaired by the command of Leo; fifteen towers, in the most
accessible stations, were built or renewed; two of these
commanded on either side of the Tyber; and an iron chain was
drawn across the stream to impede the ascent of a hostile navy.
The Romans were assured of a short respite by the welcome news,
that the siege of Gayeta had been raised, and that a part of the
enemy, with their sacrilegious plunder, had perished in the
waves.
But the storm, which had been delayed, soon burst upon them
with redoubled violence. The Aglabite, who reigned in Africa, had
inherited from his father a treasure and an army: a fleet of
Arabs and Moors, after a short refreshment in the harbors of
Sardinia, cast anchor before the mouth of the Tyber, sixteen
miles from the city: and their discipline and numbers appeared to
threaten, not a transient inroad, but a serious design of
conquest and dominion. But the vigilance of Leo had formed an
alliance with the vassals of the Greek empire, the free and
maritime states of Gayeta, Naples, and Amalfi; and in the hour of
danger, their galleys appeared in the port of Ostia under the
command of Cæsarius, the son of the Neapolitan duke, a
noble and valiant youth, who had already vanquished the fleets of
the Saracens. With his principal companions, Cæsarius was
invited to the Lateran palace, and the dexterous pontiff affected
to inquire their errand, and to accept with joy and surprise
their providential succor. The city bands, in arms, attended
their father to Ostia, where he reviewed and blessed his generous
deliverers. They kissed his feet, received the communion with
martial devotion, and listened to the prayer of Leo, that the
same God who had supported St. Peter and St. Paul on the waves of
the sea, would strengthen the hands of his champions against the
adversaries of his holy name. After a similar prayer, and with
equal resolution, the Moslems advanced to the attack of the
Christian galleys, which preserved their advantageous station
along the coast. The victory inclined to the side of the allies,
when it was less gloriously decided in their favor by a sudden
tempest, which confounded the skill and courage of the stoutest
mariners. The Christians were sheltered in a friendly harbor,
while the Africans were scattered and dashed in pieces among the
rocks and islands of a hostile shore. Those who escaped from
shipwreck and hunger neither found, nor deserved, mercy at the
hands of their implacable pursuers. The sword and the gibbet
reduced the dangerous multitude of captives; and the remainder
was more usefully employed, to restore the sacred edifices which
they had attempted to subvert. The pontiff, at the head of the
citizens and allies, paid his grateful devotion at the shrines of
the apostles; and, among the spoils of this naval victory,
thirteen Arabian bows of pure and massy silver were suspended
round the altar of the fishermen of Galilee. The reign of Leo the
Fourth was employed in the defence and ornament of the Roman
state. The churches were renewed and embellished: near four
thousand pounds of silver were consecrated to repair the losses
of St. Peter; and his sanctuary was decorated with a plate of
gold of the weight of two hundred and sixteen pounds, embossed
with the portraits of the pope and emperor, and encircled with a
string of pearls. Yet this vain magnificence reflects less glory
on the character of Leo than the paternal care with which he
rebuilt the walls of Horta and Ameria; and transported the
wandering inhabitants of Centumcellæ to his new foundation
of Leopolis, twelve miles from the sea-shore. By his liberality,
a colony of Corsicans, with their wives and children, was planted
in the station of Porto, at the mouth of the Tyber: the falling
city was restored for their use, the fields and vineyards were
divided among the new settlers: their first efforts were assisted
by a gift of horses and cattle; and the hardy exiles, who
breathed revenge against the Saracens, swore to live and die
under the standard of St. Peter. The nations of the West and
North who visited the threshold of the apostles had gradually
formed the large and populous suburb of the Vatican, and their
various habitations were distinguished, in the language of the
times, as the schools of the Greeks and Goths, of the Lombards
and Saxons. But this venerable spot was still open to
sacrilegious insult: the design of enclosing it with walls and
towers exhausted all that authority could command, or charity
would supply: and the pious labor of four years was animated in
every season, and at every hour, by the presence of the
indefatigable pontiff. The love of fame, a generous but worldly
passion, may be detected in the name of the Leonine
city, which he bestowed on the Vatican; yet the
pride of the dedication was tempered with Christian penance and
humility. The boundary was trod by the bishop and his clergy,
barefoot, in sackcloth and ashes; the songs of triumph were
modulated to psalms and litanies; the walls were besprinkled with
holy water; and the ceremony was concluded with a prayer, that,
under the guardian care of the apostles and the angelic host,
both the old and the new Rome might ever be preserved pure,
prosperous, and impregnable.
The emperor Theophilus, son of Michael the Stammerer, was one
of the most active and high-spirited princes who reigned at
Constantinople during the middle age. In offensive or defensive
war, he marched in person five times against the Saracens,
formidable in his attack, esteemed by the enemy in his losses and
defeats. In the last of these expeditions he penetrated into
Syria, and besieged the obscure town of Sozopetra; the casual
birthplace of the caliph Motassem, whose father Harun was
attended in peace or war by the most favored of his wives and
concubines. The revolt of a Persian impostor employed at that
moment the arms of the Saracen, and he could only intercede in
favor of a place for which he felt and acknowledged some degree
of filial affection. These solicitations determined the emperor
to wound his pride in so sensible a part. Sozopetra was levelled
with the ground, the Syrian prisoners were marked or mutilated
with ignominious cruelty, and a thousand female captives were
forced away from the adjacent territory. Among these a matron of
the house of Abbas invoked, in an agony of despair, the name of
Motassem; and the insults of the Greeks engaged the honor of her
kinsman to avenge his indignity, and to answer her appeal. Under
the reign of the two elder brothers, the inheritance of the
youngest had been confined to Anatolia, Armenia, Georgia, and
Circassia; this frontier station had exercised his military
talents; and among his accidental claims to the name of
Octonary, the most meritorious are the
eight battles which he gained or fought
against the enemies of the Koran. In this personal quarrel, the
troops of Irak, Syria, and Egypt, were recruited from the tribes
of Arabia and the Turkish hordes; his cavalry might be numerous,
though we should deduct some myriads from the hundred and thirty
thousand horses of the royal stables; and the expense of the
armament was computed at four millions sterling, or one hundred
thousand pounds of gold. From Tarsus, the place of assembly, the
Saracens advanced in three divisions along the high road of
Constantinople: Motassem himself commanded the centre, and the
vanguard was given to his son Abbas, who, in the trial of the
first adventures, might succeed with the more glory, or fail with
the least reproach. In the revenge of his injury, the caliph
prepared to retaliate a similar affront. The father of Theophilus
was a native of Amorium in Phrygia: the original seat of the
Imperial house had been adorned with privileges and monuments;
and, whatever might be the indifference of the people,
Constantinople itself was scarcely of more value in the eyes of
the sovereign and his court. The name of Amorium was inscribed on
the shields of the Saracens; and their three armies were again
united under the walls of the devoted city. It had been proposed
by the wisest counsellors, to evacuate Amorium, to remove the
inhabitants, and to abandon the empty structures to the vain
resentment of the Barbarians. The emperor embraced the more
generous resolution of defending, in a siege and battle, the
country of his ancestors. When the armies drew near, the front of
the Mahometan line appeared to a Roman eye more closely planted
with spears and javelins; but the event of the action was not
glorious on either side to the national troops. The Arabs were
broken, but it was by the swords of thirty thousand Persians, who
had obtained service and settlement in the Byzantine empire. The
Greeks were repulsed and vanquished, but it was by the arrows of
the Turkish cavalry; and had not their bowstrings been damped and
relaxed by the evening rain, very few of the Christians could
have escaped with the emperor from the field of battle. They
breathed at Dorylæum, at the distance of three days; and
Theophilus, reviewing his trembling squadrons, forgave the common
flight both of the prince and people. After this discovery of his
weakness, he vainly hoped to deprecate the fate of Amorium: the
inexorable caliph rejected with contempt his prayers and
promises; and detained the Roman ambassadors to be the witnesses
of his great revenge. They had nearly been the witnesses of his
shame. The vigorous assaults of fifty-five days were encountered
by a faithful governor, a veteran garrison, and a desperate
people; and the Saracens must have raised the siege, if a
domestic traitor had not pointed to the weakest part of the wall,
a place which was decorated with the statues of a lion and a
bull. The vow of Motassem was accomplished with unrelenting
rigor: tired, rather than satiated, with destruction, he returned
to his new palace of Samara, in the neighborhood of Bagdad, while
the unfortunate Theophilus implored the
tardy and doubtful aid of his Western rival the emperor of the
Franks. Yet in the siege of Amorium about seventy thousand
Moslems had perished: their loss had been revenged by the
slaughter of thirty thousand Christians, and the sufferings of an
equal number of captives, who were treated as the most atrocious
criminals. Mutual necessity could sometimes extort the exchange
or ransom of prisoners: but in the national and religious
conflict of the two empires, peace was without confidence, and
war without mercy. Quarter was seldom given in the field; those
who escaped the edge of the sword were condemned to hopeless
servitude, or exquisite torture; and a Catholic emperor relates,
with visible satisfaction, the execution of the Saracens of
Crete, who were flayed alive, or plunged into caldrons of boiling
oil. To a point of honor Motassem had sacrificed a flourishing
city, two hundred thousand lives, and the property of millions.
The same caliph descended from his horse, and dirtied his robe,
to relieve the distress of a decrepit old man, who, with his
laden ass, had tumbled into a ditch. On which of these actions
did he reflect with the most pleasure, when he was summoned by
the angel of death?
With Motassem, the eighth of the Abbassides, the glory of his
family and nation expired. When the Arabian conquerors had spread
themselves over the East, and were mingled with the servile
crowds of Persia, Syria, and Egypt, they insensibly lost the
freeborn and martial virtues of the desert. The courage of the
South is the artificial fruit of discipline and prejudice; the
active power of enthusiasm had decayed, and the mercenary forces
of the caliphs were recruited in those climates of the North, of
which valor is the hardy and spontaneous production. Of the Turks
who dwelt beyond the Oxus and Jaxartes, the robust youths, either
taken in war or purchased in trade, were educated in the
exercises of the field, and the profession of the Mahometan
faith. The Turkish guards stood in arms round the throne of their
benefactor, and their chiefs usurped the dominion of the palace
and the provinces. Motassem, the first author of this dangerous
example, introduced into the capital above fifty thousand Turks:
their licentious conduct provoked the public indignation, and the
quarrels of the soldiers and people induced the caliph to retire
from Bagdad, and establish his own residence and the camp of his
Barbarian favorites at Samara on the Tigris, about twelve leagues
above the city of Peace. His son Motawakkel was a jealous and
cruel tyrant: odious to his subjects, he cast himself on the
fidelity of the strangers, and these strangers, ambitious and
apprehensive, were tempted by the rich promise of a revolution.
At the instigation, or at least in the cause of his son, they
burst into his apartment at the hour of supper, and the caliph
was cut into seven pieces by the same swords which he had
recently distributed among the guards of his life and throne. To
this throne, yet streaming with a father's blood, Montasser was
triumphantly led; but in a reign of six months, he found only the
pangs of a guilty conscience. If he wept at the sight of an old
tapestry which represented the crime and punishment of the son of
Chosroes, if his days were abridged by grief and remorse, we may
allow some pity to a parricide, who exclaimed, in the bitterness
of death, that he had lost both this world and the world to come.
After this act of treason, the ensigns of royalty, the garment
and walking-staff of Mahomet, were given and torn away by the
foreign mercenaries, who in four years created, deposed, and
murdered, three commanders of the faithful. As often as the Turks
were inflamed by fear, or rage, or avarice, these caliphs were
dragged by the feet, exposed naked to the scorching sun, beaten
with iron clubs, and compelled to purchase, by the abdication of
their dignity, a short reprieve of inevitable fate. At length,
however, the fury of the tempest was spent or diverted: the
Abbassides returned to the less turbulent residence of Bagdad;
the insolence of the Turks was curbed with a firmer and more
skilful hand, and their numbers were divided and destroyed in
foreign warfare. But the nations of the East had been taught to
trample on the successors of the prophet; and the blessings of
domestic peace were obtained by the relaxation of strength and
discipline. So uniform are the mischiefs of military despotism,
that I seem to repeat the story of the prætorians of
Rome.
While the flame of enthusiasm was damped by the business, the
pleasure, and the knowledge, of the age, it burnt with
concentrated heat in the breasts of the chosen few, the congenial
spirits, who were ambitious of reigning either in this world or
in the next. How carefully soever the book of prophecy had been
sealed by the apostle of Mecca, the wishes, and (if we may
profane the word) even the reason, of fanaticism might believe
that, after the successive missions of Adam, Noah, Abraham,
Moses, Jesus, and Mahomet, the same God, in the fulness of time,
would reveal a still more perfect and permanent law. In the two
hundred and seventy-seventh year of the Hegira, and in the
neighborhood of Cufa, an Arabian preacher, of the name of
Carmath, assumed the lofty and incomprehensible style of the
Guide, the Director, the Demonstration, the Word, the Holy Ghost,
the Camel, the Herald of the Messiah, who had conversed with him
in a human shape, and the representative of Mohammed the son of
Ali, of St. John the Baptist, and of the angel Gabriel. In his
mystic volume, the precepts of the Koran were refined to a more
spiritual sense: he relaxed the duties of ablution, fasting, and
pilgrimage; allowed the indiscriminate use of wine and forbidden
food; and nourished the fervor of his disciples by the daily
repetition of fifty prayers. The idleness and ferment of the
rustic crowd awakened the attention of the magistrates of Cufa; a
timid persecution assisted the progress of the new sect; and the
name of the prophet became more revered after his person had been
withdrawn from the world. His twelve apostles dispersed
themselves among the Bedoweens, "a race of men," says Abulfeda,
"equally devoid of reason and of religion;" and the success of
their preaching seemed to threaten Arabia with a new revolution.
The Carmathians were ripe for rebellion, since they disclaimed
the title of the house of Abbas, and abhorred the worldly pomp of
the caliphs of Bagdad. They were susceptible of discipline, since
they vowed a blind and absolute submission to their Imam, who was
called to the prophetic office by the voice of God and the
people. Instead of the legal tithes, he claimed the fifth of
their substance and spoil; the most flagitious sins were no more
than the type of disobedience; and the brethren were united and
concealed by an oath of secrecy. After a bloody conflict, they
prevailed in the province of Bahrein, along the Persian Gulf: far
and wide, the tribes of the desert were subject to the sceptre,
or rather to the sword of Abu Said and his son Abu Taher; and
these rebellious imams could muster in the field a hundred and
seven thousand fanatics. The mercenaries of the caliph were
dismayed at the approach of an enemy who neither asked nor
accepted quarter; and the difference between, them in fortitude
and patience, is expressive of the change which three centuries
of prosperity had effected in the character of the Arabians. Such
troops were discomfited in every action; the cities of Racca and
Baalbec, of Cufa and Bassora, were taken and pillaged; Bagdad was
filled with consternation; and the caliph trembled behind the
veils of his palace. In a daring inroad beyond the Tigris, Abu
Taher advanced to the gates of the capital with no more than five
hundred horse. By the special order of Moctader, the bridges had
been broken down, and the person or head of the rebel was
expected every hour by the commander of the faithful. His
lieutenant, from a motive of fear or pity, apprised Abu Taher of
his danger, and recommended a speedy escape. "Your master," said
the intrepid Carmathian to the messenger, "is at the head of
thirty thousand soldiers: three such men as these are wanting in
his host: " at the same instant, turning to three of his
companions, he commanded the first to plunge a dagger into his
breast, the second to leap into the Tigris, and the third to cast
himself headlong down a precipice. They obeyed without a murmur.
"Relate," continued the imam, "what you have seen: before the
evening your general shall be chained among my dogs." Before the
evening, the camp was surprised, and the menace was executed. The
rapine of the Carmathians was sanctified by their aversion to the
worship of Mecca: they robbed a caravan of pilgrims, and twenty
thousand devout Moslems were abandoned on the burning sands to a
death of hunger and thirst. Another year they suffered the
pilgrims to proceed without interruption; but, in the festival of
devotion, Abu Taher stormed the holy city, and trampled on the
most venerable relics of the Mahometan faith. Thirty thousand
citizens and strangers were put to the sword; the sacred
precincts were polluted by the burial of three thousand dead
bodies; the well of Zemzem overflowed with blood; the golden
spout was forced from its place; the veil of the Caaba was
divided among these impious sectaries; and the black stone, the
first monument of the nation, was borne away in triumph to their
capital. After this deed of sacrilege and cruelty, they continued
to infest the confines of Irak, Syria, and Egypt: but the vital
principle of enthusiasm had withered at the root. Their scruples,
or their avarice, again opened the pilgrimage of Mecca, and
restored the black stone of the Caaba; and it is needless to
inquire into what factions they were broken, or by whose swords
they were finally extirpated. The sect of the Carmathians may be
considered as the second visible cause of the decline and fall of
the empire of the caliphs.
Chapter LII: More Conquests By The Arabs. -- Part
V.
The third and most obvious cause was the weight and magnitude
of the empire itself. The caliph Almamon might proudly assert,
that it was easier for him to rule the East and the West, than to
manage a chess-board of two feet square: yet I suspect that in
both those games he was guilty of many fatal mistakes; and I
perceive, that in the distant provinces the authority of the
first and most powerful of the Abbassides was already impaired.
The analogy of despotism invests the representative with the full
majesty of the prince; the division and balance of powers might
relax the habits of obedience, might encourage the passive
subject to inquire into the origin and administration of civil
government. He who is born in the purple is seldom worthy to
reign; but the elevation of a private man, of a peasant, perhaps,
or a slave, affords a strong presumption of his courage and
capacity. The viceroy of a remote kingdom aspires to secure the
property and inheritance of his precarious trust; the nations
must rejoice in the presence of their sovereign; and the command
of armies and treasures are at once the object and the instrument
of his ambition. A change was scarcely visible as long as the
lieutenants of the caliph were content with their vicarious
title; while they solicited for themselves or their sons a
renewal of the Imperial grant, and still maintained on the coin
and in the public prayers the name and prerogative of the
commander of the faithful. But in the long and hereditary
exercise of power, they assumed the pride and attributes of
royalty; the alternative of peace or war, of reward or
punishment, depended solely on their will; and the revenues of
their government were reserved for local services or private
magnificence. Instead of a regular supply of men and money, the
successors of the prophet were flattered with the ostentatious
gift of an elephant, or a cast of hawks, a suit of silk hangings,
or some pounds of musk and amber.
After the revolt of Spain from the temporal and spiritual
supremacy of the Abbassides, the first symptoms of disobedience
broke forth in the province of Africa. Ibrahim, the son of Aglab,
the lieutenant of the vigilant and rigid Harun, bequeathed to the
dynasty of the Aglabites the
inheritance of his name and power. The indolence or policy of the
caliphs dissembled the injury and loss, and pursued only with
poison the founder of the Edrisites,
who erected the kingdom and city of Fez on the shores of the
Western ocean. In the East, the first dynasty was that of the
Taherites; the posterity of the valiant
Taher, who, in the civil wars of the sons of Harun, had served
with too much zeal and success the cause of Almamon, the younger
brother. He was sent into honorable exile, to command on the
banks of the Oxus; and the independence of his successors, who
reigned in Chorasan till the fourth generation, was palliated by
their modest and respectful demeanor, the happiness of their
subjects and the security of their frontier. They were supplanted
by one of those adventures so frequent in the annals of the East,
who left his trade of a brazier (from whence the name of
Soffarides) for the profession of a
robber. In a nocturnal visit to the treasure of the prince of
Sistan, Jacob, the son of Leith, stumbled over a lump of salt,
which he unwarily tasted with his tongue. Salt, among the
Orientals, is the symbol of hospitality, and the pious robber
immediately retired without spoil or damage. The discovery of
this honorable behavior recommended Jacob to pardon and trust; he
led an army at first for his benefactor, at last for himself,
subdued Persia, and threatened the residence of the Abbassides.
On his march towards Bagdad, the conqueror was arrested by a
fever. He gave audience in bed to the ambassador of the caliph;
and beside him on a table were exposed a naked cimeter, a crust
of brown bread, and a bunch of onions. "If I die," said he, "your
master is delivered from his fears. If I live,
thismust determine between us. If I am
vanquished, I can return without reluctance to the homely fare of
my youth." From the height where he stood, the descent would not
have been so soft or harmless: a timely death secured his own
repose and that of the caliph, who paid with the most lavish
concessions the retreat of his brother Amrou to the palaces of
Shiraz and Ispahan. The Abbassides were too feeble to contend,
too proud to forgive: they invited the powerful dynasty of the
Samanides, who passed the Oxus with ten
thousand horse so poor, that their stirrups were of wood: so
brave, that they vanquished the Soffarian army, eight times more
numerous than their own. The captive Amrou was sent in chains, a
grateful offering to the court of Bagdad; and as the victor was
content with the inheritance of Transoxiana and Chorasan, the
realms of Persia returned for a while to the allegiance of the
caliphs. The provinces of Syria and Egypt were twice dismembered
by their Turkish slaves of the race of
Toulon and
Ilkshid. These Barbarians, in religion
and manners the countrymen of Mahomet, emerged from the bloody
factions of the palace to a provincial command and an independent
throne: their names became famous and formidable in their time;
but the founders of these two potent dynasties confessed, either
in words or actions, the vanity of ambition. The first on his
death-bed implored the mercy of God to a sinner, ignorant of the
limits of his own power: the second, in the midst of four hundred
thousand soldiers and eight thousand slaves, concealed from every
human eye the chamber where he attempted to sleep. Their sons
were educated in the vices of kings; and both Egypt and Syria
were recovered and possessed by the Abbassides during an interval
of thirty years. In the decline of their empire, Mesopotamia,
with the important cities of Mosul and Aleppo, was occupied by
the Arabian princes of the tribe of
Hamadan. The poets of their court could
repeat without a blush, that nature had formed their countenances
for beauty, their tongues for eloquence, and their hands for
liberality and valor: but the genuine tale of the elevation and
reign of the Hamadanites exhibits a
scene of treachery, murder, and parricide. At the same fatal
period, the Persian kingdom was again usurped by the dynasty of
the Bowides, by the sword of three
brothers, who, under various names, were styled the support and
columns of the state, and who, from the Caspian Sea to the ocean,
would suffer no tyrants but themselves. Under their reign, the
language and genius of Persia revived, and the Arabs, three
hundred and four years after the death of Mahomet, were deprived
of the sceptre of the East.
Rahadi, the twentieth of the Abbassides, and the thirty-ninth
of the successors of Mahomet, was the last who deserved the title
of commander of the faithful; the last (says Abulfeda) who spoke
to the people, or conversed with the learned; the last who, in
the expense of his household, represented the wealth and
magnificence of the ancient caliphs. After him, the lords of the
Eastern world were reduced to the most abject misery, and exposed
to the blows and insults of a servile condition. The revolt of
the provinces circumscribed their dominions within the walls of
Bagdad: but that capital still contained an innumerable
multitude, vain of their past fortune, discontented with their
present state, and oppressed by the demands of a treasury which
had formerly been replenished by the spoil and tribute of
nations. Their idleness was exercised by faction and controversy.
Under the mask of piety, the rigid followers of Hanbal invaded
the pleasures of domestic life, burst into the houses of
plebeians and princes, the wine, broke the instruments, beat the
musicians, and dishonored, with infamous suspicions, the
associates of every handsome youth. In each profession, which
allowed room for two persons, the one was a votary, the other an
antagonist, of Ali; and the Abbassides were awakened by the
clamorous grief of the sectaries, who denied their title, and
cursed their progenitors. A turbulent people could only be
repressed by a military force; but who could satisfy the avarice
or assert the discipline of the mercenaries themselves? The
African and the Turkish guards drew their swords against each
other, and the chief commanders, the emirs al Omra, imprisoned or
deposed their sovereigns, and violated the sanctuary of the mosch
and harem. If the caliphs escaped to the camp or court of any
neighboring prince, their deliverance was a change of servitude,
till they were prompted by despair to invite the Bowides, the
sultans of Persia, who silenced the factions of Bagdad by their
irresistible arms. The civil and military powers were assumed by
Moezaldowlat, the second of the three brothers, and a stipend of
sixty thousand pounds sterling was assigned by his generosity for
the private expense of the commander of the faithful. But on the
fortieth day, at the audience of the ambassadors of Chorasan, and
in the presence of a trembling multitude, the caliph was dragged
from his throne to a dungeon, by the command of the stranger, and
the rude hands of his Dilemites. His palace was pillaged, his
eyes were put out, and the mean ambition of the Abbassides
aspired to the vacant station of danger and disgrace. In the
school of adversity, the luxurious caliphs resumed the grave and
abstemious virtues of the primitive times. Despoiled of their
armor and silken robes, they fasted, they prayed, they studied
the Koran and the tradition of the Sonnites: they performed, with
zeal and knowledge, the functions of their ecclesiastical
character. The respect of nations still waited on the successors
of the apostle, the oracles of the law and conscience of the
faithful; and the weakness or division of their tyrants sometimes
restored the Abbassides to the sovereignty of Bagdad. But their
misfortunes had been imbittered by the triumph of the Fatimites,
the real or spurious progeny of Ali. Arising from the extremity
of Africa, these successful rivals extinguished, in Egypt and
Syria, both the spiritual and temporal authority of the
Abbassides; and the monarch of the Nile insulted the humble
pontiff on the banks of the Tigris.
In the declining age of the caliphs, in the century which
elapsed after the war of Theophilus and Motassem, the hostile
transactions of the two nations were confined to some inroads by
sea and land, the fruits of their close vicinity and indelible
hatred. But when the Eastern world was convulsed and broken, the
Greeks were roused from their lethargy by the hopes of conquest
and revenge. The Byzantine empire, since the accession of the
Basilian race, had reposed in peace and dignity; and they might
encounter with their entire strength the front of some petty
emir, whose rear was assaulted and threatened by his national
foes of the Mahometan faith. The lofty titles of the morning
star, and the death of the Saracens, were applied in the public
acclamations to Nicephorus Phocas, a prince as renowned in the
camp, as he was unpopular in the city. In the subordinate station
of great domestic, or general of the East, he reduced the Island
of Crete, and extirpated the nest of pirates who had so long
defied, with impunity, the majesty of the empire. His military
genius was displayed in the conduct and success of the
enterprise, which had so often failed with loss and dishonor. The
Saracens were confounded by the landing of his troops on safe and
level bridges, which he cast from the vessels to the shore. Seven
months were consumed in the siege of Candia; the despair of the
native Cretans was stimulated by the frequent aid of their
brethren of Africa and Spain; and after the massy wall and double
ditch had been stormed by the Greeks a hopeless conflict was
still maintained in the streets and houses of the city. * The
whole island was subdued in the capital, and a submissive people
accepted, without resistance, the baptism of the conqueror.
Constantinople applauded the long-forgotten pomp of a triumph;
but the Imperial diadem was the sole reward that could repay the
services, or satisfy the ambition, of Nicephorus.
After the death of the younger Romanus, the fourth in lineal
descent of the Basilian race, his widow Theophania successively
married Nicephorus Phocas and his assassin John Zimisces, the two
heroes of the age. They reigned as the guardians and colleagues
of her infant sons; and the twelve years of their military
command form the most splendid period of the Byzantine annals.
The subjects and confederates, whom they led to war, appeared, at
least in the eyes of an enemy, two hundred thousand strong; and
of these about thirty thousand were armed with cuirasses: a train
of four thousand mules attended their march; and their evening
camp was regularly fortified with an enclosure of iron spikes. A
series of bloody and undecisive combats is nothing more than an
anticipation of what would have been effected in a few years by
the course of nature; but I shall briefly prosecute the conquests
of the two emperors from the hills of Cappadocia to the desert of
Bagdad. The sieges of Mopsuestia and Tarsus, in Cilicia, first
exercised the skill and perseverance of their troops, on whom, at
this moment, I shall not hesitate to bestow the name of Romans.
In the double city of Mopsuestia, which is divided by the River
Sarus, two hundred thousand Moslems were predestined to death or
slavery, a surprising degree of population, which must at least
include the inhabitants of the dependent districts. They were
surrounded and taken by assault; but Tarsus was reduced by the
slow progress of famine; and no sooner had the Saracens yielded
on honorable terms than they were mortified by the distant and
unprofitable view of the naval succors of Egypt. They were
dismissed with a safe-conduct to the confines of Syria: a part of
the old Christians had quietly lived under their dominion; and
the vacant habitations were replenished by a new colony. But the
mosch was converted into a stable; the pulpit was delivered to
the flames; many rich crosses of gold and gems, the spoils of
Asiatic churches, were made a grateful offering to the piety or
avarice of the emperor; and he transported the gates of
Mopsuestia and Tarsus, which were fixed in the walls of
Constantinople, an eternal monument of his victory. After they
had forced and secured the narrow passes of Mount Amanus, the two
Roman princes repeatedly carried their arms into the heart of
Syria. Yet, instead of assaulting the walls of Antioch, the
humanity or superstition of Nicephorus appeared to respect the
ancient metropolis of the East: he contented himself with drawing
round the city a line of circumvallation; left a stationary army;
and instructed his lieutenant to expect, without impatience, the
return of spring. But in the depth of winter, in a dark and rainy
night, an adventurous subaltern, with three hundred soldiers,
approached the rampart, applied his scaling-ladders, occupied two
adjacent towers, stood firm against the pressure of multitudes,
and bravely maintained his post till he was relieved by the
tardy, though effectual, support of his reluctant chief. The
first tumult of slaughter and rapine subsided; the reign of
Cæsar and of Christ was restored; and the efforts of a
hundred thousand Saracens, of the armies of Syria and the fleets
of Africa, were consumed without effect before the walls of
Antioch. The royal city of Aleppo was subject to Seifeddowlat, of
the dynasty of Hamadan, who clouded his past glory by the
precipitate retreat which abandoned his kingdom and capital to
the Roman invaders. In his stately palace, that stood without the
walls of Aleppo, they joyfully seized a well-furnished magazine
of arms, a stable of fourteen hundred mules, and three hundred
bags of silver and gold. But the walls of the city withstood the
strokes of their battering-rams: and the besiegers pitched their
tents on the neighboring mountain of Jaushan. Their retreat
exasperated the quarrel of the townsmen and mercenaries; the
guard of the gates and ramparts was deserted; and while they
furiously charged each other in the market-place, they were
surprised and destroyed by the sword of a common enemy. The male
sex was exterminated by the sword; ten thousand youths were led
into captivity; the weight of the precious spoil exceeded the
strength and number of the beasts of burden; the superfluous
remainder was burnt; and, after a licentious possession of ten
days, the Romans marched away from the naked and bleeding city.
In their Syrian inroads they commanded the husbandmen to
cultivate their lands, that they themselves, in the ensuing
season, might reap the benefit; more than a hundred cities were
reduced to obedience; and eighteen pulpits of the principal
moschs were committed to the flames to expiate the sacrilege of
the disciples of Mahomet. The classic names of Hierapolis,
Apamea, and Emesa, revive for a moment in the list of conquest:
the emperor Zimisces encamped in the paradise of Damascus, and
accepted the ransom of a submissive people; and the torrent was
only stopped by the impregnable fortress of Tripoli, on the
sea-coast of Phnicia. Since the days of Heraclius, the Euphrates,
below the passage of Mount Taurus, had been impervious, and
almost invisible, to the Greeks. The river yielded a free passage
to the victorious Zimisces; and the historian may imitate the
speed with which he overran the once famous cities of Samosata,
Edessa, Martyropolis, Amida, and Nisibis, the ancient limit of
the empire in the neighborhood of the Tigris. His ardor was
quickened by the desire of grasping the virgin treasures of
Ecbatana, a well-known name, under which the Byzantine writer has
concealed the capital of the Abbassides. The consternation of the
fugitives had already diffused the terror of his name; but the
fancied riches of Bagdad had already been dissipated by the
avarice and prodigality of domestic tyrants. The prayers of the
people, and the stern demands of the lieutenant of the Bowides,
required the caliph to provide for the defence of the city. The
helpless Mothi replied, that his arms, his revenues, and his
provinces, had been torn from his hands, and that he was ready to
abdicate a dignity which he was unable to support. The emir was
inexorable; the furniture of the palace was sold; and the paltry
price of forty thousand pieces of gold was instantly consumed in
private luxury. But the apprehensions of Bagdad were relieved by
the retreat of the Greeks: thirst and hunger guarded the desert
of Mesopotamia; and the emperor, satiated with glory, and laden
with Oriental spoils, returned to Constantinople, and displayed,
in his triumph, the silk, the aromatics, and three hundred
myriads of gold and silver. Yet the powers of the East had been
bent, not broken, by this transient hurricane. After the
departure of the Greeks, the fugitive princes returned to their
capitals; the subjects disclaimed their involuntary oaths of
allegiance; the Moslems again purified their temples, and
overturned the idols of the saints and martyrs; the Nestorians
and Jacobites preferred a Saracen to an orthodox master; and the
numbers and spirit of the Melchites were inadequate to the
support of the church and state. Of these extensive conquests,
Antioch, with the cities of Cilicia and the Isle of Cyprus, was
alone restored, a permanent and useful accession to the Roman
empire.
Chapter LIII: Fate Of The Eastern Empire.
Part I.
Fate Of The Eastern Empire In The Tenth Century. -- Extent And
Division. -- Wealth And Revenue. -- Palace Of Constantinople. --
Titles And Offices. -- Pride And Power Of The Emperors. --
Tactics Of The Greeks, Arabs, And Franks. -- Loss Of The Latin
Tongue. -- Studies And Solitude Of The Greeks.
A ray of historic light seems to beam from the darkness of the
tenth century. We open with curiosity and respect the royal
volumes of Constantine Porphyrogenitus, which he composed at a
mature age for the instruction of his son, and which promise to
unfold the state of the eastern empire, both in peace and war,
both at home and abroad. In the first of these works he minutely
describes the pompous ceremonies of the church and palace of
Constantinople, according to his own practice, and that of his
predecessors. In the second, he attempts an accurate survey of
the provinces, the themes, as they were
then denominated, both of Europe and Asia. The system of Roman
tactics, the discipline and order of the troops, and the military
operations by land and sea, are explained in the third of these
didactic collections, which may be ascribed to Constantine or his
father Leo. In the fourth, of the administration of the empire,
he reveals the secrets of the Byzantine policy, in friendly or
hostile intercourse with the nations of the earth. The literary
labors of the age, the practical systems of law, agriculture, and
history, might redound to the benefit of the subject and the
honor of the Macedonian princes. The sixty books of the
Basilics, the code and pandects of
civil jurisprudence, were gradually framed in the three first
reigns of that prosperous dynasty. The art of agriculture had
amused the leisure, and exercised the pens, of the best and
wisest of the ancients; and their chosen precepts are comprised
in the twenty books of the Geoponics of
Constantine. At his command, the historical examples of vice and
virtue were methodized in fifty-three books, and every citizen
might apply, to his contemporaries or himself, the lesson or the
warning of past times. From the august character of a legislator,
the sovereign of the East descends to the more humble office of a
teacher and a scribe; and if his successors and subjects were
regardless of his paternal cares, we
may inherit and enjoy the everlasting legacy.
A closer survey will indeed reduce the value of the gift, and
the gratitude of posterity: in the possession of these Imperial
treasures we may still deplore our poverty and ignorance; and the
fading glories of their authors will be obliterated by
indifference or contempt. The Basilics will sink to a broken
copy, a partial and mutilated version, in the Greek language, of
the laws of Justinian; but the sense of the old civilians is
often superseded by the influence of bigotry: and the absolute
prohibition of divorce, concubinage, and interest for money,
enslaves the freedom of trade and the happiness of private life.
In the historical book, a subject of Constantine might admire the
inimitable virtues of Greece and Rome: he might learn to what a
pitch of energy and elevation the human character had formerly
aspired. But a contrary effect must have been produced by a new
edition of the lives of the saints, which the great logothete, or
chancellor of the empire, was directed to prepare; and the dark
fund of superstition was enriched by the fabulous and florid
legends of Simon the Metaphrast. The
merits and miracles of the whole calendar are of less account in
the eyes of a sage, than the toil of a single husbandman, who
multiplies the gifts of the Creator, and supplies the food of his
brethren. Yet the royal authors of the
Geoponics were more seriously employed
in expounding the precepts of the destroying art, which had been
taught since the days of Xenophon, as the art of heroes and
kings. But the Tactics of Leo and
Constantine are mingled with the baser alloy of the age in which
they lived. It was destitute of original genius; they implicitly
transcribe the rules and maxims which had been confirmed by
victories. It was unskilled in the propriety of style and method;
they blindly confound the most distant and discordant
institutions, the phalanx of Sparta and that of Macedon, the
legions of Cato and Trajan, of Augustus and Theodosius. Even the
use, or at least the importance, of these military rudiments may
be fairly questioned: their general theory is dictated by reason;
but the merit, as well as difficulty, consists in the
application. The discipline of a soldier is formed by exercise
rather than by study: the talents of a commander are appropriated
to those calm, though rapid, minds, which nature produces to
decide the fate of armies and nations: the former is the habit of
a life, the latter the glance of a moment; and the battles won by
lessons of tactics may be numbered with the epic poems created
from the rules of criticism. The book of ceremonies is a recital,
tedious yet imperfect, of the despicable pageantry which had
infected the church and state since the gradual decay of the
purity of the one and the power of the other. A review of the
themes or provinces might promise such authentic and useful
information, as the curiosity of government only can obtain,
instead of traditionary fables on the origin of the cities, and
malicious epigrams on the vices of their inhabitants. Such
information the historian would have been pleased to record; nor
should his silence be condemned if the most interesting objects,
the population of the capital and provinces, the amount of the
taxes and revenues, the numbers of subjects and strangers who
served under the Imperial standard, have been unnoticed by Leo
the philosopher, and his son Constantine. His treatise of the
public administration is stained with the same blemishes; yet it
is discriminated by peculiar merit; the antiquities of the
nations may be doubtful or fabulous; but the geography and
manners of the Barbaric world are delineated with curious
accuracy. Of these nations, the Franks alone were qualified to
observe in their turn, and to describe, the metropolis of the
East. The ambassador of the great Otho, a bishop of Cremona, has
painted the state of Constantinople about the middle of the tenth
century: his style is glowing, his narrative lively, his
observation keen; and even the prejudices and passions of
Liutprand are stamped with an original character of freedom and
genius. From this scanty fund of foreign and domestic materials,
I shall investigate the form and substance of the Byzantine
empire; the provinces and wealth, the civil government and
military force, the character and literature, of the Greeks in a
period of six hundred years, from the reign of Heraclius to his
successful invasion of the Franks or Latins.
After the final division between the sons of Theodosius, the
swarms of Barbarians from Scythia and Germany over-spread the
provinces and extinguished the empire of ancient Rome. The
weakness of Constantinople was concealed by extent of dominion:
her limits were inviolate, or at least entire; and the kingdom of
Justinian was enlarged by the splendid acquisition of Africa and
Italy. But the possession of these new conquests was transient
and precarious; and almost a moiety of the Eastern empire was
torn away by the arms of the Saracens. Syria and Egypt were
oppressed by the Arabian caliphs; and, after the reduction of
Africa, their lieutenants invaded and subdued the Roman province
which had been changed into the Gothic monarchy of Spain. The
islands of the Mediterranean were not inaccessible to their naval
powers; and it was from their extreme stations, the harbors of
Crete and the fortresses of Cilicia, that the faithful or rebel
emirs insulted the majesty of the throne and capital. The
remaining provinces, under the obedience of the emperors, were
cast into a new mould; and the jurisdiction of the presidents,
the consulars, and the counts were superseded by the institution
of the themes, or military governments,
which prevailed under the successors of Heraclius, and are
described by the pen of the royal author. Of the twenty-nine
themes, twelve in Europe and seventeen in Asia, the origin is
obscure, the etymology doubtful or capricious: the limits were
arbitrary and fluctuating; but some particular names, that sound
the most strangely to our ear, were derived from the character
and attributes of the troops that were maintained at the expense,
and for the guard, of the respective divisions. The vanity of the
Greek princes most eagerly grasped the shadow of conquest and the
memory of lost dominion. A new Mesopotamia was created on the
western side of the Euphrates: the appellation and prætor
of Sicily were transferred to a narrow slip of Calabria; and a
fragment of the duchy of Beneventum was promoted to the style and
title of the theme of Lombardy. In the decline of the Arabian
empire, the successors of Constantine might indulge their pride
in more solid advantages. The victories of Nicephorus, John
Zimisces, and Basil the Second, revived the fame, and enlarged
the boundaries, of the Roman name: the province of Cilicia, the
metropolis of Antioch, the islands of Crete and Cyprus, were
restored to the allegiance of Christ and Cæsar: one third
of Italy was annexed to the throne of Constantinople: the kingdom
of Bulgaria was destroyed; and the last sovereigns of the
Macedonian dynasty extended their sway from the sources of the
Tigris to the neighborhood of Rome. In the eleventh century, the
prospect was again clouded by new enemies and new misfortunes:
the relics of Italy were swept away by the Norman adventures; and
almost all the Asiatic branches were dissevered from the Roman
trunk by the Turkish conquerors. After these losses, the emperors
of the Comnenian family continued to reign from the Danube to
Peloponnesus, and from Belgrade to Nice, Trebizond, and the
winding stream of the Meander. The spacious provinces of Thrace,
Macedonia, and Greece, were obedient to their sceptre; the
possession of Cyprus, Rhodes, and Crete, was accompanied by the
fifty islands of the Ægean or Holy Sea; and the remnant of
their empire transcends the measure of the largest of the
European kingdoms.
The same princes might assert, with dignity and truth, that of
all the monarchs of Christendom they possessed the greatest city,
the most ample revenue, the most flourishing and populous state.
With the decline and fall of the empire, the cities of the West
had decayed and fallen; nor could the ruins of Rome, or the mud
walls, wooden hovels, and narrow precincts of Paris and London,
prepare the Latin stranger to contemplate the situation and
extent of Constantinople, her stately palaces and churches, and
the arts and luxury of an innumerable people. Her treasures might
attract, but her virgin strength had repelled, and still promised
to repel, the audacious invasion of the Persian and Bulgarian,
the Arab and the Russian. The provinces were less fortunate and
impregnable; and few districts, few cities, could be discovered
which had not been violated by some fierce Barbarian, impatient
to despoil, because he was hopeless to possess. From the age of
Justinian the Eastern empire was sinking below its former level;
the powers of destruction were more active than those of
improvement; and the calamities of war were imbittered by the
more permanent evils of civil and ecclesiastical tyranny. The
captive who had escaped from the Barbarians was often stripped
and imprisoned by the ministers of his sovereign: the Greek
superstition relaxed the mind by prayer, and emaciated the body
by fasting; and the multitude of convents and festivals diverted
many hands and many days from the temporal service of mankind.
Yet the subjects of the Byzantine empire were still the most
dexterous and diligent of nations; their country was blessed by
nature with every advantage of soil, climate, and situation; and,
in the support and restoration of the arts, their patient and
peaceful temper was more useful than the warlike spirit and
feudal anarchy of Europe. The provinces that still adhered to the
empire were repeopled and enriched by the misfortunes of those
which were irrecoverably lost. From the yoke of the caliphs, the
Catholics of Syria, Egypt, and Africa retired to the allegiance
of their prince, to the society of their brethren: the movable
wealth, which eludes the search of oppression, accompanied and
alleviated their exile, and Constantinople received into her
bosom the fugitive trade of Alexandria and Tyre. The chiefs of
Armenia and Scythia, who fled from hostile or religious
persecution, were hospitably entertained: their followers were
encouraged to build new cities and to cultivate waste lands; and
many spots, both in Europe and Asia, preserved the name, the
manners, or at least the memory, of these national colonies. Even
the tribes of Barbarians, who had seated themselves in arms on
the territory of the empire, were gradually reclaimed to the laws
of the church and state; and as long as they were separated from
the Greeks, their posterity supplied a race of faithful and
obedient soldiers. Did we possess sufficient materials to survey
the twenty-nine themes of the Byzantine monarchy, our curiosity
might be satisfied with a chosen example: it is fortunate enough
that the clearest light should be thrown on the most interesting
province, and the name of Peloponnesus will awaken the attention
of the classic reader.
As early as the eighth century, in the troubled reign of the
Iconoclasts, Greece, and even Peloponnesus, were overrun by some
Sclavonian bands who outstripped the royal standard of Bulgaria.
The strangers of old, Cadmus, and Danaus, and Pelops, had planted
in that fruitful soil the seeds of policy and learning; but the
savages of the north eradicated what yet remained of their sickly
and withered roots. In this irruption, the country and the
inhabitants were transformed; the Grecian blood was contaminated;
and the proudest nobles of Peloponnesus were branded with the
names of foreigners and slaves. By the
diligence of succeeding princes, the land was in some measure
purified from the Barbarians; and the humble remnant was bound by
an oath of obedience, tribute, and military service, which they
often renewed and often violated. The siege of Patras was formed
by a singular concurrence of the Sclavonians of Peloponnesus and
the Saracens of Africa. In their last distress, a pious fiction
of the approach of the prætor of Corinth revived the
courage of the citizens. Their sally was bold and successful; the
strangers embarked, the rebels submitted, and the glory of the
day was ascribed to a phantom or a stranger, who fought in the
foremost ranks under the character of St. Andrew the Apostle. The
shrine which contained his relics was decorated with the trophies
of victory, and the captive race was forever devoted to the
service and vassalage of the metropolitan church of Patras. By
the revolt of two Sclavonian tribes, in the neighborhood of Helos
and Lacedæmon, the peace of the peninsula was often
disturbed. They sometimes insulted the weakness, and sometimes
resisted the oppression, of the Byzantine government, till at
length the approach of their hostile brethren extorted a golden
bull to define the rites and obligations of the Ezzerites and
Milengi, whose annual tribute was defined at twelve hundred
pieces of gold. From these strangers the Imperial geographer has
accurately distinguished a domestic, and perhaps original, race,
who, in some degree, might derive their blood from the
much-injured Helots. The liberality of the Romans, and especially
of Augustus, had enfranchised the maritime cities from the
dominion of Sparta; and the continuance of the same benefit
ennobled them with the title of
Eleuthero, or Free-Laconians. In the
time of Constantine Porphyrogenitus, they had acquired the name
of Mainotes, under which they dishonor
the claim of liberty by the inhuman pillage of all that is
shipwrecked on their rocky shores. Their territory, barren of
corn, but fruitful of olives, extended to the Cape of Malea: they
accepted a chief or prince from the Byzantine prætor, and a
light tribute of four hundred pieces of gold was the badge of
their immunity, rather than of their dependence. The freemen of
Laconia assumed the character of Romans, and long adhered to the
religion of the Greeks. By the zeal of the emperor Basil, they
were baptized in the faith of Christ: but the altars of Venus and
Neptune had been crowned by these rustic votaries five hundred
years after they were proscribed in the Roman world. In the theme
of Peloponnesus, forty cities were still numbered, and the
declining state of Sparta, Argos, and Corinth, may be suspended
in the tenth century, at an equal distance, perhaps, between
their antique splendor and their present desolation. The duty of
military service, either in person or by substitute, was imposed
on the lands or benefices of the province; a sum of five pieces
of gold was assessed on each of the substantial tenants; and the
same capitation was shared among several heads of inferior value.
On the proclamation of an Italian war, the Peloponnesians excused
themselves by a voluntary oblation of one hundred pounds of gold,
(four thousand pounds sterling,) and a thousand horses with their
arms and trappings. The churches and monasteries furnished their
contingent; a sacrilegious profit was extorted from the sale of
ecclesiastical honors; and the indigent bishop of Leucadia was
made responsible for a pension of one hundred pieces of gold.
But the wealth of the province, and the trust of the revenue,
were founded on the fair and plentiful produce of trade and
manufacturers; and some symptoms of liberal policy may be traced
in a law which exempts from all personal taxes the mariners of
Peloponnesus, and the workmen in parchment and purple. This
denomination may be fairly applied or extended to the
manufacturers of linen, woollen, and more especially of silk: the
two former of which had flourished in Greece since the days of
Homer; and the last was introduced perhaps as early as the reign
of Justinian. These arts, which were exercised at Corinth,
Thebes, and Argos, afforded food and occupation to a numerous
people: the men, women, and children were distributed according
to their age and strength; and, if many of these were domestic
slaves, their masters, who directed the work and enjoyed the
profit, were of a free and honorable condition. The gifts which a
rich and generous matron of Peloponnesus presented to the emperor
Basil, her adopted son, were doubtless fabricated in the Grecian
looms. Danielis bestowed a carpet of fine wool, of a pattern
which imitated the spots of a peacock's tail, of a magnitude to
overspread the floor of a new church, erected in the triple name
of Christ, of Michael the archangel, and of the prophet Elijah.
She gave six hundred pieces of silk and linen, of various use and
denomination: the silk was painted with the Tyrian dye, and
adorned by the labors of the needle; and the linen was so
exquisitely fine, that an entire piece might be rolled in the
hollow of a cane. In his description of the Greek manufactures,
an historian of Sicily discriminates their price, according to
the weight and quality of the silk, the closeness of the texture,
the beauty of the colors, and the taste and materials of the
embroidery. A single, or even a double or treble thread was
thought sufficient for ordinary sale; but the union of six
threads composed a piece of stronger and more costly workmanship.
Among the colors, he celebrates, with affectation of eloquence,
the fiery blaze of the scarlet, and the softer lustre of the
green. The embroidery was raised either in silk or gold: the more
simple ornament of stripes or circles was surpassed by the nicer
imitation of flowers: the vestments that were fabricated for the
palace or the altar often glittered with precious stones; and the
figures were delineated in strings of Oriental pearls. Till the
twelfth century, Greece alone, of all the countries of
Christendom, was possessed of the insect who is taught by nature,
and of the workmen who are instructed by art, to prepare this
elegant luxury. But the secret had been stolen by the dexterity
and diligence of the Arabs: the caliphs of the East and West
scorned to borrow from the unbelievers their furniture and
apparel; and two cities of Spain, Almeria and Lisbon, were famous
for the manufacture, the use, and, perhaps, the exportation, of
silk. It was first introduced into Sicily by the Normans; and
this emigration of trade distinguishes the victory of Roger from
the uniform and fruitless hostilities of every age. After the
sack of Corinth, Athens, and Thebes, his lieutenant embarked with
a captive train of weavers and artificers of both sexes, a trophy
glorious to their master, and disgraceful to the Greek emperor.
The king of Sicily was not insensible of the value of the
present; and, in the restitution of the prisoners, he excepted
only the male and female manufacturers of Thebes and Corinth, who
labor, says the Byzantine historian, under a barbarous lord, like
the old Eretrians in the service of Darius. A stately edifice, in
the palace of Palermo, was erected for the use of this
industrious colony; and the art was propagated by their children
and disciples to satisfy the increasing demand of the western
world. The decay of the looms of Sicily may be ascribed to the
troubles of the island, and the competition of the Italian
cities. In the year thirteen hundred and fourteen, Lucca alone,
among her sister republics, enjoyed the lucrative monopoly. A
domestic revolution dispersed the manufacturers to Florence,
Bologna, Venice, Milan, and even the countries beyond the Alps;
and thirteen years after this event the statutes of Modena enjoin
the planting of mulberry-trees, and regulate the duties on raw
silk. The northern climates are less propitious to the education
of the silkworm; but the industry of France and England is
supplied and enriched by the productions of Italy and China.
Chapter LIII: Fate Of The Eastern Empire. -- Part
II.
I must repeat the complaint that the vague and scanty
memorials of the times will not afford any just estimate of the
taxes, the revenue, and the resources of the Greek empire. From
every province of Europe and Asia the rivulets of gold and silver
discharged into the Imperial reservoir a copious and perennial
stream. The separation of the branches from the trunk increased
the relative magnitude of Constantinople; and the maxims of
despotism contracted the state to the capital, the capital to the
palace, and the palace to the royal person. A Jewish traveller,
who visited the East in the twelfth century, is lost in his
admiration of the Byzantine riches. "It is here," says Benjamin
of Tudela, "in the queen of cities, that the tributes of the
Greek empire are annually deposited and the lofty towers are
filled with precious magazines of silk, purple, and gold. It is
said, that Constantinople pays each day to her sovereign twenty
thousand pieces of gold; which are levied on the shops, taverns,
and markets, on the merchants of Persia and Egypt, of Russia and
Hungary, of Italy and Spain, who frequent the capital by sea and
land." In all pecuniary matters, the authority of a Jew is
doubtless respectable; but as the three hundred and sixty-five
days would produce a yearly income exceeding seven millions
sterling, I am tempted to retrench at least the numerous
festivals of the Greek calendar. The mass of treasure that was
saved by Theodora and Basil the Second will suggest a splendid,
though indefinite, idea of their supplies and resources. The
mother of Michael, before she retired to a cloister, attempted to
check or expose the prodigality of her ungrateful son, by a free
and faithful account of the wealth which he inherited; one
hundred and nine thousand pounds of gold, and three hundred
thousand of silver, the fruits of her own economy and that of her
deceased husband. The avarice of Basil is not less renowned than
his valor and fortune: his victorious armies were paid and
rewarded without breaking into the mass of two hundred thousand
pounds of gold, (about eight millions sterling,) which he had
buried in the subterraneous vaults of the palace. Such
accumulation of treasure is rejected by the theory and practice
of modern policy; and we are more apt to compute the national
riches by the use and abuse of the public credit. Yet the maxims
of antiquity are still embraced by a monarch formidable to his
enemies; by a republic respectable to her allies; and both have
attained their respective ends of military power and domestic
tranquillity.
Whatever might be consumed for the present wants, or reserved
for the future use, of the state, the first and most sacred
demand was for the pomp and pleasure of the emperor, and his
discretion only could define the measure of his private expense.
The princes of Constantinople were far removed from the
simplicity of nature; yet, with the revolving seasons, they were
led by taste or fashion to withdraw to a purer air, from the
smoke and tumult of the capital. They enjoyed, or affected to
enjoy, the rustic festival of the vintage: their leisure was
amused by the exercise of the chase and the calmer occupation of
fishing, and in the summer heats, they were shaded from the sun,
and refreshed by the cooling breezes from the sea. The coasts and
islands of Asia and Europe were covered with their magnificent
villas; but, instead of the modest art which secretly strives to
hide itself and to decorate the scenery of nature, the marble
structure of their gardens served only to expose the riches of
the lord, and the labors of the architect. The successive
casualties of inheritance and forfeiture had rendered the
sovereign proprietor of many stately houses in the city and
suburbs, of which twelve were appropriated to the ministers of
state; but the great palace, the centre of the Imperial
residence, was fixed during eleven centuries to the same
position, between the hippodrome, the cathedral of St. Sophia,
and the gardens, which descended by many a terrace to the shores
of the Propontis. The primitive edifice of the first Constantine
was a copy, or rival, of ancient Rome; the gradual improvements
of his successors aspired to emulate the wonders of the old
world, and in the tenth century, the Byzantine palace excited the
admiration, at least of the Latins, by an unquestionable
preëminence of strength, size, and magnificence. But the
toil and treasure of so many ages had produced a vast and
irregular pile: each separate building was marked with the
character of the times and of the founder; and the want of space
might excuse the reigning monarch, who demolished, perhaps with
secret satisfaction, the works of his predecessors. The economy
of the emperor Theophilus allowed a more free and ample scope for
his domestic luxury and splendor. A favorite ambassador, who had
astonished the Abbassides themselves by his pride and liberality,
presented on his return the model of a palace, which the caliph
of Bagdad had recently constructed on the banks of the Tigris.
The model was instantly copied and surpassed: the new buildings
of Theophilus were accompanied with gardens, and with five
churches, one of which was conspicuous for size and beauty: it
was crowned with three domes, the roof of gilt brass reposed on
columns of Italian marble, and the walls were incrusted with
marbles of various colors. In the face of the church, a
semicircular portico, of the figure and name of the Greek
sigma, was supported by fifteen columns
of Phrygian marble, and the subterraneous vaults were of a
similar construction. The square before the sigma was decorated
with a fountain, and the margin of the basin was lined and
encompassed with plates of silver. In the beginning of each
season, the basin, instead of water, was replenished with the
most exquisite fruits, which were abandoned to the populace for
the entertainment of the prince. He enjoyed this tumultuous
spectacle from a throne resplendent with gold and gems, which was
raised by a marble staircase to the height of a lofty terrace.
Below the throne were seated the officers of his guards, the
magistrates, the chiefs of the factions of the circus; the
inferior steps were occupied by the people, and the place below
was covered with troops of dancers, singers, and pantomimes. The
square was surrounded by the hall of justice, the arsenal, and
the various offices of business and pleasure; and the
purple chamber was named from the
annual distribution of robes of scarlet and purple by the hand of
the empress herself. The long series of the apartments was
adapted to the seasons, and decorated with marble and porphyry,
with painting, sculpture, and mosaics, with a profusion of gold,
silver, and precious stones. His fanciful magnificence employed
the skill and patience of such artists as the times could afford:
but the taste of Athens would have despised their frivolous and
costly labors; a golden tree, with its leaves and branches, which
sheltered a multitude of birds warbling their artificial notes,
and two lions of massy gold, and of natural size, who looked and
roared like their brethren of the forest. The successors of
Theophilus, of the Basilian and Comnenian dynasties, were not
less ambitious of leaving some memorial of their residence; and
the portion of the palace most splendid and august was dignified
with the title of the golden
triclinium. With becoming modesty, the
rich and noble Greeks aspired to imitate their sovereign, and
when they passed through the streets on horseback, in their robes
of silk and embroidery, they were mistaken by the children for
kings. A matron of Peloponnesus, who had cherished the infant
fortunes of Basil the Macedonian, was excited by tenderness or
vanity to visit the greatness of her adopted son. In a journey of
five hundred miles from Patras to Constantinople, her age or
indolence declined the fatigue of a horse or carriage: the soft
litter or bed of Danielis was transported on the shoulders of ten
robust slaves; and as they were relieved at easy distances, a
band of three hundred were selected for the performance of this
service. She was entertained in the Byzantine palace with filial
reverence, and the honors of a queen; and whatever might be the
origin of her wealth, her gifts were not unworthy of the regal
dignity. I have already described the fine and curious
manufactures of Peloponnesus, of linen, silk, and woollen; but
the most acceptable of her presents consisted in three hundred
beautiful youths, of whom one hundred were eunuchs; "for she was
not ignorant," says the historian, "that the air of the palace is
more congenial to such insects, than a shepherd's dairy to the
flies of the summer." During her lifetime, she bestowed the
greater part of her estates in Peloponnesus, and her testament
instituted Leo, the son of Basil, her universal heir. After the
payment of the legacies, fourscore villas or farms were added to
the Imperial domain; and three thousand slaves of Danielis were
enfranchised by their new lord, and transplanted as a colony to
the Italian coast. From this example of a private matron, we may
estimate the wealth and magnificence of the emperors. Yet our
enjoyments are confined by a narrow circle; and, whatsoever may
be its value, the luxury of life is possessed with more innocence
and safety by the master of his own, than by the steward of the
public, fortune.
In an absolute government, which levels the distinctions of
noble and plebeian birth, the sovereign is the sole fountain of
honor; and the rank, both in the palace and the empire, depends
on the titles and offices which are bestowed and resumed by his
arbitrary will. Above a thousand years, from Vespasian to Alexius
Comnenus, the Cæsar was the
second person, or at least the second degree, after the supreme
title of Augustus was more freely
communicated to the sons and brothers of the reigning monarch. To
elude without violating his promise to a powerful associate, the
husband of his sister, and, without giving himself an equal, to
reward the piety of his brother Isaac, the crafty Alexius
interposed a new and supereminent dignity. The happy flexibility
of the Greek tongue allowed him to compound the names of Augustus
and Emperor (Sebastos and Autocrator,) and the union produces the
sonorous title of Sebastocrator. He was
exalted above the Cæsar on the first step of the throne:
the public acclamations repeated his name; and he was only
distinguished from the sovereign by some peculiar ornaments of
the head and feet. The emperor alone could assume the purple or
red buskins, and the close diadem or tiara, which imitated the
fashion of the Persian kings. It was a high pyramidal cap of
cloth or silk, almost concealed by a profusion of pearls and
jewels: the crown was formed by a horizontal circle and two
arches of gold: at the summit, the point of their intersection,
was placed a globe or cross, and two strings or lappets of pearl
depended on either cheek. Instead of red, the buskins of the
Sebastocrator and Cæsar were green; and on their
open coronets or crowns, the precious
gems were more sparingly distributed. Beside and below the
Cæsar the fancy of Alexius created the
Panhypersebastos and the
Protosebastos, whose sound and
signification will satisfy a Grecian ear. They imply a
superiority and a priority above the simple name of Augustus; and
this sacred and primitive title of the Roman prince was degraded
to the kinsmen and servants of the Byzantine court. The daughter
of Alexius applauds, with fond complacency, this artful gradation
of hopes and honors; but the science of words is accessible to
the meanest capacity; and this vain dictionary was easily
enriched by the pride of his successors. To their favorite sons
or brothers, they imparted the more lofty appellation of Lord or
Despot, which was illustrated with new
ornaments, and prerogatives, and placed immediately after the
person of the emperor himself. The five titles of, 1.
Despot; 2.
Sebastocrator; 3.
Cæsar; 4.
Panhypersebastos; and, 5.
Protosebastos; were usually confined to
the princes of his blood: they were the emanations of his
majesty; but as they exercised no regular functions, their
existence was useless, and their authority precarious.
But in every monarchy the substantial powers of government
must be divided and exercised by the ministers of the palace and
treasury, the fleet and army. The titles alone can differ; and in
the revolution of ages, the counts and præfects, the
prætor and quæstor, insensibly descended, while their
servants rose above their heads to the first honors of the state.
1. In a monarchy, which refers every object to the person of the
prince, the care and ceremonies of the palace form the most
respectable department. The Curopalata,
so illustrious in the age of Justinian, was supplanted by the
Protovestiare, whose primitive
functions were limited to the custody of the wardrobe. From
thence his jurisdiction was extended over the numerous menials of
pomp and luxury; and he presided with his silver wand at the
public and private audience. 2. In the ancient system of
Constantine, the name of Logothete, or
accountant, was applied to the receivers of the finances: the
principal officers were distinguished as the Logothetes of the
domain, of the posts, the army, the private and public treasure;
and the great Logothete, the supreme
guardian of the laws and revenues, is compared with the
chancellor of the Latin monarchies. His discerning eye pervaded
the civil administration; and he was assisted, in due
subordination, by the eparch or præfect of the city, the
first secretary, and the keepers of the privy seal, the archives,
and the red or purple ink which was reserved for the sacred
signature of the emperor alone. The introductor and interpreter
of foreign ambassadors were the great
Chiauss and the
Dragoman, two names of Turkish origin,
and which are still familiar to the Sublime Porte. 3. From the
humble style and service of guards, the
Domestics insensibly rose to the
station of generals; the military themes of the East and West,
the legions of Europe and Asia, were often divided, till the
great Domestic was finally invested with the universal and
absolute command of the land forces. The
Protostrator, in his original
functions, was the assistant of the emperor when he mounted on
horseback: he gradually became the lieutenant of the great
Domestic in the field; and his jurisdiction extended over the
stables, the cavalry, and the royal train of hunting and hawking.
The Stratopedarch was the great judge
of the camp: the Protospathaire
commanded the guards; the Constable,
the great Æteriarch, and the
Acolyth, were the separate chiefs of
the Franks, the Barbarians, and the Varangi, or English, the
mercenary strangers, who, a the decay of the national spirit,
formed the nerve of the Byzantine armies. 4. The naval powers
were under the command of the great
Duke; in his absence they obeyed the
great Drungaire of the fleet; and, in
his place, the
Emir, or
Admiral, a name of Saracen extraction,
but which has been naturalized in all the modern languages of
Europe. Of these officers, and of many more whom it would be
useless to enumerate, the civil and military hierarchy was
framed. Their honors and emoluments, their dress and titles,
their mutual salutations and respective preëminence, were
balanced with more exquisite labor than would have fixed the
constitution of a free people; and the code was almost perfect
when this baseless fabric, the monument of pride and servitude,
was forever buried in the ruins of the empire.
Chapter LIII: Fate Of The Eastern Empire. -- Part
III.
The most lofty titles, and the most humble postures, which
devotion has applied to the Supreme Being, have been prostituted
by flattery and fear to creatures of the same nature with
ourselves. The mode of adoration, of
falling prostrate on the ground, and kissing the feet of the
emperor, was borrowed by Diocletian from Persian servitude; but
it was continued and aggravated till the last age of the Greek
monarchy. Excepting only on Sundays, when it was waived, from a
motive of religious pride, this humiliating reverence was exacted
from all who entered the royal presence, from the princes
invested with the diadem and purple, and from the ambassadors who
represented their independent sovereigns, the caliphs of Asia,
Egypt, or Spain, the kings of France and Italy, and the Latin
emperors of ancient Rome. In his transactions of business,
Liutprand, bishop of Cremona, asserted the free spirit of a Frank
and the dignity of his master Otho. Yet his sincerity cannot
disguise the abasement of his first audience. When he approached
the throne, the birds of the golden tree began to warble their
notes, which were accompanied by the roarings of the two lions of
gold. With his two companions Liutprand was compelled to bow and
to fall prostrate; and thrice to touch the ground with his
forehead. He arose, but in the short interval, the throne had
been hoisted from the floor to the ceiling, the Imperial figure
appeared in new and more gorgeous apparel, and the interview was
concluded in haughty and majestic silence. In this honest and
curious narrative, the Bishop of Cremona represents the
ceremonies of the Byzantine court, which are still practised in
the Sublime Porte, and which were preserved in the last age by
the dukes of Muscovy or Russia. After a long journey by sea and
land, from Venice to Constantinople, the ambassador halted at the
golden gate, till he was conducted by the formal officers to the
hospitable palace prepared for his reception; but this palace was
a prison, and his jealous keepers prohibited all social
intercourse either with strangers or natives. At his first
audience, he offered the gifts of his master, slaves, and golden
vases, and costly armor. The ostentatious payment of the officers
and troops displayed before his eyes the riches of the empire: he
was entertained at a royal banquet, in which the ambassadors of
the nations were marshalled by the esteem or contempt of the
Greeks: from his own table, the emperor, as the most signal
favor, sent the plates which he had tasted; and his favorites
were dismissed with a robe of honor. In the morning and evening
of each day, his civil and military servants attended their duty
in the palace; their labors were repaid by the sight, perhaps by
the smile, of their lord; his commands were signified by a nod or
a sign: but all earthly greatness stood
silent and submissive in his presence. In his regular or
extraordinary processions through the capital, he unveiled his
person to the public view: the rites of policy were connected
with those of religion, and his visits to the principal churches
were regulated by the festivals of the Greek calendar. On the eve
of these processions, the gracious or devout intention of the
monarch was proclaimed by the heralds. The streets were cleared
and purified; the pavement was strewed with flowers; the most
precious furniture, the gold and silver plate, and silken
hangings, were displayed from the windows and balconies, and a
severe discipline restrained and silenced the tumult of the
populace. The march was opened by the military officers at the
head of their troops: they were followed in long order by the
magistrates and ministers of the civil government: the person of
the emperor was guarded by his eunuchs and domestics, and at the
church door he was solemnly received by the patriarch and his
clergy. The task of applause was not abandoned to the rude and
spontaneous voices of the crowd. The most convenient stations
were occupied by the bands of the blue and green factions of the
circus; and their furious conflicts, which had shaken the
capital, were insensibly sunk to an emulation of servitude. From
either side they echoed in responsive melody the praises of the
emperor; their poets and musicians directed the choir, and long
life and victory were the burden of every song. The same
acclamations were performed at the audience, the banquet, and the
church; and as an evidence of boundless sway, they were repeated
in the Latin, Gothic, Persian, French, and even English language,
by the mercenaries who sustained the real or fictitious character
of those nations. By the pen of Constantine Porphyrogenitus, this
science of form and flattery has been reduced into a pompous and
trifling volume, which the vanity of succeeding times might
enrich with an ample supplement. Yet the calmer reflection of a
prince would surely suggest that the same acclamations were
applied to every character and every reign: and if he had risen
from a private rank, he might remember, that his own voice had
been the loudest and most eager in applause, at the very moment
when he envied the fortune, or conspired against the life, of his
predecessor.
The princes of the North, of the nations, says Constantine,
without faith or fame, were ambitious of mingling their blood
with the blood of the Cæsars, by their marriage with a
royal virgin, or by the nuptials of their daughters with a Roman
prince. The aged monarch, in his instructions to his son, reveals
the secret maxims of policy and pride; and suggests the most
decent reasons for refusing these insolent and unreasonable
demands. Every animal, says the discreet emperor, is prompted by
the distinction of language, religion, and manners. A just regard
to the purity of descent preserves the harmony of public and
private life; but the mixture of foreign blood is the fruitful
source of disorder and discord. Such had ever been the opinion
and practice of the sage Romans: their jurisprudence proscribed
the marriage of a citizen and a stranger: in the days of freedom
and virtue, a senator would have scorned to match his daughter
with a king: the glory of Mark Antony was sullied by an Egyptian
wife: and the emperor Titus was compelled, by popular censure, to
dismiss with reluctance the reluctant Berenice. This perpetual
interdict was ratified by the fabulous sanction of the great
Constantine. The ambassadors of the nations, more especially of
the unbelieving nations, were solemnly admonished, that such
strange alliances had been condemned by the founder of the church
and city. The irrevocable law was inscribed on the altar of St.
Sophia; and the impious prince who should stain the majesty of
the purple was excluded from the civil and ecclesiastical
communion of the Romans. If the ambassadors were instructed by
any false brethren in the Byzantine history, they might produce
three memorable examples of the violation of this imaginary law:
the marriage of Leo, or rather of his father Constantine the
Fourth, with the daughter of the king of the Chozars, the
nuptials of the granddaughter of Romanus with a Bulgarian prince,
and the union of Bertha of France or Italy with young Romanus,
the son of Constantine Porphyrogenitus himself. To these
objections three answers were prepared, which solved the
difficulty and established the law. I. The deed and the guilt of
Constantine Copronymus were acknowledged. The Isaurian heretic,
who sullied the baptismal font, and declared war against the holy
images, had indeed embraced a Barbarian wife. By this impious
alliance he accomplished the measure of his crimes, and was
devoted to the just censure of the church and of posterity. II.
Romanus could not be alleged as a legitimate emperor; he was a
plebeian usurper, ignorant of the laws, and regardless of the
honor, of the monarchy. His son Christopher, the father of the
bride, was the third in rank in the college of princes, at once
the subject and the accomplice of a rebellious parent. The
Bulgarians were sincere and devout Christians; and the safety of
the empire, with the redemption of many thousand captives,
depended on this preposterous alliance. Yet no consideration
could dispense from the law of Constantine: the clergy, the
senate, and the people, disapproved the conduct of Romanus; and
he was reproached, both in his life and death, as the author of
the public disgrace. III. For the marriage of his own son with
the daughter of Hugo, king of Italy, a more honorable defence is
contrived by the wise Porphyrogenitus. Constantine, the great and
holy, esteemed the fidelity and valor of the Franks; and his
prophetic spirit beheld the vision of their future greatness.
They alone were excepted from the general prohibition: Hugo, king
of France, was the lineal descendant of Charlemagne; and his
daughter Bertha inherited the prerogatives of her family and
nation. The voice of truth and malice insensibly betrayed the
fraud or error of the Imperial court. The patrimonial estate of
Hugo was reduced from the monarchy of France to the simple county
of Arles; though it was not denied, that, in the confusion of the
times, he had usurped the sovereignty of Provence, and invaded
the kingdom of Italy. His father was a private noble; and if
Bertha derived her female descent from the Carlovingian line,
every step was polluted with illegitimacy or vice. The
grandmother of Hugo was the famous Valdrada, the concubine,
rather than the wife, of the second Lothair; whose adultery,
divorce, and second nuptials, had provoked against him the
thunders of the Vatican. His mother, as she was styled, the great
Bertha, was successively the wife of the count of Arles and of
the marquis of Tuscany: France and Italy were scandalized by her
gallantries; and, till the age of threescore, her lovers, of
every degree, were the zealous servants of her ambition. The
example of maternal incontinence was copied by the king of Italy;
and the three favorite concubines of Hugo were decorated with the
classic names of Venus, Juno, and Semele. The daughter of Venus
was granted to the solicitations of the Byzantine court: her name
of Bertha was changed to that of Eudoxia; and she was wedded, or
rather betrothed, to young Romanus, the future heir of the empire
of the East. The consummation of this foreign alliance was
suspended by the tender age of the two parties; and, at the end
of five years, the union was dissolved by the death of the virgin
spouse. The second wife of the emperor Romanus was a maiden of
plebeian, but of Roman, birth; and their two daughters, Theophano
and Anne, were given in marriage to the princes of the earth. The
eldest was bestowed, as the pledge of peace, on the eldest son of
the great Otho, who had solicited this alliance with arms and
embassies. It might legally be questioned how far a Saxon was
entitled to the privilege of the French nation; but every scruple
was silenced by the fame and piety of a hero who had restored the
empire of the West. After the death of her father-in-law and
husband, Theophano governed Rome, Italy, and Germany, during the
minority of her son, the third Otho; and the Latins have praised
the virtues of an empress, who sacrificed to a superior duty the
remembrance of her country. In the nuptials of her sister Anne,
every prejudice was lost, and every consideration of dignity was
superseded, by the stronger argument of necessity and fear. A
Pagan of the North, Wolodomir, great prince of Russia, aspired to
a daughter of the Roman purple; and his claim was enforced by the
threats of war, the promise of conversion, and the offer of a
powerful succor against a domestic rebel. A victim of her
religion and country, the Grecian princess was torn from the
palace of her fathers, and condemned to a savage reign, and a
hopeless exile on the banks of the Borysthenes, or in the
neighborhood of the Polar circle. Yet the marriage of Anne was
fortunate and fruitful: the daughter of her grandson Joroslaus
was recommended by her Imperial descent; and the king of France,
Henry I., sought a wife on the last borders of Europe and
Christendom.
In the Byzantine palace, the emperor was the first slave of
the ceremonies which he imposed, of the rigid forms which
regulated each word and gesture, besieged him in the palace, and
violated the leisure of his rural solitude. But the lives and
fortunes of millions hung on his arbitrary will; and the firmest
minds, superior to the allurements of pomp and luxury, may be
seduced by the more active pleasure of commanding their equals.
The legislative and executive powers were centred in the person
of the monarch, and the last remains of the authority of the
senate were finally eradicated by Leo the philosopher. A lethargy
of servitude had benumbed the minds of the Greeks: in the wildest
tumults of rebellion they never aspired to the idea of a free
constitution; and the private character of the prince was the
only source and measure of their public happiness. Superstition
rivetted their chains; in the church of St. Sophia he was
solemnly crowned by the patriarch; at the foot of the altar, they
pledged their passive and unconditional obedience to his
government and family. On his side he engaged to abstain as much
as possible from the capital punishments of death and mutilation;
his orthodox creed was subscribed with his own hand, and he
promised to obey the decrees of the seven synods, and the canons
of the holy church. But the assurance of mercy was loose and
indefinite: he swore, not to his people, but to an invisible
judge; and except in the inexpiable guilt of heresy, the
ministers of heaven were always prepared to preach the
indefeasible right, and to absolve the venial transgressions, of
their sovereign. The Greek ecclesiastics were themselves the
subjects of the civil magistrate: at the nod of a tyrant, the
bishops were created, or transferred, or deposed, or punished
with an ignominious death: whatever might be their wealth or
influence, they could never succeed like the Latin clergy in the
establishment of an independent republic; and the patriarch of
Constantinople condemned, what he secretly envied, the temporal
greatness of his Roman brother. Yet the exercise of boundless
despotism is happily checked by the laws of nature and necessity.
In proportion to his wisdom and virtue, the master of an empire
is confined to the path of his sacred and laborious duty. In
proportion to his vice and folly, he drops the sceptre too
weighty for his hands; and the motions of the royal image are
ruled by the imperceptible thread of some minister or favorite,
who undertakes for his private interest to exercise the task of
the public oppression. In some fatal moment, the most absolute
monarch may dread the reason or the caprice of a nation of
slaves; and experience has proved, that whatever is gained in the
extent, is lost in the safety and solidity, of regal power.
Whatever titles a despot may assume, whatever claims he may
assert, it is on the sword that he must ultimately depend to
guard him against his foreign and domestic enemies. From the age
of Charlemagne to that of the Crusades, the world (for I overlook
the remote monarchy of China) was occupied and disputed by the
three great empires or nations of the Greeks, the Saracens, and
the Franks. Their military strength may be ascertained by a
comparison of their courage, their arts and riches, and their
obedience to a supreme head, who might call into action all the
energies of the state. The Greeks, far inferior to their rivals
in the first, were superior to the Franks, and at least equal to
the Saracens, in the second and third of these warlike
qualifications.
The wealth of the Greeks enabled them to purchase the service
of the poorer nations, and to maintain a naval power for the
protection of their coasts and the annoyance of their enemies. A
commerce of mutual benefit exchanged the gold of Constantinople
for the blood of Sclavonians and Turks, the Bulgarians and
Russians: their valor contributed to the victories of Nicephorus
and Zimisces; and if a hostile people pressed too closely on the
frontier, they were recalled to the defence of their country, and
the desire of peace, by the well-managed attack of a more distant
tribe. The command of the Mediterranean, from the mouth of the
Tanais to the columns of Hercules, was always claimed, and often
possessed, by the successors of Constantine. Their capital was
filled with naval stores and dexterous artificers: the situation
of Greece and Asia, the long coasts, deep gulfs, and numerous
islands, accustomed their subjects to the exercise of navigation;
and the trade of Venice and Amalfi supplied a nursery of seamen
to the Imperial fleet. Since the time of the Peloponnesian and
Punic wars, the sphere of action had not been enlarged; and the
science of naval architecture appears to have declined. The art
of constructing those stupendous machines which displayed three,
or six, or ten, ranges of oars, rising above, or falling behind,
each other, was unknown to the ship-builders of Constantinople,
as well as to the mechanicians of modern days. The
Dromones, or light galleys of the
Byzantine empire, were content with two tier of oars; each tier
was composed of five-and-twenty benches; and two rowers were
seated on each bench, who plied their oars on either side of the
vessel. To these we must add the captain or centurion, who, in
time of action, stood erect with his armor-bearer on the poop,
two steersmen at the helm, and two officers at the prow, the one
to manage the anchor, the other to point and play against the
enemy the tube of liquid fire. The whole crew, as in the infancy
of the art, performed the double service of mariners and
soldiers; they were provided with defensive and offensive arms,
with bows and arrows, which they used from the upper deck, with
long pikes, which they pushed through the portholes of the lower
tier. Sometimes, indeed, the ships of war were of a larger and
more solid construction; and the labors of combat and navigation
were more regularly divided between seventy soldiers and two
hundred and thirty mariners. But for the most part they were of
the light and manageable size; and as the Cape of Malea in
Peloponnesus was still clothed with its ancient terrors, an
Imperial fleet was transported five miles over land across the
Isthmus of Corinth. The principles of maritime tactics had not
undergone any change since the time of Thucydides: a squadron of
galleys still advanced in a crescent, charged to the front, and
strove to impel their sharp beaks against the feeble sides of
their antagonists. A machine for casting stones and darts was
built of strong timbers, in the midst of the deck; and the
operation of boarding was effected by a crane that hoisted
baskets of armed men. The language of signals, so clear and
copious in the naval grammar of the moderns, was imperfectly
expressed by the various positions and colors of a commanding
flag. In the darkness of the night, the same orders to chase, to
attack, to halt, to retreat, to break, to form, were conveyed by
the lights of the leading galley. By land, the fire-signals were
repeated from one mountain to another; a chain of eight stations
commanded a space of five hundred miles; and Constantinople in a
few hours was apprised of the hostile motions of the Saracens of
Tarsus. Some estimate may be formed of the power of the Greek
emperors, by the curious and minute detail of the armament which
was prepared for the reduction of Crete. A fleet of one hundred
and twelve galleys, and seventy-five vessels of the Pamphylian
style, was equipped in the capital, the islands of the
Ægean Sea, and the seaports of Asia, Macedonia, and Greece.
It carried thirty-four thousand mariners, seven thousand three
hundred and forty soldiers, seven hundred Russians, and five
thousand and eighty-seven Mardaites, whose fathers had been
transplanted from the mountains of Libanus. Their pay, most
probably of a month, was computed at thirty-four centenaries of
gold, about one hundred and thirty-six thousand pounds sterling.
Our fancy is bewildered by the endless recapitulation of arms and
engines, of clothes and linen, of bread for the men and forage
for the horses, and of stores and utensils of every description,
inadequate to the conquest of a petty island, but amply
sufficient for the establishment of a flourishing colony.
The invention of the Greek fire did not, like that of gun
powder, produce a total revolution in the art of war. To these
liquid combustibles the city and empire of Constantine owed their
deliverance; and they were employed in sieges and sea-fights with
terrible effect. But they were either less improved, or less
susceptible of improvement: the engines of antiquity, the
catapultæ, balistæ, and battering-rams, were still of
most frequent and powerful use in the attack and defence of
fortifications; nor was the decision of battles reduced to the
quick and heavy fire of a line of
infantry, whom it were fruitless to protect with armor against a
similar fire of their enemies. Steel and iron were still the
common instruments of destruction and safety; and the helmets,
cuirasses, and shields, of the tenth century did not, either in
form or substance, essentially differ from those which had
covered the companions of Alexander or Achilles. But instead of
accustoming the modern Greeks, like the legionaries of old, to
the constant and easy use of this salutary weight, their armor
was laid aside in light chariots, which followed the march, till,
on the approach of an enemy, they resumed with haste and
reluctance the unusual encumbrance. Their offensive weapons
consisted of swords, battle-axes, and spears; but the Macedonian
pike was shortened a fourth of its length, and reduced to the
more convenient measure of twelve cubits or feet. The sharpness
of the Scythian and Arabian arrows had been severely felt; and
the emperors lament the decay of archery as a cause of the public
misfortunes, and recommend, as an advice and a command, that the
military youth, till the age of forty, should assiduously
practise the exercise of the bow. The
bands, or regiments, were usually three
hundred strong; and, as a medium between the extremes of four and
sixteen, the foot soldiers of Leo and Constantine were formed
eight deep; but the cavalry charged in four ranks, from the
reasonable consideration, that the weight of the front could not
be increased by any pressure of the hindmost horses. If the ranks
of the infantry or cavalry were sometimes doubled, this cautious
array betrayed a secret distrust of the courage of the troops,
whose numbers might swell the appearance of the line, but of whom
only a chosen band would dare to encounter the spears and swords
of the Barbarians. The order of battle must have varied according
to the ground, the object, and the adversary; but their ordinary
disposition, in two lines and a reserve, presented a succession
of hopes and resources most agreeable to the temper as well as
the judgment of the Greeks. In case of a repulse, the first line
fell back into the intervals of the second; and the reserve,
breaking into two divisions, wheeled round the flanks to improve
the victory or cover the retreat. Whatever authority could enact
was accomplished, at least in theory, by the camps and marches,
the exercises and evolutions, the edicts and books, of the
Byzantine monarch. Whatever art could produce from the forge, the
loom, or the laboratory, was abundantly supplied by the riches of
the prince, and the industry of his numerous workmen. But neither
authority nor art could frame the most important machine, the
soldier himself; and if the ceremonies
of Constantine always suppose the safe and triumphal return of
the emperor, his tactics seldom soar
above the means of escaping a defeat, and procrastinating the
war. Notwithstanding some transient success, the Greeks were sunk
in their own esteem and that of their neighbors. A cold hand and
a loquacious tongue was the vulgar description of the nation: the
author of the tactics was besieged in his capital; and the last
of the Barbarians, who trembled at the name of the Saracens, or
Franks, could proudly exhibit the medals of gold and silver which
they had extorted from the feeble sovereign of Constantinople.
What spirit their government and character denied, might have
been inspired in some degree by the influence of religion; but
the religion of the Greeks could only teach them to suffer and to
yield. The emperor Nicephorus, who restored for a moment the
discipline and glory of the Roman name, was desirous of bestowing
the honors of martyrdom on the Christians who lost their lives in
a holy war against the infidels. But this political law was
defeated by the opposition of the patriarch, the bishops, and the
principal senators; and they strenuously urged the canons of St.
Basil, that all who were polluted by the bloody trade of a
soldier should be separated, during three years, from the
communion of the faithful.
These scruples of the Greeks have been compared with the tears
of the primitive Moslems when they were held back from battle;
and this contrast of base superstition and high-spirited
enthusiasm, unfolds to a philosophic eye the history of the rival
nations. The subjects of the last caliphs had undoubtedly
degenerated from the zeal and faith of the companions of the
prophet. Yet their martial creed still represented the Deity as
the author of war: the vital though latent spark of fanaticism
still glowed in the heart of their religion, and among the
Saracens, who dwelt on the Christian borders, it was frequently
rekindled to a lively and active flame. Their regular force was
formed of the valiant slaves who had been educated to guard the
person and accompany the standard of their lord: but the
Mussulman people of Syria and Cilicia, of Africa and Spain, was
awakened by the trumpet which proclaimed a holy war against the
infidels. The rich were ambitious of death or victory in the
cause of God; the poor were allured by the hopes of plunder; and
the old, the infirm, and the women, assumed their share of
meritorious service by sending their substitutes, with arms and
horses, into the field. These offensive and defensive arms were
similar in strength and temper to those of the Romans, whom they
far excelled in the management of the horse and the bow: the
massy silver of their belts, their bridles, and their swords,
displayed the magnificence of a prosperous nation; and except
some black archers of the South, the Arabs disdained the naked
bravery of their ancestors. Instead of wagons, they were attended
by a long train of camels, mules, and asses: the multitude of
these animals, whom they bedecked with flags and streamers,
appeared to swell the pomp and magnitude of their host; and the
horses of the enemy were often disordered by the uncouth figure
and odious smell of the camels of the East. Invincible by their
patience of thirst and heat, their spirits were frozen by a
winter's cold, and the consciousness of their propensity to sleep
exacted the most rigorous precautions against the surprises of
the night. Their order of battle was a long square of two deep
and solid lines; the first of archers, the second of cavalry. In
their engagements by sea and land, they sustained with patient
firmness the fury of the attack, and seldom advanced to the
charge till they could discern and oppress the lassitude of their
foes. But if they were repulsed and broken, they knew not how to
rally or renew the combat; and their dismay was heightened by the
superstitious prejudice, that God had declared himself on the
side of their enemies. The decline and fall of the caliphs
countenanced this fearful opinion; nor were there wanting, among
the Mahometans and Christians, some obscure prophecies which
prognosticated their alternate defeats. The unity of the Arabian
empire was dissolved, but the independent fragments were equal to
populous and powerful kingdoms; and in their naval and military
armaments, an emir of Aleppo or Tunis might command no despicable
fund of skill, and industry, and treasure. In their transactions
of peace and war with the Saracens, the princes of Constantinople
too often felt that these Barbarians had nothing barbarous in
their discipline; and that if they were destitute of original
genius, they had been endowed with a quick spirit of curiosity
and imitation. The model was indeed more perfect than the copy;
their ships, and engines, and fortifications, were of a less
skilful construction; and they confess, without shame, that the
same God who has given a tongue to the Arabians, had more nicely
fashioned the hands of the Chinese, and the heads of the
Greeks.
Chapter LIII: Fate Of The Eastern Empire. -- Part
IV.
A name of some German tribes between the Rhine and the Weser
had spread its victorious influence over the greatest part of
Gaul, Germany, and Italy; and the common appellation of Franks
was applied by the Greeks and Arabians to the Christians of the
Latin church, the nations of the West, who stretched beyond
their knowledge to the shores of the
Atlantic Ocean. The vast body had been inspired and united by the
soul of Charlemagne; but the division and degeneracy of his race
soon annihilated the Imperial power, which would have rivalled
the Cæsars of Byzantium, and revenged the indignities of
the Christian name. The enemies no longer feared, nor could the
subjects any longer trust, the application of a public revenue,
the labors of trade and manufactures in the military service, the
mutual aid of provinces and armies, and the naval squadrons which
were regularly stationed from the mouth of the Elbe to that of
the Tyber. In the beginning of the tenth century, the family of
Charlemagne had almost disappeared; his monarchy was broken into
many hostile and independent states; the regal title was assumed
by the most ambitious chiefs; their revolt was imitated in a long
subordination of anarchy and discord, and the nobles of every
province disobeyed their sovereign, oppressed their vassals, and
exercised perpetual hostilities against their equals and
neighbors. Their private wars, which overturned the fabric of
government, fomented the martial spirit of the nation. In the
system of modern Europe, the power of the sword is possessed, at
least in fact, by five or six mighty potentates; their operations
are conducted on a distant frontier, by an order of men who
devote their lives to the study and practice of the military art:
the rest of the country and community enjoys in the midst of war
the tranquillity of peace, and is only made sensible of the
change by the aggravation or decrease of the public taxes. In the
disorders of the tenth and eleventh centuries, every peasant was
a soldier, and every village a fortification; each wood or valley
was a scene of murder and rapine; and the lords of each castle
were compelled to assume the character of princes and warriors.
To their own courage and policy they boldly trusted for the
safety of their family, the protection of their lands, and the
revenge of their injuries; and, like the conquerors of a larger
size, they were too apt to transgress the privilege of defensive
war. The powers of the mind and body were hardened by the
presence of danger and necessity of resolution: the same spirit
refused to desert a friend and to forgive an enemy; and, instead
of sleeping under the guardian care of a magistrate, they proudly
disdained the authority of the laws. In the days of feudal
anarchy, the instruments of agriculture and art were converted
into the weapons of bloodshed: the peaceful occupations of civil
and ecclesiastical society were abolished or corrupted; and the
bishop who exchanged his mitre for a helmet, was more forcibly
urged by the manners of the times than by the obligation of his
tenure.
The love of freedom and of arms was felt, with conscious
pride, by the Franks themselves, and is observed by the Greeks
with some degree of amazement and terror. "The Franks," says the
emperor Constantine, "are bold and valiant to the verge of
temerity; and their dauntless spirit is supported by the contempt
of danger and death. In the field and in close onset, they press
to the front, and rush headlong against the enemy, without
deigning to compute either his numbers or their own. Their ranks
are formed by the firm connections of consanguinity and
friendship; and their martial deeds are prompted by the desire of
saving or revenging their dearest companions. In their eyes, a
retreat is a shameful flight; and flight is indelible infamy." A
nation endowed with such high and intrepid spirit, must have been
secure of victory if these advantages had not been
counter-balanced by many weighty defects. The decay of their
naval power left the Greeks and Saracens in possession of the
sea, for every purpose of annoyance and supply. In the age which
preceded the institution of knighthood, the Franks were rude and
unskilful in the service of cavalry; and in all perilous
emergencies, their warriors were so conscious of their ignorance,
that they chose to dismount from their horses and fight on foot.
Unpractised in the use of pikes, or of missile weapons, they were
encumbered by the length of their swords, the weight of their
armor, the magnitude of their shields, and, if I may repeat the
satire of the meagre Greeks, by their unwieldy intemperance.
Their independent spirit disdained the yoke of subordination, and
abandoned the standard of their chief, if he attempted to keep
the field beyond the term of their stipulation or service. On all
sides they were open to the snares of an enemy less brave but
more artful than themselves. They might be bribed, for the
Barbarians were venal; or surprised in the night, for they
neglected the precautions of a close encampment or vigilant
sentinels. The fatigues of a summer's campaign exhausted their
strength and patience, and they sunk in despair if their
voracious appetite was disappointed of a plentiful supply of wine
and of food. This general character of the Franks was marked with
some national and local shades, which I should ascribe to
accident rather than to climate, but which were visible both to
natives and to foreigners. An ambassador of the great Otho
declared, in the palace of Constantinople, that the Saxons could
dispute with swords better than with pens, and that they
preferred inevitable death to the dishonor of turning their backs
to an enemy. It was the glory of the nobles of France, that, in
their humble dwellings, war and rapine were the only pleasure,
the sole occupation, of their lives. They affected to deride the
palaces, the banquets, the polished manner of the Italians, who
in the estimate of the Greeks themselves had degenerated from the
liberty and valor of the ancient Lombards.
By the well-known edict of Caracalla, his subjects, from
Britain to Egypt, were entitled to the name and privileges of
Romans, and their national sovereign might fix his occasional or
permanent residence in any province of their common country. In
the division of the East and West, an ideal unity was
scrupulously observed, and in their titles, laws, and statutes,
the successors of Arcadius and Honorius announced themselves as
the inseparable colleagues of the same office, as the joint
sovereigns of the Roman world and city, which were bounded by the
same limits. After the fall of the Western monarchy, the majesty
of the purple resided solely in the princes of Constantinople;
and of these, Justinian was the first who, after a divorce of
sixty years, regained the dominion of ancient Rome, and asserted,
by the right of conquest, the august title of Emperor of the
Romans. A motive of vanity or discontent solicited one of his
successors, Constans the Second, to abandon the Thracian
Bosphorus, and to restore the pristine honors of the Tyber: an
extravagant project, (exclaims the malicious Byzantine,) as if he
had despoiled a beautiful and blooming virgin, to enrich, or
rather to expose, the deformity of a wrinkled and decrepit
matron. But the sword of the Lombards opposed his settlement in
Italy: he entered Rome not as a conqueror, but as a fugitive,
and, after a visit of twelve days, he pillaged, and forever
deserted, the ancient capital of the world. The final revolt and
separation of Italy was accomplished about two centuries after
the conquests of Justinian, and from his reign we may date the
gradual oblivion of the Latin tongue. That legislator had
composed his Institutes, his Code, and his Pandects, in a
language which he celebrates as the proper and public style of
the Roman government, the consecrated idiom of the palace and
senate of Constantinople, of the campus and tribunals of the
East. But this foreign dialect was unknown to the people and
soldiers of the Asiatic provinces, it was imperfectly understood
by the greater part of the interpreters of the laws and the
ministers of the state. After a short conflict, nature and habit
prevailed over the obsolete institutions of human power: for the
general benefit of his subjects, Justinian promulgated his novels
in the two languages: the several parts of his voluminous
jurisprudence were successively translated; the original was
forgotten, the version was studied, and the Greek, whose
intrinsic merit deserved indeed the preference, obtained a legal,
as well as popular establishment in the Byzantine monarchy. The
birth and residence of succeeding princes estranged them from the
Roman idiom: Tiberius by the Arabs, and Maurice by the Italians,
are distinguished as the first of the Greek Cæsars, as the
founders of a new dynasty and empire: the silent revolution was
accomplished before the death of Heraclius; and the ruins of the
Latin speech were darkly preserved in the terms of jurisprudence
and the acclamations of the palace. After the restoration of the
Western empire by Charlemagne and the Othos, the names of Franks
and Latins acquired an equal signification and extent; and these
haughty Barbarians asserted, with some justice, their superior
claim to the language and dominion of Rome. They insulted the
alien of the East who had renounced the dress and idiom of
Romans; and their reasonable practice will justify the frequent
appellation of Greeks. But this contemptuous appellation was
indignantly rejected by the prince and people to whom it was
applied. Whatsoever changes had been introduced by the lapse of
ages, they alleged a lineal and unbroken succession from Augustus
and Constantine; and, in the lowest period of degeneracy and
decay, the name of Romans adhered to the last fragments of the
empire of Constantinople.
While the government of the East was transacted in Latin, the
Greek was the language of literature and philosophy; nor could
the masters of this rich and perfect idiom be tempted to envy the
borrowed learning and imitative taste of their Roman disciples.
After the fall of Paganism, the loss of Syria and Egypt, and the
extinction of the schools of Alexandria and Athens, the studies
of the Greeks insensibly retired to some regular monasteries, and
above all, to the royal college of Constantinople, which was
burnt in the reign of Leo the Isaurian. In the pompous style of
the age, the president of that foundation was named the Sun of
Science: his twelve associates, the professors in the different
arts and faculties, were the twelve signs of the zodiac; a
library of thirty-six thousand five hundred volumes was open to
their inquiries; and they could show an ancient manuscript of
Homer, on a roll of parchment one hundred and twenty feet in
length, the intestines, as it was fabled, of a prodigious
serpent. But the seventh and eight centuries were a period of
discord and darkness: the library was burnt, the college was
abolished, the Iconoclasts are represented as the foes of
antiquity; and a savage ignorance and contempt of letters has
disgraced the princes of the Heraclean and Isaurian
dynasties.
In the ninth century we trace the first dawnings of the
restoration of science. After the fanaticism of the Arabs had
subsided, the caliphs aspired to conquer the arts, rather than
the provinces, of the empire: their liberal curiosity rekindled
the emulation of the Greeks, brushed away the dust from their
ancient libraries, and taught them to know and reward the
philosophers, whose labors had been hitherto repaid by the
pleasure of study and the pursuit of truth. The Cæsar
Bardas, the uncle of Michael the Third, was the generous
protector of letters, a title which alone has preserved his
memory and excused his ambition. A particle of the treasures of
his nephew was sometimes diverted from the indulgence of vice and
folly; a school was opened in the palace of Magnaura; and the
presence of Bardas excited the emulation of the masters and
students. At their head was the philosopher Leo, archbishop of
Thessalonica: his profound skill in astronomy and the mathematics
was admired by the strangers of the East; and this occult science
was magnified by vulgar credulity, which modestly supposes that
all knowledge superior to its own must be the effect of
inspiration or magic. At the pressing entreaty of the
Cæsar, his friend, the celebrated Photius, renounced the
freedom of a secular and studious life, ascended the patriarchal
throne, and was alternately excommunicated and absolved by the
synods of the East and West. By the confession even of priestly
hatred, no art or science, except poetry, was foreign to this
universal scholar, who was deep in thought, indefatigable in
reading, and eloquent in diction. Whilst he exercised the office
of protospathaire or captain of the guards, Photius was sent
ambassador to the caliph of Bagdad. The tedious hours of exile,
perhaps of confinement, were beguiled by the hasty composition of
his Library, a living monument of
erudition and criticism. Two hundred and fourscore writers,
historians, orators, philosophers, theologians, are reviewed
without any regular method: he abridges their narrative or
doctrine, appreciates their style and character, and judges even
the fathers of the church with a discreet freedom, which often
breaks through the superstition of the times. The emperor Basil,
who lamented the defects of his own education, intrusted to the
care of Photius his son and successor, Leo the philosopher; and
the reign of that prince and of his son Constantine
Porphyrogenitus forms one of the most prosperous æras of
the Byzantine literature. By their munificence the treasures of
antiquity were deposited in the Imperial library; by their pens,
or those of their associates, they were imparted in such extracts
and abridgments as might amuse the curiosity, without oppressing
the indolence, of the public. Besides the
Basilics, or code of laws, the arts of
husbandry and war, of feeding or destroying the human species,
were propagated with equal diligence; and the history of Greece
and Rome was digested into fifty-three heads or titles, of which
two only (of embassies, and of virtues and vices) have escaped
the injuries of time. In every station, the reader might
contemplate the image of the past world, apply the lesson or
warning of each page, and learn to admire, perhaps to imitate,
the examples of a brighter period. I shall not expatiate on the
works of the Byzantine Greeks, who, by the assiduous study of the
ancients, have deserved, in some measure, the remembrance and
gratitude of the moderns. The scholars of the present age may
still enjoy the benefit of the philosophical commonplace book of
Stobæus, the grammatical and historical lexicon of Suidas,
the Chiliads of Tzetzes, which comprise six hundred narratives in
twelve thousand verses, and the commentaries on Homer of
Eustathius, archbishop of Thessalonica, who, from his horn of
plenty, has poured the names and authorities of four hundred
writers. From these originals, and from the numerous tribe of
scholiasts and critics, some estimate may be formed of the
literary wealth of the twelfth century: Constantinople was
enlightened by the genius of Homer and Demosthenes, of Aristotle
and Plato: and in the enjoyment or neglect of our present riches,
we must envy the generation that could still peruse the history
of Theopompus, the orations of Hyperides, the comedies of
Menander, and the odes of Alcæus and Sappho. The frequent
labor of illustration attests not only the existence, but the
popularity, of the Grecian classics: the general knowledge of the
age may be deduced from the example of two learned females, the
empress Eudocia, and the princess Anna Comnena, who cultivated,
in the purple, the arts of rhetoric and philosophy. The vulgar
dialect of the city was gross and barbarous: a more correct and
elaborate style distinguished the discourse, or at least the
compositions, of the church and palace, which sometimes affected
to copy the purity of the Attic models.
In our modern education, the painful though necessary
attainment of two languages, which are no longer living, may
consume the time and damp the ardor of the youthful student. The
poets and orators were long imprisoned in the barbarous dialects
of our Western ancestors, devoid of harmony or grace; and their
genius, without precept or example, was abandoned to the rule and
native powers of their judgment and fancy. But the Greeks of
Constantinople, after purging away the impurities of their vulgar
speech, acquired the free use of their ancient language, the most
happy composition of human art, and a familiar knowledge of the
sublime masters who had pleased or instructed the first of
nations. But these advantages only tend to aggravate the reproach
and shame of a degenerate people. They held in their lifeless
hands the riches of their fathers, without inheriting the spirit
which had created and improved that sacred patrimony: they read,
they praised, they compiled, but their languid souls seemed alike
incapable of thought and action. In the revolution of ten
centuries, not a single discovery was made to exalt the dignity
or promote the happiness of mankind. Not a single idea has been
added to the speculative systems of antiquity, and a succession
of patient disciples became in their turn the dogmatic teachers
of the next servile generation. Not a single composition of
history, philosophy, or literature, has been saved from oblivion
by the intrinsic beauties of style or sentiment, of original
fancy, or even of successful imitation. In prose, the least
offensive of the Byzantine writers are absolved from censure by
their naked and unpresuming simplicity: but the orators, most
eloquent in their own conceit, are the farthest removed from the
models whom they affect to emulate. In every page our taste and
reason are wounded by the choice of gigantic and obsolete words,
a stiff and intricate phraseology, the discord of images, the
childish play of false or unseasonable ornament, and the painful
attempt to elevate themselves, to astonish the reader, and to
involve a trivial meaning in the smoke of obscurity and
exaggeration. Their prose is soaring to the vicious affectation
of poetry: their poetry is sinking below the flatness and
insipidity of prose. The tragic, epic, and lyric muses, were
silent and inglorious: the bards of Constantinople seldom rose
above a riddle or epigram, a panegyric or tale; they forgot even
the rules of prosody; and with the melody of Homer yet sounding
in their ears, they confound all measure of feet and syllables in
the impotent strains which have received the name of
political or city verses. The minds of
the Greek were bound in the fetters of a base and imperious
superstition which extends her dominion round the circle of
profane science. Their understandings were bewildered in
metaphysical controversy: in the belief of visions and miracles,
they had lost all principles of moral evidence, and their taste
was vitiates by the homilies of the monks, an absurd medley of
declamation and Scripture. Even these contemptible studies were
no longer dignified by the abuse of superior talents: the leaders
of the Greek church were humbly content to admire and copy the
oracles of antiquity, nor did the schools of pulpit produce any
rivals of the fame of Athanasius and Chrysostom.
In all the pursuits of active and speculative life, the
emulation of states and individuals is the most powerful spring
of the efforts and improvements of mankind. The cities of ancient
Greece were cast in the happy mixture of union and independence,
which is repeated on a larger scale, but in a looser form, by the
nations of modern Europe; the union of language, religion, and
manners, which renders them the spectators and judges of each
other's merit; the independence of government and interest, which
asserts their separate freedom, and excites them to strive for
preëminence in the career of glory. The situation of the
Romans was less favorable; yet in the early ages of the republic,
which fixed the national character, a similar emulation was
kindled among the states of Latium and Italy; and in the arts and
sciences, they aspired to equal or surpass their Grecian masters.
The empire of the Cæsars undoubtedly checked the activity
and progress of the human mind; its magnitude might indeed allow
some scope for domestic competition; but when it was gradually
reduced, at first to the East and at last to Greece and
Constantinople, the Byzantine subjects were degraded to an abject
and languid temper, the natural effect of their solitary and
insulated state. From the North they were oppressed by nameless
tribes of Barbarians, to whom they scarcely imparted the
appellation of men. The language and religion of the more
polished Arabs were an insurmountable bar to all social
intercourse. The conquerors of Europe were their brethren in the
Christian faith; but the speech of the Franks or Latins was
unknown, their manners were rude, and they were rarely connected,
in peace or war, with the successors of Heraclius. Alone in the
universe, the self-satisfied pride of the Greeks was not
disturbed by the comparison of foreign merit; and it is no wonder
if they fainted in the race, since they had neither competitors
to urge their speed, nor judges to crown their victory. The
nations of Europe and Asia were mingled by the expeditions to the
Holy Land; and it is under the Comnenian dynasty that a faint
emulation of knowledge and military virtue was rekindled in the
Byzantine empire.
Chapter LIV: Origin And Doctrine Of The
Paulicians.
Part I.
Origin And Doctrine Of The Paulicians. -- Their Persecution By
The Greek Emperors. -- Revolt In Armenia &c. --
Transplantation Into Thrace. -- Propagation In The West. -- The
Seeds, Character, And Consequences Of The Reformation.
In the profession of Christianity, the variety of national
characters may be clearly distinguished. The natives of Syria and
Egypt abandoned their lives to lazy and contemplative devotion:
Rome again aspired to the dominion of the world; and the wit of
the lively and loquacious Greeks was consumed in the disputes of
metaphysical theology. The incomprehensible mysteries of the
Trinity and Incarnation, instead of commanding their silent
submission, were agitated in vehement and subtile controversies,
which enlarged their faith at the expense, perhaps, of their
charity and reason. From the council of Nice to the end of the
seventh century, the peace and unity of the church was invaded by
these spiritual wars; and so deeply did they affect the decline
and fall of the empire, that the historian has too often been
compelled to attend the synods, to explore the creeds, and to
enumerate the sects, of this busy period of ecclesiastical
annals. From the beginning of the eighth century to the last ages
of the Byzantine empire, the sound of controversy was seldom
heard: curiosity was exhausted, zeal was fatigued, and, in the
decrees of six councils, the articles of the Catholic faith had
been irrevocably defined. The spirit of dispute, however vain and
pernicious, requires some energy and exercise of the mental
faculties; and the prostrate Greeks were content to fast, to
pray, and to believe in blind obedience to the patriarch and his
clergy. During a long dream of superstition, the Virgin and the
Saints, their visions and miracles, their relics and images, were
preached by the monks, and worshipped by the people; and the
appellation of people might be extended, without injustice, to
the first ranks of civil society. At an unseasonable moment, the
Isaurian emperors attempted somewhat rudely to awaken their
subjects: under their influence reason might obtain some
proselytes, a far greater number was swayed by interest or fear;
but the Eastern world embraced or deplored their visible deities,
and the restoration of images was celebrated as the feast of
orthodoxy. In this passive and unanimous state the ecclesiastical
rulers were relieved from the toil, or deprived of the pleasure,
of persecution. The Pagans had disappeared; the Jews were silent
and obscure; the disputes with the Latins were rare and remote
hostilities against a national enemy; and the sects of Egypt and
Syria enjoyed a free toleration under the shadow of the Arabian
caliphs. About the middle of the seventh century, a branch of
Manichæans was selected as the victims of spiritual
tyranny; their patience was at length exasperated to despair and
rebellion; and their exile has scattered over the West the seeds
of reformation. These important events will justify some inquiry
into the doctrine and story of the Paulicians; and, as they
cannot plead for themselves, our candid criticism will magnify
the good, and abate or suspect the
evil, that is reported by their
adversaries.
The Gnostics, who had distracted the infancy, were oppressed
by the greatness and authority, of the church. Instead of
emulating or surpassing the wealth, learning, and numbers of the
Catholics, their obscure remnant was driven from the capitals of
the East and West, and confined to the villages and mountains
along the borders of the Euphrates. Some vestige of the
Marcionites may be detected in the fifth century; but the
numerous sects were finally lost in the odious name of the
Manichæans; and these heretics, who presumed to reconcile
the doctrines of Zoroaster and Christ, were pursued by the two
religions with equal and unrelenting hatred. Under the grandson
of Heraclius, in the neighborhood of Samosata, more famous for
the birth of Lucian than for the title of a Syrian kingdom, a
reformer arose, esteemed by the
Paulicians as the chosen messenger of
truth. In his humble dwelling of Mananalis, Constantine
entertained a deacon, who returned from Syrian captivity, and
received the inestimable gift of the New Testament, which was
already concealed from the vulgar by the prudence of the Greek,
and perhaps of the Gnostic, clergy. These books became the
measure of his studies and the rule of his faith; and the
Catholics, who dispute his interpretation, acknowledge that his
text was genuine and sincere. But he attached himself with
peculiar devotion to the writings and character of St. Paul: the
name of the Paulicians is derived by their enemies from some
unknown and domestic teacher; but I am confident that they
gloried in their affinity to the apostle of the Gentiles. His
disciples, Titus, Timothy, Sylvanus, Tychicus, were represented
by Constantine and his fellow-laborers: the names of the
apostolic churches were applied to the congregations which they
assembled in Armenia and Cappadocia; and this innocent allegory
revived the example and memory of the first ages. In the Gospel,
and the Epistles of St. Paul, his faithful follower investigated
the Creed of primitive Christianity; and, whatever might be the
success, a Protestant reader will applaud the spirit, of the
inquiry. But if the Scriptures of the Paulicians were pure, they
were not perfect. Their founders rejected the two Epistles of St.
Peter, the apostle of the circumcision, whose dispute with their
favorite for the observance of the law could not easily be
forgiven. They agreed with their Gnostic brethren in the
universal contempt for the Old Testament, the books of Moses and
the prophets, which have been consecrated by the decrees of the
Catholic church. With equal boldness, and doubtless with more
reason, Constantine, the new Sylvanus, disclaimed the visions,
which, in so many bulky and splendid volumes, had been published
by the Oriental sects; the fabulous productions of the Hebrew
patriarchs and the sages of the East; the spurious gospels,
epistles, and acts, which in the first age had overwhelmed the
orthodox code; the theology of Manes, and the authors of the
kindred heresies; and the thirty generations, or æons,
which had been created by the fruitful fancy of Valentine. The
Paulicians sincerely condemned the memory and opinions of the
Manichæan sect, and complained of the injustice which
impressed that invidious name on the simple votaries of St. Paul
and of Christ.
Of the ecclesiastical chain, many links had been broken by the
Paulician reformers; and their liberty was enlarged, as they
reduced the number of masters, at whose voice profane reason must
bow to mystery and miracle. The early separation of the Gnostics
had preceded the establishment of the Catholic worship; and
against the gradual innovations of discipline and doctrine they
were as strongly guarded by habit and aversion, as by the silence
of St. Paul and the evangelists. The objects which had been
transformed by the magic of superstition, appeared to the eyes of
the Paulicians in their genuine and naked colors. An image made
without hands was the common workmanship of a mortal artist, to
whose skill alone the wood and canvas must be indebted for their
merit or value. The miraculous relics were a heap of bones and
ashes, destitute of life or virtue, or of any relation, perhaps,
with the person to whom they were ascribed. The true and
vivifying cross was a piece of sound or rotten timber, the body
and blood of Christ, a loaf of bread and a cup of wine, the gifts
of nature and the symbols of grace. The mother of God was
degraded from her celestial honors and immaculate virginity; and
the saints and angels were no longer solicited to exercise the
laborious office of meditation in heaven, and ministry upon
earth. In the practice, or at least in the theory, of the
sacraments, the Paulicians were inclined to abolish all visible
objects of worship, and the words of the gospel were, in their
judgment, the baptism and communion of the faithful. They
indulged a convenient latitude for the interpretation of
Scripture: and as often as they were pressed by the literal
sense, they could escape to the intricate mazes of figure and
allegory. Their utmost diligence must have been employed to
dissolve the connection between the Old and the New Testament;
since they adored the latter as the oracles of God, and abhorred
the former as the fabulous and absurd invention of men or
dæmons. We cannot be surprised, that they should have found
in the Gospel the orthodox mystery of the Trinity: but, instead
of confessing the human nature and substantial sufferings of
Christ, they amused their fancy with a celestial body that passed
through the virgin like water through a pipe; with a fantastic
crucifixion, that eluded the vain and important malice of the
Jews. A creed thus simple and spiritual was not adapted to the
genius of the times; and the rational Christian, who might have
been contented with the light yoke and easy burden of Jesus and
his apostles, was justly offended, that the Paulicians should
dare to violate the unity of God, the first article of natural
and revealed religion. Their belief and their trust was in the
Father, of Christ, of the human soul, and of the invisible world.
But they likewise held the eternity of matter; a stubborn and
rebellious substance, the origin of a second principle of an
active being, who has created this visible world, and exercises
his temporal reign till the final consummation of death and sin.
The appearances of moral and physical evil had established the
two principles in the ancient philosophy and religion of the
East; from whence this doctrine was transfused to the various
swarms of the Gnostics. A thousand shades may be devised in the
nature and character of Ahriman, from a
rival god to a subordinate dæmon, from passion and frailty
to pure and perfect malevolence: but, in spite of our efforts,
the goodness, and the power, of Ormusd are placed at the opposite
extremities of the line; and every step that approaches the one
must recede in equal proportion from the other.
The apostolic labors of Constantine Sylvanus soon multiplied
the number of his disciples, the secret recompense of spiritual
ambition. The remnant of the Gnostic sects, and especially the
Manichæans of Armenia, were united under his standard; many
Catholics were converted or seduced by his arguments; and he
preached with success in the regions of Pontus and Cappadocia,
which had long since imbibed the religion of Zoroaster. The
Paulician teachers were distinguished only by their Scriptural
names, by the modest title of Fellow-pilgrims, by the austerity
of their lives, their zeal or knowledge, and the credit of some
extraordinary gifts of the Holy Spirit. But they were incapable
of desiring, or at least of obtaining, the wealth and honors of
the Catholic prelacy; such anti-Christian pride they bitterly
censured; and even the rank of elders or presbyters was condemned
as an institution of the Jewish synagogue. The new sect was
loosely spread over the provinces of Asia Minor to the westward
of the Euphrates; six of their principal congregations
represented the churches to which St. Paul had addressed his
epistles; and their founder chose his residence in the
neighborhood of Colonia, in the same district of Pontus which had
been celebrated by the altars of Bellona and the miracles of
Gregory. After a mission of twenty-seven years, Sylvanus, who had
retired from the tolerating government of the Arabs, fell a
sacrifice to Roman persecution. The laws of the pious emperors,
which seldom touched the lives of less odious heretics,
proscribed without mercy or disguise the tenets, the books, and
the persons of the Montanists and Manichæans: the books
were delivered to the flames; and all who should presume to
secrete such writings, or to profess such opinions, were devoted
to an ignominious death. A Greek minister, armed with legal and
military powers, appeared at Colonia to strike the shepherd, and
to reclaim, if possible, the lost sheep. By a refinement of
cruelty, Simeon placed the unfortunate Sylvanus before a line of
his disciples, who were commanded, as the price of their pardon
and the proof of their repentance, to massacre their spiritual
father. They turned aside from the impious office; the stones
dropped from their filial hands, and of the whole number, only
one executioner could be found, a new David, as he is styled by
the Catholics, who boldly overthrew the giant of heresy. This
apostate (Justin was his name) again deceived and betrayed his
unsuspecting brethren, and a new conformity to the acts of St.
Paul may be found in the conversion of Simeon: like the apostle,
he embraced the doctrine which he had been sent to persecute,
renounced his honors and fortunes, and required among the
Paulicians the fame of a missionary and a martyr. They were not
ambitious of martyrdom, but in a calamitous period of one hundred
and fifty years, their patience sustained whatever zeal could
inflict; and power was insufficient to eradicate the obstinate
vegetation of fanaticism and reason. From the blood and ashes of
the first victims, a succession of teachers and congregations
repeatedly arose: amidst their foreign hostilities, they found
leisure for domestic quarrels: they preached, they disputed, they
suffered; and the virtues, the apparent virtues, of Sergius, in a
pilgrimage of thirty-three years, are reluctantly confessed by
the orthodox historians. The native cruelty of Justinian the
Second was stimulated by a pious cause; and he vainly hoped to
extinguish, in a single conflagration, the name and memory of the
Paulicians. By their primitive simplicity, their abhorrence of
popular superstition, the Iconoclast princes might have been
reconciled to some erroneous doctrines; but they themselves were
exposed to the calumnies of the monks, and they chose to be the
tyrants, lest they should be accused as the accomplices, of the
Manichæans. Such a reproach has sullied the clemency of
Nicephorus, who relaxed in their favor the severity of the penal
statutes, nor will his character sustain the honor of a more
liberal motive. The feeble Michael the First, the rigid Leo the
Armenian, were foremost in the race of persecution; but the prize
must doubtless be adjudged to the sanguinary devotion of
Theodora, who restored the images to the Oriental church. Her
inquisitors explored the cities and mountains of the Lesser Asia,
and the flatterers of the empress have affirmed that, in a short
reign, one hundred thousand Paulicians were extirpated by the
sword, the gibbet, or the flames. Her guilt or merit has perhaps
been stretched beyond the measure of truth: but if the account be
allowed, it must be presumed that many simple Iconoclasts were
punished under a more odious name; and that some who were driven
from the church, unwillingly took refuge in the bosom of
heresy.
The most furious and desperate of rebels are the sectaries of
a religion long persecuted, and at length provoked. In a holy
cause they are no longer susceptible of fear or remorse: the
justice of their arms hardens them against the feelings of
humanity; and they revenge their fathers' wrongs on the children
of their tyrants. Such have been the Hussites of Bohemia and the
Calvinists of France, and such, in the ninth century, were the
Paulicians of Armenia and the adjacent provinces. They were first
awakened to the massacre of a governor and bishop, who exercised
the Imperial mandate of converting or destroying the heretics;
and the deepest recesses of Mount Argæus protected their
independence and revenge. A more dangerous and consuming flame
was kindled by the persecution of Theodora, and the revolt of
Carbeas, a valiant Paulician, who commanded the guards of the
general of the East. His father had been impaled by the Catholic
inquisitors; and religion, or at least nature, might justify his
desertion and revenge. Five thousand of his brethren were united
by the same motives; they renounced the allegiance of
anti-Christian Rome; a Saracen emir introduced Carbeas to the
caliph; and the commander of the faithful extended his sceptre to
the implacable enemy of the Greeks. In the mountains between
Siwas and Trebizond he founded or fortified the city of Tephrice,
which is still occupied by a fierce or licentious people, and the
neighboring hills were covered with the Paulician fugitives, who
now reconciled the use of the Bible and the sword. During more
than thirty years, Asia was afflicted by the calamities of
foreign and domestic war; in their hostile inroads, the disciples
of St. Paul were joined with those of Mahomet; and the peaceful
Christians, the aged parent and tender virgin, who were delivered
into barbarous servitude, might justly accuse the intolerant
spirit of their sovereign. So urgent was the mischief, so
intolerable the shame, that even the dissolute Michael, the son
of Theodora, was compelled to march in person against the
Paulicians: he was defeated under the walls of Samosata; and the
Roman emperor fled before the heretics whom his mother had
condemned to the flames. The Saracens fought under the same
banners, but the victory was ascribed to Carbeas; and the captive
generals, with more than a hundred tribunes, were either released
by his avarice, or tortured by his fanaticism. The valor and
ambition of Chrysocheir, his successor, embraced a wider circle
of rapine and revenge. In alliance with his faithful Moslems, he
boldly penetrated into the heart of Asia; the troops of the
frontier and the palace were repeatedly overthrown; the edicts of
persecution were answered by the pillage of Nice and Nicomedia,
of Ancyra and Ephesus; nor could the apostle St. John protect
from violation his city and sepulchre. The cathedral of Ephesus
was turned into a stable for mules and horses; and the Paulicians
vied with the Saracens in their contempt and abhorrence of images
and relics. It is not unpleasing to observe the triumph of
rebellion over the same despotism which had disdained the prayers
of an injured people. The emperor Basil, the Macedonian, was
reduced to sue for peace, to offer a ransom for the captives, and
to request, in the language of moderation and charity, that
Chrysocheir would spare his fellow-Christians, and content
himself with a royal donative of gold and silver and silk
garments. "If the emperor," replied the insolent fanatic, "be
desirous of peace, let him abdicate the East, and reign without
molestation in the West. If he refuse, the servants of the Lord
will precipitate him from the throne." The reluctant Basil
suspended the treaty, accepted the defiance, and led his army
into the land of heresy, which he wasted with fire and sword. The
open country of the Paulicians was exposed to the same calamities
which they had inflicted; but when he had explored the strength
of Tephrice, the multitude of the Barbarians, and the ample
magazines of arms and provisions, he desisted with a sigh from
the hopeless siege. On his return to Constantinople, he labored,
by the foundation of convents and churches, to secure the aid of
his celestial patrons, of Michael the archangel and the prophet
Elijah; and it was his daily prayer that he might live to
transpierce, with three arrows, the head of his impious
adversary. Beyond his expectations, the wish was accomplished:
after a successful inroad, Chrysocheir was surprised and slain in
his retreat; and the rebel's head was triumphantly presented at
the foot of the throne. On the reception of this welcome trophy,
Basil instantly called for his bow, discharged three arrows with
unerring aim, and accepted the applause of the court, who hailed
the victory of the royal archer. With Chrysocheir, the glory of
the Paulicians faded and withered: on the second expedition of
the emperor, the impregnable Tephrice, was deserted by the
heretics, who sued for mercy or escaped to the borders. The city
was ruined, but the spirit of independence survived in the
mountains: the Paulicians defended, above a century, their
religion and liberty, infested the Roman limits, and maintained
their perpetual alliance with the enemies of the empire and the
gospel.
Chapter LIV: Origin And Doctrine Of The
Paulicians. -- Part II.
About the middle of the eight century, Constantine, surnamed
Copronymus by the worshippers of images, had made an expedition
into Armenia, and found, in the cities of Melitene and
Theodosiopolis, a great number of Paulicians, his kindred
heretics. As a favor, or punishment, he transplanted them from
the banks of the Euphrates to Constantinople and Thrace; and by
this emigration their doctrine was introduced and diffused in
Europe. If the sectaries of the metropolis were soon mingled with
the promiscuous mass, those of the country struck a deep root in
a foreign soil. The Paulicians of Thrace resisted the storms of
persecution, maintained a secret correspondence with their
Armenian brethren, and gave aid and comfort to their preachers,
who solicited, not without success, the infant faith of the
Bulgarians. In the tenth century, they were restored and
multiplied by a more powerful colony, which John Zimisces
transported from the Chalybian hills to the valleys of Mount
Hæmus. The Oriental clergy who would have preferred the
destruction, impatiently sighed for the absence, of the
Manichæans: the warlike emperor had felt and esteemed their
valor: their attachment to the Saracens was pregnant with
mischief; but, on the side of the Danube, against the Barbarians
of Scythia, their service might be useful, and their loss would
be desirable. Their exile in a distant land was softened by a
free toleration: the Paulicians held the city of Philippopolis
and the keys of Thrace; the Catholics were their subjects; the
Jacobite emigrants their associates: they occupied a line of
villages and castles in Macedonia and Epirus; and many native
Bulgarians were associated to the communion of arms and heresy.
As long as they were awed by power and treated with moderation,
their voluntary bands were distinguished in the armies of the
empire; and the courage of these dogs,
ever greedy of war, ever thirsty of human blood, is noticed with
astonishment, and almost with reproach, by the pusillanimous
Greeks. The same spirit rendered them arrogant and contumacious:
they were easily provoked by caprice or injury; and their
privileges were often violated by the faithless bigotry of the
government and clergy. In the midst of the Norman war, two
thousand five hundred Manichæans deserted the standard of
Alexius Comnenus, and retired to their native homes. He
dissembled till the moment of revenge; invited the chiefs to a
friendly conference; and punished the innocent and guilty by
imprisonment, confiscation, and baptism. In an interval of peace,
the emperor undertook the pious office of reconciling them to the
church and state: his winter quarters were fixed at
Philippopolis; and the thirteenth apostle, as he is styled by his
pious daughter, consumed whole days and nights in theological
controversy. His arguments were fortified, their obstinacy was
melted, by the honors and rewards which he bestowed on the most
eminent proselytes; and a new city, surrounded with gardens,
enriched with immunities, and dignified with his own name, was
founded by Alexius for the residence of his vulgar converts. The
important station of Philippopolis was wrested from their hands;
the contumacious leaders were secured in a dungeon, or banished
from their country; and their lives were spared by the prudence,
rather than the mercy, of an emperor, at whose command a poor and
solitary heretic was burnt alive before the church of St. Sophia.
But the proud hope of eradicating the prejudices of a nation was
speedily overturned by the invincible zeal of the Paulicians, who
ceased to dissemble or refused to obey. After the departure and
death of Alexius, they soon resumed their civil and religious
laws. In the beginning of the thirteenth century, their pope or
primate (a manifest corruption) resided on the confines of
Bulgaria, Croatia, and Dalmatia, and governed, by his vicars, the
filial congregations of Italy and France. From that æra, a
minute scrutiny might prolong and perpetuate the chain of
tradition. At the end of the last age, the sect or colony still
inhabited the valleys of Mount Hæmus, where their ignorance
and poverty were more frequently tormented by the Greek clergy
than by the Turkish government. The modern Paulicians have lost
all memory of their origin; and their religion is disgraced by
the worship of the cross, and the practice of bloody sacrifice,
which some captives have imported from the wilds of Tartary.
In the West, the first teachers of the Manichæan
theology had been repulsed by the people, or suppressed by the
prince. The favor and success of the Paulicians in the eleventh
and twelfth centuries must be imputed to the strong, though
secret, discontent which armed the most pious Christians against
the church of Rome. Her avarice was oppressive, her despotism
odious; less degenerate perhaps than the Greeks in the worship of
saints and images, her innovations were more rapid and
scandalous: she had rigorously defined and imposed the doctrine
of transubstantiation: the lives of the Latin clergy were more
corrupt, and the Eastern bishops might pass for the successors of
the apostles, if they were compared with the lordly prelates, who
wielded by turns the crosier, the sceptre, and the sword. Three
different roads might introduce the Paulicians into the heart of
Europe. After the conversion of Hungary, the pilgrims who visited
Jerusalem might safely follow the course of the Danube: in their
journey and return they passed through Philippopolis; and the
sectaries, disguising their name and heresy, might accompany the
French or German caravans to their respective countries. The
trade and dominion of Venice pervaded the coast of the Adriatic,
and the hospitable republic opened her bosom to foreigners of
every climate and religion. Under the Byzantine standard, the
Paulicians were often transported to the Greek provinces of Italy
and Sicily: in peace and war, they freely conversed with
strangers and natives, and their opinions were silently
propagated in Rome, Milan, and the kingdoms beyond the Alps. It
was soon discovered, that many thousand Catholics of every rank,
and of either sex, had embraced the Manichæan heresy; and
the flames which consumed twelve canons of Orleans was the first
act and signal of persecution. The Bulgarians, a name so innocent
in its origin, so odious in its application, spread their
branches over the face of Europe. United in common hatred of
idolatry and Rome, they were connected by a form of episcopal and
presbyterian government; their various sects were discriminated
by some fainter or darker shades of theology; but they generally
agreed in the two principles, the contempt of the Old Testament
and the denial of the body of Christ, either on the cross or in
the eucharist. A confession of simple worship and blameless
manners is extorted from their enemies; and so high was their
standard of perfection, that the increasing congregations were
divided into two classes of disciples, of those who practised,
and of those who aspired. It was in the country of the Albigeois,
in the southern provinces of France, that the Paulicians were
most deeply implanted; and the same vicissitudes of martyrdom and
revenge which had been displayed in the neighborhood of the
Euphrates, were repeated in the thirteenth century on the banks
of the Rhone. The laws of the Eastern emperors were revived by
Frederic the Second. The insurgents of Tephrice were represented
by the barons and cities of Languedoc: Pope Innocent III.
surpassed the sanguinary fame of Theodora. It was in cruelty
alone that her soldiers could equal the heroes of the Crusades,
and the cruelty of her priests was far excelled by the founders
of the Inquisition; an office more adapted to confirm, than to
refute, the belief of an evil principle. The visible assemblies
of the Paulicians, or Albigeois, were extirpated by fire and
sword; and the bleeding remnant escaped by flight, concealment,
or Catholic conformity. But the invincible spirit which they had
kindled still lived and breathed in the Western world. In the
state, in the church, and even in the cloister, a latent
succession was preserved of the disciples of St. Paul; who
protested against the tyranny of Rome, embraced the Bible as the
rule of faith, and purified their creed from all the visions of
the Gnostic theology. * The struggles of Wickliff in England, of
Huss in Bohemia, were premature and ineffectual; but the names of
Zuinglius, Luther, and Calvin, are pronounced with gratitude as
the deliverers of nations.
A philosopher, who calculates the degree of their merit and
the value of their reformation, will prudently ask from what
articles of faith, above or
against our reason, they have
enfranchised the Christians; for such enfranchisement is
doubtless a benefit so far as it may be compatible with truth and
piety. After a fair discussion, we shall rather be surprised by
the timidity, than scandalized by the freedom, of our first
reformers. With the Jews, they adopted the belief and defence of
all the Hebrew Scriptures, with all their prodigies, from the
garden of Eden to the visions of the prophet Daniel; and they
were bound, like the Catholics, to justify against the Jews the
abolition of a divine law. In the great mysteries of the Trinity
and Incarnation the reformers were severely orthodox: they freely
adopted the theology of the four, or the six first councils; and
with the Athanasian creed, they pronounced the eternal damnation
of all who did not believe the Catholic faith.
Transubstantiation, the invisible change of the bread and wine
into the body and blood of Christ, is a tenet that may defy the
power of argument and pleasantry; but instead of consulting the
evidence of their senses, of their sight, their feeling, and
their taste, the first Protestants were entangled in their own
scruples, and awed by the words of Jesus in the institution of
the sacrament. Luther maintained a
corporeal, and Calvin a
real, presence of Christ in the
eucharist; and the opinion of Zuinglius, that it is no more than
a spiritual communion, a simple memorial, has slowly prevailed in
the reformed churches. But the loss of one mystery was amply
compensated by the stupendous doctrines of original sin,
redemption, faith, grace, and predestination, which have been
strained from the epistles of St. Paul. These subtile questions
had most assuredly been prepared by the fathers and schoolmen;
but the final improvement and popular use may be attributed to
the first reformers, who enforced them as the absolute and
essential terms of salvation. Hitherto the weight of supernatural
belief inclines against the Protestants; and many a sober
Christian would rather admit that a wafer is God, than that God
is a cruel and capricious tyrant.
Yet the services of Luther and his rivals are solid and
important; and the philosopher must own his obligations to these
fearless enthusiasts. I. By their hands the lofty fabric of
superstition, from the abuse of indulgences to the intercession
of the Virgin, has been levelled with the ground. Myriads of both
sexes of the monastic profession were restored to the liberty and
labors of social life. A hierarchy of saints and angels, of
imperfect and subordinate deities, were stripped of their
temporal power, and reduced to the enjoyment of celestial
happiness; their images and relics were banished from the church;
and the credulity of the people was no longer nourished with the
daily repetition of miracles and visions. The imitation of
Paganism was supplied by a pure and spiritual worship of prayer
and thanksgiving, the most worthy of man, the least unworthy of
the Deity. It only remains to observe, whether such sublime
simplicity be consistent with popular devotion; whether the
vulgar, in the absence of all visible objects, will not be
inflamed by enthusiasm, or insensibly subside in languor and
indifference. II. The chain of authority was broken, which
restrains the bigot from thinking as he pleases, and the slave
from speaking as he thinks: the popes, fathers, and councils,
were no longer the supreme and infallible judges of the world;
and each Christian was taught to acknowledge no law but the
Scriptures, no interpreter but his own conscience. This freedom,
however, was the consequence, rather than the design, of the
Reformation. The patriot reformers were ambitious of succeeding
the tyrants whom they had dethroned. They imposed with equal
rigor their creeds and confessions; they asserted the right of
the magistrate to punish heretics with death. The pious or
personal animosity of Calvin proscribed in Servetus the guilt of
his own rebellion; and the flames of Smithfield, in which he was
afterwards consumed, had been kindled for the Anabaptists by the
zeal of Cranmer. The nature of the tiger was the same, but he was
gradually deprived of his teeth and fangs. A spiritual and
temporal kingdom was possessed by the Roman pontiff; the
Protestant doctors were subjects of an humble rank, without
revenue or jurisdiction. Hisdecrees
were consecrated by the antiquity of the Catholic church:
their arguments and disputes were
submitted to the people; and their appeal to private judgment was
accepted beyond their wishes, by curiosity and enthusiasm. Since
the days of Luther and Calvin, a secret reformation has been
silently working in the bosom of the reformed churches; many
weeds of prejudice were eradicated; and the disciples of Erasmus
diffused a spirit of freedom and moderation. The liberty of
conscience has been claimed as a common benefit, an inalienable
right: the free governments of Holland and England introduced the
practice of toleration; and the narrow allowance of the laws has
been enlarged by the prudence and humanity of the times. In the
exercise, the mind has understood the limits of its powers, and
the words and shadows that might amuse the child can no longer
satisfy his manly reason. The volumes of controversy are
overspread with cobwebs: the doctrine of a Protestant church is
far removed from the knowledge or belief of its private members;
and the forms of orthodoxy, the articles of faith, are subscribed
with a sigh, or a smile, by the modern clergy. Yet the friends of
Christianity are alarmed at the boundless impulse of inquiry and
scepticism. The predictions of the Catholics are accomplished:
the web of mystery is unravelled by the Arminians, Arians, and
Socinians, whose number must not be computed from their separate
congregations; and the pillars of Revelation are shaken by those
men who preserve the name without the substance of religion, who
indulge the license without the temper of philosophy. *
Chapter LV: The Bulgarians, The Hungarians And The
Russians.
Part I.
The Bulgarians. -- Origin, Migrations, And Settlement Of The
Hungarians. -- Their Inroads In The East And West. -- The
Monarchy Of Russia. -- Geography And Trade. -- Wars Of The
Russians Against The Greek Empire. -- Conversion Of The
Barbarians.
Under the reign of Constantine the grandson of Heraclius, the
ancient barrier of the Danube, so often violated and so often
restored, was irretrievably swept away by a new deluge of
Barbarians. Their progress was favored by the caliphs, their
unknown and accidental auxiliaries: the Roman legions were
occupied in Asia; and after the loss of Syria, Egypt, and Africa,
the Cæsars were twice reduced to the danger and disgrace of
defending their capital against the Saracens. If, in the account
of this interesting people, I have deviated from the strict and
original line of my undertaking, the merit of the subject will
hide my transgression, or solicit my excuse. In the East, in the
West, in war, in religion, in science, in their prosperity, and
in their decay, the Arabians press themselves on our curiosity:
the first overthrow of the church and empire of the Greeks may be
imputed to their arms; and the disciples of Mahomet still hold
the civil and religious sceptre of the Oriental world. But the
same labor would be unworthily bestowed on the swarms of savages,
who, between the seventh and the twelfth century, descended from
the plains of Scythia, in transient inroad or perpetual
emigration. Their names are uncouth, their origins doubtful,
their actions obscure, their superstition was blind, their valor
brutal, and the uniformity of their public and private lives was
neither softened by innocence nor refined by policy. The majesty
of the Byzantine throne repelled and survived their disorderly
attacks; the greater part of these Barbarians has disappeared
without leaving any memorial of their existence, and the
despicable remnant continues, and may long continue, to groan
under the dominion of a foreign tyrant. From the antiquities of,
I. Bulgarians, II.
Hungarians, and, III.
Russians, I shall content myself with
selecting such facts as yet deserve to be remembered. The
conquests of the, IV. Normans, and the monarchy of the, V. Turks,
will naturally terminate in the memorable Crusades to the Holy
Land, and the double fall of the city and empire of
Constantine.
I. In his march to Italy, Theodoric the Ostrogoth had trampled
on the arms of the Bulgarians. After this defeat, the name and
the nation are lost during a century and a half; and it may be
suspected that the same or a similar appellation was revived by
strange colonies from the Borysthenes, the Tanais, or the Volga.
A king of the ancient Bulgaria bequeathed to his five sons a last
lesson of moderation and concord. It was received as youth has
ever received the counsels of age and experience: the five
princes buried their father; divided his subjects and cattle;
forgot his advice; separated from each other; and wandered in
quest of fortune till we find the most adventurous in the heart
of Italy, under the protection of the exarch of Ravenna. But the
stream of emigration was directed or impelled towards the
capital. The modern Bulgaria, along the southern banks of the
Danube, was stamped with the name and image which it has retained
to the present hour: the new conquerors successively acquired, by
war or treaty, the Roman provinces of Dardania, Thessaly, and the
two Epirus; the ecclesiastical supremacy was translated from the
native city of Justinian; and, in their prosperous age, the
obscure town of Lychnidus, or Achrida, was honored with the
throne of a king and a patriarch. The unquestionable evidence of
language attests the descent of the Bulgarians from the original
stock of the Sclavonian, or more properly Slavonian, race; and
the kindred bands of Servians, Bosnians, Rascians, Croatians,
Walachians, &c., followed either the standard or the example
of the leading tribe. From the Euxine to the Adriatic, in the
state of captives, or subjects, or allies, or enemies, of the
Greek empire, they overspread the land; and the national
appellation of the slaves has been degraded by chance or malice
from the signification of glory to that of servitude. Among these
colonies, the Chrobatians, or Croats, who now attend the motions
of an Austrian army, are the descendants of a mighty people, the
conquerors and sovereigns of Dalmatia. The maritime cities, and
of these the infant republic of Ragusa, implored the aid and
instructions of the Byzantine court: they were advised by the
magnanimous Basil to reserve a small acknowledgment of their
fidelity to the Roman empire, and to appease, by an annual
tribute, the wrath of these irresistible Barbarians. The kingdom
of Croatia was shared by eleven
Zoupans, or feudatory lords; and their
united forces were numbered at sixty thousand horse and one
hundred thousand foot. A long sea-coast, indented with capacious
harbors, covered with a string of islands, and almost in sight of
the Italian shores, disposed both the natives and strangers to
the practice of navigation. The boats or brigantines of the
Croats were constructed after the fashion of the old Liburnians:
one hundred and eighty vessels may excite the idea of a
respectable navy; but our seamen will smile at the allowance of
ten, or twenty, or forty, men for each of these ships of war.
They were gradually converted to the more honorable service of
commerce; yet the Sclavonian pirates were still frequent and
dangerous; and it was not before the close of the tenth century
that the freedom and sovereignty of the Gulf were effectually
vindicated by the Venetian republic. The ancestors of these
Dalmatian kings were equally removed from the use and abuse of
navigation: they dwelt in the White Croatia, in the inland
regions of Silesia and Little Poland, thirty days' journey,
according to the Greek computation, from the sea of darkness.
The glory of the Bulgarians was confined to a narrow scope
both of time and place. In the ninth and tenth centuries, they
reigned to the south of the Danube; but the more powerful nations
that had followed their emigration repelled all return to the
north and all progress to the west. Yet in the obscure catalogue
of their exploits, they might boast an honor which had hitherto
been appropriated to the Goths: that of slaying in battle one of
the successors of Augustus and Constantine. The emperor
Nicephorus had lost his fame in the Arabian, he lost his life in
the Sclavonian, war. In his first operations he advanced with
boldness and success into the centre of Bulgaria, and burnt the
royal court, which was probably no more
than an edifice and village of timber. But while he searched the
spoil and refused all offers of treaty, his enemies collected
their spirits and their forces: the passes of retreat were
insuperably barred; and the trembling Nicephorus was heard to
exclaim, "Alas, alas! unless we could assume the wings of birds,
we cannot hope to escape." Two days he waited his fate in the
inactivity of despair; but, on the morning of the third, the
Bulgarians surprised the camp, and the Roman prince, with the
great officers of the empire, were slaughtered in their tents.
The body of Valens had been saved from insult; but the head of
Nicephorus was exposed on a spear, and his skull, enchased with
gold, was often replenished in the feasts of victory. The Greeks
bewailed the dishonor of the throne; but they acknowledged the
just punishment of avarice and cruelty. This savage cup was
deeply tinctured with the manners of the Scythian wilderness; but
they were softened before the end of the same century by a
peaceful intercourse with the Greeks, the possession of a
cultivated region, and the introduction of the Christian worship.
The nobles of Bulgaria were educated in the schools and palace of
Constantinople; and Simeon, a youth of the royal line, was
instructed in the rhetoric of Demosthenes and the logic of
Aristotle. He relinquished the profession of a monk for that of a
king and warrior; and in his reign of more than forty years,
Bulgaria assumed a rank among the civilized powers of the earth.
The Greeks, whom he repeatedly attacked, derived a faint
consolation from indulging themselves in the reproaches of
perfidy and sacrilege. They purchased the aid of the Pagan Turks;
but Simeon, in a second battle, redeemed the loss of the first,
at a time when it was esteemed a victory to elude the arms of
that formidable nation. The Servians were overthrown, made
captive and dispersed; and those who visited the country before
their restoration could discover no more than fifty vagrants,
without women or children, who extorted a precarious subsistence
from the chase. On classic ground, on the banks of Achelöus,
the Greeks were defeated; their horn was broken by the strength
of the Barbaric Hercules. He formed the siege of Constantinople;
and, in a personal conference with the emperor, Simeon imposed
the conditions of peace. They met with the most jealous
precautions: the royal gallery was drawn close to an artificial
and well-fortified platform; and the majesty of the purple was
emulated by the pomp of the Bulgarian. "Are you a Christian?"
said the humble Romanus: "it is your duty to abstain from the
blood of your fellow-Christians. Has the thirst of riches seduced
you from the blessings of peace? Sheathe your sword, open your
hand, and I will satiate the utmost measure of your desires." The
reconciliation was sealed by a domestic alliance; the freedom of
trade was granted or restored; the first honors of the court were
secured to the friends of Bulgaria, above the ambassadors of
enemies or strangers; and her princes were dignified with the
high and invidious title of Basileus,
or emperor. But this friendship was soon disturbed: after the
death of Simeon, the nations were again in arms; his feeble
successors were divided and extinguished; and, in the beginning
of the eleventh century, the second Basil, who was born in the
purple, deserved the appellation of conqueror of the Bulgarians.
His avarice was in some measure gratified by a treasure of four
hundred thousand pounds sterling, (ten thousand pounds' weight of
gold,) which he found in the palace of Lychnidus. His cruelty
inflicted a cool and exquisite vengeance on fifteen thousand
captives who had been guilty of the defence of their country.
They were deprived of sight; but to one of each hundred a single
eye was left, that he might conduct his blind century to the
presence of their king. Their king is said to have expired of
grief and horror; the nation was awed by this terrible example;
the Bulgarians were swept away from their settlements, and
circumscribed within a narrow province; the surviving chiefs
bequeathed to their children the advice of patience and the duty
of revenge.
II. When the black swarm of Hungarians first hung over Europe,
above nine hundred years after the Christian æra, they were
mistaken by fear and superstition for the Gog and Magog of the
Scriptures, the signs and forerunners of the end of the world.
Since the introduction of letters, they have explored their own
antiquities with a strong and laudable impulse of patriotic
curiosity. Their rational criticism can no longer be amused with
a vain pedigree of Attila and the Huns; but they complain that
their primitive records have perished in the Tartar war; that the
truth or fiction of their rustic songs is long since forgotten;
and that the fragments of a rude chronicle must be painfully
reconciled with the contemporary though foreign intelligence of
the imperial geographer. Magiar is the
national and oriental denomination of the Hungarians; but, among
the tribes of Scythia, they are distinguished by the Greeks under
the proper and peculiar name of Turks,
as the descendants of that mighty people who had conquered and
reigned from China to the Volga. The Pannonian colony preserved a
correspondence of trade and amity with the eastern Turks on the
confines of Persia and after a separation of three hundred and
fifty years, the missionaries of the king of Hungary discovered
and visited their ancient country near the banks of the Volga.
They were hospitably entertained by a people of Pagans and
Savages who still bore the name of Hungarians; conversed in their
native tongue, recollected a tradition of their long-lost
brethren, and listened with amazement to the marvellous tale of
their new kingdom and religion. The zeal of conversion was
animated by the interest of consanguinity; and one of the
greatest of their princes had formed the generous, though
fruitless, design of replenishing the solitude of Pannonia by
this domestic colony from the heart of Tartary. From this
primitive country they were driven to the West by the tide of war
and emigration, by the weight of the more distant tribes, who at
the same time were fugitives and conquerors. * Reason or fortune
directed their course towards the frontiers of the Roman empire:
they halted in the usual stations along the banks of the great
rivers; and in the territories of Moscow, Kiow, and Moldavia,
some vestiges have been discovered of their temporary residence.
In this long and various peregrination, they could not always
escape the dominion of the stronger; and the purity of their
blood was improved or sullied by the mixture of a foreign race:
from a motive of compulsion, or choice, several tribes of the
Chazars were associated to the standard of their ancient vassals;
introduced the use of a second language; and obtained by their
superior renown the most honorable place in the front of battle.
The military force of the Turks and their allies marched in seven
equal and artificial divisions; each division was formed of
thirty thousand eight hundred and fifty-seven warriors, and the
proportion of women, children, and servants, supposes and
requires at least a million of emigrants. Their public counsels
were directed by seven vayvods, or
hereditary chiefs; but the experience of discord and weakness
recommended the more simple and vigorous administration of a
single person. The sceptre, which had been declined by the modest
Lebedias, was granted to the birth or merit of Almus and his son
Arpad, and the authority of the supreme khan of the Chazars
confirmed the engagement of the prince and people; of the people
to obey his commands, of the prince to consult their happiness
and glory.
With this narrative we might be reasonably content, if the
penetration of modern learning had not opened a new and larger
prospect of the antiquities of nations. The Hungarian language
stands alone, and as it were insulated, among the Sclavonian
dialects; but it bears a close and clear affinity to the idioms
of the Fennic race, of an obsolete and savage race, which
formerly occupied the northern regions of Asia and Europe. * The
genuine appellation of Ugri or
Igours is found on the western confines
of China; their migration to the banks of the Irtish is attested
by Tartar evidence; a similar name and language are detected in
the southern parts of Siberia; and the remains of the Fennic
tribes are widely, though thinly scattered from the sources of
the Oby to the shores of Lapland. The consanguinity of the
Hungarians and Laplanders would display the powerful energy of
climate on the children of a common parent; the lively contrast
between the bold adventurers who are intoxicated with the wines
of the Danube, and the wretched fugitives who are immersed
beneath the snows of the polar circle. Arms and freedom have ever
been the ruling, though too often the unsuccessful, passion of
the Hungarians, who are endowed by nature with a vigorous
constitution of soul and body. Extreme cold has diminished the
stature and congealed the faculties of the Laplanders; and the
arctic tribes, alone among the sons of men, are ignorant of war,
and unconscious of human blood; a happy ignorance, if reason and
virtue were the guardians of their peace!
Chapter LV: The Bulgarians, The Hungarians And The
Russians. -- Part II.
It is the observation of the Imperial author of the Tactics,
that all the Scythian hordes resembled each other in their
pastoral and military life, that they all practised the same
means of subsistence, and employed the same instruments of
destruction. But he adds, that the two nations of Bulgarians and
Hungarians were superior to their brethren, and similar to each
other in the improvements, however rude, of their discipline and
government: their visible likeness determines Leo to confound his
friends and enemies in one common description; and the picture
may be heightened by some strokes from their contemporaries of
the tenth century. Except the merit and fame of military prowess,
all that is valued by mankind appeared vile and contemptible to
these Barbarians, whose native fierceness was stimulated by the
consciousness of numbers and freedom. The tents of the Hungarians
were of leather, their garments of fur; they shaved their hair,
and scarified their faces: in speech they were slow, in action
prompt, in treaty perfidious; and they shared the common reproach
of Barbarians, too ignorant to conceive the importance of truth,
too proud to deny or palliate the breach of their most solemn
engagements. Their simplicity has been praised; yet they
abstained only from the luxury they had never known; whatever
they saw they coveted; their desires were insatiate, and their
sole industry was the hand of violence and rapine. By the
definition of a pastoral nation, I have recalled a long
description of the economy, the warfare, and the government that
prevail in that state of society; I may add, that to fishing, as
well as to the chase, the Hungarians were indebted for a part of
their subsistence; and since they
seldom cultivated the ground, they
must, at least in their new settlements, have sometimes practised
a slight and unskilful husbandry. In their emigrations, perhaps
in their expeditions, the host was accompanied by thousands of
sheep and oxen which increased the cloud of formidable dust, and
afforded a constant and wholesale supply of milk and animal food.
A plentiful command of forage was the first care of the general,
and if the flocks and herds were secure of their pastures, the
hardy warrior was alike insensible of danger and fatigue. The
confusion of men and cattle that overspread the country exposed
their camp to a nocturnal surprise, had not a still wider circuit
been occupied by their light cavalry, perpetually in motion to
discover and delay the approach of the enemy. After some
experience of the Roman tactics, they adopted the use of the
sword and spear, the helmet of the soldier, and the iron
breastplate of his steed: but their native and deadly weapon was
the Tartar bow: from the earliest infancy their children and
servants were exercised in the double science of archery and
horsemanship; their arm was strong; their aim was sure; and in
the most rapid career, they were taught to throw themselves
backwards, and to shoot a volley of arrows into the air. In open
combat, in secret ambush, in flight, or pursuit, they were
equally formidable; an appearance of order was maintained in the
foremost ranks, but their charge was driven forwards by the
impatient pressure of succeeding crowds. They pursued, headlong
and rash, with loosened reins and horrific outcries; but, if they
fled, with real or dissembled fear, the ardor of a pursuing foe
was checked and chastised by the same habits of irregular speed
and sudden evolution. In the abuse of victory, they astonished
Europe, yet smarting from the wounds of the Saracen and the Dane:
mercy they rarely asked, and more rarely bestowed: both sexes
were accused is equally inaccessible to pity, and their appetite
for raw flesh might countenance the popular tale, that they drank
the blood, and feasted on the hearts of the slain. Yet the
Hungarians were not devoid of those principles of justice and
humanity, which nature has implanted in every bosom. The license
of public and private injuries was restrained by laws and
punishments; and in the security of an open camp, theft is the
most tempting and most dangerous offence. Among the Barbarians
there were many, whose spontaneous virtue supplied their laws and
corrected their manners, who performed the duties, and
sympathized with the affections, of social life.
After a long pilgrimage of flight or victory, the Turkish
hordes approached the common limits of the French and Byzantine
empires. Their first conquests and final settlements extended on
either side of the Danube above Vienna, below Belgrade, and
beyond the measure of the Roman province of Pannonia, or the
modern kingdom of Hungary. That ample and fertile land was
loosely occupied by the Moravians, a Sclavonian name and tribe,
which were driven by the invaders into the compass of a narrow
province. Charlemagne had stretched a vague and nominal empire as
far as the edge of Transylvania; but, after the failure of his
legitimate line, the dukes of Moravia forgot their obedience and
tribute to the monarchs of Oriental France. The bastard Arnulph
was provoked to invite the arms of the Turks: they rushed through
the real or figurative wall, which his indiscretion had thrown
open; and the king of Germany has been justly reproached as a
traitor to the civil and ecclesiastical society of the
Christians. During the life of Arnulph, the Hungarians were
checked by gratitude or fear; but in the infancy of his son Lewis
they discovered and invaded Bavaria; and such was their Scythian
speed, that in a single day a circuit of fifty miles was stripped
and consumed. In the battle of Augsburgh the Christians
maintained their advantage till the seventh hour of the day, they
were deceived and vanquished by the flying stratagems of the
Turkish cavalry. The conflagration spread over the provinces of
Bavaria, Swabia, and Franconia; and the Hungarians promoted the
reign of anarchy, by forcing the stoutest barons to discipline
their vassals and fortify their castles. The origin of walled
towns is ascribed to this calamitous period; nor could any
distance be secure against an enemy, who, almost at the same
instant, laid in ashes the Helvetian monastery of St. Gall, and
the city of Bremen, on the shores of the northern ocean. Above
thirty years the Germanic empire, or kingdom, was subject to the
ignominy of tribute; and resistance was disarmed by the menace,
the serious and effectual menace of dragging the women and
children into captivity, and of slaughtering the males above the
age of ten years. I have neither power nor inclination to follow
the Hungarians beyond the Rhine; but I must observe with
surprise, that the southern provinces of France were blasted by
the tempest, and that Spain, behind her Pyrenees, was astonished
at the approach of these formidable strangers. The vicinity of
Italy had tempted their early inroads; but from their camp on the
Brenta, they beheld with some terror the apparent strength and
populousness of the new discovered country. They requested leave
to retire; their request was proudly rejected by the Italian
king; and the lives of twenty thousand Christians paid the
forfeit of his obstinacy and rashness. Among the cities of the
West, the royal Pavia was conspicuous in fame and splendor; and
the preëminence of Rome itself was only derived from the
relics of the apostles. The Hungarians appeared; Pavia was in
flames; forty-three churches were consumed; and, after the
massacre of the people, they spared about two hundred wretches
who had gathered some bushels of gold and silver (a vague
exaggeration) from the smoking ruins of their country. In these
annual excursions from the Alps to the neighborhood of Rome and
Capua, the churches, that yet escaped, resounded with a fearful
litany: "O, save and deliver us from the arrows of the
Hungarians!" But the saints were deaf or inexorable; and the
torrent rolled forwards, till it was stopped by the extreme land
of Calabria. A composition was offered and accepted for the head
of each Italian subject; and ten bushels of silver were poured
forth in the Turkish camp. But falsehood is the natural
antagonist of violence; and the robbers were defrauded both in
the numbers of the assessment and the standard of the metal. On
the side of the East, the Hungarians were opposed in doubtful
conflict by the equal arms of the Bulgarians, whose faith forbade
an alliance with the Pagans, and whose situation formed the
barrier of the Byzantine empire. The barrier was overturned; the
emperor of Constantinople beheld the waving banners of the Turks;
and one of their boldest warriors presumed to strike a battle-axe
into the golden gate. The arts and treasures of the Greeks
diverted the assault; but the Hungarians might boast, in their
retreat, that they had imposed a tribute on the spirit of
Bulgaria and the majesty of the Cæsars. The remote and
rapid operations of the same campaign appear to magnify the power
and numbers of the Turks; but their courage is most deserving of
praise, since a light troop of three or four hundred horse would
often attempt and execute the most daring inroads to the gates of
Thessalonica and Constantinople. At this disastrous æra of
the ninth and tenth centuries, Europe was afflicted by a triple
scourge from the North, the East, and the South: the Norman, the
Hungarian, and the Saracen, sometimes trod the same ground of
desolation; and these savage foes might have been compared by
Homer to the two lions growling over the carcass of a mangled
stag.
The deliverance of Germany and Christendom was achieved by the
Saxon princes, Henry the Fowler and Otho the Great, who, in two
memorable battles, forever broke the power of the Hungarians. The
valiant Henry was roused from a bed of sickness by the invasion
of his country; but his mind was vigorous and his prudence
successful. "My companions," said he, on the morning of the
combat, "maintain your ranks, receive on your bucklers the first
arrows of the Pagans, and prevent their second discharge by the
equal and rapid career of your lances." They obeyed and
conquered: and the historical picture of the castle of Merseburgh
expressed the features, or at least the character, of Henry, who,
in an age of ignorance, intrusted to the finer arts the
perpetuity of his name. At the end of twenty years, the children
of the Turks who had fallen by his sword invaded the empire of
his son; and their force is defined, in the lowest estimate, at
one hundred thousand horse. They were invited by domestic
faction; the gates of Germany were treacherously unlocked; and
they spread, far beyond the Rhine and the Meuse, into the heart
of Flanders. But the vigor and prudence of Otho dispelled the
conspiracy; the princes were made sensible that unless they were
true to each other, their religion and country were irrecoverably
lost; and the national powers were reviewed in the plains of
Augsburgh. They marched and fought in eight legions, according to
the division of provinces and tribes; the first, second, and
third, were composed of Bavarians; the fourth, of Franconians;
the fifth, of Saxons, under the immediate command of the monarch;
the sixth and seventh consisted of Swabians; and the eighth
legion, of a thousand Bohemians, closed the rear of the host. The
resources of discipline and valor were fortified by the arts of
superstition, which, on this occasion, may deserve the epithets
of generous and salutary. The soldiers were purified with a fast;
the camp was blessed with the relics of saints and martyrs; and
the Christian hero girded on his side the sword of Constantine,
grasped the invincible spear of Charlemagne, and waved the banner
of St. Maurice, the præfect of the Thebæan legion.
But his firmest confidence was placed in the holy lance, whose
point was fashioned of the nails of the cross, and which his
father had extorted from the king of Burgundy, by the threats of
war, and the gift of a province. The Hungarians were expected in
the front; they secretly passed the Lech, a river of Bavaria that
falls into the Danube; turned the rear of the Christian army;
plundered the baggage, and disordered the legion of Bohemia and
Swabia. The battle was restored by the Franconians, whose duke,
the valiant Conrad, was pierced with an arrow as he rested from
his fatigues: the Saxons fought under the eyes of their king; and
his victory surpassed, in merit and importance, the triumphs of
the last two hundred years. The loss of the Hungarians was still
greater in the flight than in the action; they were encompassed
by the rivers of Bavaria; and their past cruelties excluded them
from the hope of mercy. Three captive princes were hanged at
Ratisbon, the multitude of prisoners was slain or mutilated, and
the fugitives, who presumed to appear in the face of their
country, were condemned to everlasting poverty and disgrace. Yet
the spirit of the nation was humbled, and the most accessible
passes of Hungary were fortified with a ditch and rampart.
Adversity suggested the counsels of moderation and peace: the
robbers of the West acquiesced in a sedentary life; and the next
generation was taught, by a discerning prince, that far more
might be gained by multiplying and exchanging the produce of a
fruitful soil. The native race, the Turkish or Fennic blood, was
mingled with new colonies of Scythian or Sclavonian origin; many
thousands of robust and industrious captives had been imported
from all the countries of Europe; and after the marriage of Geisa
with a Bavarian princess, he bestowed honors and estates on the
nobles of Germany. The son of Geisa was invested with the regal
title, and the house of Arpad reigned three hundred years in the
kingdom of Hungary. But the freeborn Barbarians were not dazzled
by the lustre of the diadem, and the people asserted their
indefeasible right of choosing, deposing, and punishing the
hereditary servant of the state.
III. The name of Russians was first divulged, in the ninth
century, by an embassy of Theophilus, emperor of the East, to the
emperor of the West, Lewis, the son of Charlemagne. The Greeks
were accompanied by the envoys of the great duke, or chagan, or
czar, of the Russians. In their journey
to Constantinople, they had traversed many hostile nations; and
they hoped to escape the dangers of their return, by requesting
the French monarch to transport them by sea to their native
country. A closer examination detected their origin: they were
the brethren of the Swedes and Normans, whose name was already
odious and formidable in France; and it might justly be
apprehended, that these Russian strangers were not the messengers
of peace, but the emissaries of war. They were detained, while
the Greeks were dismissed; and Lewis expected a more satisfactory
account, that he might obey the laws of hospitality or prudence,
according to the interest of both empires. This Scandinavian
origin of the people, or at least the princes, of Russia, may be
confirmed and illustrated by the national annals and the general
history of the North. The Normans, who had so long been concealed
by a veil of impenetrable darkness, suddenly burst forth in the
spirit of naval and military enterprise. The vast, and, as it is
said, the populous regions of Denmark, Sweden, and Norway, were
crowded with independent chieftains and desperate adventurers,
who sighed in the laziness of peace, and smiled in the agonies of
death. Piracy was the exercise, the trade, the glory, and the
virtue, of the Scandinavian youth. Impatient of a bleak climate
and narrow limits, they started from the banquet, grasped their
arms, sounded their horn, ascended their vessels, and explored
every coast that promised either spoil or settlement. The Baltic
was the first scene of their naval achievements they visited the
eastern shores, the silent residence of Fennic and Sclavonic
tribes, and the primitive Russians of the Lake Ladoga paid a
tribute, the skins of white squirrels, to these strangers, whom
they saluted with the title of
Varangians or Corsairs. Their
superiority in arms, discipline, and renown, commanded the fear
and reverence of the natives. In their wars against the more
inland savages, the Varangians condescended to serve as friends
and auxiliaries, and gradually, by choice or conquest, obtained
the dominion of a people whom they were qualified to protect.
Their tyranny was expelled, their valor was again recalled, till
at length Ruric, a Scandinavian chief, became the father of a
dynasty which reigned above seven hundred years. His brothers
extended his influence: the example of service and usurpation was
imitated by his companions in the southern provinces of Russia;
and their establishments, by the usual methods of war and
assassination, were cemented into the fabric of a powerful
monarchy.
As long as the descendants of Ruric were considered as aliens
and conquerors, they ruled by the sword of the Varangians,
distributed estates and subjects to their faithful captains, and
supplied their numbers with fresh streams of adventurers from the
Baltic coast. But when the Scandinavian chiefs had struck a deep
and permanent root into the soil, they mingled with the Russians
in blood, religion, and language, and the first Waladimir had the
merit of delivering his country from these foreign mercenaries.
They had seated him on the throne; his riches were insufficient
to satisfy their demands; but they listened to his pleasing
advice, that they should seek, not a more grateful, but a more
wealthy, master; that they should embark for Greece, where,
instead of the skins of squirrels, silk and gold would be the
recompense of their service. At the same time, the Russian prince
admonished his Byzantine ally to disperse and employ, to
recompense and restrain, these impetuous children of the North.
Contemporary writers have recorded the introduction, name, and
character, of the Varangians: each day
they rose in confidence and esteem; the whole body was assembled
at Constantinople to perform the duty of guards; and their
strength was recruited by a numerous band of their countrymen
from the Island of Thule. On this occasion, the vague appellation
of Thule is applied to England; and the new Varangians were a
colony of English and Danes who fled from the yoke of the Norman
conqueror. The habits of pilgrimage and piracy had approximated
the countries of the earth; these exiles were entertained in the
Byzantine court; and they preserved, till the last age of the
empire, the inheritance of spotless loyalty, and the use of the
Danish or English tongue. With their broad and double-edged
battle-axes on their shoulders, they attended the Greek emperor
to the temple, the senate, and the hippodrome; he slept and
feasted under their trusty guard; and the keys of the palace, the
treasury, and the capital, were held by the firm and faithful
hands of the Varangians.
In the tenth century, the geography of Scythia was extended
far beyond the limits of ancient knowledge; and the monarchy of
the Russians obtains a vast and conspicuous place in the map of
Constantine. The sons of Ruric were masters of the spacious
province of Wolodomir, or Moscow; and, if they were confined on
that side by the hordes of the East, their western frontier in
those early days was enlarged to the Baltic Sea and the country
of the Prussians. Their northern reign ascended above the
sixtieth degree of latitude over the Hyperborean regions, which
fancy had peopled with monsters, or clouded with eternal
darkness. To the south they followed the course of the
Borysthenes, and approached with that river the neighborhood of
the Euxine Sea. The tribes that dwelt, or wandered, in this ample
circuit were obedient to the same conqueror, and insensibly
blended into the same nation. The language of Russia is a dialect
of the Sclavonian; but in the tenth century, these two modes of
speech were different from each other; and, as the Sclavonian
prevailed in the South, it may be presumed that the original
Russians of the North, the primitive subjects of the Varangian
chief, were a portion of the Fennic race. With the emigration,
union, or dissolution, of the wandering tribes, the loose and
indefinite picture of the Scythian desert has continually
shifted. But the most ancient map of Russia affords some places
which still retain their name and position; and the two capitals,
Novogorod and Kiow, are coeval with the first age of the
monarchy. Novogorod had not yet deserved the epithet of great,
nor the alliance of the Hanseatic League, which diffused the
streams of opulence and the principles of freedom. Kiow could not
yet boast of three hundred churches, an innumerable people, and a
degree of greatness and splendor which was compared with
Constantinople by those who had never seen the residence of the
Cæsars. In their origin, the two cities were no more than
camps or fairs, the most convenient stations in which the
Barbarians might assemble for the occasional business of war or
trade. Yet even these assemblies announce some progress in the
arts of society; a new breed of cattle was imported from the
southern provinces; and the spirit of commercial enterprise
pervaded the sea and land, from the Baltic to the Euxine, from
the mouth of the Oder to the port of Constantinople. In the days
of idolatry and barbarism, the Sclavonic city of Julin was
frequented and enriched by the Normans, who had prudently secured
a free mart of purchase and exchange. From this harbor, at the
entrance of the Oder, the corsair, or merchant, sailed in
forty-three days to the eastern shores of the Baltic, the most
distant nations were intermingled, and the holy groves of Curland
are said to have been decorated with
Grecian and Spanish gold. Between the
sea and Novogorod an easy intercourse was discovered; in the
summer, through a gulf, a lake, and a navigable river; in the
winter season, over the hard and level surface of boundless
snows. From the neighborhood of that city, the Russians descended
the streams that fall into the Borysthenes; their canoes, of a
single tree, were laden with slaves of every age, furs of every
species, the spoil of their beehives, and the hides of their
cattle; and the whole produce of the North was collected and
discharged in the magazines of Kiow. The month of June was the
ordinary season of the departure of the fleet: the timber of the
canoes was framed into the oars and benches of more solid and
capacious boats; and they proceeded without obstacle down the
Borysthenes, as far as the seven or thirteen ridges of rocks,
which traverse the bed, and precipitate the waters, of the river.
At the more shallow falls it was sufficient to lighten the
vessels; but the deeper cataracts were impassable; and the
mariners, who dragged their vessels and their slaves six miles
over land, were exposed in this toilsome journey to the robbers
of the desert. At the first island below the falls, the Russians
celebrated the festival of their escape: at a second, near the
mouth of the river, they repaired their shattered vessels for the
longer and more perilous voyage of the Black Sea. If they steered
along the coast, the Danube was accessible; with a fair wind they
could reach in thirty-six or forty hours the opposite shores of
Anatolia; and Constantinople admitted the annual visit of the
strangers of the North. They returned at the stated season with a
rich cargo of corn, wine, and oil, the manufactures of Greece,
and the spices of India. Some of their countrymen resided in the
capital and provinces; and the national treaties protected the
persons, effects, and privileges, of the Russian merchant.
Chapter LV: The Bulgarians, The Hungarians And The
Russians. -- Part III.
But the same communication which had been opened for the
benefit, was soon abused for the injury, of mankind. In a period
of one hundred and ninety years, the Russians made four attempts
to plunder the treasures of Constantinople: the event was
various, but the motive, the means, and the object, were the same
in these naval expeditions. The Russian traders had seen the
magnificence, and tasted the luxury of the city of the
Cæsars. A marvellous tale, and a scanty supply, excited the
desires of their savage countrymen: they envied the gifts of
nature which their climate denied; they coveted the works of art,
which they were too lazy to imitate and too indigent to purchase;
the Varangian princes unfurled the banners of piratical
adventure, and their bravest soldiers were drawn from the nations
that dwelt in the northern isles of the ocean. The image of their
naval armaments was revived in the last century, in the fleets of
the Cossacks, which issued from the Borysthenes, to navigate the
same seas for a similar purpose. The Greek appellation of
monoxyla, or single canoes, might
justly be applied to the bottom of their vessels. It was scooped
out of the long stem of a beech or willow, but the slight and
narrow foundation was raised and continued on either side with
planks, till it attained the length of sixty, and the height of
about twelve, feet. These boats were built without a deck, but
with two rudders and a mast; to move with sails and oars; and to
contain from forty to seventy men, with their arms, and
provisions of fresh water and salt fish. The first trial of the
Russians was made with two hundred boats; but when the national
force was exerted, they might arm against Constantinople a
thousand or twelve hundred vessels. Their fleet was not much
inferior to the royal navy of Agamemnon, but it was magnified in
the eyes of fear to ten or fifteen times the real proportion of
its strength and numbers. Had the Greek emperors been endowed
with foresight to discern, and vigor to prevent, perhaps they
might have sealed with a maritime force the mouth of the
Borysthenes. Their indolence abandoned the coast of Anatolia to
the calamities of a piratical war, which, after an interval of
six hundred years, again infested the Euxine; but as long as the
capital was respected, the sufferings of a distant province
escaped the notice both of the prince and the historian. The
storm which had swept along from the Phasis and Trebizond, at
length burst on the Bosphorus of Thrace; a strait of fifteen
miles, in which the rude vessels of the Russians might have been
stopped and destroyed by a more skilful adversary. In their first
enterprise under the princes of Kiow, they passed without
opposition, and occupied the port of Constantinople in the
absence of the emperor Michael, the son of Theophilus. Through a
crowd of perils, he landed at the palace-stairs, and immediately
repaired to a church of the Virgin Mary. By the advice of the
patriarch, her garment, a precious relic, was drawn from the
sanctuary and dipped in the sea; and a seasonable tempest, which
determined the retreat of the Russians, was devoutly ascribed to
the mother of God. The silence of the Greeks may inspire some
doubt of the truth, or at least of the importance, of the second
attempt by Oleg, the guardian of the sons of Ruric. A strong
barrier of arms and fortifications defended the Bosphorus: they
were eluded by the usual expedient of drawing the boats over the
isthmus; and this simple operation is described in the national
chronicles, as if the Russian fleet had sailed over dry land with
a brisk and favorable gale. The leader of the third armament,
Igor, the son of Ruric, had chosen a moment of weakness and
decay, when the naval powers of the empire were employed against
the Saracens. But if courage be not wanting, the instruments of
defence are seldom deficient. Fifteen broken and decayed galleys
were boldly launched against the enemy; but instead of the single
tube of Greek fire usually planted on the prow, the sides and
stern of each vessel were abundantly supplied with that liquid
combustible. The engineers were dexterous; the weather was
propitious; many thousand Russians, who chose rather to be
drowned than burnt, leaped into the sea; and those who escaped to
the Thracian shore were inhumanly slaughtered by the peasants and
soldiers. Yet one third of the canoes escaped into shallow water;
and the next spring Igor was again prepared to retrieve his
disgrace and claim his revenge. After a long peace, Jaroslaus,
the great grandson of Igor, resumed the same project of a naval
invasion. A fleet, under the command of his son, was repulsed at
the entrance of the Bosphorus by the same artificial flames. But
in the rashness of pursuit, the vanguard of the Greeks was
encompassed by an irresistible multitude of boats and men; their
provision of fire was probably exhausted; and twenty-four galleys
were either taken, sunk, or destroyed.
Yet the threats or calamities of a Russian war were more
frequently diverted by treaty than by arms. In these naval
hostilities, every disadvantage was on the side of the Greeks;
their savage enemy afforded no mercy: his poverty promised no
spoil; his impenetrable retreat deprived the conqueror of the
hopes of revenge; and the pride or weakness of empire indulged an
opinion, that no honor could be gained or lost in the intercourse
with Barbarians. At first their demands were high and
inadmissible, three pounds of gold for each soldier or mariner of
the fleet: the Russian youth adhered to the design of conquest
and glory; but the counsels of moderation were recommended by the
hoary sages. "Be content," they said, "with the liberal offers of
Cæsar; it is not far better to obtain without a combat the
possession of gold, silver, silks, and all the objects of our
desires? Are we sure of victory? Can we conclude a treaty with
the sea? We do not tread on the land; we float on the abyss of
water, and a common death hangs over our heads." The memory of
these Arctic fleets that seemed to descend from the polar circle
left deep impression of terror on the Imperial city. By the
vulgar of every rank, it was asserted and believed, that an
equestrian statue in the square of Taurus was secretly inscribed
with a prophecy, how the Russians, in the last days, should
become masters of Constantinople. In our own time, a Russian
armament, instead of sailing from the Borysthenes, has
circumnavigated the continent of Europe; and the Turkish capital
has been threatened by a squadron of strong and lofty ships of
war, each of which, with its naval science and thundering
artillery, could have sunk or scattered a hundred canoes, such as
those of their ancestors. Perhaps the present generation may yet
behold the accomplishment of the prediction, of a rare
prediction, of which the style is unambiguous and the date
unquestionable.
By land the Russians were less formidable than by sea; and as
they fought for the most part on foot, their irregular legions
must often have been broken and overthrown by the cavalry of the
Scythian hordes. Yet their growing towns, however slight and
imperfect, presented a shelter to the subject, and a barrier to
the enemy: the monarchy of Kiow, till a fatal partition, assumed
the dominion of the North; and the nations from the Volga to the
Danube were subdued or repelled by the arms of Swatoslaus, the
son of Igor, the son of Oleg, the son of Ruric. The vigor of his
mind and body was fortified by the hardships of a military and
savage life. Wrapped in a bear-skin, Swatoslaus usually slept on
the ground, his head reclining on a saddle; his diet was coarse
and frugal, and, like the heroes of Homer, his meat (it was often
horse-flesh) was broiled or roasted on the coals. The exercise of
war gave stability and discipline to his army; and it may be
presumed, that no soldier was permitted to transcend the luxury
of his chief. By an embassy from Nicephorus, the Greek emperor,
he was moved to undertake the conquest of Bulgaria; and a gift of
fifteen hundred pounds of gold was laid at his feet to defray the
expense, or reward the toils, of the expedition. An army of sixty
thousand men was assembled and embarked; they sailed from the
Borysthenes to the Danube; their landing was effected on the
Mæsian shore; and, after a sharp encounter, the swords of
the Russians prevailed against the arrows of the Bulgarian horse.
The vanquished king sunk into the grave; his children were made
captive; and his dominions, as far as Mount Hæmus, were
subdued or ravaged by the northern invaders. But instead of
relinquishing his prey, and performing his engagements, the
Varangian prince was more disposed to advance than to retire;
and, had his ambition been crowned with success, the seat of
empire in that early period might have been transferred to a more
temperate and fruitful climate. Swatoslaus enjoyed and
acknowledged the advantages of his new position, in which he
could unite, by exchange or rapine, the various productions of
the earth. By an easy navigation he might draw from Russia the
native commodities of furs, wax, and hydromel: Hungary supplied
him with a breed of horses and the spoils of the West; and Greece
abounded with gold, silver, and the foreign luxuries, which his
poverty had affected to disdain. The bands of Patzinacites,
Chozars, and Turks, repaired to the standard of victory; and the
ambassador of Nicephorus betrayed his trust, assumed the purple,
and promised to share with his new allies the treasures of the
Eastern world. From the banks of the Danube the Russian prince
pursued his march as far as Adrianople; a formal summons to
evacuate the Roman province was dismissed with contempt; and
Swatoslaus fiercely replied, that Constantinople might soon
expect the presence of an enemy and a master.
Nicephorus could no longer expel the mischief which he had
introduced; but his throne and wife were inherited by John
Zimisces, who, in a diminutive body, possessed the spirit and
abilities of a hero. The first victory of his lieutenants
deprived the Russians of their foreign allies, twenty thousand of
whom were either destroyed by the sword, or provoked to revolt,
or tempted to desert. Thrace was delivered, but seventy thousand
Barbarians were still in arms; and the legions that had been
recalled from the new conquests of Syria, prepared, with the
return of the spring, to march under the banners of a warlike
prince, who declared himself the friend and avenger of the
injured Bulgaria. The passes of Mount Hæmus had been left
unguarded; they were instantly occupied; the Roman vanguard was
formed of the immortals, (a proud
imitation of the Persian style;) the emperor led the main body of
ten thousand five hundred foot; and the rest of his forces
followed in slow and cautious array, with the baggage and
military engines. The first exploit of Zimisces was the reduction
of Marcianopolis, or Peristhlaba, in two days; the trumpets
sounded; the walls were scaled; eight thousand five hundred
Russians were put to the sword; and the sons of the Bulgarian
king were rescued from an ignominious prison, and invested with a
nominal diadem. After these repeated losses, Swatoslaus retired
to the strong post of Drista, on the banks of the Danube, and was
pursued by an enemy who alternately employed the arms of celerity
and delay. The Byzantine galleys ascended the river, the legions
completed a line of circumvallation; and the Russian prince was
encompassed, assaulted, and famished, in the fortifications of
the camp and city. Many deeds of valor were performed; several
desperate sallies were attempted; nor was it till after a siege
of sixty-five days that Swatoslaus yielded to his adverse
fortune. The liberal terms which he obtained announce the
prudence of the victor, who respected the valor, and apprehended
the despair, of an unconquered mind. The great duke of Russia
bound himself, by solemn imprecations, to relinquish all hostile
designs; a safe passage was opened for his return; the liberty of
trade and navigation was restored; a measure of corn was
distributed to each of his soldiers; and the allowance of
twenty-two thousand measures attests the loss and the remnant of
the Barbarians. After a painful voyage, they again reached the
mouth of the Borysthenes; but their provisions were exhausted;
the season was unfavorable; they passed the winter on the ice;
and, before they could prosecute their march, Swatoslaus was
surprised and oppressed by the neighboring tribes with whom the
Greeks entertained a perpetual and useful correspondence. Far
different was the return of Zimisces, who was received in his
capital like Camillus or Marius, the saviors of ancient Rome. But
the merit of the victory was attributed by the pious emperor to
the mother of God; and the image of the Virgin Mary, with the
divine infant in her arms, was placed on a triumphal car, adorned
with the spoils of war, and the ensigns of Bulgarian royalty.
Zimisces made his public entry on horseback; the diadem on his
head, a crown of laurel in his hand; and Constantinople was
astonished to applaud the martial virtues of her sovereign.
Photius of Constantinople, a patriarch, whose ambition was
equal to his curiosity, congratulates himself and the Greek
church on the conversion of the Russians. Those fierce and bloody
Barbarians had been persuaded, by the voice of reason and
religion, to acknowledge Jesus for their God, the Christian
missionaries for their teachers, and the Romans for their friends
and brethren. His triumph was transient and premature. In the
various fortune of their piratical adventures, some Russian
chiefs might allow themselves to be sprinkled with the waters of
baptism; and a Greek bishop, with the name of metropolitan, might
administer the sacraments in the church of Kiow, to a
congregation of slaves and natives. But the seed of the gospel
was sown on a barren soil: many were the apostates, the converts
were few; and the baptism of Olga may be fixed as the æra
of Russian Christianity. A female, perhaps of the basest origin,
who could revenge the death, and assume the sceptre, of her
husband Igor, must have been endowed with those active virtues
which command the fear and obedience of Barbarians. In a moment
of foreign and domestic peace, she sailed from Kiow to
Constantinople; and the emperor Constantine Porphyrogenitus has
described, with minute diligence, the ceremonial of her reception
in his capital and palace. The steps, the titles, the
salutations, the banquet, the presents, were exquisitely adjusted
to gratify the vanity of the stranger, with due reverence to the
superior majesty of the purple. In the sacrament of baptism, she
received the venerable name of the empress Helena; and her
conversion might be preceded or followed by her uncle, two
interpreters, sixteen damsels of a higher, and eighteen of a
lower rank, twenty-two domestics or ministers, and forty-four
Russian merchants, who composed the retinue of the great princess
Olga. After her return to Kiow and Novogorod, she firmly
persisted in her new religion; but her labors in the propagation
of the gospel were not crowned with success; and both her family
and nation adhered with obstinacy or indifference to the gods of
their fathers. Her son Swatoslaus was apprehensive of the scorn
and ridicule of his companions; and her grandson Wolodomir
devoted his youthful zeal to multiply and decorate the monuments
of ancient worship. The savage deities of the North were still
propitiated with human sacrifices: in the choice of the victim, a
citizen was preferred to a stranger, a Christian to an idolater;
and the father, who defended his son from the sacerdotal knife,
was involved in the same doom by the rage of a fanatic tumult.
Yet the lessons and example of the pious Olga had made a deep,
though secret, impression in the minds of the prince and people:
the Greek missionaries continued to preach, to dispute, and to
baptize: and the ambassadors or merchants of Russia compared the
idolatry of the woods with the elegant superstition of
Constantinople. They had gazed with admiration on the dome of St.
Sophia: the lively pictures of saints and martyrs, the riches of
the altar, the number and vestments of the priests, the pomp and
order of the ceremonies; they were edified by the alternate
succession of devout silence and harmonious song; nor was it
difficult to persuade them, that a choir of angels descended each
day from heaven to join in the devotion of the Christians. But
the conversion of Wolodomir was determined, or hastened, by his
desire of a Roman bride. At the same time, and in the city of
Cherson, the rites of baptism and marriage were celebrated by the
Christian pontiff: the city he restored to the emperor Basil, the
brother of his spouse; but the brazen gates were transported, as
it is said, to Novogorod, and erected before the first church as
a trophy of his victory and faith. At his despotic command,
Peround, the god of thunder, whom he had so long adored, was
dragged through the streets of Kiow; and twelve sturdy Barbarians
battered with clubs the misshapen image, which was indignantly
cast into the waters of the Borysthenes. The edict of Wolodomir
had proclaimed, that all who should refuse the rites of baptism
would be treated as the enemies of God and their prince; and the
rivers were instantly filled with many thousands of obedient
Russians, who acquiesced in the truth and excellence of a
doctrine which had been embraced by the great duke and his
boyars. In the next generation, the relics of Paganism were
finally extirpated; but as the two brothers of Wolodomir had died
without baptism, their bones were taken from the grave, and
sanctified by an irregular and posthumous sacrament.
In the ninth, tenth, and eleventh centuries of the Christian
æra, the reign of the gospel and of the church was extended
over Bulgaria, Hungary, Bohemia, Saxony, Denmark, Norway, Sweden,
Poland, and Russia. The triumphs of apostolic zeal were repeated
in the iron age of Christianity; and the northern and eastern
regions of Europe submitted to a religion, more different in
theory than in practice, from the worship of their native idols.
A laudable ambition excited the monks both of Germany and Greece,
to visit the tents and huts of the Barbarians: poverty,
hardships, and dangers, were the lot of the first missionaries;
their courage was active and patient; their motive pure and
meritorious; their present reward consisted in the testimony of
their conscience and the respect of a grateful people; but the
fruitful harvest of their toils was inherited and enjoyed by the
proud and wealthy prelates of succeeding times. The first
conversions were free and spontaneous: a holy life and an
eloquent tongue were the only arms of the missionaries; but the
domestic fables of the Pagans were silenced by the miracles and
visions of the strangers; and the favorable temper of the chiefs
was accelerated by the dictates of vanity and interest. The
leaders of nations, who were saluted with the titles of kings and
saints, held it lawful and pious to impose the Catholic faith on
their subjects and neighbors; the coast of the Baltic, from
Holstein to the Gulf of Finland, was invaded under the standard
of the cross; and the reign of idolatry was closed by the
conversion of Lithuania in the fourteenth century. Yet truth and
candor must acknowledge, that the conversion of the North
imparted many temporal benefits both to the old and the new
Christians. The rage of war, inherent to the human species, could
not be healed by the evangelic precepts of charity and peace; and
the ambition of Catholic princes has renewed in every age the
calamities of hostile contention. But the admission of the
Barbarians into the pale of civil and ecclesiastical society
delivered Europe from the depredations, by sea and land, of the
Normans, the Hungarians, and the Russians, who learned to spare
their brethren and cultivate their possessions. The establishment
of law and order was promoted by the influence of the clergy; and
the rudiments of art and science were introduced into the savage
countries of the globe. The liberal piety of the Russian princes
engaged in their service the most skilful of the Greeks, to
decorate the cities and instruct the inhabitants: the dome and
the paintings of St. Sophia were rudely copied in the churches of
Kiow and Novogorod: the writings of the fathers were translated
into the Sclavonic idiom; and three hundred noble youths were
invited or compelled to attend the lessons of the college of
Jaroslaus. It should appear that Russia might have derived an
early and rapid improvement from her peculiar connection with the
church and state of Constantinople, which at that age so justly
despised the ignorance of the Latins. But the Byzantine nation
was servile, solitary, and verging to a hasty decline: after the
fall of Kiow, the navigation of the Borysthenes was forgotten;
the great princes of Wolodomir and Moscow were separated from the
sea and Christendom; and the divided monarchy was oppressed by
the ignominy and blindness of Tartar servitude. The Sclavonic and
Scandinavian kingdoms, which had been converted by the Latin
missionaries, were exposed, it is true, to the spiritual
jurisdiction and temporal claims of the popes; but they were
united in language and religious worship, with each other, and
with Rome; they imbibed the free and generous spirit of the
European republic, and gradually shared the light of knowledge
which arose on the western world.
Chapter LVI: The Saracens, The Franks And The
Normans.
Part I.
The Saracens, Franks, And Greeks, In Italy. -- First
Adventures And Settlement Of The Normans. -- Character And
Conquest Of Robert Guiscard, Duke Of Apulia -- Deliverance Of
Sicily By His Brother Roger. -- Victories Of Robert Over The
Emperors Of The East And West. -- Roger, King Of Sicily, Invades
Africa And Greece. -- The Emperor Manuel Comnenus. -- Wars Of The
Greeks And Normans. -- Extinction Of The Normans.
The three great nations of the world, the Greeks, the
Saracens, and the Franks, encountered each other on the theatre
of Italy. The southern provinces, which now compose the kingdom
of Naples, were subject, for the most part, to the Lombard dukes
and princes of Beneventum; so powerful in war, that they checked
for a moment the genius of Charlemagne; so liberal in peace, that
they maintained in their capital an academy of thirty-two
philosophers and grammarians. The division of this flourishing
state produced the rival principalities of Benevento, Salerno,
and Capua; and the thoughtless ambition or revenge of the
competitors invited the Saracens to the ruin of their common
inheritance. During a calamitous period of two hundred years,
Italy was exposed to a repetition of wounds, which the invaders
were not capable of healing by the union and tranquility of a
perfect conquest. Their frequent and almost annual squadrons
issued from the port of Palermo, and were entertained with too
much indulgence by the Christians of Naples: the more formidable
fleets were prepared on the African coast; and even the Arabs of
Andalusia were sometimes tempted to assist or oppose the Moslems
of an adverse sect. In the revolution of human events, a new
ambuscade was concealed in the Caudine Forks, the fields of
Cannæ were bedewed a second time with the blood of the
Africans, and the sovereign of Rome again attacked or defended
the walls of Capua and Tarentum. A colony of Saracens had been
planted at Bari, which commands the entrance of the Adriatic
Gulf; and their impartial depredations provoked the resentment,
and conciliated the union of the two emperors. An offensive
alliance was concluded between Basil the Macedonian, the first of
his race, and Lewis the great-grandson of Charlemagne; and each
party supplied the deficiencies of his associate. It would have
been imprudent in the Byzantine monarch to transport his
stationary troops of Asia to an Italian campaign; and the Latin
arms would have been insufficient if his superior navy had not
occupied the mouth of the Gulf. The fortress of Bari was invested
by the infantry of the Franks, and by the cavalry and galleys of
the Greeks; and, after a defence of four years, the Arabian emir
submitted to the clemency of Lewis, who commanded in person the
operations of the siege. This important conquest had been
achieved by the concord of the East and West; but their recent
amity was soon imbittered by the mutual complaints of jealousy
and pride. The Greeks assumed as their own the merit of the
conquest and the pomp of the triumph; extolled the greatness of
their powers, and affected to deride the intemperance and sloth
of the handful of Barbarians who appeared under the banners of
the Carlovingian prince. His reply is expressed with the
eloquence of indignation and truth: "We confess the magnitude of
your preparation," says the great-grandson of Charlemagne. "Your
armies were indeed as numerous as a cloud of summer locusts, who
darken the day, flap their wings, and, after a short flight,
tumble weary and breathless to the ground. Like them, ye sunk
after a feeble effort; ye were vanquished by your own cowardice;
and withdrew from the scene of action to injure and despoil our
Christian subjects of the Sclavonian coast. We were few in
number, and why were we few? Because, after a tedious expectation
of your arrival, I had dismissed my host, and retained only a
chosen band of warriors to continue the blockade of the city. If
they indulged their hospitable feasts in the face of danger and
death, did these feasts abate the vigor of their enterprise? Is
it by your fasting that the walls of Bari have been overturned?
Did not these valiant Franks, diminished as they were by languor
and fatigue, intercept and vanish the three most powerful emirs
of the Saracens? and did not their defeat precipitate the fall of
the city? Bari is now fallen; Tarentum trembles; Calabria will be
delivered; and, if we command the sea, the Island of Sicily may
be rescued from the hands of the infidels. My brother,"
accelerate (a name most offensive to the vanity of the Greek,)
"accelerate your naval succors, respect your allies, and distrust
your flatterers."
These lofty hopes were soon extinguished by the death of
Lewis, and the decay of the Carlovingian house; and whoever might
deserve the honor, the Greek emperors, Basil, and his son Leo,
secured the advantage, of the reduction of Bari The Italians of
Apulia and Calabria were persuaded or compelled to acknowledge
their supremacy, and an ideal line from Mount Garganus to the Bay
of Salerno, leaves the far greater part of the kingdom of Naples
under the dominion of the Eastern empire. Beyond that line, the
dukes or republics of Amalfi and Naples, who had never forfeited
their voluntary allegiance, rejoiced in the neighborhood of their
lawful sovereign; and Amalfi was enriched by supplying Europe
with the produce and manufactures of Asia. But the Lombard
princes of Benevento, Salerno, and Capua, were reluctantly torn
from the communion of the Latin world, and too often violated
their oaths of servitude and tribute. The city of Bari rose to
dignity and wealth, as the metropolis of the new theme or
province of Lombardy: the title of patrician, and afterwards the
singular name of Catapan, was assigned
to the supreme governor; and the policy both of the church and
state was modelled in exact subordination to the throne of
Constantinople. As long as the sceptre was disputed by the
princes of Italy, their efforts were feeble and adverse; and the
Greeks resisted or eluded the forces of Germany, which descended
from the Alps under the Imperial standard of the Othos. The first
and greatest of those Saxon princes was compelled to relinquish
the siege of Bari: the second, after the loss of his stoutest
bishops and barons, escaped with honor from the bloody field of
Crotona. On that day the scale of war was turned against the
Franks by the valor of the Saracens. These corsairs had indeed
been driven by the Byzantine fleets from the fortresses and
coasts of Italy; but a sense of interest was more prevalent than
superstition or resentment, and the caliph of Egypt had
transported forty thousand Moslems to the aid of his Christian
ally. The successors of Basil amused themselves with the belief,
that the conquest of Lombardy had been achieved, and was still
preserved by the justice of their laws, the virtues of their
ministers, and the gratitude of a people whom they had rescued
from anarchy and oppression. A series of rebellions might dart a
ray of truth into the palace of Constantinople; and the illusions
of flattery were dispelled by the easy and rapid success of the
Norman adventurers.
The revolution of human affairs had produced in Apulia and
Calabria a melancholy contrast between the age of Pythagoras and
the tenth century of the Christian æra. At the former
period, the coast of Great Greece (as it was then styled) was
planted with free and opulent cities: these cities were peopled
with soldiers, artists, and philosophers; and the military
strength of Tarentum; Sybaris, or Crotona, was not inferior to
that of a powerful kingdom. At the second æra, these once
flourishing provinces were clouded with ignorance impoverished by
tyranny, and depopulated by Barbarian war nor can we severely
accuse the exaggeration of a contemporary, that a fair and ample
district was reduced to the same desolation which had covered the
earth after the general deluge. Among the hostilities of the
Arabs, the Franks, and the Greeks, in the southern Italy, I shall
select two or three anecdotes expressive of their national
manners. 1. It was the amusement of the Saracens
to profane, as well as to pillage, the monasteries and churches.
At the siege of Salerno, a Mussulman chief spread his couch on
the communion-table, and on that altar sacrificed each night the
virginity of a Christian nun. As he wrestled with a reluctant
maid, a beam in the roof was accidentally or dexterously thrown
down on his head; and the death of the lustful emir was imputed
to the wrath of Christ, which was at length awakened to the
defence of his faithful spouse. 2. The Saracens
besieged the cities of Beneventum and Capua: after a vain appeal
to the successors of Charlemagne, the Lombards implored the
clemency and aid of the Greek emperor. A fearless citizen dropped
from the walls, passed the intrenchments, accomplished his
commission, and fell into the hands of the Barbarians as he was
returning with the welcome news. They commanded him to assist
their enterprise, and deceive his countrymen, with the assurance
that wealth and honors should be the reward of his falsehood, and
that his sincerity would be punished with immediate death. He
affected to yield, but as soon as he was conducted within hearing
of the Christians on the rampart, "Friends and brethren," he
cried with a loud voice, "be bold and patient, maintain the city;
your sovereign is informed of your distress, and your deliverers
are at hand. I know my doom, and commit my wife and children to
your gratitude." The rage of the Arabs confirmed his evidence;
and the self-devoted patriot was transpierced with a hundred
spears. He deserves to live in the memory of the virtuous, but
the repetition of the same story in ancient and modern times, may
sprinkle some doubts on the reality of this generous deed.
3. The recital of a third incident may provoke a
smile amidst the horrors of war. Theobald, marquis of Camerino
and Spoleto, supported the rebels of Beneventum; and his wanton
cruelty was not incompatible in that age with the character of a
hero. His captives of the Greek nation or party were castrated
without mercy, and the outrage was aggravated by a cruel jest,
that he wished to present the emperor with a supply of eunuchs,
the most precious ornaments of the Byzantine court. The garrison
of a castle had been defeated in a sally, and the prisoners were
sentenced to the customary operation. But the sacrifice was
disturbed by the intrusion of a frantic female, who, with
bleeding cheeks dishevelled hair, and importunate clamors,
compelled the marquis to listen to her complaint. "Is it thus,"
she cried, 'ye magnanimous heroes, that ye wage war against
women, against women who have never injured ye, and whose only
arms are the distaff and the loom?" Theobald denied the charge,
and protested that, since the Amazons, he had never heard of a
female war. "And how," she furiously exclaimed, "can you attack
us more directly, how can you wound us in a more vital part, than
by robbing our husbands of what we most dearly cherish, the
source of our joys, and the hope of our posterity? The plunder of
our flocks and herds I have endured without a murmur, but this
fatal injury, this irreparable loss, subdues my patience, and
calls aloud on the justice of heaven and earth." A general laugh
applauded her eloquence; the savage Franks, inaccessible to pity,
were moved by her ridiculous, yet rational despair; and with the
deliverance of the captives, she obtained the restitution of her
effects. As she returned in triumph to the castle, she was
overtaken by a messenger, to inquire, in the name of Theobald,
what punishment should be inflicted on her husband, were he again
taken in arms. "Should such," she answered without hesitation,
"be his guilt and misfortune, he has eyes, and a nose, and hands,
and feet. These are his own, and these he may deserve to forfeit
by his personal offences. But let my lord be pleased to spare
what his little handmaid presumes to claim as her peculiar and
lawful property."
The establishment of the Normans in the kingdoms of Naples and
Sicily is an event most romantic in its origin, and in its
consequences most important both to Italy and the Eastern empire.
The broken provinces of the Greeks, Lombards, and Saracens, were
exposed to every invader, and every sea and land were invaded by
the adventurous spirit of the Scandinavian pirates. After a long
indulgence of rapine and slaughter, a fair and ample territory
was accepted, occupied, and named, by the Normans of France: they
renounced their gods for the God of the Christians; and the dukes
of Normandy acknowledged themselves the vassals of the successors
of Charlemagne and Capet. The savage fierceness which they had
brought from the snowy mountains of Norway was refined, without
being corrupted, in a warmer climate; the companions of Rollo
insensibly mingled with the natives; they imbibed the manners,
language, and gallantry, of the French nation; and in a martial
age, the Normans might claim the palm of valor and glorious
achievements. Of the fashionable superstitions, they embraced
with ardor the pilgrimages of Rome, Italy, and the Holy Land. In
this active devotion, the minds and bodies were invigorated by
exercise: danger was the incentive, novelty the recompense; and
the prospect of the world was decorated by wonder, credulity, and
ambitious hope. They confederated for their mutual defence; and
the robbers of the Alps, who had been allured by the garb of a
pilgrim, were often chastised by the arm of a warrior. In one of
these pious visits to the cavern of Mount Garganus in Apulia,
which had been sanctified by the apparition of the archangel
Michael, they were accosted by a stranger in the Greek habit, but
who soon revealed himself as a rebel, a fugitive, and a mortal
foe of the Greek empire. His name was Melo; a noble citizen of
Bari, who, after an unsuccessful revolt, was compelled to seek
new allies and avengers of his country. The bold appearance of
the Normans revived his hopes and solicited his confidence: they
listened to the complaints, and still more to the promises, of
the patriot. The assurance of wealth demonstrated the justice of
his cause; and they viewed, as the inheritance of the brave, the
fruitful land which was oppressed by effeminate tyrants. On their
return to Normandy, they kindled a spark of enterprise, and a
small but intrepid band was freely associated for the deliverance
of Apulia. They passed the Alps by separate roads, and in the
disguise of pilgrims; but in the neighborhood of Rome they were
saluted by the chief of Bari, who supplied the more indigent with
arms and horses, and instantly led them to the field of action.
In the first conflict, their valor prevailed; but in the second
engagement they were overwhelmed by the numbers and military
engines of the Greeks, and indignantly retreated with their faces
to the enemy. * The unfortunate Melo ended his life a suppliant
at the court of Germany: his Norman followers, excluded from
their native and their promised land, wandered among the hills
and valleys of Italy, and earned their daily subsistence by the
sword. To that formidable sword the princes of Capua, Beneventum,
Salerno, and Naples, alternately appealed in their domestic
quarrels; the superior spirit and discipline of the Normans gave
victory to the side which they espoused; and their cautious
policy observed the balance of power, lest the preponderance of
any rival state should render their aid less important, and their
service less profitable. Their first asylum was a strong camp in
the depth of the marshes of Campania: but they were soon endowed
by the liberality of the duke of Naples with a more plentiful and
permanent seat. Eight miles from his residence, as a bulwark
against Capua, the town of Aversa was built and fortified for
their use; and they enjoyed as their own the corn and fruits, the
meadows and groves, of that fertile district. The report of their
success attracted every year new swarms of pilgrims and soldiers:
the poor were urged by necessity; the rich were excited by hope;
and the brave and active spirits of Normandy were impatient of
ease and ambitious of renown. The independent standard of Aversa
afforded shelter and encouragement to the outlaws of the
province, to every fugitive who had escaped from the injustice or
justice of his superiors; and these foreign associates were
quickly assimilated in manners and language to the Gallic colony.
The first leader of the Normans was Count Rainulf; and, in the
origin of society, preëminence of rank is the reward and the
proof of superior merit. *
Since the conquest of Sicily by the Arabs, the Grecian
emperors had been anxious to regain that valuable possession; but
their efforts, however strenuous, had been opposed by the
distance and the sea. Their costly armaments, after a gleam of
success, added new pages of calamity and disgrace to the
Byzantine annals: twenty thousand of their best troops were lost
in a single expedition; and the victorious Moslems derided the
policy of a nation which intrusted eunuchs not only with the
custody of their women, but with the command of their men After a
reign of two hundred years, the Saracens were ruined by their
divisions. The emir disclaimed the authority of the king of
Tunis; the people rose against the emir; the cities were usurped
by the chiefs; each meaner rebel was independent in his village
or castle; and the weaker of two rival brothers implored the
friendship of the Christians. In every service of danger the
Normans were prompt and useful; and five hundred
knights, or warriors on horseback, were
enrolled by Arduin, the agent and interpreter of the Greeks,
under the standard of Maniaces, governor of Lombardy. Before
their landing, the brothers were reconciled; the union of Sicily
and Africa was restored; and the island was guarded to the
water's edge. The Normans led the van and the Arabs of Messina
felt the valor of an untried foe. In a second action the emir of
Syracuse was unhorsed and transpierced by the iron
arm of William of Hauteville. In a third
engagement, his intrepid companions discomfited the host of sixty
thousand Saracens, and left the Greeks no more than the labor of
the pursuit: a splendid victory; but of which the pen of the
historian may divide the merit with the lance of the Normans. It
is, however, true, that they essentially promoted the success of
Maniaces, who reduced thirteen cities, and the greater part of
Sicily, under the obedience of the emperor. But his military fame
was sullied by ingratitude and tyranny. In the division of the
spoils, the deserts of his brave auxiliaries were forgotten; and
neither their avarice nor their pride could brook this injurious
treatment. They complained by the mouth of their interpreter:
their complaint was disregarded; their interpreter was scourged;
the sufferings were his; the insult and
resentment belonged to those whose
sentiments he had delivered. Yet they dissembled till they had
obtained, or stolen, a safe passage to the Italian continent:
their brethren of Aversa sympathized in their indignation, and
the province of Apulia was invaded as the forfeit of the debt.
Above twenty years after the first emigration, the Normans took
the field with no more than seven hundred horse and five hundred
foot; and after the recall of the Byzantine legions from the
Sicilian war, their numbers are magnified to the amount of
threescore thousand men. Their herald proposed the option of
battle or retreat; "of battle," was the unanimous cry of the
Normans; and one of their stoutest warriors, with a stroke of his
fist, felled to the ground the horse of the Greek messenger. He
was dismissed with a fresh horse; the insult was concealed from
the Imperial troops; but in two successive battles they were more
fatally instructed of the prowess of their adversaries. In the
plains of Cannæ, the Asiatics fled before the adventurers
of France; the duke of Lombardy was made prisoner; the Apulians
acquiesced in a new dominion; and the four places of Bari,
Otranto, Brundusium, and Tarentum, were alone saved in the
shipwreck of the Grecian fortunes. From this æra we may
date the establishment of the Norman power, which soon eclipsed
the infant colony of Aversa. Twelve counts were chosen by the
popular suffrage; and age, birth, and merit, were the motives of
their choice. The tributes of their peculiar districts were
appropriated to their use; and each count erected a fortress in
the midst of his lands, and at the head of his vassals. In the
centre of the province, the common habitation of Melphi was
reserved as the metropolis and citadel of the republic; a house
and separate quarter was allotted to each of the twelve counts:
and the national concerns were regulated by this military senate.
The first of his peers, their president and general, was entitled
count of Apulia; and this dignity was conferred on William of the
iron arm, who, in the language of the age, is styled a lion in
battle, a lamb in society, and an angel in council. The manners
of his countrymen are fairly delineated by a contemporary and
national historian. "The Normans," says Malaterra, "are a cunning
and revengeful people; eloquence and dissimulation appear to be
their hereditary qualities: they can stoop to flatter; but unless
they are curbed by the restraint of law, they indulge the
licentiousness of nature and passion. Their princes affect the
praises of popular munificence; the people observe the medium, or
rather blond the extremes, of avarice and prodigality; and in
their eager thirst of wealth and dominion, they despise whatever
they possess, and hope whatever they desire. Arms and horses, the
luxury of dress, the exercises of hunting and hawking are the
delight of the Normans; but, on pressing occasions, they can
endure with incredible patience the inclemency of every climate,
and the toil and absence of a military life."
Chapter LVI: The Saracens, The Franks And The
Normans. -- Part II.
The Normans of Apulia were seated on the verge of the two
empires; and, according to the policy of the hour, they accepted
the investiture of their lands, from the sovereigns of Germany or
Constantinople. But the firmest title of these adventurers was
the right of conquest: they neither loved nor trusted; they were
neither trusted nor beloved: the contempt of the princes was
mixed with fear, and the fear of the natives was mingled with
hatred and resentment. Every object of desire, a horse, a woman,
a garden, tempted and gratified the rapaciousness of the
strangers; and the avarice of their chiefs was only colored by
the more specious names of ambition and glory. The twelve counts
were sometimes joined in the league of injustice: in their
domestic quarrels they disputed the spoils of the people: the
virtues of William were buried in his grave; and Drogo, his
brother and successor, was better qualified to lead the valor,
than to restrain the violence, of his peers. Under the reign of
Constantine Monomachus, the policy, rather than benevolence, of
the Byzantine court, attempted to relieve Italy from this
adherent mischief, more grievous than a flight of Barbarians; and
Argyrus, the son of Melo, was invested for this purpose with the
most lofty titles and the most ample commission. The memory of
his father might recommend him to the Normans; and he had already
engaged their voluntary service to quell the revolt of Maniaces,
and to avenge their own and the public injury. It was the design
of Constantine to transplant the warlike colony from the Italian
provinces to the Persian war; and the son of Melo distributed
among the chiefs the gold and manufactures of Greece, as the
first-fruits of the Imperial bounty. But his arts were baffled by
the sense and spirit of the conquerors of Apulia: his gifts, or
at least his proposals, were rejected; and they unanimously
refused to relinquish their possessions and their hopes for the
distant prospect of Asiatic fortune. After the means of
persuasion had failed, Argyrus resolved to compel or to destroy:
the Latin powers were solicited against the common enemy; and an
offensive alliance was formed of the pope and the two emperors of
the East and West. The throne of St. Peter was occupied by Leo
the Ninth, a simple saint, of a temper most apt to deceive
himself and the world, and whose venerable character would
consecrate with the name of piety the measures least compatible
with the practice of religion. His humanity was affected by the
complaints, perhaps the calumnies, of an injured people: the
impious Normans had interrupted the payment of tithes; and the
temporal sword might be lawfully unsheathed against the
sacrilegious robbers, who were deaf to the censures of the
church. As a German of noble birth and royal kindred, Leo had
free access to the court and confidence of the emperor Henry the
Third; and in search of arms and allies, his ardent zeal
transported him from Apulia to Saxony, from the Elbe to the
Tyber. During these hostile preparations, Argyrus indulged
himself in the use of secret and guilty weapons: a crowd of
Normans became the victims of public or private revenge; and the
valiant Drogo was murdered in a church. But his spirit survived
in his brother Humphrey, the third count of Apulia. The assassins
were chastised; and the son of Melo, overthrown and wounded, was
driven from the field, to hide his shame behind the walls of
Bari, and to await the tardy succor of his allies.
But the power of Constantine was distracted by a Turkish war;
the mind of Henry was feeble and irresolute; and the pope,
instead of repassing the Alps with a German army, was accompanied
only by a guard of seven hundred Swabians and some volunteers of
Lorraine. In his long progress from Mantua to Beneventum, a vile
and promiscuous multitude of Italians was enlisted under the holy
standard: the priest and the robber slept in the same tent; the
pikes and crosses were intermingled in the front; and the martial
saint repeated the lessons of his youth in the order of march, of
encampment, and of combat. The Normans of Apulia could muster in
the field no more than three thousand horse, with a handful of
infantry: the defection of the natives intercepted their
provisions and retreat; and their spirit, incapable of fear, was
chilled for a moment by superstitious awe. On the hostile
approach of Leo, they knelt without disgrace or reluctance before
their spiritual father. But the pope was inexorable; his lofty
Germans affected to deride the diminutive stature of their
adversaries; and the Normans were informed that death or exile
was their only alternative. Flight they disdained, and, as many
of them had been three days without tasting food, they embraced
the assurance of a more easy and honorable death. They climbed
the hill of Civitella, descended into the plain, and charged in
three divisions the army of the pope. On the left, and in the
centre, Richard count of Aversa, and Robert the famous Guiscard,
attacked, broke, routed, and pursued the Italian multitudes, who
fought without discipline, and fled without shame. A harder trial
was reserved for the valor of Count Humphrey, who led the cavalry
of the right wing. The Germans have been described as unskillful
in the management of the horse and the lance, but on foot they
formed a strong and impenetrable phalanx; and neither man, nor
steed, nor armor, could resist the weight of their long and
two-handed swords. After a severe conflict, they were encompassed
by the squadrons returning from the pursuit; and died in the
ranks with the esteem of their foes, and the satisfaction of
revenge. The gates of Civitella were shut against the flying
pope, and he was overtaken by the pious conquerors, who kissed
his feet, to implore his blessing and the absolution of their
sinful victory. The soldiers beheld in their enemy and captive
the vicar of Christ; and, though we may suppose the policy of the
chiefs, it is probable that they were infected by the popular
superstition. In the calm of retirement, the well-meaning pope
deplored the effusion of Christian blood, which must be imputed
to his account: he felt, that he had been the author of sin and
scandal; and as his undertaking had failed, the indecency of his
military character was universally condemned. With these
dispositions, he listened to the offers of a beneficial treaty;
deserted an alliance which he had preached as the cause of God;
and ratified the past and future conquests of the Normans. By
whatever hands they had been usurped, the provinces of Apulia and
Calabria were a part of the donation of Constantine and the
patrimony of St. Peter: the grant and the acceptance confirmed
the mutual claims of the pontiff and the adventurers. They
promised to support each other with spiritual and temporal arms;
a tribute or quitrent of twelve pence was afterwards stipulated
for every ploughland; and since this memorable transaction, the
kingdom of Naples has remained above seven hundred years a fief
of the Holy See.
The pedigree of Robert of Guiscard is variously deduced from
the peasants and the dukes of Normandy: from the peasants, by the
pride and ignorance of a Grecian princess; from the dukes, by the
ignorance and flattery of the Italian subjects. His genuine
descent may be ascribed to the second or middle order of private
nobility. He sprang from a race of
valvassors or
bannerets, of the diocese of Coutances,
in the Lower Normandy: the castle of Hauteville was their
honorable seat: his father Tancred was conspicuous in the court
and army of the duke; and his military service was furnished by
ten soldiers or knights. Two marriages, of a rank not unworthy of
his own, made him the father of twelve sons, who were educated at
home by the impartial tenderness of his second wife. But a narrow
patrimony was insufficient for this numerous and daring progeny;
they saw around the neighborhood the mischiefs of poverty and
discord, and resolved to seek in foreign wars a more glorious
inheritance. Two only remained to perpetuate the race, and
cherish their father's age: their ten brothers, as they
successfully attained the vigor of manhood, departed from the
castle, passed the Alps, and joined the Apulian camp of the
Normans. The elder were prompted by native spirit; their success
encouraged their younger brethren, and the three first in
seniority, William, Drogo, and Humphrey, deserved to be the
chiefs of their nation and the founders of the new republic.
Robert was the eldest of the seven sons of the second marriage;
and even the reluctant praise of his foes has endowed him with
the heroic qualities of a soldier and a statesman. His lofty
stature surpassed the tallest of his army: his limbs were cast in
the true proportion of strength and gracefulness; and to the
decline of life, he maintained the patient vigor of health and
the commanding dignity of his form. His complexion was ruddy, his
shoulders were broad, his hair and beard were long and of a
flaxen color, his eyes sparkled with fire, and his voice, like
that of Achilles, could impress obedience and terror amidst the
tumult of battle. In the ruder ages of chivalry, such
qualifications are not below the notice of the poet or
historians: they may observe that Robert, at once, and with equal
dexterity, could wield in the right hand his sword, his lance in
the left; that in the battle of Civitella he was thrice unhorsed;
and that in the close of that memorable day he was adjudged to
have borne away the prize of valor from the warriors of the two
armies. His boundless ambition was founded on the consciousness
of superior worth: in the pursuit of greatness, he was never
arrested by the scruples of justice, and seldom moved by the
feelings of humanity: though not insensible of fame, the choice
of open or clandestine means was determined only by his present
advantage. The surname of Guiscard was
applied to this master of political wisdom, which is too often
confounded with the practice of dissimulation and deceit; and
Robert is praised by the Apulian poet for excelling the cunning
of Ulysses and the eloquence of Cicero. Yet these arts were
disguised by an appearance of military frankness: in his highest
fortune, he was accessible and courteous to his fellow-soldiers;
and while he indulged the prejudices of his new subjects, he
affected in his dress and manners to maintain the ancient fashion
of his country. He grasped with a rapacious, that he might
distribute with a liberal, hand: his primitive indigence had
taught the habits of frugality; the gain of a merchant was not
below his attention; and his prisoners were tortured with slow
and unfeeling cruelty, to force a discovery of their secret
treasure. According to the Greeks, he departed from Normandy with
only five followers on horseback and thirty on foot; yet even
this allowance appears too bountiful: the sixth son of Tancred of
Hauteville passed the Alps as a pilgrim; and his first military
band was levied among the adventurers of Italy. His brothers and
countrymen had divided the fertile lands of Apulia; but they
guarded their shares with the jealousy of avarice; the aspiring
youth was driven forwards to the mountains of Calabria, and in
his first exploits against the Greeks and the natives, it is not
easy to discriminate the hero from the robber. To surprise a
castle or a convent, to ensnare a wealthy citizen, to plunder the
adjacent villages for necessary food, were the obscure labors
which formed and exercised the powers of his mind and body. The
volunteers of Normandy adhered to his standard; and, under his
command, the peasants of Calabria assumed the name and character
of Normans.
As the genius of Robert expanded with his fortune, he awakened
the jealousy of his elder brother, by whom, in a transient
quarrel, his life was threatened and his liberty restrained.
After the death of Humphrey, the tender age of his sons excluded
them from the command; they were reduced to a private estate, by
the ambition of their guardian and uncle; and Guiscard was
exalted on a buckler, and saluted count of Apulia and general of
the republic. With an increase of authority and of force, he
resumed the conquest of Calabria, and soon aspired to a rank that
should raise him forever above the heads of his equals. By some
acts of rapine or sacrilege, he had incurred a papal
excommunication; but Nicholas the Second was easily persuaded
that the divisions of friends could terminate only in their
mutual prejudice; that the Normans were the faithful champions of
the Holy See; and it was safer to trust the alliance of a prince
than the caprice of an aristocracy. A synod of one hundred
bishops was convened at Melphi; and the count interrupted an
important enterprise to guard the person and execute the decrees
of the Roman pontiff. His gratitude and policy conferred on
Robert and his posterity the ducal title, with the investiture of
Apulia, Calabria, and all the lands, both in Italy and Sicily,
which his sword could rescue from the schismatic Greeks and the
unbelieving Saracens. This apostolic sanction might justify his
arms; but the obedience of a free and victorious people could not
be transferred without their consent; and Guiscard dissembled his
elevation till the ensuing campaign had been illustrated by the
conquest of Consenza and Reggio. In the hour of triumph, he
assembled his troops, and solicited the Normans to confirm by
their suffrage the judgment of the vicar of Christ: the soldiers
hailed with joyful acclamations their valiant duke; and the
counts, his former equals, pronounced the oath of fidelity with
hollow smiles and secret indignation. After this inauguration,
Robert styled himself, "By the grace of God and St. Peter, duke
of Apulia, Calabria, and hereafter of Sicily;" and it was the
labor of twenty years to deserve and realize these lofty
appellations. Such tardy progress, in a narrow space, may seem
unworthy of the abilities of the chief and the spirit of the
nation; but the Normans were few in number; their resources were
scanty; their service was voluntary and precarious. The bravest
designs of the duke were sometimes opposed by the free voice of
his parliament of barons: the twelve counts of popular election
conspired against his authority; and against their perfidious
uncle, the sons of Humphrey demanded justice and revenge. By his
policy and vigor, Guiscard discovered their plots, suppressed
their rebellions, and punished the guilty with death or exile:
but in these domestic feuds, his years, and the national
strength, were unprofitably consumed. After the defeat of his
foreign enemies, the Greeks, Lombards, and Saracens, their broken
forces retreated to the strong and populous cities of the
sea-coast. They excelled in the arts of fortification and
defence; the Normans were accustomed to serve on horseback in the
field, and their rude attempts could only succeed by the efforts
of persevering courage. The resistance of Salerno was maintained
above eight months; the siege or blockade of Bari lasted near
four years. In these actions the Norman duke was the foremost in
every danger; in every fatigue the last and most patient. As he
pressed the citadel of Salerno, a huge stone from the rampart
shattered one of his military engines; and by a splinter he was
wounded in the breast. Before the gates of Bari, he lodged in a
miserable hut or barrack, composed of dry branches, and thatched
with straw; a perilous station, on all sides open to the
inclemency of the winter and the spears of the enemy.
The Italian conquests of Robert correspond with the limits of
the present kingdom of Naples; and the countries united by his
arms have not been dissevered by the revolutions of seven hundred
years. The monarchy has been composed of the Greek provinces of
Calabria and Apulia, of the Lombard principality of Salerno, the
republic of Amalphi, and the inland dependencies of the large and
ancient duchy of Beneventum. Three districts only were exempted
from the common law of subjection; the first forever, the two
last till the middle of the succeeding century. The city and
immediate territory of Benevento had been transferred, by gift or
exchange, from the German emperor to the Roman pontiff; and
although this holy land was sometimes invaded, the name of St.
Peter was finally more potent than the sword of the Normans.
Their first colony of Aversa subdued and held the state of Capua;
and her princes were reduced to beg their bread before the palace
of their fathers. The dukes of Naples, the present metropolis,
maintained the popular freedom, under the shadow of the Byzantine
empire. Among the new acquisitions of Guiscard, the science of
Salerno, and the trade of Amalphi, may detain for a moment the
curiosity of the reader. I. Of the learned faculties,
jurisprudence implies the previous establishment of laws and
property; and theology may perhaps be superseded by the full
light of religion and reason. But the savage and the sage must
alike implore the assistance of physic; and, if our diseases are
inflamed by luxury, the mischiefs of blows and wounds would be
more frequent in the ruder ages of society. The treasures of
Grecian medicine had been communicated to the Arabian colonies of
Africa, Spain, and Sicily; and in the intercourse of peace and
war, a spark of knowledge had been kindled and cherished at
Salerno, an illustrious city, in which the men were honest and
the women beautiful. A school, the first that arose in the
darkness of Europe, was consecrated to the healing art: the
conscience of monks and bishops was reconciled to that salutary
and lucrative profession; and a crowd of patients, of the most
eminent rank, and most distant climates, invited or visited the
physicians of Salerno. They were protected by the Norman
conquerors; and Guiscard, though bred in arms, could discern the
merit and value of a philosopher. After a pilgrimage of
thirty-nine years, Constantine, an African Christian, returned
from Bagdad, a master of the language and learning of the
Arabians; and Salerno was enriched by the practice, the lessons,
and the writings of the pupil of Avicenna. The school of medicine
has long slept in the name of a university; but her precepts are
abridged in a string of aphorisms, bound together in the Leonine
verses, or Latin rhymes, of the twelfth century. II. Seven miles
to the west of Salerno, and thirty to the south of Naples, the
obscure town of Amalphi displayed the power and rewards of
industry. The land, however fertile, was of narrow extent; but
the sea was accessible and open: the inhabitants first assumed
the office of supplying the western world with the manufactures
and productions of the East; and this useful traffic was the
source of their opulence and freedom. The government was popular,
under the administration of a duke and the supremacy of the Greek
emperor. Fifty thousand citizens were numbered in the walls of
Amalphi; nor was any city more abundantly provided with gold,
silver, and the objects of precious luxury. The mariners who
swarmed in her port, excelled in the theory and practice of
navigation and astronomy: and the discovery of the compass, which
has opened the globe, is owing to their ingenuity or good
fortune. Their trade was extended to the coasts, or at least to
the commodities, of Africa, Arabia, and India: and their
settlements in Constantinople, Antioch, Jerusalem, and
Alexandria, acquired the privileges of independent colonies.
After three hundred years of prosperity, Amalphi was oppressed by
the arms of the Normans, and sacked by the jealousy of Pisa; but
the poverty of one thousand * fisherman is yet dignified by the
remains of an arsenal, a cathedral, and the palaces of royal
merchants.
Chapter LVI: The Saracens, The Franks And The
Normans. -- Part III.
Roger, the twelfth and last of the sons of Tancred, had been
long detained in Normandy by his own and his father' age. He
accepted the welcome summons; hastened to the Apulian camp; and
deserved at first the esteem, and afterwards the envy, of his
elder brother. Their valor and ambition were equal; but the
youth, the beauty, the elegant manners, of Roger engaged the
disinterested love of the soldiers and people. So scanty was his
allowance for himself and forty followers, that he descended from
conquest to robbery, and from robbery to domestic theft; and so
loose were the notions of property, that, by his own historian,
at his special command, he is accused of stealing horses from a
stable at Melphi. His spirit emerged from poverty and disgrace:
from these base practices he rose to the merit and glory of a
holy war; and the invasion of Sicily was seconded by the zeal and
policy of his brother Guiscard. After the retreat of the Greeks,
the idolaters, a most audacious
reproach of the Catholics, had retrieved their losses and
possessions; but the deliverance of the island, so vainly
undertaken by the forces of the Eastern empire, was achieved by a
small and private band of adventurers. In the first attempt,
Roger braved, in an open boat, the real and fabulous dangers of
Scylla and Charybdis; landed with only sixty soldiers on a
hostile shore; drove the Saracens to the gates of Messina and
safely returned with the spoils of the adjacent country. In the
fortress of Trani, his active and patient courage were equally
conspicuous. In his old age he related with pleasure, that, by
the distress of the siege, himself, and the countess his wife,
had been reduced to a single cloak or mantle, which they wore
alternately; that in a sally his horse had been slain, and he was
dragged away by the Saracens; but that he owed his rescue to his
good sword, and had retreated with his saddle on his back, lest
the meanest trophy might be left in the hands of the miscreants.
In the siege of Trani, three hundred Normans withstood and
repulsed the forces of the island. In the field of Ceramio, fifty
thousand horse and foot were overthrown by one hundred and
thirty-six Christian soldiers, without reckoning St. George, who
fought on horseback in the foremost ranks. The captive banners,
with four camels, were reserved for the successor of St. Peter;
and had these barbaric spoils been exposed, not in the Vatican,
but in the Capitol, they might have revived the memory of the
Punic triumphs. These insufficient numbers of the Normans most
probably denote their knights, the soldiers of honorable and
equestrian rank, each of whom was attended by five or six
followers in the field; yet, with the aid of this interpretation,
and after every fair allowance on the side of valor, arms, and
reputation, the discomfiture of so many myriads will reduce the
prudent reader to the alternative of a miracle or a fable. The
Arabs of Sicily derived a frequent and powerful succor from their
countrymen of Africa: in the siege of Palermo, the Norman cavalry
was assisted by the galleys of Pisa; and, in the hour of action,
the envy of the two brothers was sublimed to a generous and
invincible emulation. After a war of thirty years, Roger, with
the title of great count, obtained the sovereignty of the largest
and most fruitful island of the Mediterranean; and his
administration displays a liberal and enlightened mind, above the
limits of his age and education. The Moslems were maintained in
the free enjoyment of their religion and property: a philosopher
and physician of Mazara, of the race of Mahomet, harangued the
conqueror, and was invited to court; his geography of the seven
climates was translated into Latin; and Roger, after a diligent
perusal, preferred the work of the Arabian to the writings of the
Grecian Ptolemy. A remnant of Christian natives had promoted the
success of the Normans: they were rewarded by the triumph of the
cross. The island was restored to the jurisdiction of the Roman
pontiff; new bishops were planted in the principal cities; and
the clergy was satisfied by a liberal endowment of churches and
monasteries. Yet the Catholic hero asserted the rights of the
civil magistrate. Instead of resigning the investiture of
benefices, he dexterously applied to his own profit the papal
claims: the supremacy of the crown was secured and enlarged, by
the singular bull, which declares the princes of Sicily
hereditary and perpetual legates of the Holy See.
To Robert Guiscard, the conquest of Sicily was more glorious
than beneficial: the possession of Apulia and Calabria was
inadequate to his ambition; and he resolved to embrace or create
the first occasion of invading, perhaps of subduing, the Roman
empire of the East. From his first wife, the partner of his
humble fortune, he had been divorced under the pretence of
consanguinity; and her son Bohemond was destined to imitate,
rather than to succeed, his illustrious father. The second wife
of Guiscard was the daughter of the princes of Salerno; the
Lombards acquiesced in the lineal succession of their son Roger;
their five daughters were given in honorable nuptials, and one of
them was betrothed, in a tender age, to Constantine, a beautiful
youth, the son and heir of the emperor Michael. But the throne of
Constantinople was shaken by a revolution: the Imperial family of
Ducas was confined to the palace or the cloister; and Robert
deplored, and resented, the disgrace of his daughter and the
expulsion of his ally. A Greek, who styled himself the father of
Constantine, soon appeared at Salerno, and related the adventures
of his fall and flight. That unfortunate friend was acknowledged
by the duke, and adorned with the pomp and titles of Imperial
dignity: in his triumphal progress through Apulia and Calabria,
Michael was saluted with the tears and acclamations of the
people; and Pope Gregory the Seventh exhorted the bishops to
preach, and the Catholics to fight, in the pious work of his
restoration. His conversations with Robert were frequent and
familiar; and their mutual promises were justified by the valor
of the Normans and the treasures of the East. Yet this Michael,
by the confession of the Greeks and Latins, was a pageant and an
impostor; a monk who had fled from his convent, or a domestic who
had served in the palace. The fraud had been contrived by the
subtle Guiscard; and he trusted, that after this pretender had
given a decent color to his arms, he would sink, at the nod of
the conqueror, into his primitive obscurity. But victory was the
only argument that could determine the belief of the Greeks; and
the ardor of the Latins was much inferior to their credulity: the
Norman veterans wished to enjoy the harvest of their toils, and
the unwarlike Italians trembled at the known and unknown dangers
of a transmarine expedition. In his new levies, Robert exerted
the influence of gifts and promises, the terrors of civil and
ecclesiastical authority; and some acts of violence might justify
the reproach, that age and infancy were pressed without
distinction into the service of their unrelenting prince. After
two years' incessant preparations the land and naval forces were
assembled at Otranto, at the heel, or extreme promontory, of
Italy; and Robert was accompanied by his wife, who fought by his
side, his son Bohemond, and the representative of the emperor
Michael. Thirteen hundred knights of Norman race or discipline,
formed the sinews of the army, which might be swelled to thirty
thousand followers of every denomination. The men, the horses,
the arms, the engines, the wooden towers, covered with raw hides,
were embarked on board one hundred and fifty vessels: the
transports had been built in the ports of Italy, and the galleys
were supplied by the alliance of the republic of Ragusa.
At the mouth of the Adriatic Gulf, the shores of Italy and
Epirus incline towards each other. The space between Brundusium
and Durazzo, the Roman passage, is no more than one hundred
miles; at the last station of Otranto, it is contracted to fifty;
and this narrow distance had suggested to Pyrrhus and Pompey the
sublime or extravagant idea of a bridge. Before the general
embarkation, the Norman duke despatched Bohemond with fifteen
galleys to seize or threaten the Isle of Corfu, to survey the
opposite coast, and to secure a harbor in the neighborhood of
Vallona for the landing of the troops. They passed and landed
without perceiving an enemy; and this successful experiment
displayed the neglect and decay of the naval power of the Greeks.
The islands of Epirus and the maritime towns were subdued by the
arms or the name of Robert, who led his fleet and army from Corfu
(I use the modern appellation) to the siege of Durazzo. That
city, the western key of the empire, was guarded by ancient
renown, and recent fortifications, by George Palæologus, a
patrician, victorious in the Oriental wars, and a numerous
garrison of Albanians and Macedonians, who, in every age, have
maintained the character of soldiers. In the prosecution of his
enterprise, the courage of Guiscard was assailed by every form of
danger and mischance. In the most propitious season of the year,
as his fleet passed along the coast, a storm of wind and snow
unexpectedly arose: the Adriatic was swelled by the raging blast
of the south, and a new shipwreck confirmed the old infamy of the
Acroceraunian rocks. The sails, the masts, and the oars, were
shattered or torn away; the sea and shore were covered with the
fragments of vessels, with arms and dead bodies; and the greatest
part of the provisions were either drowned or damaged. The ducal
galley was laboriously rescued from the waves, and Robert halted
seven days on the adjacent cape, to collect the relics of his
loss, and revive the drooping spirits of his soldiers. The
Normans were no longer the bold and experienced mariners who had
explored the ocean from Greenland to Mount Atlas, and who smiled
at the petty dangers of the Mediterranean. They had wept during
the tempest; they were alarmed by the hostile approach of the
Venetians, who had been solicited by the prayers and promises of
the Byzantine court. The first day's action was not
disadvantageous to Bohemond, a beardless youth, who led the naval
powers of his father. All night the galleys of the republic lay
on their anchors in the form of a crescent; and the victory of
the second day was decided by the dexterity of their evolutions,
the station of their archers, the weight of their javelins, and
the borrowed aid of the Greek fire. The Apulian and Ragusian
vessels fled to the shore, several were cut from their cables,
and dragged away by the conqueror; and a sally from the town
carried slaughter and dismay to the tents of the Norman duke. A
seasonable relief was poured into Durazzo, and as soon as the
besiegers had lost the command of the sea, the islands and
maritime towns withdrew from the camp the supply of tribute and
provision. That camp was soon afflicted with a pestilential
disease; five hundred knights perished by an inglorious death;
and the list of burials (if all could obtain a decent burial)
amounted to ten thousand persons. Under these calamities, the
mind of Guiscard alone was firm and invincible; and while he
collected new forces from Apulia and Sicily, he battered, or
scaled, or sapped, the walls of Durazzo. But his industry and
valor were encountered by equal valor and more perfect industry.
A movable turret, of a size and capacity to contain five hundred
soldiers, had been rolled forwards to the foot of the rampart:
but the descent of the door or drawbridge was checked by an
enormous beam, and the wooden structure was constantly consumed
by artificial flames.
While the Roman empire was attacked by the Turks in the East,
east, and the Normans in the West, the aged successor of Michael
surrendered the sceptre to the hands of Alexius, an illustrious
captain, and the founder of the Comnenian dynasty. The princess
Anne, his daughter and historian, observes, in her affected
style, that even Hercules was unequal to a double combat; and, on
this principle, she approves a hasty peace with the Turks, which
allowed her father to undertake in person the relief of Durazzo.
On his accession, Alexius found the camp without soldiers, and
the treasury without money; yet such were the vigor and activity
of his measures, that in six months he assembled an army of
seventy thousand men, and performed a march of five hundred
miles. His troops were levied in Europe and Asia, from
Peloponnesus to the Black Sea; his majesty was displayed in the
silver arms and rich trappings of the companies of Horse-guards;
and the emperor was attended by a train of nobles and princes,
some of whom, in rapid succession, had been clothed with the
purple, and were indulged by the lenity of the times in a life of
affluence and dignity. Their youthful ardor might animate the
multitude; but their love of pleasure and contempt of
subordination were pregnant with disorder and mischief; and their
importunate clamors for speedy and decisive action disconcerted
the prudence of Alexius, who might have surrounded and starved
the besieging army. The enumeration of provinces recalls a sad
comparison of the past and present limits of the Roman world: the
raw levies were drawn together in haste and terror; and the
garrisons of Anatolia, or Asia Minor, had been purchased by the
evacuation of the cities which were immediately occupied by the
Turks. The strength of the Greek army consisted in the
Varangians, the Scandinavian guards, whose numbers were recently
augmented by a colony of exiles and volunteers from the British
Island of Thule. Under the yoke of the Norman conqueror, the
Danes and English were oppressed and united; a band of
adventurous youths resolved to desert a land of slavery; the sea
was open to their escape; and, in their long pilgrimage, they
visited every coast that afforded any hope of liberty and
revenge. They were entertained in the service of the Greek
emperor; and their first station was in a new city on the Asiatic
shore: but Alexius soon recalled them to the defence of his
person and palace; and bequeathed to his successors the
inheritance of their faith and valor. The name of a Norman
invader revived the memory of their wrongs: they marched with
alacrity against the national foe, and panted to regain in Epirus
the glory which they had lost in the battle of Hastings. The
Varangians were supported by some companies of Franks or Latins;
and the rebels, who had fled to Constantinople from the tyranny
of Guiscard, were eager to signalize their zeal and gratify their
revenge. In this emergency, the emperor had not disdained the
impure aid of the Paulicians or Manichæans of Thrace and
Bulgaria; and these heretics united with the patience of
martyrdom the spirit and discipline of active valor. The treaty
with the sultan had procured a supply of some thousand Turks; and
the arrows of the Scythian horse were opposed to the lances of
the Norman cavalry. On the report and distant prospect of these
formidable numbers, Robert assembled a council of his principal
officers. "You behold," said he, "your danger: it is urgent and
inevitable. The hills are covered with arms and standards; and
the emperor of the Greeks is accustomed to wars and triumphs.
Obedience and union are our only safety; and I am ready to yield
the command to a more worthy leader." The vote and acclamation
even of his secret enemies, assured him, in that perilous moment,
of their esteem and confidence; and the duke thus continued: "Let
us trust in the rewards of victory, and deprive cowardice of the
means of escape. Let us burn our vessels and our baggage, and
give battle on this spot, as if it were the place of our nativity
and our burial." The resolution was unanimously approved; and,
without confining himself to his lines, Guiscard awaited in
battle-array the nearer approach of the enemy. His rear was
covered by a small river; his right wing extended to the sea; his
left to the hills: nor was he conscious, perhaps, that on the
same ground Cæsar and Pompey had formerly disputed the
empire of the world.
Against the advice of his wisest captains, Alexius resolved to
risk the event of a general action, and exhorted the garrison of
Durazzo to assist their own deliverance by a well-timed sally
from the town. He marched in two columns to surprise the Normans
before daybreak on two different sides: his light cavalry was
scattered over the plain; the archers formed the second line; and
the Varangians claimed the honors of the vanguard. In the first
onset, the battle-axes of the strangers made a deep and bloody
impression on the army of Guiscard, which was now reduced to
fifteen thousand men. The Lombards and Calabrians ignominiously
turned their backs; they fled towards the river and the sea; but
the bridge had been broken down to check the sally of the
garrison, and the coast was lined with the Venetian galleys, who
played their engines among the disorderly throng. On the verge of
ruin, they were saved by the spirit and conduct of their chiefs.
Gaita, the wife of Robert, is painted by the Greeks as a warlike
Amazon, a second Pallas; less skilful in arts, but not less
terrible in arms, than the Athenian goddess: though wounded by an
arrow, she stood her ground, and strove, by her exhortation and
example, to rally the flying troops. Her female voice was
seconded by the more powerful voice and arm of the Norman duke,
as calm in action as he was magnanimous in council: "Whither," he
cried aloud, "whither do ye fly? Your enemy is implacable; and
death is less grievous than servitude." The moment was decisive:
as the Varangians advanced before the line, they discovered the
nakedness of their flanks: the main battle of the duke, of eight
hundred knights, stood firm and entire; they couched their
lances, and the Greeks deplore the furious and irresistible shock
of the French cavalry. Alexius was not deficient in the duties of
a soldier or a general; but he no sooner beheld the slaughter of
the Varangians, and the flight of the Turks, than he despised his
subjects, and despaired of his fortune. The princess Anne, who
drops a tear on this melancholy event, is reduced to praise the
strength and swiftness of her father's horse, and his vigorous
struggle when he was almost overthrown by the stroke of a lance,
which had shivered the Imperial helmet. His desperate valor broke
through a squadron of Franks who opposed his flight; and after
wandering two days and as many nights in the mountains, he found
some repose, of body, though not of mind, in the walls of
Lychnidus. The victorious Robert reproached the tardy and feeble
pursuit which had suffered the escape of so illustrious a prize:
but he consoled his disappointment by the trophies and standards
of the field, the wealth and luxury of the Byzantine camp, and
the glory of defeating an army five times more numerous than his
own. A multitude of Italians had been the victims of their own
fears; but only thirty of his knights were slain in this
memorable day. In the Roman host, the loss of Greeks, Turks, and
English, amounted to five or six thousand: the plain of Durazzo
was stained with noble and royal blood; and the end of the
impostor Michael was more honorable than his life.
It is more than probable that Guiscard was not afflicted by
the loss of a costly pageant, which had merited only the contempt
and derision of the Greeks. After their defeat, they still
persevered in the defence of Durazzo; and a Venetian commander
supplied the place of George Palæologus, who had been
imprudently called away from his station. The tents of the
besiegers were converted into barracks, to sustain the inclemency
of the winter; and in answer to the defiance of the garrison,
Robert insinuated, that his patience was at least equal to their
obstinacy. Perhaps he already trusted to his secret
correspondence with a Venetian noble, who sold the city for a
rich and honorable marriage. At the dead of night, several
rope-ladders were dropped from the walls; the light Calabrians
ascended in silence; and the Greeks were awakened by the name and
trumpets of the conqueror. Yet they defended the streets three
days against an enemy already master of the rampart; and near
seven months elapsed between the first investment and the final
surrender of the place. From Durazzo, the Norman duke advanced
into the heart of Epirus or Albania; traversed the first
mountains of Thessaly; surprised three hundred English in the
city of Castoria; approached Thessalonica; and made
Constantinople tremble. A more pressing duty suspended the
prosecution of his ambitious designs. By shipwreck, pestilence,
and the sword, his army was reduced to a third of the original
numbers; and instead of being recruited from Italy, he was
informed, by plaintive epistles, of the mischiefs and dangers
which had been produced by his absence: the revolt of the cities
and barons of Apulia; the distress of the pope; and the approach
or invasion of Henry king of Germany. Highly presuming that his
person was sufficient for the public safety, he repassed the sea
in a single brigantine, and left the remains of the army under
the command of his son and the Norman counts, exhorting Bohemond
to respect the freedom of his peers, and the counts to obey the
authority of their leader. The son of Guiscard trod in the
footsteps of his father; and the two destroyers are compared, by
the Greeks, to the caterpillar and the locust, the last of whom
devours whatever has escaped the teeth of the former. After
winning two battles against the emperor, he descended into the
plain of Thessaly, and besieged Larissa, the fabulous realm of
Achilles, which contained the treasure and magazines of the
Byzantine camp. Yet a just praise must not be refused to the
fortitude and prudence of Alexius, who bravely struggled with the
calamities of the times. In the poverty of the state, he presumed
to borrow the superfluous ornaments of the churches: the
desertion of the Manichæans was supplied by some tribes of
Moldavia: a reënforcement of seven thousand Turks replaced
and revenged the loss of their brethren; and the Greek soldiers
were exercised to ride, to draw the bow, and to the daily
practice of ambuscades and evolutions. Alexius had been taught by
experience, that the formidable cavalry of the Franks on foot was
unfit for action, and almost incapable of motion; his archers
were directed to aim their arrows at the horse rather than the
man; and a variety of spikes and snares were scattered over the
ground on which he might expect an attack. In the neighborhood of
Larissa the events of war were protracted and balanced. The
courage of Bohemond was always conspicuous, and often successful;
but his camp was pillaged by a stratagem of the Greeks; the city
was impregnable; and the venal or discontented counts deserted
his standard, betrayed their trusts, and enlisted in the service
of the emperor. Alexius returned to Constantinople with the
advantage, rather than the honor, of victory. After evacuating
the conquests which he could no longer defend, the son of
Guiscard embarked for Italy, and was embraced by a father who
esteemed his merit, and sympathized in his misfortune.
Chapter LVI: The Saracens, The Franks And The
Normans. -- Part IV.
Of the Latin princes, the allies of Alexius and enemies of
Robert, the most prompt and powerful was Henry the Third or
Fourth, king of Germany and Italy, and future emperor of the
West. The epistle of the Greek monarch to his brother is filled
with the warmest professions of friendship, and the most lively
desire of strengthening their alliance by every public and
private tie. He congratulates Henry on his success in a just and
pious war; and complains that the prosperity of his own empire is
disturbed by the audacious enterprises of the Norman Robert. The
lists of his presents expresses the manners of the age -- a
radiated crown of gold, a cross set with pearls to hang on the
breast, a case of relics, with the names and titles of the
saints, a vase of crystal, a vase of sardonyx, some balm, most
probably of Mecca, and one hundred pieces of purple. To these he
added a more solid present, of one hundred and forty-four
thousand Byzantines of gold, with a further assurance of two
hundred and sixteen thousand, so soon as Henry should have
entered in arms the Apulian territories, and confirmed by an oath
the league against the common enemy. The German, who was already
in Lombardy at the head of an army and a faction, accepted these
liberal offers, and marched towards the south: his speed was
checked by the sound of the battle of Durazzo; but the influence
of his arms, or name, in the hasty return of Robert, was a full
equivalent for the Grecian bribe. Henry was the severe adversary
of the Normans, the allies and vassals of Gregory the Seventh,
his implacable foe. The long quarrel of the throne and mitre had
been recently kindled by the zeal and ambition of that haughty
priest: the king and the pope had degraded each other; and each
had seated a rival on the temporal or spiritual throne of his
antagonist. After the defeat and death of his Swabian rebel,
Henry descended into Italy, to assume the Imperial crown, and to
drive from the Vatican the tyrant of the church. But the Roman
people adhered to the cause of Gregory: their resolution was
fortified by supplies of men and money from Apulia; and the city
was thrice ineffectually besieged by the king of Germany. In the
fourth year he corrupted, as it is said, with Byzantine gold, the
nobles of Rome, whose estates and castles had been ruined by the
war. The gates, the bridges, and fifty hostages, were delivered
into his hands: the anti-pope, Clement the Third, was consecrated
in the Lateran: the grateful pontiff crowned his protector in the
Vatican; and the emperor Henry fixed his residence in the
Capitol, as the lawful successor of Augustus and Charlemagne. The
ruins of the Septizonium were still defended by the nephew of
Gregory: the pope himself was invested in the castle of St.
Angelo; and his last hope was in the courage and fidelity of his
Norman vassal. Their friendship had been interrupted by some
reciprocal injuries and complaints; but, on this pressing
occasion, Guiscard was urged by the obligation of his oath, by
his interest, more potent than oaths, by the love of fame, and
his enmity to the two emperors. Unfurling the holy banner, he
resolved to fly to the relief of the prince of the apostles: the
most numerous of his armies, six thousand horse, and thirty
thousand foot, was instantly assembled; and his march from
Salerno to Rome was animated by the public applause and the
promise of the divine favor. Henry, invincible in sixty-six
battles, trembled at his approach; recollected some indispensable
affairs that required his presence in Lombardy; exhorted the
Romans to persevere in their allegiance; and hastily retreated
three days before the entrance of the Normans. In less than three
years, the son of Tancred of Hauteville enjoyed the glory of
delivering the pope, and of compelling the two emperors, of the
East and West, to fly before his victorious arms. But the triumph
of Robert was clouded by the calamities of Rome. By the aid of
the friends of Gregory, the walls had been perforated or scaled;
but the Imperial faction was still powerful and active; on the
third day, the people rose in a furious tumult; and a hasty word
of the conqueror, in his defence or revenge, was the signal of
fire and pillage. The Saracens of Sicily, the subjects of Roger,
and auxiliaries of his brother, embraced this fair occasion of
rifling and profaning the holy city of the Christians: many
thousands of the citizens, in the sight, and by the allies, of
their spiritual father were exposed to violation, captivity, or
death; and a spacious quarter of the city, from the Lateran to
the Coliseum, was consumed by the flames, and devoted to
perpetual solitude. From a city, where he was now hated, and
might be no longer feared, Gregory retired to end his days in the
palace of Salerno. The artful pontiff might flatter the vanity of
Guiscard with the hope of a Roman or Imperial crown; but this
dangerous measure, which would have inflamed the ambition of the
Norman, must forever have alienated the most faithful princes of
Germany.
The deliverer and scourge of Rome might have indulged himself
in a season of repose; but in the same year of the flight of the
German emperor, the indefatigable Robert resumed the design of
his eastern conquests. The zeal or gratitude of Gregory had
promised to his valor the kingdoms of Greece and Asia; his troops
were assembled in arms, flushed with success, and eager for
action. Their numbers, in the language of Homer, are compared by
Anna to a swarm of bees; yet the utmost and moderate limits of
the powers of Guiscard have been already defined; they were
contained on this second occasion in one hundred and twenty
vessels; and as the season was far advanced, the harbor of
Brundusium was preferred to the open road of Otranto. Alexius,
apprehensive of a second attack, had assiduously labored to
restore the naval forces of the empire; and obtained from the
republic of Venice an important succor of thirty-six transports,
fourteen galleys, and nine galiots or ships of extra-ordinary
strength and magnitude. Their services were liberally paid by the
license or monopoly of trade, a profitable gift of many shops and
houses in the port of Constantinople, and a tribute to St. Mark,
the more acceptable, as it was the produce of a tax on their
rivals at Amalphi. By the union of the Greeks and Venetians, the
Adriatic was covered with a hostile fleet; but their own neglect,
or the vigilance of Robert, the change of a wind, or the shelter
of a mist, opened a free passage; and the Norman troops were
safely disembarked on the coast of Epirus. With twenty strong and
well-appointed galleys, their intrepid duke immediately sought
the enemy, and though more accustomed to fight on horseback, he
trusted his own life, and the lives of his brother and two sons,
to the event of a naval combat. The dominion of the sea was
disputed in three engagements, in sight of the Isle of Corfu: in
the two former, the skill and numbers of the allies were
superior; but in the third, the Normans obtained a final and
complete victory. The light brigantines of the Greeks were
scattered in ignominious flight: the nine castles of the
Venetians maintained a more obstinate conflict; seven were sunk,
two were taken; two thousand five hundred captives implored in
vain the mercy of the victor; and the daughter of Alexius
deplores the loss of thirteen thousand of his subjects or allies.
The want of experience had been supplied by the genius of
Guiscard; and each evening, when he had sounded a retreat, he
calmly explored the causes of his repulse, and invented new
methods how to remedy his own defects, and to baffle the
advantages of the enemy. The winter season suspended his
progress: with the return of spring he again aspired to the
conquest of Constantinople; but, instead of traversing the hills
of Epirus, he turned his arms against Greece and the islands,
where the spoils would repay the labor, and where the land and
sea forces might pursue their joint operations with vigor and
effect. But, in the Isle of Cephalonia, his projects were fatally
blasted by an epidemical disease: Robert himself, in the
seventieth year of his age, expired in his tent; and a suspicion
of poison was imputed, by public rumor, to his wife, or to the
Greek emperor. This premature death might allow a boundless scope
for the imagination of his future exploits; and the event
sufficiently declares, that the Norman greatness was founded on
his life. Without the appearance of an enemy, a victorious army
dispersed or retreated in disorder and consternation; and
Alexius, who had trembled for his empire, rejoiced in his
deliverance. The galley which transported the remains of Guiscard
was ship-wrecked on the Italian shore; but the duke's body was
recovered from the sea, and deposited in the sepulchre of
Venusia, a place more illustrious for the birth of Horace than
for the burial of the Norman heroes. Roger, his second son and
successor, immediately sunk to the humble station of a duke of
Apulia: the esteem or partiality of his father left the valiant
Bohemond to the inheritance of his sword. The national
tranquillity was disturbed by his claims, till the first crusade
against the infidels of the East opened a more splendid field of
glory and conquest.
Of human life, the most glorious or humble prospects are alike
and soon bounded by the sepulchre. The male line of Robert
Guiscard was extinguished, both in Apulia and at Antioch, in the
second generation; but his younger brother became the father of a
line of kings; and the son of the great count was endowed with
the name, the conquests, and the spirit, of the first Roger. The
heir of that Norman adventurer was born in Sicily; and, at the
age of only four years, he succeeded to the sovereignty of the
island, a lot which reason might envy, could she indulge for a
moment the visionary, though virtuous wish of dominion. Had Roger
been content with his fruitful patrimony, a happy and grateful
people might have blessed their benefactor; and if a wise
administration could have restored the prosperous times of the
Greek colonies, the opulence and power of Sicily alone might have
equalled the widest scope that could be acquired and desolated by
the sword of war. But the ambition of the great count was
ignorant of these noble pursuits; it was gratified by the vulgar
means of violence and artifice. He sought to obtain the undivided
possession of Palermo, of which one moiety had been ceded to the
elder branch; struggled to enlarge his Calabrian limits beyond
the measure of former treaties; and impatiently watched the
declining health of his cousin William of Apulia, the grandson of
Robert. On the first intelligence of his premature death, Roger
sailed from Palermo with seven galleys, cast anchor in the Bay of
Salerno, received, after ten days' negotiation, an oath of
fidelity from the Norman capital, commanded the submission of the
barons, and extorted a legal investiture from the reluctant
popes, who could not long endure either the friendship or enmity
of a powerful vassal. The sacred spot of Benevento was
respectfully spared, as the patrimony of St. Peter; but the
reduction of Capua and Naples completed the design of his uncle
Guiscard; and the sole inheritance of the Norman conquests was
possessed by the victorious Roger. A conscious superiority of
power and merit prompted him to disdain the titles of duke and of
count; and the Isle of Sicily, with a third perhaps of the
continent of Italy, might form the basis of a kingdom which would
only yield to the monarchies of France and England. The chiefs of
the nation who attended his coronation at Palermo might doubtless
pronounce under what name he should reign over them; but the
example of a Greek tyrant or a Saracen emir was insufficient to
justify his regal character; and the nine kings of the Latin
world might disclaim their new associate, unless he were
consecrated by the authority of the supreme pontiff. The pride of
Anacletus was pleased to confer a title, which the pride of the
Norman had stooped to solicit; but his own legitimacy was
attacked by the adverse election of Innocent the Second; and
while Anacletus sat in the Vatican, the successful fugitive was
acknowledged by the nations of Europe. The infant monarchy of
Roger was shaken, and almost overthrown, by the unlucky choice of
an ecclesiastical patron; and the sword of Lothaire the Second of
Germany, the excommunications of Innocent, the fleets of Pisa,
and the zeal of St. Bernard, were united for the ruin of the
Sicilian robber. After a gallant resistance, the Norman prince
was driven from the continent of Italy: a new duke of Apulia was
invested by the pope and the emperor, each of whom held one end
of the gonfanon, or flagstaff, as a
token that they asserted their right, and suspended their
quarrel. But such jealous friendship was of short and precarious
duration: the German armies soon vanished in disease and
desertion: the Apulian duke, with all his adherents, was
exterminated by a conqueror who seldom forgave either the dead or
the living; like his predecessor Leo the Ninth, the feeble though
haughty pontiff became the captive and friend of the Normans; and
their reconciliation was celebrated by the eloquence of Bernard,
who now revered the title and virtues of the king of Sicily.
As a penance for his impious war against the successor of St.
Peter, that monarch might have promised to display the banner of
the cross, and he accomplished with ardor a vow so propitious to
his interest and revenge. The recent injuries of Sicily might
provoke a just retaliation on the heads of the Saracens: the
Normans, whose blood had been mingled with so many subject
streams, were encouraged to remember and emulate the naval
trophies of their fathers, and in the maturity of their strength
they contended with the decline of an African power. When the
Fatimite caliph departed for the conquest of Egypt, he rewarded
the real merit and apparent fidelity of his servant Joseph with a
gift of his royal mantle, and forty Arabian horses, his palace
with its sumptuous furniture, and the government of the kingdoms
of Tunis and Algiers. The Zeirides, the descendants of Joseph,
forgot their allegiance and gratitude to a distant benefactor,
grasped and abused the fruits of prosperity; and after running
the little course of an Oriental dynasty, were now fainting in
their own weakness. On the side of the land, they were pressed by
the Almohades, the fanatic princes of Morocco, while the
sea-coast was open to the enterprises of the Greeks and Franks,
who, before the close of the eleventh century, had extorted a
ransom of two hundred thousand pieces of gold. By the first arms
of Roger, the island or rock of Malta, which has been since
ennobled by a military and religious colony, was inseparably
annexed to the crown of Sicily. Tripoli, a strong and maritime
city, was the next object of his attack; and the slaughter of the
males, the captivity of the females, might be justified by the
frequent practice of the Moslems themselves. The capital of the
Zeirides was named Africa from the country, and Mahadia from the
Arabian founder: it is strongly built on a neck of land, but the
imperfection of the harbor is not compensated by the fertility of
the adjacent plain. Mahadia was besieged by George the Sicilian
admiral, with a fleet of one hundred and fifty galleys, amply
provided with men and the instruments of mischief: the sovereign
had fled, the Moorish governor refused to capitulate, declined
the last and irresistible assault, and secretly escaping with the
Moslem inhabitants abandoned the place and its treasures to the
rapacious Franks. In successive expeditions, the king of Sicily
or his lieutenants reduced the cities of Tunis, Safax, Capsia,
Bona, and a long tract of the sea-coast; the fortresses were
garrisoned, the country was tributary, and a boast that it held
Africa in subjection might be inscribed with some flattery on the
sword of Roger. After his death, that sword was broken; and these
transmarine possessions were neglected, evacuated, or lost, under
the troubled reign of his successor. The triumphs of Scipio and
Belisarius have proved, that the African continent is neither
inaccessible nor invincible; yet the great princes and powers of
Christendom have repeatedly failed in their armaments against the
Moors, who may still glory in the easy conquest and long
servitude of Spain.
Since the decease of Robert Guiscard, the Normans had
relinquished, above sixty years, their hostile designs against
the empire of the East. The policy of Roger solicited a public
and private union with the Greek princes, whose alliance would
dignify his regal character: he demanded in marriage a daughter
of the Comnenian family, and the first steps of the treaty seemed
to promise a favorable event. But the contemptuous treatment of
his ambassadors exasperated the vanity of the new monarch; and
the insolence of the Byzantine court was expiated, according to
the laws of nations, by the sufferings of a guiltless people.
With the fleet of seventy galleys, George, the admiral of Sicily,
appeared before Corfu; and both the island and city were
delivered into his hands by the disaffected inhabitants, who had
yet to learn that a siege is still more calamitous than a
tribute. In this invasion, of some moment in the annals of
commerce, the Normans spread themselves by sea, and over the
provinces of Greece; and the venerable age of Athens, Thebes, and
Corinth, was violated by rapine and cruelty. Of the wrongs of
Athens, no memorial remains. The ancient walls, which
encompassed, without guarding, the opulence of Thebes, were
scaled by the Latin Christians; but their sole use of the gospel
was to sanctify an oath, that the lawful owners had not secreted
any relic of their inheritance or industry. On the approach of
the Normans, the lower town of Corinth was evacuated; the Greeks
retired to the citadel, which was seated on a lofty eminence,
abundantly watered by the classic fountain of Pirene; an
impregnable fortress, if the want of courage could be balanced by
any advantages of art or nature. As soon as the besiegers had
surmounted the labor (their sole labor) of climbing the hill,
their general, from the commanding eminence, admired his own
victory, and testified his gratitude to Heaven, by tearing from
the altar the precious image of Theodore, the tutelary saint. The
silk weavers of both sexes, whom George transported to Sicily,
composed the most valuable part of the spoil; and in comparing
the skilful industry of the mechanic with the sloth and cowardice
of the soldier, he was heard to exclaim that the distaff and loom
were the only weapons which the Greeks were capable of using. The
progress of this naval armament was marked by two conspicuous
events, the rescue of the king of France, and the insult of the
Byzantine capital. In his return by sea from an unfortunate
crusade, Louis the Seventh was intercepted by the Greeks, who
basely violated the laws of honor and religion. The fortunate
encounter of the Norman fleet delivered the royal captive; and
after a free and honorable entertainment in the court of Sicily,
Louis continued his journey to Rome and Paris. In the absence of
the emperor, Constantinople and the Hellespont were left without
defence and without the suspicion of danger. The clergy and
people (for the soldiers had followed the standard of Manuel)
were astonished and dismayed at the hostile appearance of a line
of galleys, which boldly cast anchor in the front of the Imperial
city. The forces of the Sicilian admiral were inadequate to the
siege or assault of an immense and populous metropolis; but
George enjoyed the glory of humbling the Greek arrogance, and of
marking the path of conquest to the navies of the West. He landed
some soldiers to rifle the fruits of the royal gardens, and
pointed with silver, or most probably with fire, the arrows which
he discharged against the palace of the Cæsars. This
playful outrage of the pirates of Sicily, who had surprised an
unguarded moment, Manuel affected to despise, while his martial
spirit, and the forces of the empire, were awakened to revenge.
The Archipelago and Ionian Sea were covered with his squadrons
and those of Venice; but I know not by what favorable allowance
of transports, victuallers, and pinnaces, our reason, or even our
fancy, can be reconciled to the stupendous account of fifteen
hundred vessels, which is proposed by a Byzantine historian.
These operations were directed with prudence and energy: in his
homeward voyage George lost nineteen of his galleys, which were
separated and taken: after an obstinate defence, Corfu implored
the clemency of her lawful sovereign; nor could a ship, a
soldier, of the Norman prince, be found, unless as a captive,
within the limits of the Eastern empire. The prosperity and the
health of Roger were already in a declining state: while he
listened in his palace of Palermo to the messengers of victory or
defeat, the invincible Manuel, the foremost in every assault, was
celebrated by the Greeks and Latins as the Alexander or the
Hercules of the age.
Chapter LVI: The Saracens, The Franks And The
Normans. -- Part V.
A prince of such a temper could not be satisfied with having
repelled the insolence of a Barbarian. It was the right and duty,
it might be the interest and glory, of Manuel to restore the
ancient majesty of the empire, to recover the provinces of Italy
and Sicily, and to chastise this pretended king, the grandson of
a Norman vassal. The natives of Calabria were still attached to
the Greek language and worship, which had been inexorably
proscribed by the Latin clergy: after the loss of her dukes,
Apulia was chained as a servile appendage to the crown of Sicily;
the founder of the monarchy had ruled by the sword; and his death
had abated the fear, without healing the discontent, of his
subjects: the feudal government was always pregnant with the
seeds of rebellion; and a nephew of Roger himself invited the
enemies of his family and nation. The majesty of the purple, and
a series of Hungarian and Turkish wars, prevented Manuel from
embarking his person in the Italian expedition. To the brave and
noble Palæologus, his lieutenant, the Greek monarch
intrusted a fleet and army: the siege of Bari was his first
exploit; and, in every operation, gold as well as steel was the
instrument of victory. Salerno, and some places along the western
coast, maintained their fidelity to the Norman king; but he lost
in two campaigns the greater part of his continental possessions;
and the modest emperor, disdaining all flattery and falsehood,
was content with the reduction of three hundred cities or
villages of Apulia and Calabria, whose names and titles were
inscribed on all the walls of the palace. The prejudices of the
Latins were gratified by a genuine or fictitious donation under
the seal of the German Cæsars; but the successor of
Constantine soon renounced this ignominious pretence, claimed the
indefeasible dominion of Italy, and professed his design of
chasing the Barbarians beyond the Alps. By the artful speeches,
liberal gifts, and unbounded promises, of their Eastern ally, the
free cities were encouraged to persevere in their generous
struggle against the despotism of Frederic Barbarossa: the walls
of Milan were rebuilt by the contributions of Manuel; and he
poured, says the historian, a river of gold into the bosom of
Ancona, whose attachment to the Greeks was fortified by the
jealous enmity of the Venetians. The situation and trade of
Ancona rendered it an important garrison in the heart of Italy:
it was twice besieged by the arms of Frederic; the imperial
forces were twice repulsed by the spirit of freedom; that spirit
was animated by the ambassador of Constantinople; and the most
intrepid patriots, the most faithful servants, were rewarded by
the wealth and honors of the Byzantine court. The pride of Manuel
disdained and rejected a Barbarian colleague; his ambition was
excited by the hope of stripping the purple from the German
usurpers, and of establishing, in the West, as in the East, his
lawful title of sole emperor of the Romans. With this view, he
solicited the alliance of the people and the bishop of Rome.
Several of the nobles embraced the cause of the Greek monarch;
the splendid nuptials of his niece with Odo Frangipani secured
the support of that powerful family, and his royal standard or
image was entertained with due reverence in the ancient
metropolis. During the quarrel between Frederic and Alexander the
Third, the pope twice received in the Vatican the ambassadors of
Constantinople. They flattered his piety by the long-promised
union of the two churches, tempted the avarice of his venal
court, and exhorted the Roman pontiff to seize the just
provocation, the favorable moment, to humble the savage insolence
of the Alemanni and to acknowledge the true representative of
Constantine and Augustus.
But these Italian conquests, this universal reign, soon
escaped from the hand of the Greek emperor. His first demands
were eluded by the prudence of Alexander the Third, who paused on
this deep and momentous revolution; nor could the pope be seduced
by a personal dispute to renounce the perpetual inheritance of
the Latin name. After the reunion with Frederic, he spoke a more
peremptory language, confirmed the acts of his predecessors,
excommunicated the adherents of Manuel, and pronounced the final
separation of the churches, or at least the empires, of
Constantinople and Rome. The free cities of Lombardy no longer
remembered their foreign benefactor, and without preserving the
friendship of Ancona, he soon incurred the enmity of Venice. By
his own avarice, or the complaints of his subjects, the Greek
emperor was provoked to arrest the persons, and confiscate the
effects, of the Venetian merchants. This violation of the public
faith exasperated a free and commercial people: one hundred
galleys were launched and armed in as many days; they swept the
coasts of Dalmatia and Greece: but after some mutual wounds, the
war was terminated by an agreement, inglorious to the empire,
insufficient for the republic; and a complete vengeance of these
and of fresh injuries was reserved for the succeeding generation.
The lieutenant of Manuel had informed his sovereign that he was
strong enough to quell any domestic revolt of Apulia and
Calabria; but that his forces were inadequate to resist the
impending attack of the king of Sicily. His prophecy was soon
verified: the death of Palæologus devolved the command on
several chiefs, alike eminent in rank, alike defective in
military talents; the Greeks were oppressed by land and sea; and
a captive remnant that escaped the swords of the Normans and
Saracens, abjured all future hostility against the person or
dominions of their conqueror. Yet the king of Sicily esteemed the
courage and constancy of Manuel, who had landed a second army on
the Italian shore; he respectfully addressed the new Justinian;
solicited a peace or truce of thirty years, accepted as a gift
the regal title; and acknowledged himself the military vassal of
the Roman empire. The Byzantine Cæsars acquiesced in this
shadow of dominion, without expecting, perhaps without desiring,
the service of a Norman army; and the truce of thirty years was
not disturbed by any hostilities between Sicily and
Constantinople. About the end of that period, the throne of
Manuel was usurped by an inhuman tyrant, who had deserved the
abhorrence of his country and mankind: the sword of William the
Second, the grandson of Roger, was drawn by a fugitive of the
Comnenian race; and the subjects of Andronicus might salute the
strangers as friends, since they detested their sovereign as the
worst of enemies. The Latin historians expatiate on the rapid
progress of the four counts who invaded Romania with a fleet and
army, and reduced many castles and cities to the obedience of the
king of Sicily. The Greeks accuse and magnify the wanton and
sacrilegious cruelties that were perpetrated in the sack of
Thessalonica, the second city of the empire. The former deplore
the fate of those invincible but unsuspecting warriors who were
destroyed by the arts of a vanquished foe. The latter applaud, in
songs of triumph, the repeated victories of their countrymen on
the Sea of Marmora or Propontis, on the banks of the Strymon, and
under the walls of Durazzo. A revolution which punished the
crimes of Andronicus, had united against the Franks the zeal and
courage of the successful insurgents: ten thousand were slain in
battle, and Isaac Angelus, the new emperor, might indulge his
vanity or vengeance in the treatment of four thousand captives.
Such was the event of the last contest between the Greeks and
Normans: before the expiration of twenty years, the rival nations
were lost or degraded in foreign servitude; and the successors of
Constantine did not long survive to insult the fall of the
Sicilian monarchy.
The sceptre of Roger successively devolved to his son and
grandson: they might be confounded under the name of William:
they are strongly discriminated by the epithets of the
bad and the
good; but these epithets, which appear
to describe the perfection of vice and virtue, cannot strictly be
applied to either of the Norman princes. When he was roused to
arms by danger and shame, the first William did not degenerate
from the valor of his race; but his temper was slothful; his
manners were dissolute; his passions headstrong and mischievous;
and the monarch is responsible, not only for his personal vices,
but for those of Majo, the great admiral, who abused the
confidence, and conspired against the life, of his benefactor.
From the Arabian conquest, Sicily had imbibed a deep tincture of
Oriental manners; the despotism, the pomp, and even the harem, of
a sultan; and a Christian people was oppressed and insulted by
the ascendant of the eunuchs, who openly professed, or secretly
cherished, the religion of Mahomet. An eloquent historian of the
times has delineated the misfortunes of his country: the ambition
and fall of the ungrateful Majo; the revolt and punishment of his
assassins; the imprisonment and deliverance of the king himself;
the private feuds that arose from the public confusion; and the
various forms of calamity and discord which afflicted Palermo,
the island, and the continent, during the reign of William the
First, and the minority of his son. The youth, innocence, and
beauty of William the Second, endeared him to the nation: the
factions were reconciled; the laws were revived; and from the
manhood to the premature death of that amiable prince, Sicily
enjoyed a short season of peace, justice, and happiness, whose
value was enhanced by the remembrance of the past and the dread
of futurity. The legitimate male posterity of Tancred of
Hauteville was extinct in the person of the second William; but
his aunt, the daughter of Roger, had married the most powerful
prince of the age; and Henry the Sixth, the son of Frederic
Barbarossa, descended from the Alps to claim the Imperial crown
and the inheritance of his wife. Against the unanimous wish of a
free people, this inheritance could only be acquired by arms; and
I am pleased to transcribe the style and sense of the historian
Falcandus, who writes at the moment, and on the spot, with the
feelings of a patriot, and the prophetic eye of a statesman.
"Constantia, the daughter of Sicily, nursed from her cradle in
the pleasures and plenty, and educated in the arts and manners,
of this fortunate isle, departed long since to enrich the
Barbarians with our treasures, and now returns, with her savage
allies, to contaminate the beauties of her venerable parent.
Already I behold the swarms of angry Barbarians: our opulent
cities, the places flourishing in a long peace, are shaken with
fear, desolated by slaughter, consumed by rapine, and polluted by
intemperance and lust. I see the massacre or captivity of our
citizens, the rapes of our virgins and matrons. In this extremity
(he interrogates a friend) how must the Sicilians act? By the
unanimous election of a king of valor and experience, Sicily and
Calabria might yet be preserved; for in the levity of the
Apulians, ever eager for new revolutions, I can repose neither
confidence nor hope. Should Calabria be lost, the lofty towers,
the numerous youth, and the naval strength, of Messina, might
guard the passage against a foreign invader. If the savage
Germans coalesce with the pirates of Messina; if they destroy
with fire the fruitful region, so often wasted by the fires of
Mount Ætna, what resource will be left for the interior
parts of the island, these noble cities which should never be
violated by the hostile footsteps of a Barbarian? Catana has
again been overwhelmed by an earthquake: the ancient virtue of
Syracuse expires in poverty and solitude; but Palermo is still
crowned with a diadem, and her triple walls enclose the active
multitudes of Christians and Saracens. If the two nations, under
one king, can unite for their common safety, they may rush on the
Barbarians with invincible arms. But if the Saracens, fatigued by
a repetition of injuries, should now retire and rebel; if they
should occupy the castles of the mountains and sea-coast, the
unfortunate Christians, exposed to a double attack, and placed as
it were between the hammer and the anvil, must resign themselves
to hopeless and inevitable servitude." We must not forget, that a
priest here prefers his country to his religion; and that the
Moslems, whose alliance he seeks, were still numerous and
powerful in the state of Sicily.
The hopes, or at least the wishes, of Falcandus were at first
gratified by the free and unanimous election of Tancred, the
grandson of the first king, whose birth was illegitimate, but
whose civil and military virtues shone without a blemish. During
four years, the term of his life and reign, he stood in arms on
the farthest verge of the Apulian frontier, against the powers of
Germany; and the restitution of a royal captive, of Constantia
herself, without injury or ransom, may appear to surpass the most
liberal measure of policy or reason. After his decease, the
kingdom of his widow and infant son fell without a struggle; and
Henry pursued his victorious march from Capua to Palermo. The
political balance of Italy was destroyed by his success; and if
the pope and the free cities had consulted their obvious and real
interest, they would have combined the powers of earth and heaven
to prevent the dangerous union of the German empire with the
kingdom of Sicily. But the subtle policy, for which the Vatican
has so often been praised or arraigned, was on this occasion
blind and inactive; and if it were true that Celestine the Third
had kicked away the Imperial crown from the head of the prostrate
Henry, such an act of impotent pride could serve only to cancel
an obligation and provoke an enemy. The Genoese, who enjoyed a
beneficial trade and establishment in Sicily, listened to the
promise of his boundless gratitude and speedy departure: their
fleet commanded the straits of Messina, and opened the harbor of
Palermo; and the first act of his government was to abolish the
privileges, and to seize the property, of these imprudent allies.
The last hope of Falcandus was defeated by the discord of the
Christians and Mahometans: they fought in the capital; several
thousands of the latter were slain; but their surviving brethren
fortified the mountains, and disturbed above thirty years the
peace of the island. By the policy of Frederic the Second, sixty
thousand Saracens were transplanted to Nocera in Apulia. In their
wars against the Roman church, the emperor and his son Mainfroy
were strengthened and disgraced by the service of the enemies of
Christ; and this national colony maintained their religion and
manners in the heart of Italy, till they were extirpated, at the
end of the thirteenth century, by the zeal and revenge of the
house of Anjou. All the calamities which the prophetic orator had
deplored were surpassed by the cruelty and avarice of the German
conqueror. He violated the royal sepulchres, * and explored the
secret treasures of the palace, Palermo, and the whole kingdom:
the pearls and jewels, however precious, might be easily removed;
but one hundred and sixty horses were laden with the gold and
silver of Sicily. The young king, his mother and sisters, and the
nobles of both sexes, were separately confined in the fortresses
of the Alps; and, on the slightest rumor of rebellion, the
captives were deprived of life, of their eyes, or of the hope of
posterity. Constantia herself was touched with sympathy for the
miseries of her country; and the heiress of the Norman line might
struggle to check her despotic husband, and to save the patrimony
of her new-born son, of an emperor so famous in the next age
under the name of Frederic the Second. Ten years after this
revolution, the French monarchs annexed to their crown the duchy
of Normandy: the sceptre of her ancient dukes had been
transmitted, by a granddaughter of William the Conqueror, to the
house of Plantagenet; and the adventurous Normans, who had raised
so many trophies in France, England, and Ireland, in Apulia,
Sicily, and the East, were lost, either in victory or servitude,
among the vanquished nations.
Chapter LVII: The Turks.
Part I.
The Turks Of The House Of Seljuk. -- Their Revolt Against
Mahmud Conqueror Of Hindostan. -- Togrul Subdues Persia, And
Protects The Caliphs. -- Defeat And Captivity Of The Emperor
Romanus Diogenes By Alp Arslan. -- Power And Magnificence Of
Malek Shah. -- Conquest Of Asia Minor And Syria. -- State And
Oppression Of Jerusalem. -- Pilgrimages To The Holy
Sepulchre.
From the Isle of Sicily, the reader must transport himself
beyond the Caspian Sea, to the original seat of the Turks or
Turkmans, against whom the first crusade was principally
directed. Their Scythian empire of the sixth century was long
since dissolved; but the name was still famous among the Greeks
and Orientals; and the fragments of the nation, each a powerful
and independent people, were scattered over the desert from China
to the Oxus and the Danube: the colony of Hungarians was admitted
into the republic of Europe, and the thrones of Asia were
occupied by slaves and soldiers of Turkish extraction. While
Apulia and Sicily were subdued by the Norman lance, a swarm of
these northern shepherds overspread the kingdoms of Persia; their
princes of the race of Seljuk erected a splendid and solid empire
from Samarcand to the confines of Greece and Egypt; and the Turks
have maintained their dominion in Asia Minor, till the victorious
crescent has been planted on the dome of St. Sophia.
One of the greatest of the Turkish princes was Mahmood or
Mahmud, the Gaznevide, who reigned in the eastern provinces of
Persia, one thousand years after the birth of Christ. His father
Sebectagi was the slave of the slave of the slave of the
commander of the faithful. But in this descent of servitude, the
first degree was merely titular, since it was filled by the
sovereign of Transoxiana and Chorasan, who still paid a nominal
allegiance to the caliph of Bagdad. The second rank was that of a
minister of state, a lieutenant of the Samanides, who broke, by
his revolt, the bonds of political slavery. But the third step
was a state of real and domestic servitude in the family of that
rebel; from which Sebectagi, by his courage and dexterity,
ascended to the supreme command of the city and provinces of
Gazna, as the son-in-law and successor of his grateful master.
The falling dynasty of the Samanides was at first protected, and
at last overthrown, by their servants; and, in the public
disorders, the fortune of Mahmud continually increased. From him
the title of Sultan was first invented;
and his kingdom was enlarged from Transoxiana to the neighborhood
of Ispahan, from the shores of the Caspian to the mouth of the
Indus. But the principal source of his fame and riches was the
holy war which he waged against the Gentoos of Hindostan. In this
foreign narrative I may not consume a page; and a volume would
scarcely suffice to recapitulate the battles and sieges of his
twelve expeditions. Never was the Mussulman hero dismayed by the
inclemency of the seasons, the height of the mountains, the
breadth of the rivers, the barrenness of the desert, the
multitudes of the enemy, or the formidable array of their
elephants of war. The sultan of Gazna surpassed the limits of the
conquests of Alexander: after a march of three months, over the
hills of Cashmir and Thibet, he reached the famous city of
Kinnoge, on the Upper Ganges; and, in a naval combat on one of
the branches of the Indus, he fought and vanquished four thousand
boats of the natives. Delhi, Lahor, and Multan, were compelled to
open their gates: the fertile kingdom of Guzarat attracted his
ambition and tempted his stay; and his avarice indulged the
fruitless project of discovering the golden and aromatic isles of
the Southern Ocean. On the payment of a tribute, the
rajahs preserved their dominions; the
people, their lives and fortunes; but to the religion of
Hindostan the zealous Mussulman was cruel and inexorable: many
hundred temples, or pagodas, were levelled with the ground; many
thousand idols were demolished; and the servants of the prophet
were stimulated and rewarded by the precious materials of which
they were composed. The pagoda of Sumnat was situate on the
promontory of Guzarat, in the neighborhood of Diu, one of the
last remaining possessions of the Portuguese. It was endowed with
the revenue of two thousand villages; two thousand Brahmins were
consecrated to the service of the Deity, whom they washed each
morning and evening in water from the distant Ganges: the
subordinate ministers consisted of three hundred musicians, three
hundred barbers, and five hundred dancing girls, conspicuous for
their birth or beauty. Three sides of the temple were protected
by the ocean, the narrow isthmus was fortified by a natural or
artificial precipice; and the city and adjacent country were
peopled by a nation of fanatics. They confessed the sins and the
punishment of Kinnoge and Delhi; but if the impious stranger
should presume to approach their holy
precincts, he would surely be overwhelmed by a blast of the
divine vengeance. By this challenge, the faith of Mahmud was
animated to a personal trial of the strength of this Indian
deity. Fifty thousand of his worshippers were pierced by the
spear of the Moslems; the walls were scaled; the sanctuary was
profaned; and the conqueror aimed a blow of his iron mace at the
head of the idol. The trembling Brahmins are said to have offered
ten millions * sterling for his ransom; and it was urged by the
wisest counsellors, that the destruction of a stone image would
not change the hearts of the Gentoos; and that such a sum might
be dedicated to the relief of the true believers. "Your reasons,"
replied the sultan, "are specious and strong; but never in the
eyes of posterity shall Mahmud appear as a merchant of idols." *
He repeated his blows, and a treasure of pearls and rubies,
concealed in the belly of the statue, explained in some degree
the devout prodigality of the Brahmins. The fragments of the idol
were distributed to Gazna, Mecca, and Medina. Bagdad listened to
the edifying tale; and Mahmud was saluted by the caliph with the
title of guardian of the fortune and faith of Mahomet.
From the paths of blood (and such is the history of nations) I
cannot refuse to turn aside to gather some flowers of science or
virtue. The name of Mahmud the Gaznevide is still venerable in
the East: his subjects enjoyed the blessings of prosperity and
peace; his vices were concealed by the veil of religion; and two
familiar examples will testify his justice and magnanimity. I. As
he sat in the Divan, an unhappy subject bowed before the throne
to accuse the insolence of a Turkish soldier who had driven him
from his house and bed. "Suspend your clamors," said Mahmud;
"inform me of his next visit, and ourself in person will judge
and punish the offender." The sultan followed his guide, invested
the house with his guards, and extinguishing the torches,
pronounced the death of the criminal, who had been seized in the
act of rapine and adultery. After the execution of his sentence,
the lights were rekindled, Mahmud fell prostrate in prayer, and
rising from the ground, demanded some homely fare, which he
devoured with the voraciousness of hunger. The poor man, whose
injury he had avenged, was unable to suppress his astonishment
and curiosity; and the courteous monarch condescended to explain
the motives of this singular behavior. "I had reason to suspect
that none, except one of my sons, could dare to perpetrate such
an outrage; and I extinguished the lights, that my justice might
be blind and inexorable. My prayer was a thanksgiving on the
discovery of the offender; and so painful was my anxiety, that I
had passed three days without food since the first moment of your
complaint." II. The sultan of Gazna had declared war against the
dynasty of the Bowides, the sovereigns of the western Persia: he
was disarmed by an epistle of the sultana mother, and delayed his
invasion till the manhood of her son. "During the life of my
husband," said the artful regent, "I was ever apprehensive of
your ambition: he was a prince and a soldier worthy of your arms.
He is now no more his sceptre has passed to a woman and a child,
and you dare not attack their infancy
and weakness. How inglorious would be your conquest, how shameful
your defeat! and yet the event of war is in the hand of the
Almighty." Avarice was the only defect that tarnished the
illustrious character of Mahmud; and never has that passion been
more richly satiated. * The Orientals exceed the measure of
credibility in the account of millions of gold and silver, such
as the avidity of man has never accumulated; in the magnitude of
pearls, diamonds, and rubies, such as have never been produced by
the workmanship of nature. Yet the soil of Hindostan is
impregnated with precious minerals: her trade, in every age, has
attracted the gold and silver of the world; and her virgin spoils
were rifled by the first of the Mahometan conquerors. His
behavior, in the last days of his life, evinces the vanity of
these possessions, so laboriously won, so dangerously held, and
so inevitably lost. He surveyed the vast and various chambers of
the treasury of Gazna, burst into tears, and again closed the
doors, without bestowing any portion of the wealth which he could
no longer hope to preserve. The following day he reviewed the
state of his military force; one hundred thousand foot,
fifty-five thousand horse, and thirteen hundred elephants of
battle. He again wept the instability of human greatness; and his
grief was imbittered by the hostile progress of the Turkmans,
whom he had introduced into the heart of his Persian kingdom.
In the modern depopulation of Asia, the regular operation of
government and agriculture is confined to the neighborhood of
cities; and the distant country is abandoned to the pastoral
tribes of Arabs, Curds, and Turkmans.
Of the last-mentioned people, two considerable branches extend on
either side of the Caspian Sea: the western colony can muster
forty thousand soldiers; the eastern, less obvious to the
traveller, but more strong and populous, has increased to the
number of one hundred thousand families. In the midst of
civilized nations, they preserve the manners of the Scythian
desert, remove their encampments with a change of seasons, and
feed their cattle among the ruins of palaces and temples. Their
flocks and herds are their only riches; their tents, either black
or white, according to the color of the banner, are covered with
felt, and of a circular form; their winter apparel is a
sheep-skin; a robe of cloth or cotton their summer garment: the
features of the men are harsh and ferocious; the countenance of
their women is soft and pleasing. Their wandering life maintains
the spirit and exercise of arms; they fight on horseback; and
their courage is displayed in frequent contests with each other
and with their neighbors. For the license of pasture they pay a
slight tribute to the sovereign of the land; but the domestic
jurisdiction is in the hands of the chiefs and elders. The first
emigration of the Eastern Turkmans, the most ancient of the race,
may be ascribed to the tenth century of the Christian æra.
In the decline of the caliphs, and the weakness of their
lieutenants, the barrier of the Jaxartes was often violated; in
each invasion, after the victory or retreat of their countrymen,
some wandering tribe, embracing the Mahometan faith, obtained a
free encampment in the spacious plains and pleasant climate of
Transoxiana and Carizme. The Turkish slaves who aspired to the
throne encouraged these emigrations which recruited their armies,
awed their subjects and rivals, and protected the frontier
against the wilder natives of Turkestan; and this policy was
abused by Mahmud the Gaznevide beyond the example of former
times. He was admonished of his error by the chief of the race of
Seljuk, who dwelt in the territory of Bochara. The sultan had
inquired what supply of men he could furnish for military
service. "If you send," replied Ismael, "one of these arrows into
our camp, fifty thousand of your servants will mount on
horseback." -- "And if that number," continued Mahmud, "should
not be sufficient?" -- "Send this second arrow to the horde of
Balik, and you will find fifty thousand more." -- "But," said the
Gaznevide, dissembling his anxiety, "if I should stand in need of
the whole force of your kindred tribes?" -- "Despatch my bow,"
was the last reply of Ismael, "and as it is circulated around,
the summons will be obeyed by two hundred thousand horse." The
apprehension of such formidable friendship induced Mahmud to
transport the most obnoxious tribes into the heart of Chorasan,
where they would be separated from their brethren of the River
Oxus, and enclosed on all sides by the walls of obedient cities.
But the face of the country was an object of temptation rather
than terror; and the vigor of government was relaxed by the
absence and death of the sultan of Gazna. The shepherds were
converted into robbers; the bands of robbers were collected into
an army of conquerors: as far as Ispahan and the Tigris, Persia
was afflicted by their predatory inroads; and the Turkmans were
not ashamed or afraid to measure their courage and numbers with
the proudest sovereigns of Asia. Massoud, the son and successor
of Mahmud, had too long neglected the advice of his wisest
Omrahs. "Your enemies," they repeatedly urged, "were in their
origin a swarm of ants; they are now little snakes; and, unless
they be instantly crushed, they will acquire the venom and
magnitude of serpents." After some alternatives of truce and
hostility, after the repulse or partial success of his
lieutenants, the sultan marched in person against the Turkmans,
who attacked him on all sides with barbarous shouts and irregular
onset. "Massoud," says the Persian historian, "plunged singly to
oppose the torrent of gleaming arms, exhibiting such acts of
gigantic force and valor as never king had before displayed. A
few of his friends, roused by his words and actions, and that
innate honor which inspires the brave, seconded their lord so
well, that wheresoever he turned his fatal sword, the enemies
were mowed down, or retreated before him. But now, when victory
seemed to blow on his standard, misfortune was active behind it;
for when he looked round, be beheld almost his whole army,
excepting that body he commanded in person, devouring the paths
of flight." The Gaznevide was abandoned by the cowardice or
treachery of some generals of Turkish race; and this memorable
day of Zendecan founded in Persia the dynasty of the shepherd
kings.
The victorious Turkmans immediately proceeded to the election
of a king; and, if the probable tale of a Latin historian
deserves any credit, they determined by lot the choice of their
new master. A number of arrows were successively inscribed with
the name of a tribe, a family, and a candidate; they were drawn
from the bundle by the hand of a child; and the important prize
was obtained by Togrul Beg, the son of Michael the son of Seljuk,
whose surname was immortalized in the greatness of his posterity.
The sultan Mahmud, who valued himself on his skill in national
genealogy, professed his ignorance of the family of Seljuk; yet
the father of that race appears to have been a chief of power and
renown. For a daring intrusion into the harem of his prince.
Seljuk was banished from Turkestan: with a numerous tribe of his
friends and vassals, he passed the Jaxartes, encamped in the
neighborhood of Samarcand, embraced the religion of Mahomet, and
acquired the crown of martyrdom in a war against the infidels.
His age, of a hundred and seven years, surpassed the life of his
son, and Seljuk adopted the care of his two grandsons, Togrul and
Jaafar; the eldest of whom, at the age of forty-five, was
invested with the title of Sultan, in the royal city of Nishabur.
The blind determination of chance was justified by the virtues of
the successful candidate. It would be superfluous to praise the
valor of a Turk; and the ambition of Togrul was equal to his
valor. By his arms, the Gasnevides were expelled from the eastern
kingdoms of Persia, and gradually driven to the banks of the
Indus, in search of a softer and more wealthy conquest. In the
West he annihilated the dynasty of the Bowides; and the sceptre
of Irak passed from the Persian to the Turkish nation. The
princes who had felt, or who feared, the Seljukian arrows, bowed
their heads in the dust; by the conquest of Aderbijan, or Media,
he approached the Roman confines; and the shepherd presumed to
despatch an ambassador, or herald, to demand the tribute and
obedience of the emperor of Constantinople. In his own dominions,
Togrul was the father of his soldiers and people; by a firm and
equal administration, Persia was relieved from the evils of
anarchy; and the same hands which had been imbrued in blood
became the guardians of justice and the public peace. The more
rustic, perhaps the wisest, portion of the Turkmans continued to
dwell in the tents of their ancestors; and, from the Oxus to the
Euphrates, these military colonies were protected and propagated
by their native princes. But the Turks of the court and city were
refined by business and softened by pleasure: they imitated the
dress, language, and manners of Persia; and the royal palaces of
Nishabur and Rei displayed the order and magnificence of a great
monarchy. The most deserving of the Arabians and Persians were
promoted to the honors of the state; and the whole body of the
Turkish nation embraced, with fervor and sincerity, the religion
of Mahomet. The northern swarms of Barbarians, who overspread
both Europe and Asia, have been irreconcilably separated by the
consequences of a similar conduct. Among the Moslems, as among
the Christians, their vague and local traditions have yielded to
the reason and authority of the prevailing system, to the fame of
antiquity, and the consent of nations. But the triumph of the
Koran is more pure and meritorious, as it was not assisted by any
visible splendor of worship which might allure the Pagans by some
resemblance of idolatry. The first of the Seljukian sultans was
conspicuous by his zeal and faith: each day he repeated the five
prayers which are enjoined to the true believers; of each week,
the two first days were consecrated by an extraordinary fast; and
in every city a mosch was completed, before Togrul presumed to
lay the foundations of a palace.
With the belief of the Koran, the son of Seljuk imbibed a
lively reverence for the successor of the prophet. But that
sublime character was still disputed by the caliphs of Bagdad and
Egypt, and each of the rivals was solicitous to prove his title
in the judgment of the strong, though illiterate Barbarians.
Mahmud the Gaznevide had declared himself in favor of the line of
Abbas; and had treated with indignity the robe of honor which was
presented by the Fatimite ambassador. Yet the ungrateful
Hashemite had changed with the change of fortune; he applauded
the victory of Zendecan, and named the Seljukian sultan his
temporal vicegerent over the Moslem world. As Togrul executed and
enlarged this important trust, he was called to the deliverance
of the caliph Cayem, and obeyed the holy summons, which gave a
new kingdom to his arms. In the palace of Bagdad, the commander
of the faithful still slumbered, a venerable phantom. His servant
or master, the prince of the Bowides, could no longer protect him
from the insolence of meaner tyrants; and the Euphrates and
Tigris were oppressed by the revolt of the Turkish and Arabian
emirs. The presence of a conqueror was implored as a blessing;
and the transient mischiefs of fire and sword were excused as the
sharp but salutary remedies which alone could restore the health
of the republic. At the head of an irresistible force, the sultan
of Persia marched from Hamadan: the proud were crushed, the
prostrate were spared; the prince of the Bowides disappeared; the
heads of the most obstinate rebels were laid at the feet of
Togrul; and he inflicted a lesson of obedience on the people of
Mosul and Bagdad. After the chastisement of the guilty, and the
restoration of peace, the royal shepherd accepted the reward of
his labors; and a solemn comedy represented the triumph of
religious prejudice over Barbarian power. The Turkish sultan
embarked on the Tigris, landed at the gate of Racca, and made his
public entry on horseback. At the palace-gate he respectfully
dismounted, and walked on foot, preceded by his emirs without
arms. The caliph was seated behind his black veil: the black
garment of the Abbassides was cast over his shoulders, and he
held in his hand the staff of the apostle of God. The conqueror
of the East kissed the ground, stood some time in a modest
posture, and was led towards the throne by the vizier and
interpreter. After Togrul had seated himself on another throne,
his commission was publicly read, which declared him the temporal
lieutenant of the vicar of the prophet. He was successively
invested with seven robes of honor, and presented with seven
slaves, the natives of the seven climates of the Arabian empire.
His mystic veil was perfumed with musk; two crowns * were placed
on his head; two cimeters were girded to his side, as the symbols
of a double reign over the East and West. After this
inauguration, the sultan was prevented from prostrating himself a
second time; but he twice kissed the hand of the commander of the
faithful, and his titles were proclaimed by the voice of heralds
and the applause of the Moslems. In a second visit to Bagdad, the
Seljukian prince again rescued the caliph from his enemies and
devoutly, on foot, led the bridle of his mule from the prison to
the palace. Their alliance was cemented by the marriage of
Togrul's sister with the successor of the prophet. Without
reluctance he had introduced a Turkish virgin into his harem; but
Cayem proudly refused his daughter to the sultan, disdained to
mingle the blood of the Hashemites with the blood of a Scythian
shepherd; and protracted the negotiation many months, till the
gradual diminution of his revenue admonished him that he was
still in the hands of a master. The royal nuptials were followed
by the death of Togrul himself; as he left no children, his
nephew Alp Arslan succeeded to the title and prerogatives of
sultan; and his name, after that of the caliph, was pronounced in
the public prayers of the Moslems. Yet in this revolution, the
Abbassides acquired a larger measure of liberty and power. On the
throne of Asia, the Turkish monarchs were less jealous of the
domestic administration of Bagdad; and the commanders of the
faithful were relieved from the ignominious vexations to which
they had been exposed by the presence and poverty of the Persian
dynasty.
Chapter LVII: The Turks. -- Part
II.
Since the fall of the caliphs, the discord and degeneracy of
the Saracens respected the Asiatic provinces of Rome; which, by
the victories of Nicephorus, Zimisces, and Basil, had been
extended as far as Antioch and the eastern boundaries of Armenia.
Twenty-five years after the death of Basil, his successors were
suddenly assaulted by an unknown race of Barbarians, who united
the Scythian valor with the fanaticism of new proselytes, and the
art and riches of a powerful monarchy. The myriads of Turkish
horse overspread a frontier of six hundred miles from Tauris to
Arzeroum, and the blood of one hundred and thirty thousand
Christians was a grateful sacrifice to the Arabian prophet. Yet
the arms of Togrul did not make any deep or lasting impression on
the Greek empire. The torrent rolled away from the open country;
the sultan retired without glory or success from the siege of an
Armenian city; the obscure hostilities were continued or
suspended with a vicissitude of events; and the bravery of the
Macedonian legions renewed the fame of the conqueror of Asia. The
name of Alp Arslan, the valiant lion, is expressive of the
popular idea of the perfection of man; and the successor of
Togrul displayed the fierceness and generosity of the royal
animal. He passed the Euphrates at the head of the Turkish
cavalry, and entered Cæsarea, the metropolis of Cappadocia,
to which he had been attracted by the fame and wealth of the
temple of St. Basil. The solid structure resisted the destroyer:
but he carried away the doors of the shrine incrusted with gold
and pearls, and profaned the relics of the tutelar saint, whose
mortal frailties were now covered by the venerable rust of
antiquity. The final conquest of Armenia and Georgia was achieved
by Alp Arslan. In Armenia, the title of a kingdom, and the spirit
of a nation, were annihilated: the artificial fortifications were
yielded by the mercenaries of Constantinople; by strangers
without faith, veterans without pay or arms, and recruits without
experience or discipline. The loss of this important frontier was
the news of a day; and the Catholics were neither surprised nor
displeased, that a people so deeply infected with the Nestorian
and Eutychian errors had been delivered by Christ and his mother
into the hands of the infidels. The woods and valleys of Mount
Caucasus were more strenuously defended by the native Georgians
or Iberians; but the Turkish sultan and his son Malek were
indefatigable in this holy war: their captives were compelled to
promise a spiritual, as well as temporal, obedience; and, instead
of their collars and bracelets, an iron horseshoe, a badge of
ignominy, was imposed on the infidels who still adhered to the
worship of their fathers. The change, however, was not sincere or
universal; and, through ages of servitude, the Georgians have
maintained the succession of their princes and bishops. But a
race of men, whom nature has cast in her most perfect mould, is
degraded by poverty, ignorance, and vice; their profession, and
still more their practice, of Christianity is an empty name; and
if they have emerged from heresy, it is only because they are too
illiterate to remember a metaphysical creed.
The false or genuine magnanimity of Mahmud the Gaznevide was
not imitated by Alp Arslan; and he attacked without scruple the
Greek empress Eudocia and her children. His alarming progress
compelled her to give herself and her sceptre to the hand of a
soldier; and Romanus Diogenes was invested with the Imperial
purple. His patriotism, and perhaps his pride, urged him from
Constantinople within two months after his accession; and the
next campaign he most scandalously took the field during the holy
festival of Easter. In the palace, Diogenes was no more than the
husband of Eudocia: in the camp, he was the emperor of the
Romans, and he sustained that character with feeble resources and
invincible courage. By his spirit and success the soldiers were
taught to act, the subjects to hope, and the enemies to fear. The
Turks had penetrated into the heart of Phrygia; but the sultan
himself had resigned to his emirs the prosecution of the war; and
their numerous detachments were scattered over Asia in the
security of conquest. Laden with spoil, and careless of
discipline, they were separately surprised and defeated by the
Greeks: the activity of the emperor seemed to multiply his
presence: and while they heard of his expedition to Antioch, the
enemy felt his sword on the hills of Trebizond. In three
laborious campaigns, the Turks were driven beyond the Euphrates;
in the fourth and last, Romanus undertook the deliverance of
Armenia. The desolation of the land obliged him to transport a
supply of two months' provisions; and he marched forwards to the
siege of Malazkerd, an important fortress in the midway between
the modern cities of Arzeroum and Van. His army amounted, at the
least, to one hundred thousand men. The troops of Constantinople
were reënforced by the disorderly multitudes of Phrygia and
Cappadocia; but the real strength was composed of the subjects
and allies of Europe, the legions of Macedonia, and the squadrons
of Bulgaria; the Uzi, a Moldavian horde, who were themselves of
the Turkish race; and, above all, the mercenary and adventurous
bands of French and Normans. Their lances were commanded by the
valiant Ursel of Baliol, the kinsman or father of the Scottish
kings, and were allowed to excel in the exercise of arms, or,
according to the Greek style, in the practice of the Pyrrhic
dance.
On the report of this bold invasion, which threatened his
hereditary dominions, Alp Arslan flew to the scene of action at
the head of forty thousand horse. His rapid and skilful
evolutions distressed and dismayed the superior numbers of the
Greeks; and in the defeat of Basilacius, one of their principal
generals, he displayed the first example of his valor and
clemency. The imprudence of the emperor had separated his forces
after the reduction of Malazkerd. It was in vain that he
attempted to recall the mercenary Franks: they refused to obey
his summons; he disdained to await their return: the desertion of
the Uzi filled his mind with anxiety and suspicion; and against
the most salutary advice he rushed forwards to speedy and
decisive action. Had he listened to the fair proposals of the
sultan, Romanus might have secured a retreat, perhaps a peace;
but in these overtures he supposed the fear or weakness of the
enemy, and his answer was conceived in the tone of insult and
defiance. "If the Barbarian wishes for peace, let him evacuate
the ground which he occupies for the encampment of the Romans,
and surrender his city and palace of Rei as a pledge of his
sincerity." Alp Arslan smiled at the vanity of the demand, but he
wept the death of so many faithful Moslems; and, after a devout
prayer, proclaimed a free permission to all who were desirous of
retiring from the field. With his own hands he tied up his
horse's tail, exchanged his bow and arrows for a mace and
cimeter, clothed himself in a white garment, perfumed his body
with musk, and declared that if he were vanquished, that spot
should be the place of his burial. The sultan himself had
affected to cast away his missile weapons: but his hopes of
victory were placed in the arrows of the Turkish cavalry, whose
squadrons were loosely distributed in the form of a crescent.
Instead of the successive lines and reserves of the Grecian
tactics, Romulus led his army in a single and solid phalanx, and
pressed with vigor and impatience the artful and yielding
resistance of the Barbarians. In this desultory and fruitless
combat he spent the greater part of a summer's day, till prudence
and fatigue compelled him to return to his camp. But a retreat is
always perilous in the face of an active foe; and no sooner had
the standard been turned to the rear than the phalanx was broken
by the base cowardice, or the baser jealousy, of Andronicus, a
rival prince, who disgraced his birth and the purple of the
Cæsars. The Turkish squadrons poured a cloud of arrows on
this moment of confusion and lassitude; and the horns of their
formidable crescent were closed in the rear of the Greeks. In the
destruction of the army and pillage of the camp, it would be
needless to mention the number of the slain or captives. The
Byzantine writers deplore the loss of an inestimable pearl: they
forgot to mention, that in this fatal day the Asiatic provinces
of Rome were irretrievably sacrificed.
As long as a hope survived, Romanus attempted to rally and
save the relics of his army. When the centre, the Imperial
station, was left naked on all sides, and encompassed by the
victorious Turks, he still, with desperate courage, maintained
the fight till the close of day, at the head of the brave and
faithful subjects who adhered to his standard. They fell around
him; his horse was slain; the emperor was wounded; yet he stood
alone and intrepid, till he was oppressed and bound by the
strength of multitudes. The glory of this illustrious prize was
disputed by a slave and a soldier; a slave who had seen him on
the throne of Constantinople, and a soldier whose extreme
deformity had been excused on the promise of some signal service.
Despoiled of his arms, his jewels, and his purple, Romanus spent
a dreary and perilous night on the field of battle, amidst a
disorderly crowd of the meaner Barbarians. In the morning the
royal captive was presented to Alp Arslan, who doubted of his
fortune, till the identity of the person was ascertained by the
report of his ambassadors, and by the more pathetic evidence of
Basilacius, who embraced with tears the feet of his unhappy
sovereign. The successor of Constantine, in a plebeian habit, was
led into the Turkish divan, and commanded to kiss the ground
before the lord of Asia. He reluctantly obeyed; and Alp Arslan,
starting from his throne, is said to have planted his foot on the
neck of the Roman emperor. But the fact is doubtful; and if, in
this moment of insolence, the sultan complied with the national
custom, the rest of his conduct has extorted the praise of his
bigoted foes, and may afford a lesson to the most civilized ages.
He instantly raised the royal captive from the ground; and thrice
clasping his hand with tender sympathy, assured him, that his
life and dignity should be inviolate in the hands of a prince who
had learned to respect the majesty of his equals and the
vicissitudes of fortune. From the divan, Romanus was conducted to
an adjacent tent, where he was served with pomp and reverence by
the officers of the sultan, who, twice each day, seated him in
the place of honor at his own table. In a free and familiar
conversation of eight days, not a word, not a look, of insult
escaped from the conqueror; but he severely censured the unworthy
subjects who had deserted their valiant prince in the hour of
danger, and gently admonished his antagonist of some errors which
he had committed in the management of the war. In the
preliminaries of negotiation, Alp Arslan asked him what treatment
he expected to receive, and the calm indifference of the emperor
displays the freedom of his mind. "If you are cruel," said he,
"you will take my life; if you listen to pride, you will drag me
at your chariot-wheels; if you consult your interest, you will
accept a ransom, and restore me to my country." "And what,"
continued the sultan, "would have been your own behavior, had
fortune smiled on your arms?" The reply of the Greek betrays a
sentiment, which prudence, and even gratitude, should have taught
him to suppress. "Had I vanquished," he fiercely said, "I would
have inflicted on thy body many a stripe." The Turkish conqueror
smiled at the insolence of his captive observed that the
Christian law inculcated the love of enemies and forgiveness of
injuries; and nobly declared, that he would not imitate an
example which he condemned. After mature deliberation, Alp Arslan
dictated the terms of liberty and peace, a ransom of a million, *
an annual tribute of three hundred and sixty thousand pieces of
gold, the marriage of the royal children, and the deliverance of
all the Moslems, who were in the power of the Greeks. Romanus,
with a sigh, subscribed this treaty, so disgraceful to the
majesty of the empire; he was immediately invested with a Turkish
robe of honor; his nobles and patricians were restored to their
sovereign; and the sultan, after a courteous embrace, dismissed
him with rich presents and a military guard. No sooner did he
reach the confines of the empire, than he was informed that the
palace and provinces had disclaimed their allegiance to a
captive: a sum of two hundred thousand pieces was painfully
collected; and the fallen monarch transmitted this part of his
ransom, with a sad confession of his impotence and disgrace. The
generosity, or perhaps the ambition, of the sultan, prepared to
espouse the cause of his ally; but his designs were prevented by
the defeat, imprisonment, and death, of Romanus Diogenes.
In the treaty of peace, it does not appear that Alp Arslan
extorted any province or city from the captive emperor; and his
revenge was satisfied with the trophies of his victory, and the
spoils of Anatolia, from Antioch to the Black Sea. The fairest
part of Asia was subject to his laws: twelve hundred princes, or
the sons of princes, stood before his throne; and two hundred
thousand soldiers marched under his banners. The sultan disdained
to pursue the fugitive Greeks; but he meditated the more glorious
conquest of Turkestan, the original seat of the house of Seljuk.
He moved from Bagdad to the banks of the Oxus; a bridge was
thrown over the river; and twenty days were consumed in the
passage of his troops. But the progress of the great king was
retarded by the governor of Berzem; and Joseph the Carizmian
presumed to defend his fortress against the powers of the East.
When he was produced a captive in the royal tent, the sultan,
instead of praising his valor, severely reproached his obstinate
folly: and the insolent replies of the rebel provoked a sentence,
that he should be fastened to four stakes, and left to expire in
that painful situation. At this command, the desperate Carizmian,
drawing a dagger, rushed headlong towards the throne: the guards
raised their battle-axes; their zeal was checked by Alp Arslan,
the most skilful archer of the age: he drew his bow, but his foot
slipped, the arrow glanced aside, and he received in his breast
the dagger of Joseph, who was instantly cut in pieces. The wound
was mortal; and the Turkish prince bequeathed a dying admonition
to the pride of kings. "In my youth," said Alp Arslan, "I was
advised by a sage to humble myself before God; to distrust my own
strength; and never to despise the most contemptible foe. I have
neglected these lessons; and my neglect has been deservedly
punished. Yesterday, as from an eminence I beheld the numbers,
the discipline, and the spirit, of my armies, the earth seemed to
tremble under my feet; and I said in my heart, Surely thou art
the king of the world, the greatest and most invincible of
warriors. These armies are no longer mine; and, in the confidence
of my personal strength, I now fall by the hand of an assassin."
Alp Arslan possessed the virtues of a Turk and a Mussulman; his
voice and stature commanded the reverence of mankind; his face
was shaded with long whiskers; and his ample turban was fashioned
in the shape of a crown. The remains of the sultan were deposited
in the tomb of the Seljukian dynasty; and the passenger might
read and meditate this useful inscription: "O ye who have seen
the glory of Alp Arslan exalted to the heavens, repair to Maru,
and you will behold it buried in the dust." The annihilation of
the inscription, and the tomb itself, more forcibly proclaims the
instability of human greatness.
During the life of Alp Arslan, his eldest son had been
acknowledged as the future sultan of the Turks. On his father's
death the inheritance was disputed by an uncle, a cousin, and a
brother: they drew their cimeters, and assembled their followers;
and the triple victory of Malek Shah established his own
reputation and the right of primogeniture. In every age, and more
especially in Asia, the thirst of power has inspired the same
passions, and occasioned the same disorders; but, from the long
series of civil war, it would not be easy to extract a sentiment
more pure and magnanimous than is contained in the saying of the
Turkish prince. On the eve of the battle, he performed his
devotions at Thous, before the tomb of the Imam Riza. As the
sultan rose from the ground, he asked his vizier Nizam, who had
knelt beside him, what had been the object of his secret
petition: "That your arms may be crowned with victory," was the
prudent, and most probably the sincere, answer of the minister.
"For my part," replied the generous Malek, "I implored the Lord
of Hosts that he would take from me my life and crown, if my
brother be more worthy than myself to reign over the Moslems."
The favorable judgment of heaven was ratified by the caliph; and
for the first time, the sacred title of Commander of the Faithful
was communicated to a Barbarian. But this Barbarian, by his
personal merit, and the extent of his empire, was the greatest
prince of his age. After the settlement of Persia and Syria, he
marched at the head of innumerable armies to achieve the conquest
of Turkestan, which had been undertaken by his father. In his
passage of the Oxus, the boatmen, who had been employed in
transporting some troops, complained, that their payment was
assigned on the revenues of Antioch. The sultan frowned at this
preposterous choice; but he smiled at the artful flattery of his
vizier. "It was not to postpone their reward, that I selected
those remote places, but to leave a memorial to posterity, that,
under your reign, Antioch and the Oxus were subject to the same
sovereign." But this description of his limits was unjust and
parsimonious: beyond the Oxus, he reduced to his obedience the
cities of Bochara, Carizme, and Samarcand, and crushed each
rebellious slave, or independent savage, who dared to resist.
Malek passed the Sihon or Jaxartes, the last boundary of Persian
civilization: the hordes of Turkestan yielded to his supremacy:
his name was inserted on the coins, and in the prayers of
Cashgar, a Tartar kingdom on the extreme borders of China. From
the Chinese frontier, he stretched his immediate jurisdiction or
feudatory sway to the west and south, as far as the mountains of
Georgia, the neighborhood of Constantinople, the holy city of
Jerusalem, and the spicy groves of Arabia Felix. Instead of
resigning himself to the luxury of his harem, the shepherd king,
both in peace and war, was in action and in the field. By the
perpetual motion of the royal camp, each province was
successively blessed with his presence; and he is said to have
perambulated twelve times the wide extent of his dominions, which
surpassed the Asiatic reign of Cyrus
and the caliphs. Of these expeditions, the most pious and
splendid was the pilgrimage of Mecca: the freedom and safety of
the caravans were protected by his arms; the citizens and
pilgrims were enriched by the profusion of his alms; and the
desert was cheered by the places of relief and refreshment, which
he instituted for the use of his brethren. Hunting was the
pleasure, and even the passion, of the sultan, and his train
consisted of forty-seven thousand horses; but after the massacre
of a Turkish chase, for each piece of game, he bestowed a piece
of gold on the poor, a slight atonement, at the expense of the
people, for the cost and mischief of the amusement of kings. In
the peaceful prosperity of his reign, the cities of Asia were
adorned with palaces and hospitals with moschs and colleges; few
departed from his Divan without reward, and none without justice.
The language and literature of Persia revived under the house of
Seljuk; and if Malek emulated the liberality of a Turk less
potent than himself, his palace might resound with the songs of a
hundred poets. The sultan bestowed a more serious and learned
care on the reformation of the calendar, which was effected by a
general assembly of the astronomers of the East. By a law of the
prophet, the Moslems are confined to the irregular course of the
lunar months; in Persia, since the age of Zoroaster, the
revolution of the sun has been known and celebrated as an annual
festival; but after the fall of the Magian empire, the
intercalation had been neglected; the fractions of minutes and
hours were multiplied into days; and the date of the springs was
removed from the sign of Aries to that of Pisces. The reign of
Malek was illustrated by the Gelalan
æra; and all errors, either past or future, were corrected
by a computation of time, which surpasses the Julian, and
approaches the accuracy of the Gregorian, style.
In a period when Europe was plunged in the deepest barbarism,
the light and splendor of Asia may be ascribed to the docility
rather than the knowledge of the Turkish conquerors. An ample
share of their wisdom and virtue is due to a Persian vizier, who
ruled the empire under the reigns of Alp Arslan and his son.
Nizam, one of the most illustrious ministers of the East, was
honored by the caliph as an oracle of religion and science; he
was trusted by the sultan as the faithful vicegerent of his power
and justice. After an administration of thirty years, the fame of
the vizier, his wealth, and even his services, were transformed
into crimes. He was overthrown by the insidious arts of a woman
and a rival; and his fall was hastened by a rash declaration,
that his cap and ink-horn, the badges of his office, were
connected by the divine decree with the throne and diadem of the
sultan. At the age of ninety-three years, the venerable statesman
was dismissed by his master, accused by his enemies, and murdered
by a fanatic: * the last words of Nizam attested his innocence,
and the remainder of Malek's life was short and inglorious. From
Ispahan, the scene of this disgraceful transaction, the sultan
moved to Bagdad, with the design of transplanting the caliph, and
of fixing his own residence in the capital of the Moslem world.
The feeble successor of Mahomet obtained a respite of ten days;
and before the expiration of the term, the Barbarian was summoned
by the angel of death. His ambassadors at Constantinople had
asked in marriage a Roman princess; but the proposal was decently
eluded; and the daughter of Alexius, who might herself have been
the victim, expresses her abhorrence of his unnatural
conjunction. The daughter of the sultan was bestowed on the
caliph Moctadi, with the imperious condition, that, renouncing
the society of his wives and concubines, he should forever
confine himself to this honorable alliance.
Chapter LVII: The Turks. -- Part
III.
The greatness and unity of the Turkish empire expired in the
person of Malek Shah. His vacant throne was disputed by his
brother and his four sons; and, after a series of civil wars, the
treaty which reconciled the surviving candidates confirmed a
lasting separation in the Persian
dynasty, the eldest and principal branch of the house of Seljuk.
The three younger dynasties were those of
Kerman, of
Syria, and of
Roum: the first of these commanded an
extensive, though obscure, dominion on the shores of the Indian
Ocean: the second expelled the Arabian princes of Aleppo and
Damascus; and the third, our peculiar care, invaded the Roman
provinces of Asia Minor. The generous policy of Malek contributed
to their elevation: he allowed the princes of his blood, even
those whom he had vanquished in the field, to seek new kingdoms
worthy of their ambition; nor was he displeased that they should
draw away the more ardent spirits, who might have disturbed the
tranquillity of his reign. As the supreme head of his family and
nation, the great sultan of Persia commanded the obedience and
tribute of his royal brethren: the thrones of Kerman and Nice, of
Aleppo and Damascus; the Atabeks, and emirs of Syria and
Mesopotamia, erected their standards under the shadow of his
sceptre: and the hordes of Turkmans overspread the plains of the
Western Asia. After the death of Malek, the bands of union and
subordination were relaxed and finally dissolved: the indulgence
of the house of Seljuk invested their slaves with the inheritance
of kingdoms; and, in the Oriental style, a crowd of princes arose
from the dust of their feet.
A prince of the royal line, Cutulmish, * the son of Izrail,
the son of Seljuk, had fallen in a battle against Alp Arslan and
the humane victor had dropped a tear over his grave. His five
sons, strong in arms, ambitious of power, and eager for revenge,
unsheathed their cimeters against the son of Alp Arslan. The two
armies expected the signal when the caliph, forgetful of the
majesty which secluded him from vulgar eyes, interposed his
venerable mediation. "Instead of shedding the blood of your
brethren, your brethren both in descent and faith, unite your
forces in a holy war against the Greeks, the enemies of God and
his apostle." They listened to his voice; the sultan embraced his
rebellious kinsmen; and the eldest, the valiant Soliman, accepted
the royal standard, which gave him the free conquest and
hereditary command of the provinces of the Roman empire, from
Arzeroum to Constantinople, and the unknown regions of the West.
Accompanied by his four brothers, he passed the Euphrates; the
Turkish camp was soon seated in the neighborhood of Kutaieh in
Phrygia; and his flying cavalry laid waste the country as far as
the Hellespont and the Black Sea. Since the decline of the
empire, the peninsula of Asia Minor had been exposed to the
transient, though destructive, inroads of the Persians and
Saracens; but the fruits of a lasting conquest were reserved for
the Turkish sultan; and his arms were introduced by the Greeks,
who aspired to reign on the ruins of their country. Since the
captivity of Romanus, six years the feeble son of Eudocia had
trembled under the weight of the Imperial crown, till the
provinces of the East and West were lost in the same month by a
double rebellion: of either chief Nicephorus was the common name;
but the surnames of Bryennius and Botoniates distinguish the
European and Asiatic candidates. Their reasons, or rather their
promises, were weighed in the Divan; and, after some hesitation,
Soliman declared himself in favor of Botoniates, opened a free
passage to his troops in their march from Antioch to Nice, and
joined the banner of the Crescent to that of the Cross. After his
ally had ascended the throne of Constantinople, the sultan was
hospitably entertained in the suburb of Chrysopolis or Scutari;
and a body of two thousand Turks was transported into Europe, to
whose dexterity and courage the new emperor was indebted for the
defeat and captivity of his rival, Bryennius. But the conquest of
Europe was dearly purchased by the sacrifice of Asia:
Constantinople was deprived of the obedience and revenue of the
provinces beyond the Bosphorus and Hellespont; and the regular
progress of the Turks, who fortified the passes of the rivers and
mountains, left not a hope of their retreat or expulsion. Another
candidate implored the aid of the sultan: Melissenus, in his
purple robes and red buskins, attended the motions of the Turkish
camp; and the desponding cities were tempted by the summons of a
Roman prince, who immediately surrendered them into the hands of
the Barbarians. These acquisitions were confirmed by a treaty of
peace with the emperor Alexius: his fear of Robert compelled him
to seek the friendship of Soliman; and it was not till after the
sultan's death that he extended as far as Nicomedia, about sixty
miles from Constantinople, the eastern boundary of the Roman
world. Trebizond alone, defended on either side by the sea and
mountains, preserved at the extremity of the Euxine the ancient
character of a Greek colony, and the future destiny of a
Christian empire.
Since the first conquests of the caliphs, the establishment of
the Turks in Anatolia or Asia Minor was the most deplorable loss
which the church and empire had sustained. By the propagation of
the Moslem faith, Soliman deserved the name of
Gazi, a holy champion; and his new
kingdoms, of the Romans, or of Roum,
was added to the tables of Oriental geography. It is described as
extending from the Euphrates to Constantinople, from the Black
Sea to the confines of Syria; pregnant with mines of silver and
iron, of alum and copper, fruitful in corn and wine, and
productive of cattle and excellent horses. The wealth of Lydia,
the arts of the Greeks, the splendor of the Augustan age, existed
only in books and ruins, which were equally obscure in the eyes
of the Scythian conquerors. Yet, in the present decay, Anatolia
still contains some wealthy and
populous cities; and, under the Byzantine empire, they were far
more flourishing in numbers, size, and opulence. By the choice of
the sultan, Nice, the metropolis of Bithynia, was preferred for
his palace and fortress: the seat of the Seljukian dynasty of
Roum was planted one hundred miles from Constantinople; and the
divinity of Christ was denied and derided in the same temple in
which it had been pronounced by the first general synod of the
Catholics. The unity of God, and the mission of Mahomet, were
preached in the moschs; the Arabian learning was taught in the
schools; the Cadhis judged according to the law of the Koran; the
Turkish manners and language prevailed in the cities; and Turkman
camps were scattered over the plains and mountains of Anatolia.
On the hard conditions of tribute and servitude, the Greek
Christians might enjoy the exercise of their religion; but their
most holy churches were profaned; their priests and bishops were
insulted; they were compelled to suffer the triumph of the
Pagans, and the apostasy of their
brethren; many thousand children were marked by the knife of
circumcision; and many thousand captives were devoted to the
service or the pleasures of their masters. After the loss of
Asia, Antioch still maintained her primitive allegiance to Christ
and Cæsar; but the solitary province was separated from all
Roman aid, and surrounded on all sides by the Mahometan powers.
The despair of Philaretus the governor prepared the sacrifice of
his religion and loyalty, had not his guilt been prevented by his
son, who hastened to the Nicene palace, and offered to deliver
this valuable prize into the hands of Soliman. The ambitious
sultan mounted on horseback, and in twelve nights (for he reposed
in the day) performed a march of six hundred miles. Antioch was
oppressed by the speed and secrecy of his enterprise; and the
dependent cities, as far as Laodicea and the confines of Aleppo,
obeyed the example of the metropolis. From Laodicea to the
Thracian Bosphorus, or arm of St. George, the conquests and reign
of Soliman extended thirty days' journey in length, and in
breadth about ten or fifteen, between the rocks of Lycia and the
Black Sea. The Turkish ignorance of navigation protected, for a
while, the inglorious safety of the emperor; but no sooner had a
fleet of two hundred ships been constructed by the hands of the
captive Greeks, than Alexius trembled behind the walls of his
capital. His plaintive epistles were dispersed over Europe, to
excite the compassion of the Latins, and to paint the danger, the
weakness, and the riches of the city of Constantine.
But the most interesting conquest of the Seljukian Turks was
that of Jerusalem, which soon became the theatre of nations. In
their capitulation with Omar, the inhabitants had stipulated the
assurance of their religion and property; but the articles were
interpreted by a master against whom it was dangerous to dispute;
and in the four hundred years of the reign of the caliphs, the
political climate of Jerusalem was exposed to the vicissitudes of
storm and sunshine. By the increase of proselytes and population,
the Mahometans might excuse the usurpation of three fourths of
the city: but a peculiar quarter was resolved for the patriarch
with his clergy and people; a tribute of two pieces of gold was
the price of protection; and the sepulchre of Christ, with the
church of the Resurrection, was still left in the hands of his
votaries. Of these votaries, the most numerous and respectable
portion were strangers to Jerusalem: the pilgrimages to the Holy
Land had been stimulated, rather than suppressed, by the conquest
of the Arabs; and the enthusiasm which had always prompted these
perilous journeys, was nourished by the congenial passions of
grief and indignation. A crowd of pilgrims from the East and West
continued to visit the holy sepulchre, and the adjacent
sanctuaries, more especially at the festival of Easter; and the
Greeks and Latins, the Nestorians and Jacobites, the Copts and
Abyssinians, the Armenians and Georgians, maintained the chapels,
the clergy, and the poor of their respective communions. The
harmony of prayer in so many various tongues, the worship of so
many nations in the common temple of their religion, might have
afforded a spectacle of edification and peace; but the zeal of
the Christian sects was imbittered by hatred and revenge; and in
the kingdom of a suffering Messiah, who had pardoned his enemies,
they aspired to command and persecute their spiritual brethren.
The preëminence was asserted by the spirit and numbers of
the Franks; and the greatness of Charlemagne protected both the
Latin pilgrims and the Catholics of the East. The poverty of
Carthage, Alexandria, and Jerusalem, was relieved by the alms of
that pious emperor; and many monasteries of Palestine were
founded or restored by his liberal devotion. Harun Alrashid, the
greatest of the Abbassides, esteemed in his Christian brother a
similar supremacy of genius and power: their friendship was
cemented by a frequent intercourse of gifts and embassies; and
the caliph, without resigning the substantial dominion, presented
the emperor with the keys of the holy sepulchre, and perhaps of
the city of Jerusalem. In the decline of the Carlovingian
monarchy, the republic of Amalphi promoted the interest of trade
and religion in the East. Her vessels transported the Latin
pilgrims to the coasts of Egypt and Palestine, and deserved, by
their useful imports, the favor and alliance of the Fatimite
caliphs: an annual fair was instituted on Mount Calvary: and the
Italian merchants founded the convent and hospital of St. John of
Jerusalem, the cradle of the monastic and military order, which
has since reigned in the isles of Rhodes and of Malta. Had the
Christian pilgrims been content to revere the tomb of a prophet,
the disciples of Mahomet, instead of blaming, would have
imitated, their piety: but these rigid
Unitarians were scandalized by a
worship which represents the birth, death, and resurrection, of a
God; the Catholic images were branded with the name of idols; and
the Moslems smiled with indignation at the miraculous flame which
was kindled on the eve of Easter in the holy sepulchre. This
pious fraud, first devised in the ninth century, was devoutly
cherished by the Latin crusaders, and is annually repeated by the
clergy of the Greek, Armenian, and Coptic sects, who impose on
the credulous spectators for their own benefit, and that of their
tyrants. In every age, a principle of toleration has been
fortified by a sense of interest: and the revenue of the prince
and his emir was increased each year, by the expense and tribute
of so many thousand strangers.
The revolution which transferred the sceptre from the
Abbassides to the Fatimites was a benefit, rather than an injury,
to the Holy Land. A sovereign resident in Egypt was more sensible
of the importance of Christian trade; and the emirs of Palestine
were less remote from the justice and power of the throne. But
the third of these Fatimite caliphs was the famous Hakem, a
frantic youth, who was delivered by his impiety and despotism
from the fear either of God or man; and whose reign was a wild
mixture of vice and folly. Regardless of the most ancient customs
of Egypt, he imposed on the women an absolute confinement; the
restraint excited the clamors of both sexes; their clamors
provoked his fury; a part of Old Cairo was delivered to the
flames and the guards and citizens were engaged many days in a
bloody conflict. At first the caliph declared himself a zealous
Mussulman, the founder or benefactor of moschs and colleges:
twelve hundred and ninety copies of the Koran were transcribed at
his expense in letters of gold; and his edict extirpated the
vineyards of the Upper Egypt. But his vanity was soon flattered
by the hope of introducing a new religion; he aspired above the
fame of a prophet, and styled himself the visible image of the
Most High God, who, after nine apparitions on earth, was at
length manifest in his royal person. At the name of Hakem, the
lord of the living and the dead, every knee was bent in religious
adoration: his mysteries were performed on a mountain near Cairo:
sixteen thousand converts had signed his profession of faith; and
at the present hour, a free and warlike people, the Druses of
Mount Libanus, are persuaded of the life and divinity of a madman
and tyrant. In his divine character, Hakem hated the Jews and
Christians, as the servants of his rivals; while some remains of
prejudice or prudence still pleaded in favor of the law of
Mahomet. Both in Egypt and Palestine, his cruel and wanton
persecution made some martyrs and many apostles: the common
rights and special privileges of the sectaries were equally
disregarded; and a general interdict was laid on the devotion of
strangers and natives. The temple of the Christian world, the
church of the Resurrection, was demolished to its foundations;
the luminous prodigy of Easter was interrupted, and much profane
labor was exhausted to destroy the cave in the rock which
properly constitutes the holy sepulchre. At the report of this
sacrilege, the nations of Europe were astonished and afflicted:
but instead of arming in the defence of the Holy Land, they
contented themselves with burning, or banishing, the Jews, as the
secret advisers of the impious Barbarian. Yet the calamities of
Jerusalem were in some measure alleviated by the inconstancy or
repentance of Hakem himself; and the royal mandate was sealed for
the restitution of the churches, when the tyrant was assassinated
by the emissaries of his sister. The succeeding caliphs resumed
the maxims of religion and policy: a free toleration was again
granted; with the pious aid of the emperor of Constantinople, the
holy sepulchre arose from its ruins; and, after a short
abstinence, the pilgrims returned with an increase of appetite to
the spiritual feast. In the sea-voyage of Palestine, the dangers
were frequent, and the opportunities rare: but the conversion of
Hungary opened a safe communication between Germany and Greece.
The charity of St. Stephen, the apostle of his kingdom, relieved
and conducted his itinerant brethren; and from Belgrade to
Antioch, they traversed fifteen hundred miles of a Christian
empire. Among the Franks, the zeal of pilgrimage prevailed beyond
the example of former times: and the roads were covered with
multitudes of either sex, and of every rank, who professed their
contempt of life, so soon as they should have kissed the tomb of
their Redeemer. Princes and prelates abandoned the care of their
dominions; and the numbers of these pious caravans were a prelude
to the armies which marched in the ensuing age under the banner
of the cross. About thirty years before the first crusade, the
arch bishop of Mentz, with the bishops of Utrecht, Bamberg, and
Ratisbon, undertook this laborious journey from the Rhine to the
Jordan; and the multitude of their followers amounted to seven
thousand persons. At Constantinople, they were hospitably
entertained by the emperor; but the ostentation of their wealth
provoked the assault of the wild Arabs: they drew their swords
with scrupulous reluctance, and sustained siege in the village of
Capernaum, till they were rescued by the venal protection of the
Fatimite emir. After visiting the holy places, they embarked for
Italy, but only a remnant of two thousand arrived in safety in
their native land. Ingulphus, a secretary of William the
Conqueror, was a companion of this pilgrimage: he observes that
they sailed from Normandy, thirty stout and well-appointed
horsemen; but that they repassed the Alps, twenty miserable
palmers, with the staff in their hand, and the wallet at their
back.
After the defeat of the Romans, the tranquillity of the
Fatimite caliphs was invaded by the Turks. One of the lieutenants
of Malek Shah, Atsiz the Carizmian, marched into Syria at the
head of a powerful army, and reduced Damascus by famine and the
sword. Hems, and the other cities of the province, acknowledged
the caliph of Bagdad and the sultan of Persia; and the victorious
emir advanced without resistance to the banks of the Nile: the
Fatimite was preparing to fly into the heart of Africa; but the
negroes of his guard and the inhabitants of Cairo made a
desperate sally, and repulsed the Turk from the confines of
Egypt. In his retreat he indulged the license of slaughter and
rapine: the judge and notaries of Jerusalem were invited to his
camp; and their execution was followed by the massacre of three
thousand citizens. The cruelty or the defeat of Atsiz was soon
punished by the sultan Toucush, the brother of Malek Shah, who,
with a higher title and more formidable powers, asserted the
dominion of Syria and Palestine. The house of Seljuk reigned
about twenty years in Jerusalem; but the hereditary command of
the holy city and territory was intrusted or abandoned to the
emir Ortok, the chief of a tribe of Turkmans, whose children,
after their expulsion from Palestine, formed two dynasties on the
borders of Armenia and Assyria. The Oriental Christians and the
Latin pilgrims deplored a revolution, which, instead of the
regular government and old alliance of the caliphs, imposed on
their necks the iron yoke of the strangers of the North. In his
court and camp the great sultan had adopted in some degree the
arts and manners of Persia; but the body of the Turkish nation,
and more especially the pastoral tribes, still breathed the
fierceness of the desert. From Nice to Jerusalem, the western
countries of Asia were a scene of foreign and domestic hostility;
and the shepherds of Palestine, who held a precarious sway on a
doubtful frontier, had neither leisure nor capacity to await the
slow profits of commercial and religious freedom. The pilgrims,
who, through innumerable perils, had reached the gates of
Jerusalem, were the victims of private rapine or public
oppression, and often sunk under the pressure of famine and
disease, before they were permitted to salute the holy sepulchre.
A spirit of native barbarism, or recent zeal, prompted the
Turkmans to insult the clergy of every sect: the patriarch was
dragged by the hair along the pavement, and cast into a dungeon,
to extort a ransom from the sympathy of his flock; and the divine
worship in the church of the Resurrection was often disturbed by
the savage rudeness of its masters. The pathetic tale excited the
millions of the West to march under the standard of the cross to
the relief of the Holy Land; and yet how trifling is the sum of
these accumulated evils, if compared with the single act of the
sacrilege of Hakem, which had been so patiently endured by the
Latin Christians! A slighter provocation inflamed the more
irascible temper of their descendants: a new spirit had arisen of
religious chivalry and papal dominion; a nerve was touched of
exquisite feeling; and the sensation vibrated to the heart of
Europe.
Chapter LVIII: The First Crusade.
Part I.
Origin And Numbers Of The First Crusade. -- Characters Of The
Latin Princes. -- Their March To Constantinople. -- Policy Of The
Greek Emperor Alexius. -- Conquest Of Nice, Antioch, And
Jerusalem, By The Franks. -- Deliverance Of The Holy Sepulchre.
-- Godfrey Of Bouillon, First King Of Jerusalem. -- Institutions
Of The French Or Latin Kingdom.
About twenty years after the conquest of Jerusalem by the
Turks, the holy sepulchre was visited by a hermit of the name of
Peter, a native of Amiens, in the province of Picardy in France.
His resentment and sympathy were excited by his own injuries and
the oppression of the Christian name; he mingled his tears with
those of the patriarch, and earnestly inquired, if no hopes of
relief could be entertained from the Greek emperors of the East.
The patriarch exposed the vices and weakness of the successors of
Constantine. "I will rouse," exclaimed the hermit, "the martial
nations of Europe in your cause;" and Europe was obedient to the
call of the hermit. The astonished patriarch dismissed him with
epistles of credit and complaint; and no sooner did he land at
Bari, than Peter hastened to kiss the feet of the Roman pontiff.
His stature was small, his appearance contemptible; but his eye
was keen and lively; and he possessed that vehemence of speech,
which seldom fails to impart the persuasion of the soul. He was
born of a gentleman's family, (for we must now adopt a modern
idiom,) and his military service was under the neighboring counts
of Boulogne, the heroes of the first crusade. But he soon
relinquished the sword and the world; and if it be true, that his
wife, however noble, was aged and ugly, he might withdraw, with
the less reluctance, from her bed to a convent, and at length to
a hermitage. * In this austere solitude, his body was emaciated,
his fancy was inflamed; whatever he wished, he believed; whatever
he believed, he saw in dreams and revelations. From Jerusalem the
pilgrim returned an accomplished fanatic; but as he excelled in
the popular madness of the times, Pope Urban the Second received
him as a prophet, applauded his glorious design, promised to
support it in a general council, and encouraged him to proclaim
the deliverance of the Holy Land. Invigorated by the approbation
of the pontiff, his zealous missionary traversed. with speed and
success, the provinces of Italy and France. His diet was
abstemious, his prayers long and fervent, and the alms which he
received with one hand, he distributed with the other: his head
was bare, his feet naked, his meagre body was wrapped in a coarse
garment; he bore and displayed a weighty crucifix; and the ass on
which he rode was sanctified, in the public eye, by the service
of the man of God. He preached to innumerable crowds in the
churches, the streets, and the highways: the hermit entered with
equal confidence the palace and the cottage; and the people (for
all was people) was impetuously moved by his call to repentance
and arms. When he painted the sufferings of the natives and
pilgrims of Palestine, every heart was melted to compassion;
every breast glowed with indignation, when he challenged the
warriors of the age to defend their brethren, and rescue their
Savior: his ignorance of art and language was compensated by
sighs, and tears, and ejaculations; and Peter supplied the
deficiency of reason by loud and frequent appeals to Christ and
his mother, to the saints and angels of paradise, with whom he
had personally conversed. The most perfect orator of Athens might
have envied the success of his eloquence; the rustic enthusiast
inspired the passions which he felt, and Christendom expected
with impatience the counsels and decrees of the supreme
pontiff.
The magnanimous spirit of Gregory the Seventh had already
embraced the design of arming Europe against Asia; the ardor of
his zeal and ambition still breathes in his epistles: from either
side of the Alps, fifty thousand Catholics had enlisted under the
banner of St. Peter; and his successor reveals his intention of
marching at their head against the impious sectaries of Mahomet.
But the glory or reproach of executing, though not in person,
this holy enterprise, was reserved for Urban the Second, the most
faithful of his disciples. He undertook the conquest of the East,
whilst the larger portion of Rome was possessed and fortified by
his rival Guibert of Ravenna, who contended with Urban for the
name and honors of the pontificate. He attempted to unite the
powers of the West, at a time when the princes were separated
from the church, and the people from their princes, by the
excommunication which himself and his predecessors had thundered
against the emperor and the king of France. Philip the First, of
France, supported with patience the censures which he had
provoked by his scandalous life and adulterous marriage. Henry
the Fourth, of Germany, asserted the right of investitures, the
prerogative of confirming his bishops by the delivery of the ring
and crosier. But the emperor's party was crushed in Italy by the
arms of the Normans and the Countess Mathilda; and the long
quarrel had been recently envenomed by the revolt of his son
Conrad and the shame of his wife, who, in the synods of Constance
and Placentia, confessed the manifold prostitutions to which she
had been exposed by a husband regardless of her honor and his
own. So popular was the cause of Urban, so weighty was his
influence, that the council which he summoned at Placentia was
composed of two hundred bishops of Italy, France, Burgandy,
Swabia, and Bavaria. Four thousand of the clergy, and thirty
thousand of the laity, attended this important meeting; and, as
the most spacious cathedral would have been inadequate to the
multitude, the session of seven days was held in a plain adjacent
to the city. The ambassadors of the Greek emperor, Alexius
Comnenus, were introduced to plead the distress of their
sovereign, and the danger of Constantinople, which was divided
only by a narrow sea from the victorious Turks, the common
enemies of the Christian name. In their suppliant address they
flattered the pride of the Latin princes; and, appealing at once
to their policy and religion, exhorted them to repel the
Barbarians on the confines of Asia, rather than to expect them in
the heart of Europe. At the sad tale of the misery and perils of
their Eastern brethren, the assembly burst into tears; the most
eager champions declared their readiness to march; and the Greek
ambassadors were dismissed with the assurance of a speedy and
powerful succor. The relief of Constantinople was included in the
larger and most distant project of the deliverance of Jerusalem;
but the prudent Urban adjourned the final decision to a second
synod, which he proposed to celebrate in some city of France in
the autumn of the same year. The short delay would propagate the
flame of enthusiasm; and his firmest hope was in a nation of
soldiers still proud of the preëminence of their name, and
ambitious to emulate their hero Charlemagne, who, in the popular
romance of Turpin, had achieved the conquest of the Holy Land. A
latent motive of affection or vanity might influence the choice
of Urban: he was himself a native of France, a monk of Clugny,
and the first of his countrymen who ascended the throne of St.
Peter. The pope had illustrated his family and province; nor is
there perhaps a more exquisite gratification than to revisit, in
a conspicuous dignity, the humble and laborious scenes of our
youth.
It may occasion some surprise that the Roman pontiff should
erect, in the heart of France, the tribunal from whence he hurled
his anathemas against the king; but our surprise will vanish so
soon as we form a just estimate of a king of France of the
eleventh century. Philip the First was the great-grandson of Hugh
Capet, the founder of the present race, who, in the decline of
Charlemagne's posterity, added the regal title to his patrimonial
estates of Paris and Orleans. In this narrow compass, he was
possessed of wealth and jurisdiction; but in the rest of France,
Hugh and his first descendants were no more than the feudal lords
of about sixty dukes and counts, of independent and hereditary
power, who disdained the control of laws and legal assemblies,
and whose disregard of their sovereign was revenged by the
disobedience of their inferior vassals. At Clermont, in the
territories of the count of Auvergne, the pope might brave with
impunity the resentment of Philip; and the council which he
convened in that city was not less numerous or respectable than
the synod of Placentia. Besides his court and council of Roman
cardinals, he was supported by thirteen archbishops and two
hundred and twenty-five bishops: the number of mitred prelates
was computed at four hundred; and the fathers of the church were
blessed by the saints and enlightened by the doctors of the age.
From the adjacent kingdoms, a martial train of lords and knights
of power and renown attended the council, in high expectation of
its resolves; and such was the ardor of zeal and curiosity, that
the city was filled, and many thousands, in the month of
November, erected their tents or huts in the open field. A
session of eight days produced some useful or edifying canons for
the reformation of manners; a severe censure was pronounced
against the license of private war; the Truce of God was
confirmed, a suspension of hostilities during four days of the
week; women and priests were placed under the safeguard of the
church; and a protection of three years was extended to
husbandmen and merchants, the defenceless victims of military
rapine. But a law, however venerable be the sanction, cannot
suddenly transform the temper of the times; and the benevolent
efforts of Urban deserve the less praise, since he labored to
appease some domestic quarrels that he might spread the flames of
war from the Atlantic to the Euphrates. From the synod of
Placentia, the rumor of his great design had gone forth among the
nations: the clergy on their return had preached in every diocese
the merit and glory of the deliverance of the Holy Land; and when
the pope ascended a lofty scaffold in the market-place of
Clermont, his eloquence was addressed to a well-prepared and
impatient audience. His topics were obvious, his exhortation was
vehement, his success inevitable. The orator was interrupted by
the shout of thousands, who with one voice, and in their rustic
idiom, exclaimed aloud, "God wills it, God wills it." "It is
indeed the will of God," replied the pope; "and let this
memorable word, the inspiration surely of the Holy Spirit, be
forever adopted as your cry of battle, to animate the devotion
and courage of the champions of Christ. His cross is the symbol
of your salvation; wear it, a red, a bloody cross, as an external
mark, on your breasts or shoulders, as a pledge of your sacred
and irrevocable engagement." The proposal was joyfully accepted;
great numbers, both of the clergy and laity, impressed on their
garments the sign of the cross, and solicited the pope to march
at their head. This dangerous honor was declined by the more
prudent successor of Gregory, who alleged the schism of the
church, and the duties of his pastoral office, recommending to
the faithful, who were disqualified by sex or profession, by age
or infirmity, to aid, with their prayers and alms, the personal
service of their robust brethren. The name and powers of his
legate he devolved on Adhemar bishop of Puy, the first who had
received the cross at his hands. The foremost of the temporal
chiefs was Raymond count of Thoulouse, whose ambassadors in the
council excused the absence, and pledged the honor, of their
master. After the confession and absolution of their sins, the
champions of the cross were dismissed with a superfluous
admonition to invite their countrymen and friends; and their
departure for the Holy Land was fixed to the festival of the
Assumption, the fifteenth of August, of the ensuing year.
So familiar, and as it were so natural to man, is the practice
of violence, that our indulgence allows the slightest
provocation, the most disputable right, as a sufficient ground of
national hostility. But the name and nature of a holy
war demands a more rigorous scrutiny; nor can we
hastily believe, that the servants of the Prince of Peace would
unsheathe the sword of destruction, unless the motive were pure,
the quarrel legitimate, and the necessity inevitable. The policy
of an action may be determined from the tardy lessons of
experience; but, before we act, our conscience should be
satisfied of the justice and propriety of our enterprise. In the
age of the crusades, the Christians, both of the East and West,
were persuaded of their lawfulness and merit; their arguments are
clouded by the perpetual abuse of Scripture and rhetoric; but
they seem to insist on the right of natural and religious
defence, their peculiar title to the Holy Land, and the impiety
of their Pagan and Mahometan foes. I. The right of a just defence
may fairly include our civil and spiritual allies: it depends on
the existence of danger; and that danger must be estimated by the
twofold consideration of the malice, and the power, of our
enemies. A pernicious tenet has been imputed to the Mahometans,
the duty of extirpating all other
religions by the sword. This charge of ignorance and bigotry is
refuted by the Koran, by the history of the Mussulman conquerors,
and by their public and legal toleration of the Christian
worship. But it cannot be denied, that the Oriental churches are
depressed under their iron yoke; that, in peace and war, they
assert a divine and indefeasible claim of universal empire; and
that, in their orthodox creed, the unbelieving nations are
continually threatened with the loss of religion or liberty. In
the eleventh century, the victorious arms of the Turks presented
a real and urgent apprehension of these losses. They had subdued,
in less than thirty years, the kingdoms of Asia, as far as
Jerusalem and the Hellespont; and the Greek empire tottered on
the verge of destruction. Besides an honest sympathy for their
brethren, the Latins had a right and interest in the support of
Constantinople, the most important barrier of the West; and the
privilege of defence must reach to prevent, as well as to repel,
an impending assault. But this salutary purpose might have been
accomplished by a moderate succor; and our calmer reason must
disclaim the innumerable hosts, and remote operations, which
overwhelmed Asia and depopulated Europe. * II. Palestine could
add nothing to the strength or safety of the Latins; and
fanaticism alone could pretend to justify the conquest of that
distant and narrow province. The Christians affirmed that their
inalienable title to the promised land had been sealed by the
blood of their divine Savior; it was their right and duty to
rescue their inheritance from the unjust possessors, who profaned
his sepulchre, and oppressed the pilgrimage of his disciples.
Vainly would it be alleged that the preëminence of
Jerusalem, and the sanctity of Palestine, have been abolished
with the Mosaic law; that the God of the Christians is not a
local deity, and that the recovery of Bethlem or Calvary, his
cradle or his tomb, will not atone for the violation of the moral
precepts of the gospel. Such arguments glance aside from the
leaden shield of superstition; and the religious mind will not
easily relinquish its hold on the sacred ground of mystery and
miracle. III. But the holy wars which have been waged in every
climate of the globe, from Egypt to Livonia, and from Peru to
Hindostan, require the support of some more general and flexible
tenet. It has been often supposed, and sometimes affirmed, that a
difference of religion is a worthy cause of hostility; that
obstinate unbelievers may be slain or subdued by the champions of
the cross; and that grace is the sole fountain of dominion as
well as of mercy. * Above four hundred years before the first
crusade, the eastern and western provinces of the Roman empire
had been acquired about the same time, and in the same manner, by
the Barbarians of Germany and Arabia. Time and treaties had
legitimated the conquest of the
Christian Franks; but in the eyes of
their subjects and neighbors, the Mahometan princes were still
tyrants and usurpers, who, by the arms of war or rebellion, might
be lawfully driven from their unlawful possession.
As the manners of the Christians were relaxed, their
discipline of penance was enforced; and with the multiplication
of sins, the remedies were multiplied. In the primitive church, a
voluntary and open confession prepared the work of atonement. In
the middle ages, the bishops and priests interrogated the
criminal; compelled him to account for his thoughts, words, and
actions; and prescribed the terms of his reconciliation with God.
But as this discretionary power might alternately be abused by
indulgence and tyranny, a rule of discipline was framed, to
inform and regulate the spiritual judges. This mode of
legislation was invented by the Greeks; their
penitentials were translated, or
imitated, in the Latin church; and, in the time of Charlemagne,
the clergy of every diocese were provided with a code, which they
prudently concealed from the knowledge of the vulgar. In this
dangerous estimate of crimes and punishments, each case was
supposed, each difference was remarked, by the experience or
penetration of the monks; some sins are enumerated which
innocence could not have suspected, and others which reason
cannot believe; and the more ordinary offences of fornication and
adultery, of perjury and sacrilege, of rapine and murder, were
expiated by a penance, which, according to the various
circumstances, was prolonged from forty days to seven years.
During this term of mortification, the patient was healed, the
criminal was absolved, by a salutary regimen of fasts and
prayers: the disorder of his dress was expressive of grief and
remorse; and he humbly abstained from all the business and
pleasure of social life. But the rigid execution of these laws
would have depopulated the palace, the camp, and the city; the
Barbarians of the West believed and trembled; but nature often
rebelled against principle; and the magistrate labored without
effect to enforce the jurisdiction of the priest. A literal
accomplishment of penance was indeed impracticable: the guilt of
adultery was multiplied by daily repetition; that of homicide
might involve the massacre of a whole people; each act was
separately numbered; and, in those times of anarchy and vice, a
modest sinner might easily incur a debt of three hundred years.
His insolvency was relieved by a commutation, or
indulgence: a year of penance was
appreciated at twenty-six solidi of
silver, about four pounds sterling, for the rich; at three
solidi, or nine shillings, for the indigent: and these alms were
soon appropriated to the use of the church, which derived, from
the redemption of sins, an inexhaustible source of opulence and
dominion. A debt of three hundred years, or twelve hundred
pounds, was enough to impoverish a plentiful fortune; the
scarcity of gold and silver was supplied by the alienation of
land; and the princely donations of Pepin and Charlemagne are
expressly given for the remedy of their
soul. It is a maxim of the civil law, that whosoever cannot pay
with his purse, must pay with his body; and the practice of
flagellation was adopted by the monks, a cheap, though painful
equivalent. By a fantastic arithmetic, a year of penance was
taxed at three thousand lashes; and such was the skill and
patience of a famous hermit, St. Dominic of the iron Cuirass,
that in six days he could discharge an entire century, by a
whipping of three hundred thousand stripes. His example was
followed by many penitents of both sexes; and, as a vicarious
sacrifice was accepted, a sturdy disciplinarian might expiate on
his own back the sins of his benefactors. These compensations of
the purse and the person introduced, in the eleventh century, a
more honorable mode of satisfaction. The merit of military
service against the Saracens of Africa and Spain had been allowed
by the predecessors of Urban the Second. In the council of
Clermont, that pope proclaimed a plenary
indulgence to those who should enlist under the
banner of the cross; the absolution of all their sins, and a full
receipt for all that might be due of
canonical penance. The cold philosophy of modern times is
incapable of feeling the impression that was made on a sinful and
fanatic world. At the voice of their pastor, the robber, the
incendiary, the homicide, arose by thousands to redeem their
souls, by repeating on the infidels the same deeds which they had
exercised against their Christian brethren; and the terms of
atonement were eagerly embraced by offenders of every rank and
denomination. None were pure; none were exempt from the guilt and
penalty of sin; and those who were the least amenable to the
justice of God and the church were the best entitled to the
temporal and eternal recompense of their pious courage. If they
fell, the spirit of the Latin clergy did not hesitate to adorn
their tomb with the crown of martyrdom; and should they survive,
they could expect without impatience the delay and increase of
their heavenly reward. They offered their blood to the Son of
God, who had laid down his life for their salvation: they took up
the cross, and entered with confidence into the way of the Lord.
His providence would watch over their safety; perhaps his visible
and miraculous power would smooth the difficulties of their holy
enterprise. The cloud and pillar of Jehovah had marched before
the Israelites into the promised land. Might not the Christians
more reasonably hope that the rivers would open for their
passage; that the walls of their strongest cities would fall at
the sound of their trumpets; and that the sun would be arrested
in his mid career, to allow them time for the destruction of the
infidels?
Chapter LVIII: The First Crusade. -- Part
II.
Of the chiefs and soldiers who marched to the holy sepulchre,
I will dare to affirm, that all were
prompted by the spirit of enthusiasm; the belief of merit, the
hope of reward, and the assurance of divine aid. But I am equally
persuaded, that in many it was not the sole, that in
some it was not the leading, principle
of action. The use and abuse of religion are feeble to stem, they
are strong and irresistible to impel, the stream of national
manners. Against the private wars of the Barbarians, their bloody
tournaments, licentious love, and judicial duels, the popes and
synods might ineffectually thunder. It is a more easy task to
provoke the metaphysical disputes of the Greeks, to drive into
the cloister the victims of anarchy or despotism, to sanctify the
patience of slaves and cowards, or to assume the merit of the
humanity and benevolence of modern Christians. War and exercise
were the reigning passions of the Franks or Latins; they were
enjoined, as a penance, to gratify those passions, to visit
distant lands, and to draw their swords against the nation of the
East. Their victory, or even their attempt, would immortalize the
names of the intrepid heroes of the cross; and the purest piety
could not be insensible to the most splendid prospect of military
glory. In the petty quarrels of Europe, they shed the blood of
their friends and countrymen, for the acquisition perhaps of a
castle or a village. They could march with alacrity against the
distant and hostile nations who were devoted to their arms; their
fancy already grasped the golden sceptres of Asia; and the
conquest of Apulia and Sicily by the Normans might exalt to
royalty the hopes of the most private adventurer. Christendom, in
her rudest state, must have yielded to the climate and
cultivation of the Mahometan countries; and their natural and
artificial wealth had been magnified by the tales of pilgrims,
and the gifts of an imperfect commerce. The vulgar, both the
great and small, were taught to believe every wonder, of lands
flowing with milk and honey, of mines and treasures, of gold and
diamonds, of palaces of marble and jasper, and of odoriferous
groves of cinnamon and frankincense. In this earthly paradise,
each warrior depended on his sword to carve a plenteous and
honorable establishment, which he measured only by the extent of
his wishes. Their vassals and soldiers trusted their fortunes to
God and their master: the spoils of a Turkish emir might enrich
the meanest follower of the camp; and the flavor of the wines,
the beauty of the Grecian women, were temptations more adapted to
the nature, than to the profession, of the champions of the
cross. The love of freedom was a powerful incitement to the
multitudes who were oppressed by feudal or ecclesiastical
tyranny. Under this holy sign, the peasants and burghers, who
were attached to the servitude of the glebe, might escape from a
haughty lord, and transplant themselves and their families to a
land of liberty. The monk might release himself from the
discipline of his convent: the debtor might suspend the
accumulation of usury, and the pursuit of his creditors; and
outlaws and malefactors of every cast might continue to brave the
laws and elude the punishment of their crimes.
These motives were potent and numerous: when we have singly
computed their weight on the mind of each individual, we must add
the infinite series, the multiplying powers, of example and
fashion. The first proselytes became the warmest and most
effectual missionaries of the cross: among their friends and
countrymen they preached the duty, the merit, and the recompense,
of their holy vow; and the most reluctant hearers were insensibly
drawn within the whirlpool of persuasion and authority. The
martial youths were fired by the reproach or suspicion of
cowardice; the opportunity of visiting with an army the sepulchre
of Christ was embraced by the old and infirm, by women and
children, who consulted rather their zeal than their strength;
and those who in the evening had derided the folly of their
companions, were the most eager, the ensuing day, to tread in
their footsteps. The ignorance, which magnified the hopes,
diminished the perils, of the enterprise. Since the Turkish
conquest, the paths of pilgrimage were obliterated; the chiefs
themselves had an imperfect notion of the length of the way and
the state of their enemies; and such was the stupidity of the
people, that, at the sight of the first city or castle beyond the
limits of their knowledge, they were ready to ask whether that
was not the Jerusalem, the term and object of their labors. Yet
the more prudent of the crusaders, who were not sure that they
should be fed from heaven with a shower of quails or manna,
provided themselves with those precious metals, which, in every
country, are the representatives of every commodity. To defray,
according to their rank, the expenses of the road, princes
alienated their provinces, nobles their lands and castles,
peasants their cattle and the instruments of husbandry. The value
of property was depreciated by the eager competition of
multitudes; while the price of arms and horses was raised to an
exorbitant height by the wants and impatience of the buyers.
Those who remained at home, with sense and money, were enriched
by the epidemical disease: the sovereigns acquired at a cheap
rate the domains of their vassals; and the ecclesiastical
purchasers completed the payment by the assurance of their
prayers. The cross, which was commonly sewed on the garment, in
cloth or silk, was inscribed by some zealots on their skin: a hot
iron, or indelible liquor, was applied to perpetuate the mark;
and a crafty monk, who showed the miraculous impression on his
breast was repaid with the popular veneration and the richest
benefices of Palestine.
The fifteenth of August had been fixed in the council of
Clermont for the departure of the pilgrims; but the day was
anticipated by the thoughtless and needy crowd of plebeians, and
I shall briefly despatch the calamities which they inflicted and
suffered, before I enter on the more serious and successful
enterprise of the chiefs. Early in the spring, from the confines
of France and Lorraine, above sixty thousand of the populace of
both sexes flocked round the first missionary of the crusade, and
pressed him with clamorous importunity to lead them to the holy
sepulchre. The hermit, assuming the character, without the
talents or authority, of a general, impelled or obeyed the
forward impulse of his votaries along the banks of the Rhine and
Danube. Their wants and numbers soon compelled them to separate,
and his lieutenant, Walter the Penniless, a valiant though needy
soldier, conducted a van guard of pilgrims, whose condition may
be determined from the proportion of eight horsemen to fifteen
thousand foot. The example and footsteps of Peter were closely
pursued by another fanatic, the monk Godescal, whose sermons had
swept away fifteen or twenty thousand peasants from the villages
of Germany. Their rear was again pressed by a herd of two hundred
thousand, the most stupid and savage refuse of the people, who
mingled with their devotion a brutal license of rapine,
prostitution, and drunkenness. Some counts and gentlemen, at the
head of three thousand horse, attended the motions of the
multitude to partake in the spoil; but their genuine leaders (may
we credit such folly?) were a goose and a goat, who were carried
in the front, and to whom these worthy Christians ascribed an
infusion of the divine spirit. Of these, and of other bands of
enthusiasts, the first and most easy warfare was against the
Jews, the murderers of the Son of God. In the trading cities of
the Moselle and the Rhine, their colonies were numerous and rich;
and they enjoyed, under the protection of the emperor and the
bishops, the free exercise of their religion. At Verdun, Treves,
Mentz, Spires, Worms, many thousands of that unhappy people were
pillaged and massacred: nor had they felt a more bloody stroke
since the persecution of Hadrian. A remnant was saved by the
firmness of their bishops, who accepted a feigned and transient
conversion; but the more obstinate Jews opposed their fanaticism
to the fanaticism of the Christians, barricadoed their houses,
and precipitating themselves, their families, and their wealth,
into the rivers or the flames, disappointed the malice, or at
least the avarice, of their implacable foes.
Between the frontiers of Austria and the seat of the Byzan
tine monarchy, the crusaders were compelled to traverse as
interval of six hundred miles; the wild and desolate countries of
Hungary and Bulgaria. The soil is fruitful, and intersected with
rivers; but it was then covered with morasses and forests, which
spread to a boundless extent, whenever man has ceased to exercise
his dominion over the earth. Both nations had imbibed the
rudiments of Christianity; the Hungarians were ruled by their
native princes; the Bulgarians by a lieutenant of the Greek
emperor; but, on the slightest provocation, their ferocious
nature was rekindled, and ample provocation was afforded by the
disorders of the first pilgrims Agriculture must have been
unskilful and languid among a people, whose cities were built of
reeds and timber, which were deserted in the summer season for
the tents of hunters and shepherds. A scanty supply of provisions
was rudely demanded, forcibly seized, and greedily consumed; and
on the first quarrel, the crusaders gave a loose to indignation
and revenge. But their ignorance of the country, of war, and of
discipline, exposed them to every snare. The Greek præfect
of Bulgaria commanded a regular force; * at the trumpet of the
Hungarian king, the eighth or the tenth of his martial subjects
bent their bows and mounted on horseback; their policy was
insidious, and their retaliation on these pious robbers was
unrelenting and bloody. About a third of the naked fugitives (and
the hermit Peter was of the number) escaped to the Thracian
mountains; and the emperor, who respected the pilgrimage and
succor of the Latins, conducted them by secure and easy journeys
to Constantinople, and advised them to await the arrival of their
brethren. For a while they remembered their faults and losses;
but no sooner were they revived by the hospitable entertainment,
than their venom was again inflamed; they stung their benefactor,
and neither gardens, nor palaces, nor churches, were safe from
their depredations. For his own safety, Alexius allured them to
pass over to the Asiatic side of the Bosphorus; but their blind
impetuosity soon urged them to desert the station which he had
assigned, and to rush headlong against the Turks, who occupied
the road to Jerusalem. The hermit, conscious of his shame, had
withdrawn from the camp to Constantinople; and his lieutenant,
Walter the Penniless, who was worthy of a better command,
attempted without success to introduce some order and prudence
among the herd of savages. They separated in quest of prey, and
themselves fell an easy prey to the arts of the sultan. By a
rumor that their foremost companions were rioting in the spoils
of his capital, Soliman * tempted the main body to descend into
the plain of Nice: they were overwhelmed by the Turkish arrows;
and a pyramid of bones informed their companions of the place of
their defeat. Of the first crusaders, three hundred thousand had
already perished, before a single city was rescued from the
infidels, before their graver and more noble brethren had
completed the preparations of their enterprise.
"To save time and space, I shall represent, in a short table,
the particular references to the great events of the first
crusade."
[See Table 1.: Events Of The First Crusade. ##]
None of the great sovereigns of Europe embarked their persons
in the first crusade. The emperor Henry the Fourth was not
disposed to obey the summons of the pope: Philip the First of
France was occupied by his pleasures; William Rufus of England by
a recent conquest; the kings of Spain were engaged in a domestic
war against the Moors; and the northern monarchs of Scotland,
Denmark, Sweden, and Poland, were yet strangers to the passions
and interests of the South. The religious ardor was more strongly
felt by the princes of the second order, who held an important
place in the feudal system. Their situation will naturally cast
under four distinct heads the review of their names and
characters; but I may escape some needless repetition, by
observing at once, that courage and the exercise of arms are the
common attribute of these Christian adventurers. I. The first
rank both in war and council is justly due to Godfrey of
Bouillon; and happy would it have been for the crusaders, if they
had trusted themselves to the sole conduct of that accomplished
hero, a worthy representative of Charlemagne, from whom he was
descended in the female line. His father was of the noble race of
the counts of Boulogne: Brabant, the lower province of Lorraine,
was the inheritance of his mother; and by the emperor's bounty he
was himself invested with that ducal title, which has been
improperly transferred to his lordship of Bouillon in the
Ardennes. In the service of Henry the Fourth, he bore the great
standard of the empire, and pierced with his lance the breast of
Rodolph, the rebel king: Godfrey was the first who ascended the
walls of Rome; and his sickness, his vow, perhaps his remorse for
bearing arms against the pope, confirmed an early resolution of
visiting the holy sepulchre, not as a pilgrim, but a deliverer.
His valor was matured by prudence and moderation; his piety,
though blind, was sincere; and, in the tumult of a camp, he
practised the real and fictitious virtues of a convent. Superior
to the private factions of the chiefs, he reserved his enmity for
the enemies of Christ; and though he gained a kingdom by the
attempt, his pure and disinterested zeal was acknowledged by his
rivals. Godfrey of Bouillon was accompanied by his two brothers,
by Eustace the elder, who had succeeded to the county of
Boulogne, and by the younger, Baldwin, a character of more
ambiguous virtue. The duke of Lorraine, was alike celebrated on
either side of the Rhine: from his birth and education, he was
equally conversant with the French and Teutonic languages: the
barons of France, Germany, and Lorraine, assembled their vassals;
and the confederate force that marched under his banner was
composed of fourscore thousand foot and about ten thousand horse.
II. In the parliament that was held at Paris, in the king's
presence, about two months after the council of Clermont, Hugh,
count of Vermandois, was the most conspicuous of the princes who
assumed the cross. But the appellation of the
Great was applied, not so much to his merit or
possessions, (though neither were contemptible,) as to the royal
birth of the brother of the king of France. Robert, duke of
Normandy, was the eldest son of William the Conqueror; but on his
father's death he was deprived of the kingdom of England, by his
own indolence and the activity of his brother Rufus. The worth of
Robert was degraded by an excessive levity and easiness of
temper: his cheerfulness seduced him to the indulgence of
pleasure; his profuse liberality impoverished the prince and
people; his indiscriminate clemency multiplied the number of
offenders; and the amiable qualities of a private man became the
essential defects of a sovereign. For the trifling sum of ten
thousand marks, he mortgaged Normandy during his absence to the
English usurper; but his engagement and behavior in the holy war
announced in Robert a reformation of manners, and restored him in
some degree to the public esteem. Another Robert was count of
Flanders, a royal province, which, in this century, gave three
queens to the thrones of France, England, and Denmark: he was
surnamed the Sword and Lance of the Christians; but in the
exploits of a soldier he sometimes forgot the duties of a
general. Stephen, count of Chartres, of Blois, and of Troyes, was
one of the richest princes of the age; and the number of his
castles has been compared to the three hundred and sixty-five
days of the year. His mind was improved by literature; and, in
the council of the chiefs, the eloquent Stephen was chosen to
discharge the office of their president. These four were the
principal leaders of the French, the Normans, and the pilgrims of
the British isles: but the list of the barons who were possessed
of three or four towns would exceed, says a contemporary, the
catalogue of the Trojan war. III. In the south of France, the
command was assumed by Adhemar bishop of Puy, the pope legate,
and by Raymond count of St. Giles and Thoulouse who added the
prouder titles of duke of Narbonne and marquis of Provence. The
former was a respectable prelate, alike qualified for this world
and the next. The latter was a veteran warrior, who had fought
against the Saracens of Spain, and who consecrated his declining
age, not only to the deliverance, but to the perpetual service,
of the holy sepulchre. His experience and riches gave him a
strong ascendant in the Christian camp, whose distress he was
often able, and sometimes willing, to relieve. But it was easier
for him to extort the praise of the Infidels, than to preserve
the love of his subjects and associates. His eminent qualities
were clouded by a temper haughty, envious, and obstinate; and,
though he resigned an ample patrimony for the cause of God, his
piety, in the public opinion, was not exempt from avarice and
ambition. A mercantile, rather than a martial, spirit prevailed
among his provincials, a common name,
which included the natives of Auvergne and Languedoc, the vassals
of the kingdom of Burgundy or Arles. From the adjacent frontier
of Spain he drew a band of hardy adventurers; as he marched
through Lombardy, a crowd of Italians flocked to his standard,
and his united force consisted of one hundred thousand horse and
foot. If Raymond was the first to enlist and the last to depart,
the delay may be excused by the greatness of his preparation and
the promise of an everlasting farewell. IV. The name of Bohemond,
the son of Robert Guiscard, was already famous by his double
victory over the Greek emperor; but his father's will had reduced
him to the principality of Tarentum, and the remembrance of his
Eastern trophies, till he was awakened by the rumor and passage
of the French pilgrims. It is in the person of this Norman chief
that we may seek for the coolest policy and ambition, with a
small allay of religious fanaticism. His conduct may justify a
belief that he had secretly directed the design of the pope,
which he affected to second with astonishment and zeal: at the
siege of Amalphi, his example and discourse inflamed the passions
of a confederate army; he instantly tore his garment to supply
crosses for the numerous candidates, and prepared to visit
Constantinople and Asia at the head of ten thousand horse and
twenty thousand foot. Several princes of the Norman race
accompanied this veteran general; and his cousin Tancred was the
partner, rather than the servant, of the war. In the accomplished
character of Tancred we discover all the virtues of a perfect
knight, the true spirit of chivalry, which inspired the generous
sentiments and social offices of man far better than the base
philosophy, or the baser religion, of the times.
Chapter LVIII: The First Crusade. -- Part
III.
Between the age of Charlemagne and that of the crusades, a
revolution had taken place among the Spaniards, the Normans, and
the French, which was gradually extended to the rest of Europe.
The service of the infantry was degraded to the plebeians; the
cavalry formed the strength of the armies, and the honorable name
of miles, or soldier, was confined to
the gentlemen who served on horseback, and were invested with the
character of knighthood. The dukes and counts, who had usurped
the rights of sovereignty, divided the provinces among their
faithful barons: the barons distributed among their vassals the
fiefs or benefices of their jurisdiction; and these military
tenants, the peers of each other and of their lord, composed the
noble or equestrian order, which disdained to conceive the
peasant or burgher as of the same species with themselves. The
dignity of their birth was preserved by pure and equal alliances;
their sons alone, who could produce four quarters or lines of
ancestry without spot or reproach, might legally pretend to the
honor of knighthood; but a valiant plebeian was sometimes
enriched and ennobled by the sword, and became the father of a
new race. A single knight could impart, according to his
judgment, the character which he received; and the warlike
sovereigns of Europe derived more glory from this personal
distinction than from the lustre of their diadem. This ceremony,
of which some traces may be found in Tacitus and the woods of
Germany, was in its origin simple and profane; the candidate,
after some previous trial, was invested with the sword and spurs;
and his cheek or shoulder was touched with a slight blow, as an
emblem of the last affront which it was lawful for him to endure.
But superstition mingled in every public and private action of
life: in the holy wars, it sanctified the profession of arms; and
the order of chivalry was assimilated in its rights and
privileges to the sacred orders of priesthood. The bath and white
garment of the novice were an indecent copy of the regeneration
of baptism: his sword, which he offered on the altar, was blessed
by the ministers of religion: his solemn reception was preceded
by fasts and vigils; and he was created a knight in the name of
God, of St. George, and of St. Michael the archangel. He swore to
accomplish the duties of his profession; and education, example,
and the public opinion, were the inviolable guardians of his
oath. As the champion of God and the ladies, (I blush to unite
such discordant names,) he devoted himself to speak the truth; to
maintain the right; to protect the distressed; to practise
courtesy, a virtue less familiar to the
ancients; to pursue the infidels; to despise the allurements of
ease and safety; and to vindicate in every perilous adventure the
honor of his character. The abuse of the same spirit provoked the
illiterate knight to disdain the arts of industry and peace; to
esteem himself the sole judge and avenger of his own injuries;
and proudly to neglect the laws of civil society and military
discipline. Yet the benefits of this institution, to refine the
temper of Barbarians, and to infuse some principles of faith,
justice, and humanity, were strongly felt, and have been often
observed. The asperity of national prejudice was softened; and
the community of religion and arms spread a similar color and
generous emulation over the face of Christendom. Abroad in
enterprise and pilgrimage, at home in martial exercise, the
warriors of every country were perpetually associated; and
impartial taste must prefer a Gothic tournament to the Olympic
games of classic antiquity. Instead of the naked spectacles which
corrupted the manners of the Greeks, and banished from the
stadium the virgins and matrons, the pompous decoration of the
lists was crowned with the presence of chaste and high-born
beauty, from whose hands the conqueror received the prize of his
dexterity and courage. The skill and strength that were exerted
in wrestling and boxing bear a distant and doubtful relation to
the merit of a soldier; but the tournaments, as they were
invented in France, and eagerly adopted both in the East and
West, presented a lively image of the business of the field. The
single combats, the general skirmish, the defence of a pass, or
castle, were rehearsed as in actual service; and the contest,
both in real and mimic war, was decided by the superior
management of the horse and lance. The lance was the proper and
peculiar weapon of the knight: his horse was of a large and heavy
breed; but this charger, till he was roused by the approaching
danger, was usually led by an attendant, and he quietly rode a
pad or palfrey of a more easy pace. His helmet and sword, his
greaves and buckler, it would be superfluous to describe; but I
may remark, that, at the period of the crusades, the armor was
less ponderous than in later times; and that, instead of a massy
cuirass, his breast was defended by a hauberk or coat of mail.
When their long lances were fixed in the rest, the warriors
furiously spurred their horses against the foe; and the light
cavalry of the Turks and Arabs could seldom stand against the
direct and impetuous weight of their charge. Each knight was
attended to the field by his faithful squire, a youth of equal
birth and similar hopes; he was followed by his archers and men
at arms, and four, or five, or six soldiers were computed as the
furniture of a complete lance. In the
expeditions to the neighboring kingdoms or the Holy Land, the
duties of the feudal tenure no longer subsisted; the voluntary
service of the knights and their followers were either prompted
by zeal or attachment, or purchased with rewards and promises;
and the numbers of each squadron were measured by the power, the
wealth, and the fame, of each independent chieftain. They were
distinguished by his banner, his armorial coat, and his cry of
war; and the most ancient families of Europe must seek in these
achievements the origin and proof of their nobility. In this
rapid portrait of chivalry I have been urged to anticipate on the
story of the crusades, at once an effect and a cause, of this
memorable institution.
Such were the troops, and such the leaders, who assumed the
cross for the deliverance of the holy sepulchre. As soon as they
were relieved by the absence of the plebeian multitude, they
encouraged each other, by interviews and messages, to accomplish
their vow, and hasten their departure. Their wives and sisters
were desirous of partaking the danger and merit of the
pilgrimage: their portable treasures were conveyed in bars of
silver and gold; and the princes and barons were attended by
their equipage of hounds and hawks to amuse their leisure and to
supply their table. The difficulty of procuring subsistence for
so many myriads of men and horses engaged them to separate their
forces: their choice or situation determined the road; and it was
agreed to meet in the neighborhood of Constantinople, and from
thence to begin their operations against the Turks. From the
banks of the Meuse and the Moselle, Godfrey of Bouillon followed
the direct way of Germany, Hungary, and Bulgaria; and, as long as
he exercised the sole command every step afforded some proof of
his prudence and virtue. On the confines of Hungary he was
stopped three weeks by a Christian people, to whom the name, or
at least the abuse, of the cross was justly odious. The
Hungarians still smarted with the wounds which they had received
from the first pilgrims: in their turn they had abused the right
of defence and retaliation; and they had reason to apprehend a
severe revenge from a hero of the same nation, and who was
engaged in the same cause. But, after weighing the motives and
the events, the virtuous duke was content to pity the crimes and
misfortunes of his worthless brethren; and his twelve deputies,
the messengers of peace, requested in his name a free passage and
an equal market. To remove their suspicions, Godfrey trusted
himself, and afterwards his brother, to the faith of Carloman, *
king of Hungary, who treated them with a simple but hospitable
entertainment: the treaty was sanctified by their common gospel;
and a proclamation, under pain of death, restrained the animosity
and license of the Latin soldiers. From Austria to Belgrade, they
traversed the plains of Hungary, without enduring or offering an
injury; and the proximity of Carloman, who hovered on their
flanks with his numerous cavalry, was a precaution not less
useful for their safety than for his own. They reached the banks
of the Save; and no sooner had they passed the river, than the
king of Hungary restored the hostages, and saluted their
departure with the fairest wishes for the success of their
enterprise. With the same conduct and discipline, Godfrey
pervaded the woods of Bulgaria and the frontiers of Thrace; and
might congratulate himself that he had almost reached the first
term of his pilgrimage, without drawing his sword against a
Christian adversary. After an easy and pleasant journey through
Lombardy, from Turin to Aquileia, Raymond and his provincials
marched forty days through the savage country of Dalmatia and
Sclavonia. The weather was a perpetual fog; the land was
mountainous and desolate; the natives were either fugitive or
hostile: loose in their religion and government, they refused to
furnish provisions or guides; murdered the stragglers; and
exercised by night and day the vigilance of the count, who
derived more security from the punishment of some captive robbers
than from his interview and treaty with the prince of Scodra. His
march between Durazzo and Constantinople was harassed, without
being stopped, by the peasants and soldiers of the Greek emperor;
and the same faint and ambiguous hostility was prepared for the
remaining chiefs, who passed the Adriatic from the coast of
Italy. Bohemond had arms and vessels, and foresight and
discipline; and his name was not forgotten in the provinces of
Epirus and Thessaly. Whatever obstacles he encountered were
surmounted by his military conduct and the valor of Tancred; and
if the Norman prince affected to spare the Greeks, he gorged his
soldiers with the full plunder of an heretical castle. The nobles
of France pressed forwards with the vain and thoughtless ardor of
which their nation has been sometimes accused. From the Alps to
Apulia the march of Hugh the Great, of the two Roberts, and of
Stephen of Chartres, through a wealthy country, and amidst the
applauding Catholics, was a devout or triumphant progress: they
kissed the feet of the Roman pontiff; and the golden standard of
St. Peter was delivered to the brother of the French monarch. But
in this visit of piety and pleasure, they neglected to secure the
season, and the means of their embarkation: the winter was
insensibly lost: their troops were scattered and corrupted in the
towns of Italy. They separately accomplished their passage,
regardless of safety or dignity; and within nine months from the
feast of the Assumption, the day appointed by Urban, all the
Latin princes had reached Constantinople. But the count of
Vermandois was produced as a captive; his foremost vessels were
scattered by a tempest; and his person, against the law of
nations, was detained by the lieutenants of Alexius. Yet the
arrival of Hugh had been announced by four-and-twenty knights in
golden armor, who commanded the emperor to revere the general of
the Latin Christians, the brother of the king of kings. *
In some oriental tale I have read the fable of a shepherd, who
was ruined by the accomplishment of his own wishes: he had prayed
for water; the Ganges was turned into his grounds, and his flock
and cottage were swept away by the inundation. Such was the
fortune, or at least the apprehension of the Greek emperor
Alexius Comnenus, whose name has already appeared in this
history, and whose conduct is so differently represented by his
daughter Anne, and by the Latin writers. In the council of
Placentia, his ambassadors had solicited a moderate succor,
perhaps of ten thousand soldiers, but he was astonished by the
approach of so many potent chiefs and fanatic nations. The
emperor fluctuated between hope and fear, between timidity and
courage; but in the crooked policy which he mistook for wisdom, I
cannot believe, I cannot discern, that he maliciously conspired
against the life or honor of the French heroes. The promiscuous
multitudes of Peter the Hermit were savage beasts, alike
destitute of humanity and reason: nor was it possible for Alexius
to prevent or deplore their destruction. The troops of Godfrey
and his peers were less contemptible, but not less suspicious, to
the Greek emperor. Their motives might
be pure and pious: but he was equally alarmed by his knowledge of
the ambitious Bohemond, * and his ignorance of the Transalpine
chiefs: the courage of the French was blind and headstrong; they
might be tempted by the luxury and wealth of Greece, and elated
by the view and opinion of their invincible strength: and
Jerusalem might be forgotten in the prospect of Constantinople.
After a long march and painful abstinence, the troops of Godfrey
encamped in the plains of Thrace; they heard with indignation,
that their brother, the count of Vermandois, was imprisoned by
the Greeks; and their reluctant duke was compelled to indulge
them in some freedom of retaliation and rapine. They were
appeased by the submission of Alexius: he promised to supply
their camp; and as they refused, in the midst of winter, to pass
the Bosphorus, their quarters were assigned among the gardens and
palaces on the shores of that narrow sea. But an incurable
jealousy still rankled in the minds of the two nations, who
despised each other as slaves and Barbarians. Ignorance is the
ground of suspicion, and suspicion was inflamed into daily
provocations: prejudice is blind, hunger is deaf; and Alexius is
accused of a design to starve or assault the Latins in a
dangerous post, on all sides encompassed with the waters. Godfrey
sounded his trumpets, burst the net, overspread the plain, and
insulted the suburbs; but the gates of Constantinople were
strongly fortified; the ramparts were lined with archers; and,
after a doubtful conflict, both parties listened to the voice of
peace and religion. The gifts and promises of the emperor
insensibly soothed the fierce spirit of the western strangers; as
a Christian warrior, he rekindled their zeal for the prosecution
of their holy enterprise, which he engaged to second with his
troops and treasures. On the return of spring, Godfrey was
persuaded to occupy a pleasant and plentiful camp in Asia; and no
sooner had he passed the Bosphorus, than the Greek vessels were
suddenly recalled to the opposite shore. The same policy was
repeated with the succeeding chiefs, who were swayed by the
example, and weakened by the departure, of their foremost
companions. By his skill and diligence, Alexius prevented the
union of any two of the confederate armies at the same moment
under the walls of Constantinople; and before the feast of the
Pentecost not a Latin pilgrim was left on the coast of
Europe.
The same arms which threatened Europe might deliver Asia, and
repel the Turks from the neighboring shores of the Bosphorus and
Hellespont. The fair provinces from Nice to Antioch were the
recent patrimony of the Roman emperor; and his ancient and
perpetual claim still embraced the kingdoms of Syria and Egypt.
In his enthusiasm, Alexius indulged, or affected, the ambitious
hope of leading his new allies to subvert the thrones of the
East; but the calmer dictates of reason and temper dissuaded him
from exposing his royal person to the faith of unknown and
lawless Barbarians. His prudence, or his pride, was content with
extorting from the French princes an oath of homage and fidelity,
and a solemn promise, that they would either restore, or hold,
their Asiatic conquests as the humble and loyal vassals of the
Roman empire. Their independent spirit was fired at the mention
of this foreign and voluntary servitude: they successively
yielded to the dexterous application of gifts and flattery; and
the first proselytes became the most eloquent and effectual
missionaries to multiply the companions of their shame. The pride
of Hugh of Vermandois was soothed by the honors of his captivity;
and in the brother of the French king, the example of submission
was prevalent and weighty. In the mind of Godfrey of Bouillon
every human consideration was subordinate to the glory of God and
the success of the crusade. He had firmly resisted the
temptations of Bohemond and Raymond, who urged the attack and
conquest of Constantinople. Alexius esteemed his virtues,
deservedly named him the champion of the empire, and dignified
his homage with the filial name and the rights of adoption. The
hateful Bohemond was received as a true and ancient ally; and if
the emperor reminded him of former hostilities, it was only to
praise the valor that he had displayed, and the glory that he had
acquired, in the fields of Durazzo and Larissa. The son of
Guiscard was lodged and entertained, and served with Imperial
pomp: one day, as he passed through the gallery of the palace, a
door was carelessly left open to expose a pile of gold and
silver, of silk and gems, of curious and costly furniture, that
was heaped, in seeming disorder, from the floor to the roof of
the chamber. "What conquests," exclaimed the ambitious miser,
"might not be achieved by the possession of such a treasure!" --
"It is your own," replied a Greek attendant, who watched the
motions of his soul; and Bohemond, after some hesitation,
condescended to accept this magnificent present. The Norman was
flattered by the assurance of an independent principality; and
Alexius eluded, rather than denied, his daring demand of the
office of great domestic, or general of the East. The two
Roberts, the son of the conqueror of England, and the kinsmen of
three queens, bowed in their turn before the Byzantine throne. A
private letter of Stephen of Chartres attests his admiration of
the emperor, the most excellent and liberal of men, who taught
him to believe that he was a favorite, and promised to educate
and establish his youngest son. In his southern province, the
count of St. Giles and Thoulouse faintly recognized the supremacy
of the king of France, a prince of a foreign nation and language.
At the head of a hundred thousand men, he declared that he was
the soldier and servant of Christ alone, and that the Greek might
be satisfied with an equal treaty of alliance and friendship. His
obstinate resistance enhanced the value and the price of his
submission; and he shone, says the princess Anne, among the
Barbarians, as the sun amidst the stars of heaven. His disgust of
the noise and insolence of the French, his suspicions of the
designs of Bohemond, the emperor imparted to his faithful
Raymond; and that aged statesman might clearly discern, that
however false in friendship, he was sincere in his enmity. The
spirit of chivalry was last subdued in the person of Tancred; and
none could deem themselves dishonored by the imitation of that
gallant knight. He disdained the gold and flattery of the Greek
monarch; assaulted in his presence an insolent patrician; escaped
to Asia in the habit of a private soldier; and yielded with a
sigh to the authority of Bohemond, and the interest of the
Christian cause. The best and most ostensible reason was the
impossibility of passing the sea and accomplishing their vow,
without the license and the vessels of Alexius; but they
cherished a secret hope, that as soon as they trod the continent
of Asia, their swords would obliterate their shame, and dissolve
the engagement, which on his side might not be very faithfully
performed. The ceremony of their homage was grateful to a people
who had long since considered pride as the substitute of power.
High on his throne, the emperor sat mute and immovable: his
majesty was adored by the Latin princes; and they submitted to
kiss either his feet or his knees, an indignity which their own
writers are ashamed to confess and unable to deny.
Private or public interest suppressed the murmurs of the dukes
and counts; but a French baron (he is supposed to be Robert of
Paris ) presumed to ascend the throne, and to place himself by
the side of Alexius. The sage reproof of Baldwin provoked him to
exclaim, in his barbarous idiom, "Who is this rustic, that keeps
his seat, while so many valiant captains are standing round him?"
The emperor maintained his silence, dissembled his indignation,
and questioned his interpreter concerning the meaning of the
words, which he partly suspected from the universal language of
gesture and countenance. Before the departure of the pilgrims, he
endeavored to learn the name and condition of the audacious
baron. "I am a Frenchman," replied Robert, "of the purest and
most ancient nobility of my country. All that I know is, that
there is a church in my neighborhood, the resort of those who are
desirous of approving their valor in single combat. Till an enemy
appears, they address their prayers to God and his saints. That
church I have frequently visited. But never have I found an
antagonist who dared to accept my defiance." Alexius dismissed
the challenger with some prudent advice for his conduct in the
Turkish warfare; and history repeats with pleasure this lively
example of the manners of his age and country.
The conquest of Asia was undertaken and achieved by Alexander,
with thirty-five thousand Macedonians and Greeks; and his best
hope was in the strength and discipline of his phalanx of
infantry. The principal force of the crusaders consisted in their
cavalry; and when that force was mustered in the plains of
Bithynia, the knights and their martial attendants on horseback
amounted to one hundred thousand fighting men, completely armed
with the helmet and coat of mail. The value of these soldiers
deserved a strict and authentic account; and the flower of
European chivalry might furnish, in a first effort, this
formidable body of heavy horse. A part of the infantry might be
enrolled for the service of scouts, pioneers, and archers; but
the promiscuous crowd were lost in their own disorder; and we
depend not on the eyes and knowledge, but on the belief and
fancy, of a chaplain of Count Baldwin, in the estimate of six
hundred thousand pilgrims able to bear arms, besides the priests
and monks, the women and children of the Latin camp. The reader
starts; and before he is recovered from his surprise, I shall
add, on the same testimony, that if all who took the cross had
accomplished their vow, above six millions would have migrated
from Europe to Asia. Under this oppression of faith, I derive
some relief from a more sagacious and thinking writer, who, after
the same review of the cavalry, accuses the credulity of the
priest of Chartres, and even doubts whether the
Cisalpine regions (in the geography of
a Frenchman) were sufficient to produce and pour forth such
incredible multitudes. The coolest scepticism will remember, that
of these religious volunteers great numbers never beheld
Constantinople and Nice. Of enthusiasm the influence is irregular
and transient: many were detained at home by reason or cowardice,
by poverty or weakness; and many were repulsed by the obstacles
of the way, the more insuperable as they were unforeseen, to
these ignorant fanatics. The savage countries of Hungary and
Bulgaria were whitened with their bones: their vanguard was cut
in pieces by the Turkish sultan; and the loss of the first
adventure, by the sword, or climate, or fatigue, has already been
stated at three hundred thousand men. Yet the myriads that
survived, that marched, that pressed forwards on the holy
pilgrimage, were a subject of astonishment to themselves and to
the Greeks. The copious energy of her language sinks under the
efforts of the princess Anne: the images of locusts, of leaves
and flowers, of the sands of the sea, or the stars of heaven,
imperfectly represent what she had seen and heard; and the
daughter of Alexius exclaims, that Europe was loosened from its
foundations, and hurled against Asia. The ancient hosts of Darius
and Xerxes labor under the same doubt of a vague and indefinite
magnitude; but I am inclined to believe, that a larger number has
never been contained within the lines of a single camp, than at
the siege of Nice, the first operation of the Latin princes.
Their motives, their characters, and their arms, have been
already displayed. Of their troops the most numerous portion were
natives of France: the Low Countries, the banks of the Rhine, and
Apulia, sent a powerful reënforcement: some bands of
adventurers were drawn from Spain, Lombardy, and England; and
from the distant bogs and mountains of Ireland or Scotland issued
some naked and savage fanatics, ferocious at home but unwarlike
abroad. Had not superstition condemned the sacrilegious prudence
of depriving the poorest or weakest Christian of the merit of the
pilgrimage, the useless crowd, with mouths but without hands,
might have been stationed in the Greek empire, till their
companions had opened and secured the way of the Lord. A small
remnant of the pilgrims, who passed the Bosphorus, was permitted
to visit the holy sepulchre. Their northern constitution was
scorched by the rays, and infected by the vapors, of a Syrian
sun. They consumed, with heedless prodigality, their stores of
water and provision: their numbers exhausted the inland country:
the sea was remote, the Greeks were unfriendly, and the
Christians of every sect fled before the voracious and cruel
rapine of their brethren. In the dire necessity of famine, they
sometimes roasted and devoured the flesh of their infant or adult
captives. Among the Turks and Saracens, the idolaters of Europe
were rendered more odious by the name and reputation of
Cannibals; the spies, who introduced themselves into the kitchen
of Bohemond, were shown several human bodies turning on the spit:
and the artful Norman encouraged a report, which increased at the
same time the abhorrence and the terror of the infidels.
Chapter LVIII: The First Crusade. -- Part
IV.
I have expiated with pleasure on the first steps of the
crusaders, as they paint the manners and character of Europe: but
I shall abridge the tedious and uniform narrative of their blind
achievements, which were performed by strength and are described
by ignorance. From their first station in the neighborhood of
Nicomedia, they advanced in successive divisions; passed the
contracted limit of the Greek empire; opened a road through the
hills, and commenced, by the siege of his capital, their pious
warfare against the Turkish sultan. His kingdom of Roum extended
from the Hellespont to the confines of Syria, and barred the
pilgrimage of Jerusalem, his name was Kilidge-Arslan, or Soliman,
of the race of Seljuk, and son of the first conqueror; and in the
defence of a land which the Turks considered as their own, he
deserved the praise of his enemies, by whom alone he is known to
posterity. Yielding to the first impulse of the torrent, he
deposited his family and treasure in Nice; retired to the
mountains with fifty thousand horse; and twice descended to
assault the camps or quarters of the Christian besiegers, which
formed an imperfect circle of above six miles. The lofty and
solid walls of Nice were covered by a deep ditch, and flanked by
three hundred and seventy towers; and on the verge of
Christendom, the Moslems were trained in arms, and inflamed by
religion. Before this city, the French princes occupied their
stations, and prosecuted their attacks without correspondence or
subordination: emulation prompted their valor; but their valor
was sullied by cruelty, and their emulation degenerated into envy
and civil discord. In the siege of Nice, the arts and engines of
antiquity were employed by the Latins; the mine and the
battering-ram, the tortoise, and the belfrey or movable turret,
artificial fire, and the catapult and
balist, the sling, and the crossbow for
the casting of stones and darts. In the space of seven weeks much
labor and blood were expended, and some progress, especially by
Count Raymond, was made on the side of the besiegers. But the
Turks could protract their resistance and secure their escape, as
long as they were masters of the Lake Ascanius, which stretches
several miles to the westward of the city. The means of conquest
were supplied by the prudence and industry of Alexius; a great
number of boats was transported on sledges from the sea to the
lake; they were filled with the most dexterous of his archers;
the flight of the sultana was intercepted; Nice was invested by
land and water; and a Greek emissary persuaded the inhabitants to
accept his master's protection, and to save themselves, by a
timely surrender, from the rage of the savages of Europe. In the
moment of victory, or at least of hope, the crusaders, thirsting
for blood and plunder, were awed by the Imperial banner that
streamed from the citadel; * and Alexius guarded with jealous
vigilance this important conquest. The murmurs of the chiefs were
stifled by honor or interest; and after a halt of nine days, they
directed their march towards Phrygia under the guidance of a
Greek general, whom they suspected of a secret connivance with
the sultan. The consort and the principal servants of Soliman had
been honorably restored without ransom; and the emperor's
generosity to the miscreants was
interpreted as treason to the Christian cause.
Soliman was rather provoked than dismayed by the loss of his
capital: he admonished his subjects and allies of this strange
invasion of the Western Barbarians; the Turkish emirs obeyed the
call of loyalty or religion; the Turkman hordes encamped round
his standard; and his whole force is loosely stated by the
Christians at two hundred, or even three hundred and sixty
thousand horse. Yet he patiently waited till they had left behind
them the sea and the Greek frontier; and hovering on the flanks,
observed their careless and confident progress in two columns
beyond the view of each other. Some miles before they could reach
Dorylæum in Phrygia, the left, and least numerous, division
was surprised, and attacked, and almost oppressed, by the Turkish
cavalry. The heat of the weather, the clouds of arrows, and the
barbarous onset, overwhelmed the crusaders; they lost their order
and confidence, and the fainting fight was sustained by the
personal valor, rather than by the military conduct, of Bohemond,
Tancred, and Robert of Normandy. They were revived by the welcome
banners of Duke Godfrey, who flew to their succor, with the count
of Vermandois, and sixty thousand horse; and was followed by
Raymond of Tholouse, the bishop of Puy, and the remainder of the
sacred army. Without a moment's pause, they formed in new order,
and advanced to a second battle. They were received with equal
resolution; and, in their common disdain for the unwarlike people
of Greece and Asia, it was confessed on both sides, that the
Turks and the Franks were the only nations entitled to the
appellation of soldiers. Their encounter was varied, and balanced
by the contrast of arms and discipline; of the direct charge, and
wheeling evolutions; of the couched lance, and the brandished
javelin; of a weighty broadsword, and a crooked sabre; of
cumbrous armor, and thin flowing robes; and of the long Tartar
bow, and the arbalist or crossbow, a
deadly weapon, yet unknown to the Orientals. As long as the
horses were fresh, and the quivers full, Soliman maintained the
advantage of the day; and four thousand Christians were pierced
by the Turkish arrows. In the evening, swiftness yielded to
strength: on either side, the numbers were equal or at least as
great as any ground could hold, or any generals could manage; but
in turning the hills, the last division of Raymond and his
provincials was led, perhaps without
design on the rear of an exhausted enemy; and the long contest
was determined. Besides a nameless and unaccounted multitude,
three thousand Pagan knights were slain
in the battle and pursuit; the camp of Soliman was pillaged; and
in the variety of precious spoil, the curiosity of the Latins was
amused with foreign arms and apparel, and the new aspect of
dromedaries and camels. The importance of the victory was proved
by the hasty retreat of the sultan: reserving ten thousand guards
of the relics of his army, Soliman evacuated the kingdom of Roum,
and hastened to implore the aid, and kindle the resentment, of
his Eastern brethren. In a march of five hundred miles, the
crusaders traversed the Lesser Asia, through a wasted land and
deserted towns, without finding either a friend or an enemy. The
geographer may trace the position of Dorylæum, Antioch of
Pisidia, Iconium, Archelais, and Germanicia, and may compare
those classic appellations with the modern names of Eskishehr the
old city, Akshehr the white city, Cogni, Erekli, and Marash. As
the pilgrims passed over a desert, where a draught of water is
exchanged for silver, they were tormented by intolerable thirst;
and on the banks of the first rivulet, their haste and
intemperance were still more pernicious to the disorderly throng.
They climbed with toil and danger the steep and slippery sides of
Mount Taurus; many of the soldiers cast away their arms to secure
their footsteps; and had not terror preceded their van, the long
and trembling file might have been driven down the precipice by a
handful of resolute enemies. Two of their most respectable
chiefs, the duke of Lorraine and the count of Tholouse, were
carried in litters: Raymond was raised, as it is said by miracle,
from a hopeless malady; and Godfrey had been torn by a bear, as
he pursued that rough and perilous chase in the mountains of
Pisidia.
To improve the general consternation, the cousin of Bohemond
and the brother of Godfrey were detached from the main army with
their respective squadrons of five, and of seven, hundred
knights. They overran in a rapid career the hills and sea-coast
of Cilicia, from Cogni to the Syrian gates: the Norman standard
was first planted on the walls of Tarsus and Malmistra; but the
proud injustice of Baldwin at length provoked the patient and
generous Italian; and they turned their consecrated swords
against each other in a private and profane quarrel. Honor was
the motive, and fame the reward, of Tancred; but fortune smiled
on the more selfish enterprise of his rival. He was called to the
assistance of a Greek or Armenian tyrant, who had been suffered
under the Turkish yoke to reign over the Christians of Edessa.
Baldwin accepted the character of his son and champion: but no
sooner was he introduced into the city, than he inflamed the
people to the massacre of his father, occupied the throne and
treasure, extended his conquests over the hills of Armenia and
the plain of Mesopotamia, and founded the first principality of
the Franks or Latins, which subsisted fifty-four years beyond the
Euphrates.
Before the Franks could enter Syria, the summer, and even the
autumn, were completely wasted: the siege of Antioch, or the
separation and repose of the army during the winter season, was
strongly debated in their council: the love of arms and the holy
sepulchre urged them to advance; and reason perhaps was on the
side of resolution, since every hour of delay abates the fame and
force of the invader, and multiplies the resources of defensive
war. The capital of Syria was protected by the River Orontes; and
the iron bridge, * of nine arches,
derives its name from the massy gates of the two towers which are
constructed at either end. They were opened by the sword of the
duke of Normandy: his victory gave entrance to three hundred
thousand crusaders, an account which may allow some scope for
losses and desertion, but which clearly detects much exaggeration
in the review of Nice. In the description of Antioch, it is not
easy to define a middle term between her ancient magnificence,
under the successors of Alexander and Augustus, and the modern
aspect of Turkish desolation. The Tetrapolis, or four cities, if
they retained their name and position, must have left a large
vacuity in a circumference of twelve miles; and that measure, as
well as the number of four hundred towers, are not perfectly
consistent with the five gates, so often mentioned in the history
of the siege. Yet Antioch must have still flourished as a great
and populous capital. At the head of the Turkish emirs,
Baghisian, a veteran chief, commanded in the place: his garrison
was composed of six or seven thousand horse, and fifteen or
twenty thousand foot: one hundred thousand Moslems are said to
have fallen by the sword; and their numbers were probably
inferior to the Greeks, Armenians, and Syrians, who had been no
more than fourteen years the slaves of the house of Seljuk. From
the remains of a solid and stately wall, it appears to have
arisen to the height of threescore feet in the valleys; and
wherever less art and labor had been applied, the ground was
supposed to be defended by the river, the morass, and the
mountains. Notwithstanding these fortifications, the city had
been repeatedly taken by the Persians, the Arabs, the Greeks, and
the Turks; so large a circuit must have yielded many pervious
points of attack; and in a siege that was formed about the middle
of October, the vigor of the execution could alone justify the
boldness of the attempt. Whatever strength and valor could
perform in the field was abundantly discharged by the champions
of the cross: in the frequent occasions of sallies, of forage, of
the attack and defence of convoys, they were often victorious;
and we can only complain, that their exploits are sometimes
enlarged beyond the scale of probability and truth. The sword of
Godfrey divided a Turk from the shoulder to the haunch; and one
half of the infidel fell to the ground, while the other was
transported by his horse to the city gate. As Robert of Normandy
rode against his antagonist, "I devote thy head," he piously
exclaimed, "to the dæmons of hell;" and that head was
instantly cloven to the breast by the resistless stroke of his
descending falchion. But the reality or the report of such
gigantic prowess must have taught the Moslems to keep within
their walls: and against those walls of earth or stone, the sword
and the lance were unavailing weapons. In the slow and successive
labors of a siege, the crusaders were supine and ignorant,
without skill to contrive, or money to purchase, or industry to
use, the artificial engines and implements of assault. In the
conquest of Nice, they had been powerfully assisted by the wealth
and knowledge of the Greek emperor: his absence was poorly
supplied by some Genoese and Pisan vessels, that were attracted
by religion or trade to the coast of Syria: the stores were
scanty, the return precarious, and the communication difficult
and dangerous. Indolence or weakness had prevented the Franks
from investing the entire circuit; and the perpetual freedom of
two gates relieved the wants and recruited the garrison of the
city. At the end of seven months, after the ruin of their
cavalry, and an enormous loss by famine, desertion and fatigue,
the progress of the crusaders was imperceptible, and their
success remote, if the Latin Ulysses, the artful and ambitious
Bohemond, had not employed the arms of cunning and deceit. The
Christians of Antioch were numerous and discontented: Phirouz, a
Syrian renegado, had acquired the favor of the emir and the
command of three towers; and the merit of his repentance
disguised to the Latins, and perhaps to himself, the foul design
of perfidy and treason. A secret correspondence, for their mutual
interest, was soon established between Phirouz and the prince of
Tarento; and Bohemond declared in the council of the chiefs, that
he could deliver the city into their hands. * But he claimed the
sovereignty of Antioch as the reward of his service; and the
proposal which had been rejected by the envy, was at length
extorted from the distress, of his equals. The nocturnal surprise
was executed by the French and Norman princes, who ascended in
person the scaling-ladders that were thrown from the walls: their
new proselyte, after the murder of his too scrupulous brother,
embraced and introduced the servants of Christ; the army rushed
through the gates; and the Moslems soon found, that although
mercy was hopeless, resistance was impotent. But the citadel
still refused to surrender; and the victims themselves were
speedily encompassed and besieged by the innumerable forces of
Kerboga, prince of Mosul, who, with twenty-eight Turkish emirs,
advanced to the deliverance of Antioch. Five-and-twenty days the
Christians spent on the verge of destruction; and the proud
lieutenant of the caliph and the sultan left them only the choice
of servitude or death. In this extremity they collected the
relics of their strength, sallied from the town, and in a single
memorable day, annihilated or dispersed the host of Turks and
Arabians, which they might safely report to have consisted of six
hundred thousand men. Their supernatural allies I shall proceed
to consider: the human causes of the victory of Antioch were the
fearless despair of the Franks; and the surprise, the discord,
perhaps the errors, of their unskilful and presumptuous
adversaries. The battle is described with as much disorder as it
was fought; but we may observe the tent of Kerboga, a movable and
spacious palace, enriched with the luxury of Asia, and capable of
holding above two thousand persons; we may distinguish his three
thousand guards, who were cased, the horse as well as the men, in
complete steel.
In the eventful period of the siege and defence of Antioch,
the crusaders were alternately exalted by victory or sunk in
despair; either swelled with plenty or emaciated with hunger. A
speculative reasoner might suppose, that their faith had a strong
and serious influence on their practice; and that the soldiers of
the cross, the deliverers of the holy sepulchre, prepared
themselves by a sober and virtuous life for the daily
contemplation of martyrdom. Experience blows away this charitable
illusion; and seldom does the history of profane war display such
scenes of intemperance and prostitution as were exhibited under
the walls of Antioch. The grove of Daphne no longer flourished;
but the Syrian air was still impregnated with the same vices; the
Christians were seduced by every temptation that nature either
prompts or reprobates; the authority of the chiefs was despised;
and sermons and edicts were alike fruitless against those
scandalous disorders, not less pernicious to military discipline,
than repugnant to evangelic purity. In the first days of the
siege and the possession of Antioch, the Franks consumed with
wanton and thoughtless prodigality the frugal subsistence of
weeks and months: the desolate country no longer yielded a
supply; and from that country they were at length excluded by the
arms of the besieging Turks. Disease, the faithful companion of
want, was envenomed by the rains of the winter, the summer heats,
unwholesome food, and the close imprisonment of multitudes. The
pictures of famine and pestilence are always the same, and always
disgustful; and our imagination may suggest the nature of their
sufferings and their resources. The remains of treasure or spoil
were eagerly lavished in the purchase of the vilest nourishment;
and dreadful must have been the calamities of the poor, since,
after paying three marks of silver for a goat and fifteen for a
lean camel, the count of Flanders was reduced to beg a dinner,
and Duke Godfrey to borrow a horse. Sixty thousand horse had been
reviewed in the camp: before the end of the siege they were
diminished to two thousand, and scarcely two hundred fit for
service could be mustered on the day of battle. Weakness of body
and terror of mind extinguished the ardent enthusiasm of the
pilgrims; and every motive of honor and religion was subdued by
the desire of life. Among the chiefs, three heroes may be found
without fear or reproach: Godfrey of Bouillon was supported by
his magnanimous piety; Bohemond by ambition and interest; and
Tancred declared, in the true spirit of chivalry, that as long as
he was at the head of forty knights, he would never relinquish
the enterprise of Palestine. But the count of Tholouse and
Provence was suspected of a voluntary indisposition; the duke of
Normandy was recalled from the sea-shore by the censures of the
church: Hugh the Great, though he led the vanguard of the battle,
embraced an ambiguous opportunity of returning to France and
Stephen, count of Chartres, basely deserted the standard which he
bore, and the council in which he presided. The soldiers were
discouraged by the flight of William, viscount of Melun, surnamed
the Carpenter, from the weighty strokes
of his axe; and the saints were scandalized by the fall * of
Peter the Hermit, who, after arming Europe against Asia,
attempted to escape from the penance of a necessary fast. Of the
multitude of recreant warriors, the names (says an historian) are
blotted from the book of life; and the opprobrious epithet of the
rope-dancers was applied to the deserters who dropped in the
night from the walls of Antioch. The emperor Alexius, who seemed
to advance to the succor of the Latins, was dismayed by the
assurance of their hopeless condition. They expected their fate
in silent despair; oaths and punishments were tried without
effect; and to rouse the soldiers to the defence of the walls, it
was found necessary to set fire to their quarters.
For their salvation and victory, they were indebted to the
same fanaticism which had led them to the brink of ruin. In such
a cause, and in such an army, visions, prophecies, and miracles,
were frequent and familiar. In the distress of Antioch, they were
repeated with unusual energy and success: St. Ambrose had assured
a pious ecclesiastic, that two years of trial must precede the
season of deliverance and grace; the deserters were stopped by
the presence and reproaches of Christ himself; the dead had
promised to arise and combat with their brethren; the Virgin had
obtained the pardon of their sins; and their confidence was
revived by a visible sign, the seasonable and splendid discovery
of the holy lance. The policy of their chiefs has on this
occasion been admired, and might surely be excused; but a pious
baud is seldom produced by the cool conspiracy of many persons;
and a voluntary impostor might depend on the support of the wise
and the credulity of the people. Of the diocese of Marseilles,
there was a priest of low cunning and loose manners, and his name
was Peter Bartholemy. He presented himself at the door of the
council-chamber, to disclose an apparition of St. Andrew, which
had been thrice reiterated in his sleep with a dreadful menace,
if he presumed to suppress the commands of Heaven. "At Antioch,"
said the apostle, "in the church of my brother St. Peter, near
the high altar, is concealed the steel head of the lance that
pierced the side of our Redeemer. In three days that instrument
of eternal, and now of temporal, salvation, will be manifested to
his disciples. Search, and ye shall find: bear it aloft in
battle; and that mystic weapon shall penetrate the souls of the
miscreants." The pope's legate, the bishop of Puy, affected to
listen with coldness and distrust; but the revelation was eagerly
accepted by Count Raymond, whom his faithful subject, in the name
of the apostle, had chosen for the guardian of the holy lance.
The experiment was resolved; and on the third day after a due
preparation of prayer and fasting, the priest of Marseilles
introduced twelve trusty spectators, among whom were the count
and his chaplain; and the church doors were barred against the
impetuous multitude. The ground was opened in the appointed
place; but the workmen, who relieved each other, dug to the depth
of twelve feet without discovering the object of their search. In
the evening, when Count Raymond had withdrawn to his post, and
the weary assistants began to murmur, Bartholemy, in his shirt,
and without his shoes, boldly descended into the pit; the
darkness of the hour and of the place enabled him to secrete and
deposit the head of a Saracen lance; and the first sound, the
first gleam, of the steel was saluted with a devout rapture. The
holy lance was drawn from its recess, wrapped in a veil of silk
and gold, and exposed to the veneration of the crusaders; their
anxious suspense burst forth in a general shout of joy and hope,
and the desponding troops were again inflamed with the enthusiasm
of valor. Whatever had been the arts, and whatever might be the
sentiments of the chiefs, they skilfully improved this fortunate
revolution by every aid that discipline and devotion could
afford. The soldiers were dismissed to their quarters with an
injunction to fortify their minds and bodies for the approaching
conflict, freely to bestow their last pittance on themselves and
their horses, and to expect with the dawn of day the signal of
victory. On the festival of St. Peter and St. Paul, the gates of
Antioch were thrown open: a martial psalm, "Let the Lord arise,
and let his enemies be scattered!" was chanted by a procession of
priests and monks; the battle array was marshalled in twelve
divisions, in honor of the twelve apostles; and the holy lance,
in the absence of Raymond, was intrusted to the hands of his
chaplain. The influence of his relic or trophy, was felt by the
servants, and perhaps by the enemies, of Christ; and its potent
energy was heightened by an accident, a stratagem, or a rumor, of
a miraculous complexion. Three knights, in white garments and
resplendent arms, either issued, or seemed to issue, from the
hills: the voice of Adhemar, the pope's legate, proclaimed them
as the martyrs St. George, St. Theodore, and St. Maurice: the
tumult of battle allowed no time for doubt or scrutiny; and the
welcome apparition dazzled the eyes or the imagination of a
fanatic army. * In the season of danger and triumph, the
revelation of Bartholemy of Marseilles was unanimously asserted;
but as soon as the temporary service was accomplished, the
personal dignity and liberal arms which the count of Tholouse
derived from the custody of the holy lance, provoked the envy,
and awakened the reason, of his rivals. A Norman clerk presumed
to sift, with a philosophic spirit, the truth of the legend, the
circumstances of the discovery, and the character of the prophet;
and the pious Bohemond ascribed their deliverance to the merits
and intercession of Christ alone. For a while, the Provincials
defended their national palladium with clamors and arms and new
visions condemned to death and hell the profane sceptics who
presumed to scrutinize the truth and merit of the discovery. The
prevalence of incredulity compelled the author to submit his life
and veracity to the judgment of God. A pile of dry fagots, four
feet high and fourteen long, was erected in the midst of the
camp; the flames burnt fiercely to the elevation of thirty
cubits; and a narrow path of twelve inches was left for the
perilous trial. The unfortunate priest of Marseilles traversed
the fire with dexterity and speed; but the thighs and belly were
scorched by the intense heat; he expired the next day; and the
logic of believing minds will pay some regard to his dying
protestations of innocence and truth. Some efforts were made by
the Provincials to substitute a cross, a ring, or a tabernacle,
in the place of the holy lance, which soon vanished in contempt
and oblivion. Yet the revelation of Antioch is gravely asserted
by succeeding historians: and such is the progress of credulity,
that miracles most doubtful on the spot, and at the moment, will
be received with implicit faith at a convenient distance of time
and space.
The prudence or fortune of the Franks had delayed their
invasion till the decline of the Turkish empire. Under the manly
government of the three first sultans, the kingdoms of Asia were
united in peace and justice; and the innumerable armies which
they led in person were equal in courage, and superior in
discipline, to the Barbarians of the West. But at the time of the
crusade, the inheritance of Malek Shaw was disputed by his four
sons; their private ambition was insensible of the public danger;
and, in the vicissitudes of their fortune, the royal vassals were
ignorant, or regardless, of the true object of their allegiance.
The twenty-eight emirs who marched with the standard or Kerboga
were his rivals or enemies: their hasty levies were drawn from
the towns and tents of Mesopotamia and Syria; and the Turkish
veterans were employed or consumed in the civil wars beyond the
Tigris. The caliph of Egypt embraced this opportunity of weakness
and discord to recover his ancient possessions; and his sultan
Aphdal besieged Jerusalem and Tyre, expelled the children of
Ortok, and restored in Palestine the civil and ecclesiastical
authority of the Fatimites. They heard with astonishment of the
vast armies of Christians that had passed from Europe to Asia,
and rejoiced in the sieges and battles which broke the power of
the Turks, the adversaries of their sect and monarchy. But the
same Christians were the enemies of the prophet; and from the
overthrow of Nice and Antioch, the motive of their enterprise,
which was gradually understood, would urge them forwards to the
banks of the Jordan, or perhaps of the Nile. An intercourse of
epistles and embassies, which rose and fell with the events of
war, was maintained between the throne of Cairo and the camp of
the Latins; and their adverse pride was the result of ignorance
and enthusiasm. The ministers of Egypt declared in a haughty, or
insinuated in a milder, tone, that their sovereign, the true and
lawful commander of the faithful, had rescued Jerusalem from the
Turkish yoke; and that the pilgrims, if they would divide their
numbers, and lay aside their arms, should find a safe and
hospitable reception at the sepulchre of Jesus. In the belief of
their lost condition, the caliph Mostali despised their arms and
imprisoned their deputies: the conquest and victory of Antioch
prompted him to solicit those formidable champions with gifts of
horses and silk robes, of vases, and purses of gold and silver;
and in his estimate of their merit or power, the first place was
assigned to Bohemond, and the second to Godfrey. In either
fortune, the answer of the crusaders was firm and uniform: they
disdained to inquire into the private claims or possessions of
the followers of Mahomet; whatsoever was his name or nation, the
usurper of Jerusalem was their enemy; and instead of prescribing
the mode and terms of their pilgrimage, it was only by a timely
surrender of the city and province, their sacred right, that he
could deserve their alliance, or deprecate their impending and
irresistible attack.
Yet this attack, when they were within the view and reach of
their glorious prize, was suspended above ten months after the
defeat of Kerboga. The zeal and courage of the crusaders were
chilled in the moment of victory; and instead of marching to
improve the consternation, they hastily dispersed to enjoy the
luxury, of Syria. The causes of this strange delay may be found
in the want of strength and subordination. In the painful and
various service of Antioch, the cavalry was annihilated; many
thousands of every rank had been lost by famine, sickness, and
desertion: the same abuse of plenty had been productive of a
third famine; and the alternative of intemperance and distress
had generated a pestilence, which swept away above fifty thousand
of the pilgrims. Few were able to command, and none were willing
to obey; the domestic feuds, which had been stifled by common
fear, were again renewed in acts, or at least in sentiments, of
hostility; the fortune of Baldwin and Bohemond excited the envy
of their companions; the bravest knights were enlisted for the
defence of their new principalities; and Count Raymond exhausted
his troops and treasures in an idle expedition into the heart of
Syria. * The winter was consumed in discord and disorder; a sense
of honor and religion was rekindled in the spring; and the
private soldiers, less susceptible of ambition and jealousy,
awakened with angry clamors the indolence of their chiefs. In the
month of May, the relics of this mighty host proceeded from
Antioch to Laodicea: about forty thousand Latins, of whom no more
than fifteen hundred horse, and twenty thousand foot, were
capable of immediate service. Their easy march was continued
between Mount Libanus and the sea-shore: their wants were
liberally supplied by the coasting traders of Genoa and Pisa; and
they drew large contributions from the emirs of Tripoli, Tyre,
Sidon, Acre, and Cæsarea, who granted a free passage, and
promised to follow the example of Jerusalem. From Cæsarea
they advanced into the midland country; their clerks recognized
the sacred geography of Lydda, Ramla, Emmaus, and Bethlem, * and
as soon as they descried the holy city, the crusaders forgot
their toils and claimed their reward.
Chapter LVIII: The First Crusade. -- Part
V.
Jerusalem has derived some reputation from the number and
importance of her memorable sieges. It was not till after a long
and obstinate contest that Babylon and Rome could prevail against
the obstinacy of the people, the craggy ground that might
supersede the necessity of fortifications, and the walls and
towers that would have fortified the most accessible plain. These
obstacles were diminished in the age of the crusades. The
bulwarks had been completely destroyed and imperfectly restored:
the Jews, their nation, and worship, were forever banished; but
nature is less changeable than man, and the site of Jerusalem,
though somewhat softened and somewhat removed, was still strong
against the assaults of an enemy. By the experience of a recent
siege, and a three years' possession, the Saracens of Egypt had
been taught to discern, and in some degree to remedy, the defects
of a place, which religion as well as honor forbade them to
resign. Aladin, or Iftikhar, the caliph's lieutenant, was
intrusted with the defence: his policy strove to restrain the
native Christians by the dread of their own ruin and that of the
holy sepulchre; to animate the Moslems by the assurance of
temporal and eternal rewards. His garrison is said to have
consisted of forty thousand Turks and Arabians; and if he could
muster twenty thousand of the inhabitants, it must be confessed
that the besieged were more numerous than the besieging army. Had
the diminished strength and numbers of the Latins allowed them to
grasp the whole circumference of four thousand yards, (about two
English miles and a half, ) to what useful purpose should they
have descended into the valley of Ben Hinnom and torrent of
Cedron, or approach the precipices of the south and east, from
whence they had nothing either to hope or fear? Their siege was
more reasonably directed against the northern and western sides
of the city. Godfrey of Bouillon erected his standard on the
first swell of Mount Calvary: to the left, as far as St.
Stephen's gate, the line of attack was continued by Tancred and
the two Roberts; and Count Raymond established his quarters from
the citadel to the foot of Mount Sion, which was no longer
included within the precincts of the city. On the fifth day, the
crusaders made a general assault, in the fanatic hope of
battering down the walls without engines, and of scaling them
without ladders. By the dint of brutal force, they burst the
first barrier; but they were driven back with shame and slaughter
to the camp: the influence of vision and prophecy was deadened by
the too frequent abuse of those pious stratagems; and time and
labor were found to be the only means of victory. The time of the
siege was indeed fulfilled in forty days, but they were forty
days of calamity and anguish. A repetition of the old complaint
of famine may be imputed in some degree to the voracious or
disorderly appetite of the Franks; but the stony soil of
Jerusalem is almost destitute of water; the scanty springs and
hasty torrents were dry in the summer season; nor was the thirst
of the besiegers relieved, as in the city, by the artificial
supply of cisterns and aqueducts. The circumjacent country is
equally destitute of trees for the uses of shade or building, but
some large beams were discovered in a cave by the crusaders: a
wood near Sichem, the enchanted grove of Tasso, was cut down: the
necessary timber was transported to the camp by the vigor and
dexterity of Tancred; and the engines were framed by some Genoese
artists, who had fortunately landed in the harbor of Jaffa. Two
movable turrets were constructed at the expense, and in the
stations, of the duke of Lorraine and the count of Tholouse, and
rolled forwards with devout labor, not to the most accessible,
but to the most neglected, parts of the fortification. Raymond's
Tower was reduced to ashes by the fire of the besieged, but his
colleague was more vigilant and successful; * the enemies were
driven by his archers from the rampart; the draw-bridge was let
down; and on a Friday, at three in the afternoon, the day and
hour of the passion, Godfrey of Bouillon stood victorious on the
walls of Jerusalem. His example was followed on every side by the
emulation of valor; and about four hundred and sixty years after
the conquest of Omar, the holy city was rescued from the
Mahometan yoke. In the pillage of public and private wealth, the
adventurers had agreed to respect the exclusive property of the
first occupant; and the spoils of the great mosque, seventy lamps
and massy vases of gold and silver, rewarded the diligence, and
displayed the generosity, of Tancred. A bloody sacrifice was
offered by his mistaken votaries to the God of the Christians:
resistance might provoke but neither age nor sex could mollify,
their implacable rage: they indulged themselves three days in a
promiscuous massacre; and the infection of the dead bodies
produced an epidemical disease. After seventy thousand Moslems
had been put to the sword, and the harmless Jews had been burnt
in their synagogue, they could still reserve a multitude of
captives, whom interest or lassitude persuaded them to spare. Of
these savage heroes of the cross, Tancred alone betrayed some
sentiments of compassion; yet we may praise the more selfish
lenity of Raymond, who granted a capitulation and safe-conduct to
the garrison of the citadel. The holy sepulchre was now free; and
the bloody victors prepared to accomplish their vow. Bareheaded
and barefoot, with contrite hearts, and in an humble posture,
they ascended the hill of Calvary, amidst the loud anthems of the
clergy; kissed the stone which had covered the Savior of the
world; and bedewed with tears of joy and penitence the monument
of their redemption. This union of the fiercest and most tender
passions has been variously considered by two philosophers; by
the one, as easy and natural; by the other, as absurd and
incredible. Perhaps it is too rigorously applied to the same
persons and the same hour; the example of the virtuous Godfrey
awakened the piety of his companions; while they cleansed their
bodies, they purified their minds; nor shall I believe that the
most ardent in slaughter and rapine were the foremost in the
procession to the holy sepulchre.
Eight days after this memorable event, which Pope Urban did
not live to hear, the Latin chiefs proceeded to the election of a
king, to guard and govern their conquests in Palestine. Hugh the
Great, and Stephen of Chartres, had retired with some loss of
reputation, which they strove to regain by a second crusade and
an honorable death. Baldwin was established at Edessa, and
Bohemond at Antioch; and two Roberts, the duke of Normandy and
the count of Flanders, preferred their fair inheritance in the
West to a doubtful competition or a barren sceptre. The jealousy
and ambition of Raymond were condemned by his own followers, and
the free, the just, the unanimous voice of the army proclaimed
Godfrey of Bouillon the first and most worthy of the champions of
Christendom. His magnanimity accepted a trust as full of danger
as of glory; but in a city where his Savior had been crowned with
thorns, the devout pilgrim rejected the name and ensigns of
royalty; and the founder of the kingdom of Jerusalem contented
himself with the modest title of Defender and Baron of the Holy
Sepulchre. His government of a single year, too short for the
public happiness, was interrupted in the first fortnight by a
summons to the field, by the approach of the vizier or sultan of
Egypt, who had been too slow to prevent, but who was impatient to
avenge, the loss of Jerusalem. His total overthrow in the battle
of Ascalon sealed the establishment of the Latins in Syria, and
signalized the valor of the French princes who in this action
bade a long farewell to the holy wars. Some glory might be
derived from the prodigious inequality of numbers, though I shall
not count the myriads of horse and foot * on the side of the
Fatimites; but, except three thousand Ethiopians or Blacks, who
were armed with flails or scourges of iron, the Barbarians of the
South fled on the first onset, and afforded a pleasing comparison
between the active valor of the Turks and the sloth and
effeminacy of the natives of Egypt. After suspending before the
holy sepulchre the sword and standard of the sultan, the new king
(he deserves the title) embraced his departing companions, and
could retain only with the gallant Tancred three hundred knights,
and two thousand foot-soldiers for the defence of Palestine. His
sovereignty was soon attacked by a new enemy, the only one
against whom Godfrey was a coward. Adhemar, bishop of Puy, who
excelled both in council and action, had been swept away in the
last plague at Antioch: the remaining ecclesiastics preserved
only the pride and avarice of their character; and their
seditious clamors had required that the choice of a bishop should
precede that of a king. The revenue and jurisdiction of the
lawful patriarch were usurped by the Latin clergy: the exclusion
of the Greeks and Syrians was justified by the reproach of heresy
or schism; and, under the iron yoke of their deliverers, the
Oriental Christians regretted the tolerating government of the
Arabian caliphs. Daimbert, archbishop of Pisa, had long been
trained in the secret policy of Rome: he brought a fleet at his
countrymen to the succor of the Holy Land, and was installed,
without a competitor, the spiritual and temporal head of the
church. * The new patriarch immediately grasped the sceptre which
had been acquired by the toil and blood of the victorious
pilgrims; and both Godfrey and Bohemond submitted to receive at
his hands the investiture of their feudal possessions. Nor was
this sufficient; Daimbert claimed the immediate property of
Jerusalem and Jaffa; instead of a firm and generous refusal, the
hero negotiated with the priest; a quarter of either city was
ceded to the church; and the modest bishop was satisfied with an
eventual reversion of the rest, on the death of Godfrey without
children, or on the future acquisition of a new seat at Cairo or
Damascus.
Without this indulgence, the conqueror would have almost been
stripped of his infant kingdom, which consisted only of Jerusalem
and Jaffa, with about twenty villages and towns of the adjacent
country. Within this narrow verge, the Mahometans were still
lodged in some impregnable castles: and the husbandman, the
trader, and the pilgrim, were exposed to daily and domestic
hostility. By the arms of Godfrey himself, and of the two
Baldwins, his brother and cousin, who succeeded to the throne,
the Latins breathed with more ease and safety; and at length they
equalled, in the extent of their dominions, though not in the
millions of their subjects, the ancient princes of Judah and
Israel. After the reduction of the maritime cities of Laodicea,
Tripoli, Tyre, and Ascalon, which were powerfully assisted by the
fleets of Venice, Genoa, and Pisa, and even of Flanders and
Norway, the range of sea-coast from Scanderoon to the borders of
Egypt was possessed by the Christian pilgrims. If the prince of
Antioch disclaimed his supremacy, the counts of Edessa and
Tripoli owned themselves the vassals of the king of Jerusalem:
the Latins reigned beyond the Euphrates; and the four cities of
Hems, Hamah, Damascus, and Aleppo, were the only relics of the
Mahometan conquests in Syria. The laws and language, the manners
and titles, of the French nation and Latin church, were
introduced into these transmarine colonies. According to the
feudal jurisprudence, the principal states and subordinate
baronies descended in the line of male and female succession: but
the children of the first conquerors, a motley and degenerate
race, were dissolved by the luxury of the climate; the arrival of
new crusaders from Europe was a doubtful hope and a casual event.
The service of the feudal tenures was performed by six hundred
and sixty-six knights, who might expect the aid of two hundred
more under the banner of the count of Tripoli; and each knight
was attended to the field by four squires or archers on
horseback. Five thousand and seventy sergeants, most probably
foot-soldiers, were supplied by the churches and cities; and the
whole legal militia of the kingdom could not exceed eleven
thousand men, a slender defence against the surrounding myriads
of Saracens and Turks. But the firmest bulwark of Jerusalem was
founded on the knights of the Hospital of St. John, and of the
temple of Solomon; on the strange association of a monastic and
military life, which fanaticism might suggest, but which policy
must approve. The flower of the nobility of Europe aspired to
wear the cross, and to profess the vows, of these respectable
orders; their spirit and discipline were immortal; and the speedy
donation of twenty-eight thousand farms, or manors, enabled them
to support a regular force of cavalry and infantry for the
defence of Palestine. The austerity of the convent soon
evaporated in the exercise of arms; the world was scandalized by
the pride, avarice, and corruption of these Christian soldiers;
their claims of immunity and jurisdiction disturbed the harmony
of the church and state; and the public peace was endangered by
their jealous emulation. But in their most dissolute period, the
knights of their hospital and temple maintained their fearless
and fanatic character: they neglected to live, but they were
prepared to die, in the service of Christ; and the spirit of
chivalry, the parent and offspring of the crusades, has been
transplanted by this institution from the holy sepulchre to the
Isle of Malta.
The spirit of freedom, which pervades the feudal institutions,
was felt in its strongest energy by the volunteers of the cross,
who elected for their chief the most deserving of his peers.
Amidst the slaves of Asia, unconscious of the lesson or example,
a model of political liberty was introduced; and the laws of the
French kingdom are derived from the purest source of equality and
justice. Of such laws, the first and indispensable condition is
the assent of those whose obedience they require, and for whose
benefit they are designed. No sooner had Godfrey of Bouillon
accepted the office of supreme magistrate, than he solicited the
public and private advice of the Latin pilgrims, who were the
best skilled in the statutes and customs of Europe. From these
materials, with the counsel and approbation of the patriarch and
barons, of the clergy and laity, Godfrey composed the Assise of
Jerusalem, a precious monument of feudal jurisprudence. The new
code, attested by the seals of the king, the patriarch, and the
viscount of Jerusalem, was deposited in the holy sepulchre,
enriched with the improvements of succeeding times, and
respectfully consulted as often as any doubtful question arose in
the tribunals of Palestine. With the kingdom and city all was
lost: the fragments of the written law were preserved by jealous
tradition and variable practice till the middle of the thirteenth
century: the code was restored by the pen of John d'Ibelin, count
of Jaffa, one of the principal feudatories; and the final
revision was accomplished in the year thirteen hundred and
sixty-nine, for the use of the Latin kingdom of Cyprus.
The justice and freedom of the constitution were maintained by
two tribunals of unequal dignity, which were instituted by
Godfrey of Bouillon after the conquest of Jerusalem. The king, in
person, presided in the upper court, the court of the barons. Of
these the four most conspicuous were the prince of Galilee, the
lord of Sidon and Cæsarea, and the counts of Jaffa and
Tripoli, who, perhaps with the constable and marshal, were in a
special manner the compeers and judges of each other. But all the
nobles, who held their lands immediately of the crown, were
entitled and bound to attend the king's court; and each baron
exercised a similar jurisdiction on the subordinate assemblies of
his own feudatories. The connection of lord and vassal was
honorable and voluntary: reverence was due to the benefactor,
protection to the dependant; but they mutually pledged their
faith to each other; and the obligation on either side might be
suspended by neglect or dissolved by injury. The cognizance of
marriages and testaments was blended with religion, and usurped
by the clergy: but the civil and criminal causes of the nobles,
the inheritance and tenure of their fiefs, formed the proper
occupation of the supreme court. Each member was the judge and
guardian both of public and private rights. It was his duty to
assert with his tongue and sword the lawful claims of the lord;
but if an unjust superior presumed to violate the freedom or
property of a vassal, the confederate peers stood forth to
maintain his quarrel by word and deed. They boldly affirmed his
innocence and his wrongs; demanded the restitution of his liberty
or his lands; suspended, after a fruitless demand, their own
service; rescued their brother from prison; and employed every
weapon in his defence, without offering direct violence to the
person of their lord, which was ever sacred in their eyes. In
their pleadings, replies, and rejoinders, the advocates of the
court were subtle and copious; but the use of argument and
evidence was often superseded by judicial combat; and the Assise
of Jerusalem admits in many cases this barbarous institution,
which has been slowly abolished by the laws and manners of
Europe.
The trial by battle was established in all criminal cases
which affected the life, or limb, or honor, of any person; and in
all civil transactions, of or above the value of one mark of
silver. It appears that in criminal cases the combat was the
privilege of the accuser, who, except in a charge of treason,
avenged his personal injury, or the death of those persons whom
he had a right to represent; but wherever, from the nature of the
charge, testimony could be obtained, it was necessary for him to
produce witnesses of the fact. In civil cases, the combat was not
allowed as the means of establishing the claim of the demandant;
but he was obliged to produce witnesses who had, or assumed to
have, knowledge of the fact. The combat was then the privilege of
the defendant; because he charged the witness with an attempt by
perjury to take away his right. He came therefore to be in the
same situation as the appellant in criminal cases. It was not
then as a mode of proof that the combat was received, nor as
making negative evidence, (according to the supposition of
Montesquieu; ) but in every case the right to offer battle was
founded on the right to pursue by arms the redress of an injury;
and the judicial combat was fought on the same principle, and
with the same spirit, as a private duel. Champions were only
allowed to women, and to men maimed or past the age of sixty. The
consequence of a defeat was death to the person accused, or to
the champion or witness, as well as to the accuser himself: but
in civil cases, the demandant was punished with infamy and the
loss of his suit, while his witness and champion suffered
ignominious death. In many cases it was in the option of the
judge to award or to refuse the combat: but two are specified, in
which it was the inevitable result of the challenge; if a
faithful vassal gave the lie to his compeer, who unjustly claimed
any portion of their lord's demesnes; or if an unsuccessful
suitor presumed to impeach the judgment and veracity of the
court. He might impeach them, but the terms were severe and
perilous: in the same day he successively fought
all the members of the tribunal, even
those who had been absent; a single defeat was followed by death
and infamy; and where none could hope for victory, it is highly
probable that none would adventure the trial. In the Assise of
Jerusalem, the legal subtlety of the count of Jaffa is more
laudably employed to elude, than to facilitate, the judicial
combat, which he derives from a principle of honor rather than of
superstition.
Among the causes which enfranchised the plebeians from the
yoke of feudal tyranny, the institution of cities and
corporations is one of the most powerful; and if those of
Palestine are coeval with the first crusade, they may be ranked
with the most ancient of the Latin world. Many of the pilgrims
had escaped from their lords under the banner of the cross; and
it was the policy of the French princes to tempt their stay by
the assurance of the rights and privileges of freemen. It is
expressly declared in the Assise of Jerusalem, that after
instituting, for his knights and barons, the court of peers, in
which he presided himself, Godfrey of Bouillon established a
second tribunal, in which his person was represented by his
viscount. The jurisdiction of this inferior court extended over
the burgesses of the kingdom; and it was composed of a select
number of the most discreet and worthy citizens, who were sworn
to judge, according to the laws of the actions and fortunes of
their equals. In the conquest and settlement of new cities, the
example of Jerusalem was imitated by the kings and their great
vassals; and above thirty similar corporations were founded
before the loss of the Holy Land. Another class of subjects, the
Syrians, or Oriental Christians, were oppressed by the zeal of
the clergy, and protected by the toleration of the state. Godfrey
listened to their reasonable prayer, that they might be judged by
their own national laws. A third court was instituted for their
use, of limited and domestic jurisdiction: the sworn members were
Syrians, in blood, language, and religion; but the office of the
president (in Arabic, of the rais) was
sometimes exercised by the viscount of the city. At an
immeasurable distance below the nobles,
the burgesses, and the
strangers, the Assise of Jerusalem
condescends to mention the villains and
slaves, the peasants of the land and
the captives of war, who were almost equally considered as the
objects of property. The relief or protection of these unhappy
men was not esteemed worthy of the care of the legislator; but he
diligently provides for the recovery, though not indeed for the
punishment, of the fugitives. Like hounds, or hawks, who had
strayed from the lawful owner, they might be lost and claimed:
the slave and falcon were of the same value; but three slaves, or
twelve oxen, were accumulated to equal the price of the
war-horse; and a sum of three hundred pieces of gold was fixed,
in the age of chivalry, as the equivalent of the more noble
animal.
End of Volume V.